Skip to main content

Full text of "The luck of the Kid"

See other formats


;  x°°- 

/• 


*  : 


. .  %  ’  *  •-  n  o >  y  %.  “  7V  r*  v°A  - . . ,  -'■h. 

~  rL'"  %  \>  »”*•'.  >  <iso  v''  c^. 

'*<■.  .V,  „  J\%(?/U  '  ■£,  C,'-  *  «„  s 

c  v  °  .  :  ^  -v 

Av  *  o 

'K/ 


7v\^J „..  ,CV>*»T^'  ^  %"*«^'*V°' ;s 

^  .. v  , 

fa  1 


: 


<v» 

*V  % 

/  / 


^T'.y  ’  wyf-  *V?  '.* 

ir  .  ,  S  ^  <  \  _ 

*  *  S  A>  ,  '  1  ®  « 

^  '3 

•  ^  -'  :■  ■■  -  .  ...  ... 

*  11  g*  s'”'/, '''c  ,,<0  v> 

/!>  .  ^  .v  . 

<P  V  ®  X 


x0ox. 


-  ■•••  <  .  '/  /  ”  "  sX  /\ 


^  * 
V  V 


aS  ~~?a 
^  « 


^  «-  *  'V  V,  -  ‘i-  §  -V 

<■  V  *?<■  *  <?'  -i  CL% 

**  ,  s  s  ,'\  o  ^o,v»  ,0  < 

>  **  x/  v  0o"  co;-^ 

<p.  Ax  * Jt’fi /%*>  *  .. 


< 


AN  «'■"«  '  o  A  c 

^  rah  «  ->  (y-  *  ,  y 

V\  4”-VT  '  -~>4*  ,  *S  -£  W»A  ^ 

**-  /3T  /  •  X  v. 

o  oN 

s°°-  "lr- ^  »  A  -V  '  .. 


C^r  ^  pp  c>  y  <.  fl.r  rP  ^ 

'"''<£  •’*•  VN'  *"’‘  . 
,  ->  *'-«>'.%  >  ^  / 

_  /  M  ^  '\  r  ^  ^ 

=  m-V  ,V  -  -*  X  1  .L-  ;'  «  .0>‘  <Cp 

-  ■•>■  'X,  .  <■  'V  ^ 

^  C  *^s  \A 

N  f  '■  1  8  k 

^  W*4" 


\  .  *  *3  -  c*  ■*  -u,  ■  ' 

"  /  *  *  S  '  A  v  r  ,  '0*  K+  &  , 

s  S  0^  <  0  S  '•  ♦  % 

v^'  -O0x  ^ 

\D 


X°°- 

x 


^  "°oi  f  a%4s.  :  '^- 

A  :  X0ox. 

XV  X.  <*.  (-  f  v  •  , 

jl  '  t  ■ <  V  A  '  s  VX^ 

N  /O'  c  %  ^ 

I  s  ^  «  A  X-  •'  v  o 


,.  ^U\\\<^s>  >  0 

s'-  - ',;%. 4  - ' » '  v/% - . ,  v *  -  ■ ' ■ •■  v° , s . . ,  -% 

<■  <?*  A..  *  r,  -  >  ->A  ^  /'-w.iis  X* 

^r>  k  v  *  ^  ° 

^  ^  o  -w/  KX  XKr 
*  ‘V  V,  ^  V/ 

r>  *  v  dJ  A  o' 
O  ^  AV 


cr 

'”  ’  1  VV'*N  ‘  •% 

f  t-  X'  .W/'S  0°  V  « 

A'  -s  v*:  ,  A  .  •  s  A 

*  .  '  ~  :  A.  o'  •  ' .  ;  sj 


/  ^  V 

i ;  ^ 


V 


v0  o 

,.yv^>\-  >vv— ’/*-» 

A  A  ^  v#  •  ’  /  *fJ ’ .  ^ 


r>  A 


V- 


^  A 


&  l- 

i  ^  P 

* 

r > 

‘>A 

T*. 


Kr  V 


CY  r  A,  C*  V  <}- 

'P.  .  r- 

V  o^ 

</>  v 


/  -V  .  v  ,  s  <\ 

O  N  '■  r,  *  *  a\  «  L  '  8  K 

rv  c  *f  <P .  o.  J  s. 

*  V  S.  js£s\  •  A  ~jr  A\ 

w  !<^ia'  **-?  :S'W 
^  v^gJiy*  >0o~ 

■rf*  ^  /  A  ■  -  ^  f\ 

«  \!  t  rl*  L  S 


v  *■  0  > 


*  ^ 


V  <V 


vV  ^  "  *  v>  'A' 

uf/  >$S  !-''  * 


Ht  o  W/M\y  ~  <v>  '*£•  -  .^i:  i'F^  °  y  ^  *  li//  •>%  \\>  * 

r>  .  „  V.  •••vnF*  v5  ^  >  V,—  #■ *  *V  ^  a  A 

A‘«X'"S'A 


->.  7  9  I  A 


kV  '<£.  , 

.  \v  x*o  %  *  *  1  '  0>  s>*  '*  ^  \>  > 

1  aL*;%  ^  ,**  %  4v  .>V  : A  W’ 

t/>  ^  V  *  ^\\\Vr-W/  A  . 


.  \V  </\~ 


\  )  a? 

|J" 

,o- 

.  -  j> 

•  n*  A  s’*/  0  N  0  <  v  V  *  0, 

.<Y  S  '/,  O  V  7-  t 


N.  S’*/  />^- 

cv  4>s  '*  c* 

A  *  v  ***•/  **.4  ' 

**  *  *  <V.  a\ 

*V .  (O 

>  <C, 


y  ■  -/>. 

•p\  ^ 

A-  /  0  *  X  ^  A'  0  N  C  ; 

1  8  *  °o  0°  * 


By  RIDGWELL  CULLUM 


THE  HEART  OF  UNAGA 
THE  MAN  IN  THE  TWILIGHT 
\/  THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 
THE  DEVIL’S  KEG 
THE  HOUND  FROM  THE  NORTH 
THE  BROODING  WILD 
THE  NIGHT  RIDERS 
THE  WATCHERS  OF  THE  PLAINS 
THE  COMPACT 
THE  TRAIL  OF  THE  AXE 
THE  ONE  WAY  TRAIL 
THE  SHERIFF  OF  DYKE  HOLE 
THE  TWINS  OF  SUFFERING  CREEK 
THE  GOLDEN  WOMAN 
THE  WAY  OF  THE  STRONG 
THE  LAW  BREAKERS 
THE  SON  OF  HIS  FATHER 
THE  MEN  WHO  WROUGHT 
THE  PURCHASE  PRICE 
THE  TRIUMPH  OF  JOHN  KARS 
THE  LAW  OF  THE  GUN 


V 


The 

Luck  of  the  Kid 


By 

Ridgwell  Cullum 


/ 


Author  of 

“  The  Heart  of  Unaga,”  “The  Man  in  the  Twilight,”  etc. 


> 


G.P. Putnam’s  Sons 

I^tewYork  &  London 
Knickerbocker  pres % 
1923 


Copyright,  1923 


by 

Ridgwell  Cullura 


V 


Made  in  the  United  States  of  America 


jUH  30  !  :?3 

v'  ■  U  /*■ 

r  \  4 

©C1A711076 


In  Happy  Recollection 

OF 

OUR  EARLY  BOYHOOD 

THIS,  MY  TWENTY-FIRST  BOOK,  IS  DEDICATED 
IN  DEEPEST  AFFECTION  TO 


MY  BROTHERS 


CONTENTS 


PART  I 


CHAPTER  PAGE 


I. — North  of  “Sixty” 

3 

II. — The  Holocaust 

• 

9 

III. — The  Planning  of  Le  Gros 

• 

19 

IV. — Two  Men  of  the  North 

• 

30 

V. — The  Luck  of  the  Kid  . 

• 

£ 

39 

VI. — The  Euralians 

& 

46 

VII. — The  Vengeance  of  Usak 

'4 

59 

VIII. — The  Valley  of  the  Fire  Hills 

0 

72 

PART  II 

I. — Placer  City  .  .  . 

• 

• 

• 

A 

9i 

II. — The  Cheechakos  . 

• 

• 

• 

0 

no 

III. — Reindeer  Farm 

• 

• 

• 

0 

130 

IV. — Within  the  Circle 

• 

• 

• 

• 

148 

V. — The  House  in  the  Valley  of  the  Fire 

Hills . 162 

VI.  — The  Eyes  in  the  Night  ....  174 

VII.  — The  Dream  Hill . 196 

vii 


CONTENTS 


•  •  • 

Vlll 

CHAPTER 

VIII. — Bill  Wilder  Re-appears 

IX.  — The  Great  Savage 

X.  — Days  of  Promise  . 

XI.  — Children  of  the  North 

XII.  — Youth  Supreme  .. 

XIII.  — A  Whiteman’s  Purpose 

XIV.  — A  Whiteman’s  Word 
XV. — The  Irony  of  Fate 

XVI. — The  End  of  the  Long  Trail 


PAGE 
.  212 

.  229 

•  249 

.  268 
.  28l 

.  306 

•  326 

•  338 

•  350 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


PARTI 


\ 


CHAPTER  I 

NORTH  OF  “SIXTY” 

The  sub-Arctic  summer  was  at  its  height.  The  swelter 
of  heat  was  of  almost  tropical  intensity.  No  wisp  of 
cloud  marred  the  perfect  purity  of  the  steely  blue  sky, 
and  no  breath  of  wind  relieved  the  intemperate  scorch 
of  the  blazing  sun. 

The  two  men  on  the  river  bank  gave  no  heed  to  the 
oppressive  heat.  For  the  moment  they  seemed  concerned 
with  nothing  but  their  ease,  and  the  swarming  flies,  and 
the  voracious  attacks  of  the  mosquitoes  from  which  the 
smoke  of  their  camp  fire  did  its  best  to  protect  them. 
Down  below  them,  a  few  yards  away,  their  walrus-hide 
kyak  lay  moored  to  the  bank  of  the  river,  whose  sluggish, 
oily-moving  waters  flowed  gently  northward  towards  the 
far-off  fields  of  eternal  ice.  It  was  noon,  and  a  rough 
midday  meal  had  been  prepared  and  disposed  of.  Now 
they  were  smoking  away  a  leisurely  hour  before  resum¬ 
ing  their  journey. 

The  younger  of  the  two  flung  away  the  end  of  a  cigar¬ 
ette  with  a  movement  that  was  almost  violent  in  its  im¬ 
patience.  He  turned  a  pair  of  narrow  black  eyes  upon 
his  companion,  and  their  sparkle  of  resentment  shone 
fiercely  in  sharp  contrast  against  the  dusky  skin  of  their 
setting. 

“It’s  no  use  blinding  ourselves,  sir,”  he  said,  speaking 


3 


4 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


rapidly  in  the  tongue  of  the  whiteman,  with  only  the 
faintest  suspicion  of  native  halting.  “It’s  here.  But 
we’ve  missed  it.  And  another’s  found  it.” 

He  was  a  youthful  creature  something  short  of  the 
completion  of  his  second  decade.  But  that  which  he 
lacked  in  years  he  made  up  for  in  the  alertness  of  pur¬ 
pose  that  looked  out  of  his  keen  eyes.  He  was  dark- 
skinned,  its  hue  something  between  yellow  and  olive.  He 
had  prominent,  broad  cheek  bones  like  those  of  all  the  na¬ 
tives  of  Canada’s  extreme  north.  Yet  his  face  differed 
from  the  general  low  type  of  the  Eskimo.  There  was 
refinement  in  every  detail  of  it.  There  was  something 
that  suggested  a  race  quite  foreign,  but  curiously  akin. 

“Marty  Le  Gros?  Yes?” 

The  older  man  stirred.  He  had  been  lounging  full 
length  on  the  ground  so  that  the  smoke  of  the  camp  fire 
rolled  heavily  across  him,  and  kept  him  safe  from  the  tor¬ 
ment  of  winged  insects.  Now  he  sat  up  like  the  other, 
and  crossing  his  legs  tucked  his  booted  feet  under  him. 

He  was  older  than  his  companion  by  more  than  twenty 
years.  But  the  likeness  between  them  was  profound. 
He,  too,  was  dusky.  He,  too,  had  the  broad,  high  cheek 
bones.  He  was  of  similar  stature,  short  and  broad. 
Then,  too,  his  hair  was  black  and  cut  short  like  the  other’s, 
so  short,  indeed,  that  it  bristled  crisply  over  the  crown  of 
his  bare  head  with  the  effect  of  a  wire  brush.  He,  too,  was 
clad  in  the  rough  buckskin  of  the  trail  with  no  detail  that 
could  have  distinguished  him  from  the  native.  The  only 
difference  between  the  two  was  in  age,  and  the  colour  of 
their  eyes.  The  older  man’s  eyes  were  a  sheer  anachron¬ 
ism.  They  were  a  curious  gleaming  yellow,  whose 
tawny  depths  shone  with  a  subtle  reflection  of  the  bril¬ 
liant  sunshine. 

Tell  me  of  it  again,  Sate,’  he  went  on,  knocking  out 


NORTH  OF  “SIXTY”  5 

the  red  clay  pipe  he  had  been  smoking,  and  re-filling  it 
from  a  beaded  buckskin  pouch. 

But  the  youth  was  impatient,  and  the  quick  flash  of  his 
black  eyes  was  full  of  scorn  for  the  unruffled  composure 
of  the  other. 

“He’s  beaten  us,  father,”  he  cried.  “He  has  it.  I  have 
seen.”  He  spread  out  his  hands  in  an  expressive  gesture. 
And  they  were  lean,  delicate  hands  that  were  almost 
womanish.  “This  priest-man  with  his  say-so  of  religion. 
He  search  all  the  time.  It  is  the  only  thing  he  think  of. 
Gold!  Well,  he  get  it.” 

He  finished  up  with  a  laugh  that  only  expressed  fierce 
chagrin. 

“And  he  get  it  here  on  this  Loon  Creek,  that  you  make 
us  waste  three  months’  search  on,  son?” 

The  father  shook  his  head.  And  his  eyes  were  cold, 
and  the  whole  expression  of  his  set  features  mask-like. 
The  youth  flung  out  his  hands. 

“I  go  down  for  trade  to  Fort  Cupar.  This  missionary, 
Marty  Le  Gros,  is  there.  He  show  this  thing.  Two  great 
nuggets,  clear  yellow  gold.  Big?  They  must  be  one 
hundred  ounces  each.  No.  Much  more.  And  he  tell  the 
story  to  McLeod,  who  drinks  so  much,  that  he  find  them 
on  Loon  Creek.  I  hear  him  tell.  I  listen  all  the  time. 
They  don’t  know  me.  They  think  I  am  a  fool  Eskimo. 
I  let  them  think.  Well?  Where  is  it  on  Loon  Creek? 
We  go  up.  We  come  down.  There  is  no  sign  anywhere. 
No  work.  The  man  lies,  for  all  his  religion.  Or  we  are 
the  fools  we  do  not  think  we  are.” 

Sate  turned  his  searching  eyes  on  the  northern  distance, 
where  the  broad  stream  merged  itself  into  the  purple  of 
low,  far-off  hills. 

It  was  a  scene  common  enough  to  the  lower  lands  of 
Canada’s  extreme  north.  There  was  nothing  of  barren 


6 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


desolation.  There  were  no  great  hills,  no  great  primor¬ 
dial  forests  along  the  broad  valley  of  Loon  Creek.  But 
it  was  a  widespread  park  land  of  woodland  bluffs  of 
hardy  conifers  dotting  a  brilliant-hued  carpet  of  myriads 
of  Arctic  flowers,  and  long  sun-forced  grasses,  and 
lichens  of  every  shade  of  green.  It  was  Nature’s  own 
secret  flower  garden,  far  out  of  the  common  human  track, 
where,  throughout  the  ages,  she  had  spent  her  efforts  in 
enriching  the  soil,  till,  under  an  almost  tropical  summer 
heat,  it  yielded  a  display  of  vivid  colour  such  as  could 
never  have  been  matched  in  any  wilderness  under  southern 
skies. 

The  older  man  observed  him  keenly. 

“Sate,  my  son,”  he  said  at  last,  “you  are  discontented. 
Why  ?  This  man  has  a  secret.  He  has  gold.  Gold  is  the 
thing  we  look  for.  Not  all  the  time,  but  between  our 
trade  which  makes  us  rich,  and  our  people  rich.  We  are 
masters  of  the  north  country.  It  is  ours  by  right  of  the 
thing  we  do.  It  must  be  ours.  And  all  its  secrets.  This 
man’s  secret.  We  must  have  it,  too.” 

The  man  spoke  quietly.  He  spoke  without  a  smile, 
without  emotion.  His  tawny  eyes  were  expressionless, 
for  all  the  blaze  of  light  the  sun  reflected  in  them. 

“You  are  right  to  be  discontented,”  he  went  on,  after 
the  briefest  pause.  “But  I  look  no  longer  on  Loon  Creek 
or  any  other  jcreek.  We  get  this  secret  from  Marty  Le 
Gros.  I  promise  that.” 

“How?” 

The  youth’s  quick  eyes  were  searching  his  father’s  face. 
He  had  listened  to  the  thing  he  had  hoped  to  hear.  And 
now  he  was  stirred  to  a  keen  expectancy  that  was  without 
impatience. 

The  other  shrugged  his  powerful  shoulders. 

“He  will  tell  it  to  us — himself.” 


NORTH  OF  “SIXTY” 


7 


The  black  eyes  of  the  youth  abruptly  shifted  their  gaze. 
Something  in  the  curious  eyes  of  his  parent  communi¬ 
cated  the  purpose  lying  behind  his  words.  But  it  was  in¬ 
sufficient  to  satisfy  his  headlong  impulse. 

“He?  He  tell  his  secret  to — us?” 

There  was  derision  in  the  challenge. 

“Yes.  He  will  tell — when  I  ask  him.” 

“But  it  is  far  south  and  west.  It  is  beyond — our  terri¬ 
tory.  It  is  within  the  reach  of  the  northern  police. 
There  is  big  risk  for  you  to  ask  him  the — question.” 

Again  the  man  with  the  yellow  eyes  shook  his  head. 

“Your  mother  looked  for  you  to  be  a  girl.  Maybe  her 
wish  had  certain  effect.  Risk?  There  is  no  risk.  I  see 
none.  It  is  simple.  I  bend  this  man  to  my  will.  If  he 
will  not  bend  I  break  him.  Yes.  He  is  white.  That  is 
as  it  should  be.  Someday — sometime  the  whites  of  this 
country  will  bend,  or  break  before  us.  They  know  that. 
They  fear  that.  The  thing  they  do  not  yet  know  is  that 
they  bend  now.  This  man,  Le  Gros,  we  will  see  to  him 
without  delay.” 

He  rose  from  his  cross-legged  position  almost  without 
an  effort.  He  stood  up  erect,  a  short,  broad-shouldered, 
virile  specimen  of  manhood  in  his  hard  trail  clothing. 
Then  he  moved  swiftly  down  towards  the  light  canoe  at 
the  water’s  edge. 

The  youth,  Sate,  was  slow  to  follow  him.  He  watched 
the  sturdy  figure  with  unsmiling  eyes.  He  resented  the 
imputation  upon  his  courage.  He  resented  the  taunt  his 
father  had  flung.  But  his  feelings  carried  nothing  deeper 
than  the  natural  resentment  of  a  war-like,  high-strung 
spirit. 

He  understood  his  father.  He  knew  him  for  a  creature 
of  iron  nerve,  and  a  will  that  drove  him  without  mercy. 
More  than  that  he  admitted  the  man’s  right  to  say  the 


8 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


thing  he  chose  to  his  son.  His  attitude  was  one  of  curi¬ 
ous  filial  submission  whatever  the  hurt  he  suffered.  He 
may  have  been  inspired  by  affection,  or  it  may  simply  have 
been  an  expression  of  the  filial  obedience  and  subservience 
native  to  the  race  from  which  he  sprang.  But  the  taunt 
hurt  him  sorely.  And  he  jumped  to  a  decision  as  violent 
as  it  was  impulsive. 

He  leapt  to  his  feet,  slight,  active  as  a  panther,  and 
hastily  descended  to  the  water’s  edge  and  joined  his 
parent. 

“You  think  me  like  a  woman,  father?  You  think 
that?”  he  demanded  hotly. 

The  other  turned  eyes  that  gained  nothing  of  gentleness 
from  their  smile. 

“No,”  he  said,  and  bent  again  to  his  work  of  hauling 
the  little  craft  clear  of  the  drift-wood  that  had  accumu¬ 
lated  about  it. 

The  youth  breathed  a  deep  sigh.  It  was  an  expression 
of  relief. 

“We  put  that  question  to  this  Le  Gros  soon?  Yes?” 
he  asked. 

“Yes.” 

Sate  nodded,  and  a  great  light  shone  in  his  black  eyes. 
They  were  fierce  with  exultation. 

“Then  we  must  waste  no  time.  The  way  is  long. 
There  are  many  miles  to  Fox  Bluff.”  He  laughed.  “Le 
Gros,”  he  went  on.  “It  is  a  French  name,  and  it  means — 
Tcha !  he  exclaimed  with  all  the  impetuous  feeling  which 
drove  him  like  a  whirlwind.  “We  show  him  what  it 
means.” 

The  man  with  the  tawny  eyes  looked  up  from  his  work. 
For  one  moment  he  gazed  searchingly  into  the  dark  face 

of  his  son.  Then  he  returned  again  to  his  work  without 
a  word. 


CHAPTER  II 


THE  HOLOCAUST 

“Man,  Fd  sooner  they’d  put  out  my  eyes,  or  cut  out  my 
tongue.  I’d  sooner  they’d  set  my  body  to  everlasting 
torture.  Look !  Look  there !  Yes,  and  there !  Oh,  God ! 
It’s  everywhere  the  same.”  A  shaking  hand  was  out- 
thrust.  “Dead !  Mutilated !  Old  men !  Old  women ! 
And  poor  little  bits  of  life  that  had  only  just  begun.  The 
barbarity !  The  monstrousness !” 

Marty  Le  Gros,  the  missionary  of  the  Hekor  River, 
spoke  in  a  tone  that  was  almost  choking  with  grief.  His 
eyes,  so  dark  and  wide,  were  full  of  the  horror  upon  which 
they  gazed.  His  Gallic  temperament  was  stirred  to  its 
depths.  The  heart  of  the  man  was  overflowing  with  pity 
and  grief,  and  outraged  parental  affection. 

Usak,  the  Indian,  his  servant,  stood  beside  him.  He 
offered  no  verbal  comment.  Llis  only  reply  to  the  white- 
man  was  a  low,  fierce,  inarticulate  grunt,  which  was  like 
the  growl  of  some  savage  beast. 

The  men  were  standing  at  the  entrance  to  a  wide  clear¬ 
ing.  The  great  Hekor  River  flowed  behind  them,  where 
the  canoe  they  had  just  left  swung  to  the  stream,  moored 
at  the  crude  landing  stage  of  native  manufacture.  They 
were  gazing  upon  the  setting  of  a  little  Eskimo  encamp¬ 
ment.  It  was  one  of  the  far  flung  Missions  which 
claimed  the  spiritual  service  of  Le  Gros.  He  had  only 
just  arrived  from  his  headquarters  at  Fox  Bluff,  on  the 


9 


10 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


river,  near  by  to  Fort  Cupar  the  trading  post,  on  his 
monthly  visit,  and  the  hideous  destruction  he  had  dis¬ 
covered  left  him  completely  staggered  and  helpless. 

The  devastation  of  the  settlement  was  complete. 
Dotted  about  the  clearing,  grimly  silhouetted  against  a 
background  of  dull  green  woods,  stood  the  charred  re¬ 
mains  of  a  dozen  and  more  log  shanties.  Broken  and 
burnt  timbers  littered  the  open  ground,  and  filled  the 
room  spaces  where  the  roofs  had  fallen.  Every  habita¬ 
tion  was  burnt  out  stark.  Not  even  the  crude  household 
gods  had  been  spared. 

But  this  was  the  least  of  the  horror  the  two  men  gazed 
upon.  The  human  aspect  of  the  destruction  was  a  thou¬ 
sand-fold  more  appalling.  The  ground  was  littered  with 
mutilated  dead.  As  the  missionary  had  said,  there  were 
old  men,  old  women,  and  babes  torn  from  their  mothers’ 
arms.  Silent  and  still,  death  reigned  everywhere.  The 
young  men  ?  The  young  women  ?  There  was  no  sign  of 
these.  And  therein  lay  a  further  horror  which  the  on¬ 
lookers  were  swift  to  appreciate. 

The  hideous  fascination  of  the  scene  held  them.  But  at 
last  it  was  Usak  who  broke  from  under  its  spell. 

“Euralians !”  he  cried  fiercely.  And  again  in  his  voice 
rang  that  note  which  sounded  like  the  goaded  fury  of 
some  creature  of  the  forest. 

The  Euralians! 

To  the  mind  of  every  far  northwestern  man,  in  that 
territory  which  lies  hundreds  of  miles  beyond  the  effi¬ 
cient  protection  of  the  northern  police,  the  name  of  this 
people  was  sufficient  to  set  stirring  a  chill  of  unvoiced 
terror  that  was  something  superstitious.  Who  they  were  ? 
It  was  almost  impossible  to  say.  It  was  still  a  problem 
in  the  minds  of  even  the  farthest  travelled  trail  men  and 
fur  hunters.  But  they  were  known  to  all  as  a  scourge  of 


THE  HOLOCAUST 


ii 


the  far  flung  border  which  divides  Alaska  from  the  ex¬ 
treme  north  of  Yukon  Territory. 

The  threat  they  imposed  on  the  region  was  constantly 
growing.  It  had  grown  lately  from  the  marauding  of 
mere  seal  ground  and  fur  poachers,  who  came  down  out 
of  the  iron  fastnesses  beyond  the  Arctic  fringes  of 
Alaska,  where  they  lived  hidden  in  security  beyond  the 
reach  of  the  strong  arm  of  the  United  States  law,  into  a 
murder  scourge  threatening  all  human  life  and  property 
within  reach  of  their  ruthless  operations. 

Hitherto.  Le  Gros  had  only  known  them  from  the  tales 
told  by  the  native  pelt  hunters,  the  men  who  came  down  to 
trade  at  Fort  Cupar.  He  knew  no  more  and  no  less  than 
the  rest  of  the  handful  of  white  folks  who  peopled  the 
region.  The  stories  he  had  had  to  listen  to,  for  all  their 
corroborative  nature,  were,  he  knew,  for  the  most  part 
founded  upon  hearsay.  He  had  listened  to  them.  He 
always  listened  to  these  adventurers.  But  somehow  his 
gentle,  philosophic  mind  had  left  him  missing  something 
of  the  awe  and  dread  which  beset  the  hearts  of  the  men 
whose  lurid  stories  took  vivid  colour  from  the  stirring 
emotions  which  inspired  them. 

But  now,  now  he  was  wide  awake  to  the  reality  of  the 
terror  he  had  so  largely  attributed  to  superstitious  exag¬ 
geration.  Now  he  knew  that  no  story  he  had  ever  lis¬ 
tened  to  could  compare  with  the  reality.  He  was  gazing 
upon  a  scene  of  hideous  murder  and  wanton,  savage  de¬ 
struction  that  utterly  beggared  description. 

His  feelings  were  torn  to  shreds,  and  his  heart  cried 
out  in  agony  of  helpless  pity. 

These  poor  benighted  folk,  these  simple,  peaceful 
Eskimo,  amiable,  industrious,  yearning  only  for  the  bet¬ 
terment  he  was  able  by  his  simple  ministrations  to  bring 
into  their  lives.  What  were  they  to  claim  such  barbarity 


12 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


from  a  savage  horde  ?  What  had  they  ?  What  had  they 
done?  Nothing.  Simply  nothing.  They  were  fisher- 
folk  who  spent  their  lives  in  the  hunt,  asking  only  to  be 
left  in  peace  to  work  out  the  years  of  their  desperately 
hard-lived  lives.  Now — now  they  were  utterly  wiped 
out,  a  pitiful  sacrifice  to  the  insensate  lust  of  this  mysteri¬ 
ous  scourge. 

Le  Gros  thrust  his  cap  from  his  broad  forehead.  It 
was  a  gesture  of  impotent  despair. 

“God  in  Heaven!”  he  cried,  and  the  words  seemed  to 
be  literally  wrung  from  him. 

“It  no  use  to  call  Him.” 

The  Indian’s  retort  came  on  the  instant.  And  his  tone 
was  harshly  ironical. 

“What  I  tell  you  plenty  time,”  he  went  on  sharply. 
“The  great  God.  He  look  down.  He  see  this  thing.  He 
do  nothing.  No.  It  this  way.  Man  do  this.  Yes.  Man 
do  this.  Man  must  punish  this  dam  Euralian.  I  know.” 

The  missionary  turned  from  the  slaughter  ground.  He 
searched  the  Indian’s  broad,  dusky  face.  It  was  a  strik¬ 
ing  face,  high-boned  and  full  of  the  eagle  keenness  of  the 
man’s  Sioux  Indian  forbears.  He  was  a  creature  of  enor¬ 
mous  stature,  lean,  spare  and  of  tremendous  muscle.  For 
all  he  was  civilized,  for  all  he  was  educated,  this  devoted 
servant  lacked  nothing  of  the  savage  which  belonged  to 
his  red-skinned  ancestors. 

Servant  and  master  these  two  comrades  in  a  common 
Cause  stood  in  sharp  contrast.  Usak  was  a  savage  and 
nothing  could  make  him  otherwise.  Usak  was  a  man  of 
fierce,  hot  passions.  The  other,  the  whiteman,  except  for 
his  great  stature,  was  in  direct  antithesis.  The  mission¬ 
ary  was  moulded  in  the  gentlest  form.  He  was  no  priest. 
He  represented  no  set  denomination  of  religion.  He  was 
a  simple  man  of  compassionate  heart  who  had  devoted  his 


THE  HOLOCAUST 


13 


life  to  the  service  of  his  less  fortunate  fellow  creatures 
where  such  service  might  help  them  towards  enlighten¬ 
ment  and  bodily  and  spiritual  comfort. 

He  had  been  five  years  on  his  present  mission  at  Fox 
Bluff.  He  had  come  there  of  his  own  choice  supported 
by  the  staunch  devotion  of  a  young  wife  who  was  no  less 
prepared  to  sacrifice  herself.  But  now  he  stood  almost 
alone,  but  not  quite.  For  though  death  had  swiftly  robbed 
him  of  a  wife’s  devotion,  it  had  left  him  with  the  price¬ 
less  possession  they  had  both  so  ardently  yearned.  The 
motherless  Felice  was  at  home  now  in  the  care  of  Pri-loo, 
the  childless  wife  of  Usak,  who  had  gladly  mothered  the 
motherless  babe. 

Even  as  he  gazed  into  the  Indian’s  furious  eyes  Le 
Gros’  mind  had  leaped  back  to  his  home  at  Fox  Bluff.  A 
sudden  fear  was  clutching  at  his  heart.  Oh,  he  knew  that 
Fox  Bluff  was  far  away  to  the  east  and  south.  He  knew 
that  the  journey  thither  from  the  spot  where  they  stood 
was  a  full  seven  days’  of  hard  paddling  on  the  great  river 
behind  them.  But  Pri-loo  and  his  infant  child  were  alone 
in  his  home.  They  were  utterly  without  protection  ex¬ 
cept  for  the  folk  at  the  near-by  Fort.  And  these  Eura- 
lians,  if  they  so  desired,  what  was  to  stop  them  with  the 
broad  highway  of  the  river  which  was  open  to  all? 

He  shook  his  head  endeavouring  to  stifle  the  fears  that 
had  suddenly  beset  him. 

“You’re  wrong,  Usak,”  he  said  quietly.  “God  sees  all. 
He  will  punish — in  his  own  good  time.” 

Usak’s  fierce  eyes  snapped. 

“You  say  that?  Oh,  yes.  You  say  that  all  the  time, 
boss,”  he  cried.  “I  tell  you — no.  You  my  good  boss. 
You  mak  me  man  to  know  everything  so  as  a  whiteman 
knows.  You  show  me  all  thing.  You  teach  me.  You 
mak  me  build  big  reindeer  farm  so  I  live  good,  an’  Pri-loo 


14 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


eat  plenty  all  time.  Oh  yes.  I  read.  I  write.  I  mak 
figgers.  You  mak  me  do  this  thing.  You,  my  good  boss. 
I  mak  for  you  all  the  time.  I  big  heart  for  you.  That  so. 
But  no.  I  tell  you — No!  The  great  God  not  know  this 
thing.  He  not  know  this  Euralian  wher’  he  come  from. 
No.  Not  no  more  as  you  he  know  this  thing.  But  I 
know.  I — Usak.  I  know  ’em  all,  everything.” 

At  another  time  the  missionary  would  have  listened  to 
the  man’s  quaint  egoism  with  partly  shocked  amusement. 
His  final  statement,  however,  startled  him  out  of  every 
other  feeling. 

“You  know  the  hiding-place  of  these — fiends?”  he  de¬ 
manded  sharply. 

Usak  nodded.  A  curious  vanity  was  shining  in  the 
dark  eyes  which  looked  straight  into  the  whiteman’s. 

“I  know  him — yes,”  he  said. 

“You’ve  never  told  a  thing  of  this  before?” 

There  was  doubt  in  the  missionary’s  tone,  and  in  the  re¬ 
gard  of  his  brown  eyes. 

“I  know  him,”  Usak  returned  shortly.  Then,  in  a 
moment,  he  flung  out  his  great  hands  in  a  vehement  ges¬ 
ture.  “I  say  I  know  him — an’  we  go  kill  ’em  all  up.” 

All  doubt  was  swept  from  the  missionary’s  mind.  He 
understood  the  passionate  savagery  underlying  the 
Indian’s  veneer  of  civilization.  The  man  was  in  des¬ 
perate  earnest. 

“No.”  Le  Gros’  denial  came  sharply.  Then  his  gaze 
drifted  back  to  the  scene  of  destruction,  and  a  deep  sigh 
escaped  him.  “No,”  he  reiterated  simply.  “This  is  not 

for  us.  It  is  for  the  police.  If  you  know  the  hiding-place 
of  these - ” 

“No  good,  boss.  No,”  Usak  cried,  in  fierce  disappoint¬ 
ment.  “The  p’lice?  No.  They  so  far.”  He  held  up 
one  hand  with  two  fingers  thrusting  upwards.  “One _ 


THE  HOLOCAUST 


15 


two  p’lice  by  Placer.  An’  Placer  many  days  far  off.  No 
good.”  He  shrugged  his  great  shoulders.  “Us  mans 
all  dead.  Yes.  Pri-loo  all  dead.  Felice  dead,  too.  All 
mans  dead  when  p’lice  come.  I  know.  You  not  know. 
You  good  man.  You  not  think  this  thing.  Usak  bad 
man  Indian.  He  think  this  thing  all  time.  Listen.  I  tell 
you,  boss,  my  good  boss.  I  say  the  thing  in  my  mind. 
The  thing  I  know.” 

He  broke  off  and  glanced  in  the  direction  of  the  river, 
and  his  eyes  dwelt  on  the  gently  rocking  canoe.  He 
turned  again,  and  his  thoughtful  eyes  came  once  more  to 
the  scene  of  horror  that  infuriated  his  savage  heart.  He 
was  like  a  man  preparing  to  face  something  of  desperate 
consequence.  Something  that  might  grievously  disturb 
the  relations  in  which  he  stood  to  the  man  to  whom  he 
believed  himself  to  owe  everything  he  now  treasured  in 
life.  At  last  his  hands  stirred.  They  were  raised,  and 
moved  automatically  under  emotions  which  no  words  of 
his  were  adequate  to  express. 

“I  big  trail  man,”  he  began.  “I  travel  far.  I  go  by  the 
big  ice,  by  the  big  hills,  by  the  big  water.  I  mak  trade 
with  all  mans  Eskimo.  I  mak  big  reindeer  trade  with 
him  Eskimo,  same  as  you  show  me,  boss.  So  I  go  far, 
far  all  time.  So  I  know  this  Euralian  better  as  ’em  all.  I 
not  say.  Oh,  no.  It  not  good.  Now  I  say.  This  mans 
Euralian  look  all  time  for  all  thing.  Furs?  Yes.  They 
steal  ’em  furs,  an’  kill  ’em  up  all  Eskimo.  So  Eskimo  all 
big  scare.  Gold?  Yes.  They  look  for  him  all  same,  too. 
Oil?  Yes.  Coal?  Yes.  All  this  thing  they  look,  look  for 
all  time.  Him  mans  not  Eskimo.  They  not  Indian. 
They  not  whiteman.  No.  They  damn  foreign  devil  so 
as  I  not  know.  Him  all  mans  live  in  whiteman  house  all 
time.  Big  house.  I  know.  I  find  him  house.” 

The  man’s  unease  had  passed.  He  was  absorbed  in  the 


16 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


thing  he  had  to  tell.  Suddenly  after  a  moment’s  pause, 
he  raised  a  hand  pointing  so  that  his  wondering  com¬ 
panion  turned  again  to  the  spectacle  he  would  gladly  have 
avoided. 

“Boss,  you  mak  ’em  this  thing!  You  mak  ’em  kill  all 
up!  You!” 

“I?” 

Le  Gros’  horrified  gaze  swept  back  to  the  face  of  the 
accusing  man.  The  Indian  was  fiercely  smiling.  He 
nodded. 

“You  mak  ’em  this,  but  you  not  know.  You  not  know 
nothing,”  he  said  in  a  tone  that  was  almost  gentle.  “Oh, 
I  say  ’em  this  way,  but  I  not  mean  you  kill  ’em  all  up. 
You?  No.  Listen,  boss,”  he  went  on,  coming  close  up 
and  lowering  his  harsh  tones.  “You  kill  ’em  all  up  be¬ 
cause  you  tell  all  the  mans  you  mak  big  find  gold  on  Loon 
Creek.  Boss,  you  tell  the  mans.  You  think  all  mans 
good  like  so  as  you.  So  you  not  hide  this  thing.  You 
tell  ’em,  an’  you  show  big  piece  gold — two.  Now  you 
know  how  you  kill  ’em  all  up.” 

Usak  waited.  The  amazement  in  the  eyes  of  the  mis¬ 
sionary  gave  place  to  a  grave  look  of  understanding. 

“You  mean  that  my  story  of  the  discovery  of  gold  I 
made  has  caused — this?”  He  shook  his  head,  and  the 
question  in  his  mild  eyes  was  urgent.  “How  ?  Tell  me, 
Usak,  and  tell  it  quick.” 

The  Indian  nodded. 

“Oh,  it  easy.  Yes.  You  tell  the  story.  It  go  far.  It 
go  quick.  All  mans  know  it.  Gold !  The  good  boss,  Le 
Gros,  find  gold !  Him  Euralian.  Ears,  eyes,  they  all  time 
everywhere.  Him  hear,  too.  Maybe  him  see,  too.  I  not 
say.  Him  mak  big  think.  Him  say:  ‘This  man,  this 
good  boss,  him  find  gold!  How  we  get  it?  How  we 
rob  him,  an’  steal  ’em  all  up  gold!  Euralian  think.  It 


THE  HOLOCAUST 


1 7 


easy.  Le  Gros  good  man.  Us  go.  Us  kill  ’em  all  up 
him  Mission.  One  Mission.  Two  Mission.  All  Mis¬ 
sion.  Then  us  go  kill  up  all  mans  at  Fort  Cupar.  Kill 
up  Marty  Le  Gros  an’  Usak.  Then  we  get  ’em  all  this 
gold.’” 

There  was  fierce  conviction  in  every  word  the  man  said. 
For  all  the  crudeness  of  his  argument,  if  argument  it 
could  be  called,  the  force  of  his  convictions  carried  weight 
even  with  a  man  who  was  normally  devoid  of  suspicion. 
Then,  too,  there  was  still  the  horror  of  the  spectacle  in  the 
clearing  to  yield  its  effect.  But  greater  than  all  the  other’s 
^conviction  or  argument,  greater  than  all  else,  was  the 
missionary’s  surge  of  terror  for  the  safety  of  his  little 
baby  daughter  with  her  nurse  back  there  in  his  home. 

Le  Gros  breathed  deeply.  His  dark  eyes  were  full  of 
the  gravest  anxiety.  For  the  moment  he  had  forgotten 
everything  but  the  personal  danger  he  had  suddenly 
realised  to  be  threatening. 

Usak  was  watching  him.  He  understood  the  thing  that 
was  stirring  behind  the  whiteman’s  troubled  eyes.  He 
had  driven  home  his  conviction  and  he  was  satisfied.  Now 
he  awaited  agreement  with  his  desire  that  they  should 
themselves  go  and  deal  with  these  fierce  marauders.  He 
saw  no  reason  for  hesitation.  He  saw  nothing  in  his  de¬ 
sire  that  could  make  it  impossible,  hopeless.  But  then  he 
was  a  savage  and  only  applied  calm  reason  when  passion 
left  him  undisturbed.  The  only  thing  to  satisfy  his  pres¬ 
ent  mood  was  to  go,  even  singlehanded  if  necessary,  and 
retaliate  slaughter  for  slaughter. 

Finally  it  was  he  again  who  broke  the  silence.  The 
spirit  driving  him  would  not  permit  of  long  restraint. 

“Us  go,  boss?”  he  urged. 

Marty  Le  Gros  suddenly  bestirred  himself.  He  shook 
his  head. 


1 8  THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 

“No,”  he  said.  Then  he  pointed  at  the  scene  in  front 
of  them. 

“We  do  this  thing.  The  poor  dead  things  must  be 
hidden  up.  They  were  Christians,  and  we  must  give  them 
Christian  burial.  After  that  we  go.  We  go  back  home. 
There  is  my  little  Felice.  There  is  your  Pri-loo.  They 
must  be  made  safe.” 

The  man’s  decision  was  irrevocable.  The  Indian 
recognised  the  tone  and  understood.  But  his  disappoint¬ 
ment  was  intense. 

“Us  not  go?”  he  cried.  His  words  were  accompanied 
by  a  sound  that  was  like  a  laugh,  a  harsh,  derisive  laugh. 
“So,”  he  said.  “We  bury  ’em  all  these  people.  Yes. 
The  good  boss  say  so.  Then  we  go  home,  an’  mak  safe 
Felice.  We  mak  safe  Pri-loo.  Then  us  all  get  kill  up — 
sure.” 


CHAPTER  III 


THE  PLANNING  OF  LE  GROS 

It  was  still  broad  daylight  for  all  the  lateness  of  the  hour. 
At  this  time  of  year  darkness  was  unknown  on  the  Hekor 
River.  The  sky  was  brilliant,  with  its  cloudless  summer 
blue  shining  with  midday  splendour. 

Marty  Le  Gros  was  standing  in  the  doorway  of  his  log- 
built  home,  a  home  of  considerable  dimensions  and  com¬ 
fort  for  his  own  hands,  and  those  gentle  hands  of  his 
dead  wife,  had  erected  every  carefully  trimmed  log  of  it. 
He  had  only  that  day  returned,  sick  at  heart  with  the 
hideous  recollection  of  the  tragedy  of  his  far-off  Mission. 

He  was  gazing  out  over  the  bosom  of  the  sluggish 
river,  so  broad,  so  peacefully  smiling  as  it  stole  gently 
away  on  its  never-ending  task  of  feeding  the  distant  lake 
whose  demands  upon  it  seemed  quite  insatiable.  His 
mind  was  gravely  troubled,  and  it  was  planning  the  thing 
which  had  so  suddenly  become  imperative.  In  a  moment 
it  seemed  all  the  peace,  all  the  quiet  delight  of  his  years 
of  ardent  labour  amongst  the  Eskimo  had  been  utterly 
rent  and  dispelled.  He  had  been  caught  up  in  the  tide  of 
Usak’s  savage  understanding  of  the  position  of  imminent 
danger  in  which  he  and  all  his  belongings  were  standing. 
The  thing  he  contemplated  must  be  done,  and  done  at 
once. 

The  evening  hour,  for  all  its  midday  brilliance,  was  no 
less  peaceful  than  the  hours  of  sundown  in  lower  lati- 


19 


20 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


tudes.  He  had  learned  to  love  every  mood  of  this  far 
northern  world  from  its  bitter  storms  of  winter  to  the 
tropical  heat  of  its  fly  and  mosquito-ridden  summer.  It 
was  the  appeal  of  the  remote  silence  of  it  all;  it  was 
the  breadth  of  that  wide  northern  world  so  far  beyond  the 
sheer  pretences  of  civilization;  it  was  the  freedom,  the 
sense  of  manhood  it  inspired.  Its  appeal  had  never  once 
failed  him  even  though  it  had  robbed  him  of  that  tender 
companionship  of  the  woman  whose  only  thought  in  the 
world  had  been  for  him  and  his  self-sacrificing  labours. 

At  another  time,  with  the  perfect  content  of  a  mind  at 
ease,  he  would  have  stood  there  smoking  his  well-charred 
pipe  contemplating  the  beauty  of  this  world  he  had  made 
his  own.  But  all  that  was  changed  now.  The  beauty,  the 
calm  of  it  all,  only  aggravated  his  moody  unease. 

Beyond  the  mile-wide  river  the  western  hills  rose  up  to 
dizzy,  snow-capped  heights.  Their  far  off  slopes  were 
buried  under  the  torn  beds  of  ages-old  glacial  fields,  or 
lay  hidden  behind  the  dark  forest-belts  of  primordial 
growth.  The  sight  of  them  urged  him  with  added  alarm. 
He  was  facing  the  west,  searching  beyond  the  Alaskan 
border,  and  somewhere  out  there,  hidden  within  those 
scarce  trodden  fastnesses  lay  the  pulsing  heart  of  the 
thing  he  had  suddenly  come  to  fear.  Usak  had  warned 
him.  Usak  had  convinced  him  on  the  seven  day  paddle 
down  the  river.  So  it  was  that  those  far-off  ramparts, 
with  their  towering  serrated  crowns  lost  in  the  heavy 
mists  enshrouding  them,  no  longer  appealed  in  their 
beauty.  Their  appeal  had  changed  to  one  of  serious 
dread. 

He  avoided  them  deliberately.  His  gaze  came  back  to 
the  nearer  distance  of  the  river,  and  just  beyond  it  where 
the  old  fur-trading  post,  which  gave  its  name  to  the 
region,  stood  out  dark  and  staunch  as  it  had  stood  for 


THE  PLANNING  OF  LE  GROS 


21 


more  than  a  century.  A  heavy  stockade  of  logs,  which 
the  storms  of  the  years  had  failed  to  destroy,  encom¬ 
passed  it.  The  sight  of  the  stockade  filled  him  with  a 
satisfaction  it  had  never  inspired  before.  He  drew  a 
deep  breath.  Yes,  he  was  glad  because  of  it.  He  felt 
that  those  old  pelt  hunters  had  built  well  and  with  great 
wisdom. 

Then  the  wide  river  slipping  away  so  gently  south¬ 
ward.  It  was  the  road  highway  of  man  in  these  remote¬ 
nesses,  passing  along  just  here  between  low  foreshores  of 
attenuated  grasses  and  lichen-covered  boulders,  lit  by 
the  blaze  of  colour  from  myriads  of  tiny  Arctic  flowers. 
It  was  very,  very  beautiful.  But  its  beauty  was  of  less  con¬ 
cern  now  than  another  thought.  Just  as  it  was  a  possible 
approach  for  the  danger  he  knew  to  be  threatening,  so 
it  was  the  broad  highway  of  escape  should  necessity  de¬ 
mand. 

For  the  time  Le  Gros  was  no  longer  the  missionary. 
He  was  no  less  a  simple  adventurer  than  those  others  who 
peopled  the  region.  Spiritual  things  had  no  longer  place 
in  his  thought.  Temporal  matters  held  him.  His 
motherless  child  was  there  behind  him  in  his  home  in  the 
care  of  the  faithful  Pri-loo. 

Gold !  He  wondered.  What  was  the  curse  that  clung 
to  the  dull  yellow  creation  of  those  fierce  terrestrial  fires  ? 
A  painful  trepidation  took  possession  of  him  as  he 
thought  of  the  tremendous  richness  of  the  discovery 
which  the  merest  chance  had  flung  into  his  hands.  It  had 
seemed  absurd,  curiously  absurd,  even  at  the  time.  He 
had  had  no  desire  for  any  of  it.  He  had  not  yielded  him¬ 
self  to  the  hardship  and  self-sacrifice  of  the  life  of  a  sub- 
Arctic  missionary  and  retained  any  desire  for  the  things 
which  gold  would  yield  him.  Perhaps  for  this  very  rea¬ 
son  an  ironical  fate  had  forced  her  favours  upon  him. 


22 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


He  had  been  well-nigh  staggered  at  the  wealth  of  his  dis¬ 
covery,  and  he  had  laughed  in  sheer  amazed  amusement 
that  of  all  people  such  should  fall  to  his  lot.  The  dis¬ 
covery  had  been  his  alone.  Not  even  Usak  had  shared  in 
it.  There  had  been  no  reason  for  secrecy,  so  he  had  been 
prepared  to  give  the  story  of  it  broadcast  to  the  world. 

He  had  shown  his  specimens,  and  he  had  enjoyed  the 
mystery  with  which  he  had  enshrouded  his  discovery 
when  he  displayed  them  to  Jim  McLeod,  the  factor  at 
Fort  Cupar,  and  a  small  gathering  of  trailmen.  This  had 
been  at  first.  And  chance  alone  had  saved  him  from  re¬ 
vealing  the  locality  of  his  discovery.  It  came  in  a  flash 
when  he  had  witnessed  the  staggering  effect  which  the 
two  great  nuggets  he  offered  for  inspection  had  had  upon 
his  audience.  In  that  moment  he  had  realised  something 
of  the  potentiality  of  the  thing  that  was  his. 

Instantly  re-action  set  in.  Instantly  he  was  himself 
transformed.  The  missionary  fell  from  him.  He  re¬ 
membered  his  baby  girl,  and  became  at  once  a  plain  ad¬ 
venturer  and — father.  Someday  Felice  would  grow  to 
womanhood.  Someday  he  would  no  longer  be  there  to 
tend  and  care  for  her.  What  could  he  give  her  that  she 
might  be  freed  from  the  hardships  waiting  upon  a  lonely 
girl  in  a  world  that  had  so  little  of  comfort  and  sympathy 
to  bestow  upon  the  weak?  Nothing.  So,  when  they 
pressed  him  for  the  locality  whence  came  his  discovery, 
he — deliberately  lied. 

More  than  ever  now  was  he  concerned  for  his  secret. 
More  than  ever  was  he  concerned  for  the  thing  which  the 
savage  understanding  of  Usak  had  instilled  into  his  simple 
mind.  His  secret  must  be  safeguarded  at  once.  What¬ 
ever  the  future  might  have  in  store  for  him  personally  he 
must  make  safe  this  thing  for — little  Felice. 

A  sound  came  to  him  from  within  the  house.  It  was 


THE  PLANNING  OF  LE  GROS 


23 


the  movement  of  the  moccasined  feet  of  Usak’s  woman, 
Pri-loo.  He  spoke  over  his  shoulder  without  leaving  the 
doorway. 

“Does  she  sleep,  Pri-loo?”  he  inquired  in  a  low  voice. 
The  answer  came  in  the  woman's  deep,  velvet  tones. 

“She  sleep,  boss.” 

The  man  bestirred  himself.  He  turned  about,  and  the 
woman’s  dusky  beauty  came  under  his  urgent  gaze. 

“Then  I  go,”  he  said.  “Pm  going  right  over  to  see 
Jim  McLeod,  at  the  Fort.  You  just  sit  around  till  Usak 
comes  back  from  the  farm.  You  won’t  quit  this  door¬ 
way  till  he  comes  along.  That  so?  I’ll  be  back  in  a  while, 
anyway.  Felice’ll  be  all  right?  You’ll  see  to  it?” 

“Oh,  yes.  Sure.  Felice  all  right.  Pri-loo  not  quit. 
No.” 

There  was  smiling  confidence  and  assurance  in  the 
woman’s  wide  eyes,  so  dark  and  gentle,  yet  so  full  of  the 
savage  she  really  was. 

“Good.”  Marty  Le  Gros  reached  out  his  hand  and 
patted  the  woman’s  rounded  shoulder  under  the  elabor¬ 
ately  beaded  buckskin  tunic  she  had  never  abandoned  for 
the  less  serviceable  raiment  of  the  whitewoman.  “Then 

1  ga” 

The  missionary  nodded  and  passed  out.  And  the 
squaw  stood  in  his  place  in  the  doorway  gazing  after  him 
as  he  hurried  down  to  the  canoe  which  lay  moored  at  the 
river  bank. 


The  scene  about  the  Fort  was  one  of  leisurely  activity. 
The  day’s  work  was  nearly  completed  for  all  the  sun  was 
high  in  the  heavens.  The  smoke  of  camp  fires  was  lolling 
upon  the  still  evening  air,  and  the  smell  of  cooking  food 
pervaded  the  entire  neighbourhood. 


24 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


Now  the  store  had  emptied  of  its  human,  bartering 
freight,  and  with  the  close  of  the  day’s  trading,  Jim  Mc¬ 
Leod  and  his  young  wife,  like  all  the  rest,  were  about  to 
retire  to  their  evening  meal. 

The  man  was  leaning  on  the  long  counter  contemplat¬ 
ing  the  narrow  day  book  in  which  he  recorded  his  transac¬ 
tions  with  the  Eskimo,  and  those  other  trailmen  who 
were  regular  customers.  His  wife,  Hesther,  young, 
slight  and  almost  pretty,  was  standing  in  the  open  door¬ 
way  regarding  the  simple  camp  scenes  going  on  within 
the  walls  of  the  great  stockade  which  surrounded  their 
home.  She  was  simply  clad  in  a  waist  and  skirt  of  some 
rough  plaid  material.  Her  soft  brown  eyes  were  alight 
and  smiling,  and  their  colour  closely  matched  the  wealth 
of  brown  hair  coiled  neatly  about  her  head. 

“Nearly  through,  Jim?”  she  inquired  after  awhile. 

The  man  at  the  counter  looked  up. 

“It  ain’t  so  bad  as  it’s  been,”  he  said.  “But  it’s  short. 
A  hell  of  a  piece  short  of  what  it  should  be.”  He  moved 
out  from  behind  his  counter  and  came  to  the  woman’s  side. 
“You  know,  Hes,  I  went  into  things  last  night.  We’re 
three  hundred  seals  down  on  the  year  and  I’d  hate  to  tell 
you  the  number  of  foxes  we’re  short.  We’re  gettin’ 
the  left-overs.  That’s  it.  Those  darn  Euralians  skin  the 
pore  fools  of  Eskimo  out  of  the  best,  an’  we  get  the 
stuff  they  ain’t  no  use  for.  It’s  a  God’s  shame,  gal.  If 
it  goes  on  ther’s  jest  one  thing  in  sight.  We’ll  be  beatin’ 
it  back  to  civilization,  an’  chasing  up  a  grub  stake.  The 
company’ll  shut  this  post  right  down — sure.” 

The  man  glanced  uneasily  about  him.  His  pale  blue 
eyes  were  troubled  as  he  surveyed  the  shelves  laden  with 
gaudy  trading  truck,  and  finally  came  to  rest  on  the  small 
pile  of  furs  baled  behind  the  counter  ready  for  the  store¬ 
room.  He  understood  his  position  well  enough.  He 


THE  PLANNING  OF  LE  GROS 


25 


held  it  by  results.  The  Fur  Valley  Trading  Company 
was  no  philanthropic  institution.  If  Fort  Cupar  showed 
no  profit  then  Fort  Cupar,  so  far  as  their  enterprise  was 
concerned,  would  be  closed  down. 

He  was  worried.  He  knew  that  a  time  was  coming  in 
the  comparatively  near  future  when  Hesther  would  need 
all  the  comfort  and  ease  that  he  could  afford  her.  If  the 
Company  closed  down  as  it  had  been  threatening  him,  it 
would,  he  felt,  be  something  in  the  nature  of  a  tragedy  to 
them. 

The  woman  smiled  round  into  his  somewhat  fat  face. 

“Don’t  you  feel  sore,  Jim,”  she  said  in  her  cheerful 
inspiriting  way.  “Maybe  the  Good  God  hands  us  folk 
out  our  trials,  but  I  guess  He’s  mighty  good  in  passing 
us  compensations.  Our  compensation’s  coming  along, 
boy.  An’  I’m  looking  forward  to  that  time  so  I  don’t 
hardly  know  how  to  wait  for  it.” 

Jim’s  blue  eyes  wavered  before  the  steadfast  encourage¬ 
ment  in  his  wife’s  confident,  slightly  self-conscious  smile. 

“Yes,”  he  said,  and  turned  away  again  to  the  inadequate 
pile  of  furs  that  troubled  him. 

Nature  had  been  less  than  kind  to  Jim  McLeod.  His 
body  was  ungainly  with  fat  for  all  his  youth.  His  face 
was  puffy  and  almost  gross,  which  the  habit  of  clean 
shaving  left  painfully  evident.  In  reality  the  man  was 
keen  and  purposeful.  He  was  kindly  and  intensely 
honest.  His  one  serious  weakness,  the  thing  that  had 
driven  him  to  join  up  with  the  hard  life  of  the  northern 
adventurers  was  an  unfortunate  and  wholly  irresistible 
addiction  to  alcohol.  I11  civilization  he  had  failed  utterly 
for  that  reason  alone,  and  so,  with  his  young  wife,  he 
had  fled  from  temptation  whither  he  hoped  and  believed 
his  curse  would  be  unable  to  follow  him. 

“You  see,  Jim,”  Hesther  went  on  reassuringly,  “if  they 


26 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


close  us  down,  what  then?  I  guess  we’ll  be  only  little 
worse  off.  They’ve  got  to  see  us  down  to  our  home  town, 

and  we  can  try  again.  We — ” 

The  man  interrupted  her  with  a  quick  shake  of  the 

head. 

“I  don’t  quit  this  north  country,”  he  said  definitely. 
“Ther’s  things  here  if  we  can  only  hit  ’em.  And  besides 
it’s  my  only  chance.  An’,  Hes,  it’s  your  only  chance — 
with  me.  You  know  what  I  mean,  dear.”  He  nodded. 
“Sure  you  do,  gal.  It  means  drink  an’  hell — down  there. 
It  means — ” 

The  girl  laughed  happily. 

“Have  you  escaped  it  here,  Jim?”  She  shook  her  head. 
“But  I  don’t  worry  so  I  have  you.  You’re  mine.  You’re 
my  husband,”  she  went  on  softly.  “God  gave  you  to  me, 
an’  whatever  you  are,  or  do,  why  I  guess  I’d  rather  have 
you  than  any  good  angel  man  who  lived  on  tea  and  pie- 
talk.  Please  God  you’ll  quit  the  drink  someday.  You 
can’t  go  on  trying  like  you  do  without  making  good  in  the 
end.  But  even  if  you  didn’t — well,  you’re  just  mine 
anyway.” 

Jim  smiled  tenderly  into  his  wife’s  up-turned  face. 
And  he  stooped  and  kissed  the  pretty,  ready  lips.  And 
somehow  half  his  trouble  seemed  to  vanish  with  the 
thought  of  the  beautiful  mother  heart  that  would  so  soon 
be  called  upon  to  exercise  its  natural  functions.  This 
frail,  warm-hearted,  courageous  creature  was  his  staunch 
rock  of  support.  And  her  simple  inspiriting  philosophy 
was  the  hope  which  always  urged  him  on. 

“That’s  fine,  my  dear,”  he  said.  “You’re  the  best  in 
the  world,  but  you  can’t  conjure  furs  so  we  can  keep  this 
darn  old  ship  afloat.  But  it  don’t  do  to  think  that  way. 
We’ll  jest  think  of  that  baby  of  ours  that’s  cornin’  an’ 
do  our  best,  an’ — Say !”  He  broke  off  pointing  through 


THE  PLANNING  OF  LE  GROS 


27 


the  doorway  and  beyond  the  gateway  of  the  great  stock¬ 
ade  in  the  direction  of  the  river.  “Ther’s  Marty  cornin' 
along  up  from  the  river — and — he’s  in  one  hell  of  a 
hurry.” 

The  girl  turned  at  once,  her  gaze  following  the  pointing 
finger.  The  great  figure  of  the  missionary  was  hastily 
approaching.  The  sight  of  his  hurry  was  sufficiently 
unusual  to  impress  them  both. 

“I  didn’t  know  he’d  got  back.”  Hesther’s  tone  was 
thoughtful. 

Jim  shook  his  head. 

“He  wasn’t  due  back  for  two  weeks.” 

“Is  there — ?  Do  you  think — ?” 

“I  guess  ther’s  something  worrying  sure.  He  don’t—” 

The  man  broke  off  and  placed  an  arm  about  the 
woman’s  shoulder. 

“Say  best  run  along,  Hes,  an’  see  about  food.  I’ll  ask 
him  to  eat  with  us.” 

The  wife  needed  no  second  bidding.  She  understood. 
She  nodded  smilingly  and  hurried  away. 


The  two  men  were  standing  beside  the  counter.  Jim 
McLeod  had  his  broad  back  turned  to  it,  and  his  fat 
hands,  stretched  out  on  either  side  of  him,  were  gripping 
the  over-hanging  edge  of  it.  His  pale  eyes  were  gazing 
abstractedly  out  through  the  doorway  searching  the  bril¬ 
liant  distance  beyond  the  river,  while  a  surge  of  vivid 
thought  was  speeding  through  his  brain. 

Marty  Le  Gros  was  intent  upon  his  friend.  His  dark 
eyes  were  riveted  upon  the  fleshy  features  of  the  man 
upon  whom  he  knew  he  must  depend. 

There  was  a  silence  between  them  now.  It  was  the 


28 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


silence  which  falls  and  endures  only  under  the  pro- 
foundest  pre-occupation.  The  store  in  which  they  stood, 
the  simple  frame  structure  set  up  on  the  ruins  of  the 
old-time  Fort,  which  it  had  displaced,  was  forgotten.  The 
lavish  stock  of  trading  truck,  the  diminished  pile  of  furs. 
Neither  had  cognizance  of  the  things  about  them.  They 
were  concerned  only  with  the  thing  which  Marty  had 
told  of.  The  desperate  slaughter,  the  destruction  of  his 
Mission,  seven  days  higher  up  the  river. 

After  awhile  Jim  stirred.  His  gaze  came  back  to  the 
surroundings  in  which  they  stood.  He  glanced  over  the 
big  room  with  its  boarded  walls,  adorned  here  and  there 
with  fierce,  highly-coloured  showcards  which  he  had 
fastened  up  to  entertain  his  simple  customers.  His  waver¬ 
ing  eyes  paused  at  the  great  iron  stove  which  in  winter 
made  life  possible.  They  passed  on  and  finally  rested  on 
the  simple  modern  doorway  through  which  his  young 
wife  had  not  long  passed  on  her  way  to  prepare  food. 
Here  they  remained,  for  he  was  thinking  of  her  and  of 
their  baby  so  soon  to  be  born.  Finally  he  yielded  his 
hold  on  the  counter  and  turned  on  the  man  who  had  told 
of  the  horror  he  had  so  recently  witnessed. 

“It's  bad,  Marty,”  he  said  in  a  low  tone.  “It’s  so  bad 
it’s  got  me  scared.  Why  ?  Why  ?  Say,  it  don’t  leave  me 
guessing.  Does  it  you?” 

He  looked  searchingly  into  the  steady,  dark  eyes  of  the 
man  he  had  come  to  regard  above  all  others. 

“No,”  he  went  on  emphatically.  “You’re  not  guessing. 
They’ve  heard  of  your  gold — these  cursed  Euralians. 
This  is  their  way  of  doin’  things  sure.  They’ll  be  along 
down  on  us — next.” 

The  door  opened  at  the  far  end  of  the  store.  Hesther 
stood  for  a  moment  framed  in  the  opening.  She  gazed 
quickly  at  the  two  men,  and  realised  something  of  the 


THE  PLANNING  OF  LE  GROS 


29 

urgency  under  which  they  were  labouring.  In  a  mo¬ 
ment  she  forced  a  smile  to  her  eyes. 

“Supper’s  fixed,  Jim,”  she  said  quietly.  “Marty’ll  join 
us — sure.  Will  you  both  come  right  along?” 


CHAPTER  IV 

TWO  MEN  OF  THE  NORTH 

“Guess  we  got  an  hour  to  talk,  Marty.  Hesther  won’t 
be  through  her  chores  in  an  hour.” 

Le  Gros  nodded. 

“Your  Hesther’s  a  good  soul,  and  Pd  hate  to  scare  her.” 

“Sure.  That’s  how  I  feel.  I  make  it  you’ve  a  heap  of 
trouble  back  of  your  head.” 

“Yes.” 

The  missionary  settled  himself  more  comfortably  in 
the  hard  chair  he  had  turned  from  the  supper  table.  He 
had  set  it  in  the  shade  of  the  printed  cotton  curtain  that 
adorned  the  parlor  window. 

Jim  McLeod  was  less  concerned  for  the  glaring  even¬ 
ing  sunlight.  He  sat  facing  it,  bulking  clumsily  on  a 
chair  a  size  too  small  for  him.  His  pale  blue  eyes  gazed 
out  of  the  window  which  was  closely  barred  with 
mosquito-netting. 

The  last  of  the  supper  things  had  been  cleared  from  the 
table,  and  the  sounds  penetrating  the  thin,  boarded  walls 
of  the  room  told  of  the  labours  of  the  busy  housewife 
going  on  in  the  lean-to  kitchen  beyond.  There  was  no 
need  for  these  added  labours  which  Hesther  inflicted  upon 
herself.  There  were  native  women  who  worked  about 
the  store  quite  capable  of  relieving  her.  But  Hesther 
understood  that  the  men  wanted  to  talk  in  private. 


30 


TWO  MEN  OF  THE  NORTH 


3i 


Besides,  it  was  her  happy  philosophy  that  God  made 
woman  to  care  for  the  creature  comforts  of  her  man,  and 
to  relegate  that  duty,  all  those  duties  connected  there¬ 
with,  would  be  an  offence  which  nothing  could  condone. 

Le  Gros  removed  his  pipe  from  his  mouth.  His  eyes 
were  full  of  reflective  unease. 

“Yes/’  he  reiterated,  “and  I  guess  it’s  trouble  enough 
to  scare  more  than  a  woman.” 

He  thrust  a  hand  into  a  pocket  of  his  coat.  He  pulled 
out  a  little  canvas  bag  and  unfastened  the  string  about 
its  top.  He  peered  at  the  yellow  fragmentary  contents. 
It  was  of  several  ounces  of  gold  dust,  that  wonderful 
alluvial  dust  ranging  in  size  from  sheer  dust  to  nuggets 
the  size  of  a  schoolboy’s  marbles. 

He  passed  the  bag  across  to  the  trader. 

“Get  a  look  at  that,”  he  said.  “It’s  the  wash-up  of  a 
single  panning.  Just  one.  I  only  showed  you  the  two 
big  nuggets  before — when  I — lied  to  you  where  I  made 
the  ‘strike.’  ” 

“Lied?  You  didn’t  get  it  on  Loon  Creek?” 

“No.” 

Jim  took  possession  of  the  bag  of  dust.  He  peered  into 
its  golden  depths.  And  the  man  observing  him  noted  the 
keen  lighting  of  his  eyes,  and  the  instant,  absorbed  in¬ 
terest  that  took  possession  of  him.  After  a  moment  the 
trader  looked  up. 

“One  panning?”  he  demanded  incredulously. 

“One  panning.” 

Jim  drew  a  deep  breath.  It  was  an  expression  of  that 
curious  covetous  thrill  at  the  sight  of  unmeasured  wealth 
which  is  so  human.  He  weighed  the  bag  in  his  hand. 

“Ther’s  more  than  three  ounces  of  stuff  here,”  he  said, 
gazing  into  the  dark  eyes  opposite  him.  “Guess  it’s 
nearer  four.”  Again  he  breathed  deeply.  “One  pan- 


32 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


ning!”  he  exclaimed.  Then  followed  an  ejaculation 
which  said  far  more  than  any  words. 

Marty  Le  Gros  nodded. 

“You  reckon  it’s  this  bringing  them  down — our  way,” 
he  said.  “That’s  what  Usak  reckons,  too.  Maybe  I  feel 
you’re  both  right — now.  I  was  a  fool  to  give  my  yarn 
out.  I  should  have  held  it  tight,  and  just  let  you  know 
quietly.  Yes,  I  see  it  now.  You  see,  I  didn’t  think.  I 
guess  I  didn’t  understand  the  temptation  of  it.  When 
I  lit  on  that  ‘strike’  it  scarcely  interested  me  a  thing,  and 
I  didn’t  see  why  it  should  worry  anybody  else.  I  forgot 
human  nature.  No,  it  wasn’t  till  the  gold  spirit  suddenly 
hit  me  that  I  realised  anything.  And  when  it  did  it  made 
me  lie — even  to  you.” 

Jim  twisted  up  the  neck  of  the  bag  and  re-set  the  lash¬ 
ings  about  it.  Then,  with  a  regretful  sigh,  he  passed  the 
coveted  treasure  back  to  its  owner. 

“Let’s  see.  How  long  is  it  since  you  handed  out  your 
yarn?  It’s  more’n  two  months.  Two  months,”  he  re¬ 
peated  thoughtfully.  “They’ve  had  two  months  on  Loon 
Creek,  an’  they’ve  drawn  blank.  There — Yes,  I  see. 
They’re  coming  back  on  you.  They  started  by  way  of 
your  Mission,  an’  they  mean  you  to  git  a  grip  on  their 
way  of  handlin’  the  thing.  Man,  it  sets  my  blood  red  hot. 
They’ve  cleaned  this  region  out  of  furs,  an’  every  other 
old  trade,  so  I’m  sittin’  around  waitin’  for  my  people 
to  close  us  down,  and  now — this.  Is  there  no  help? 
Ain’t  ther’  a  thing  we  can  do?  God!  It  makes  me 
hot.” 

The  blue  eyes  were  fiercely  alight.  There  was  no 
wavering  in  them  now.  Passionate  desire  to  fight  was 
stirring  in  the  trader.  And  somehow  his  emotion  seemed 
to  rob  his  body  of  its  appearance  of  physical  ungainliness. 

The  missionary  seemed  less  disturbed  as  he  set  the  bag 


TWO  MEN  OF  THE  NORTH 


33 


back  in  his  pocket.  He  had  passed  through  his  bad  time. 
Now  his  decision  was  taken.  Now  he  was  no  longer  the 
missionary  but  a  simple  man  of  single  purpose  which  he 
intended  to  put  through  in  such  way  as  lay  within  his 
power,  aided  by  the  friendship  of  Jim  McLeod. 

A  shadowy  smile  lit  his  eyes. 

“Yes.  It’s  the  gold  now,”  he  said,  with  an  expressive 
gesture.  “But,”  he  went  on,  with  a  shake  of  the  head, 
“for  the  life  of  me  I  can’t  get  behind  the  minds  of  these 
mysterious  northern — devils.  Why,  why  in  the  name  of 
all  that’s  sane  and  human  should  these  Euralians  descend 
on  a  pitiful  bunch  of  poor,  simple  fisher-folk,  and  butcher 
and  burn  them  off  the  face  of  the  earth?  It’s  senseless, 
inhuman  barbarity.  Nothing  else.  If  they  want  my 
secret,  if  they  want  the  truth  I  denied  to  you  as  well  as 
the  rest,  it’s  here,  in  my  head,”  he  said,  tapping  his  broad 
forehead  with  a  forefinger.  “Not  out  there  with  those 
poor  dead  creatures  who  never  harmed  a  soul  on  God's 
earth.  If  they  want  it  they  must  come  to  me.  And  when 
they  Come  they — won’t  get  it.” 

The  man  was  transformed.  Not  for  a  moment  had  he 
raised  his  voice  to  any  tone  of  bravado  or  defiance.  Cold 
decision  was  shining  in  his  eyes  and  displayed  itself  in 
the  clip  of  his  jaws  as  he  returned  his  pipe  to  his  mouth. 
Jim  waited.  His  moment  of  passionate  protest  had 
passed.  He  was  absorbed  in  that  which  he  felt  was  yet 
to  come. 

“Here,  listen,  Jim,”  Le  Gros  went  on,  after  the  briefest 
pause,  with  a  sharp  intake  of  breath  which  revealed  some¬ 
thing  of  the  reality  of  the  emotions  he  was  labouring 
under.  “You’re  my  good  friend,  and  I  want  to  tell  you 
things  right  here  and  now,  to-night.  That’s  why  I  came 
over  in  a  hurry.  You’ve  always  known  me  as  a  mis¬ 
sionary.  The  man  in  me  was  kind  of  lost.  That’s  so. 


3 


34 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


But  now  you’ve  got  to  know  me  as  a  man.  You  were 
the  first  I  told  of  my  ‘strike.’  You  were  the  first  I 
showed  those  nuggets  to.  And  you  guessed  they  were 
worth  five  thousand  dollars  between  ’em.” 

“All  o’  that.  Maybe  ten  thousand  dollars.” 

Jim’s  fleshy  lips  fondled  the  words. 

“When  I  showed  you  that  stuff  I  was  the  missionary. 
The  thing  began  to  fall  off  when  I  watched  you  looking  at 
them.  But  it  wasn’t  till  some  of  the  trailmen,  and  even 
the  Indians,  heard  the  story,  and  showed  their  amazing 
lust  for  the  thing  I’d  discovered,  that  I  got  a  full  grip  on 
all  that  yellow  stuff  meant.  Then  I  forgot  to  be  a  mis¬ 
sionary  and  was  just  a  man  the  same  as  they  were.  I 
was  startled,  shocked.  I  was  half  scared.  I  saw  at  a 
glance  I’d  made  a  bad  break  in  telling  my  story,  and  so, 
when  you  all  asked  me  the  whereabouts  of  the  strike, 
I— lied.” 

He  paused,  passing  a  hand  over  his  forehead,  and 
smoothed  back  his  ample  black  hair. 

“An’  it  wasn’t  Loon  Creek?” 

Jim  smiled  as  he  put  his  question. 

“I’m  glad,”  he  added  as  the  other  shook  his  head. 

“You’re  glad?” 

“I  surely  am.”  Jim  spread  out  his  hands.  “Here, 
Marty,”  he  cried,  “I  was  sick  to  death  hearing  you  hand 
out  your  yarn  to  the  boys.  I  kind  of  saw  a  rush  for 
Loon  Creek  cornin’  along  and  beating  you — an’  me — right 
out  of  everything.  Knowing  you  I  thought  it  was  truth. 
But  I’m  mighty  glad  you — lied.” 

Le  Gros  sat  back  in  his  chair.  His  eyes  turned  from 
the  man  before  him. 

“Knowing  me?”  he  said,  with  a  gentle  smile  of  irony. 
“I  wonder.”  He  shook  his  head.  “I  didn’t  know  myself. 
No,  you  didn’t  know  me.  I’m  different  now.  Quite 


TWO  MEN  OF  THE  NORTH 


35 


different.  And  it’s  that  gold  changed  me.  Do  you  know 
how — why?  No.”  He  shook  his  head.  “I  guess  you 
don’t.  I’ll  tell  you.  It’s  Felice.  My  little  Felice.  And 
that’s  why  I  came  right  over  to  see  you,  and  tell  you  the 
things  in  my  mind.” 

Jim  shifted  his  chair  as  the  other  paused.  He  leant 
forward  with  his  forearms  resting  on  his  knees.  The 
thought  of  the  gold  was  deep  in  his  mind.  There  was 
personal,  selfish  interest  in  him  as  well  as  interest  for 
that  which  the  other  had  to  tell  him  about  his  baby, 
Felice. 

Marty  drew  a  deep  breath.  His  eyes  turned  from  the 
man  before  him.  The  intensity  of  Jim’s  regard  left  him 
with  an  added  realisation  of  the  power  that  gold  exercises 
over  the  simplest,  the  best  of  humanity. 

“If  I  live,  Jim,  I’m  going  to  let  you  into  this  ‘strike/ 
Maybe  it’ll  help  you,  and  leave  you  free  of  your  Com¬ 
pany,”  he  said  gently.  “You  shall  be  in  it  what  you  folk 
call  ‘fifty-fifty.’  If  I  die  you  shall  be  in  it  the  same  way, 
only  it’ll  be  with  my  baby  girl.  And  for  that  I  want  to 
set  an  obligation  on  you.  Can  you  stand  for  an  obliga¬ 
tion?” 

“Anything  for  you,  Marty,”  Jim  replied  at  once,  and 
earnestly.  “Anything  for  you,”  he  repeated.  “And  I’ll 
put  it  through  with  the  last  breath  of  life.” 

“Good.”  The  missionary’s  gaze  came  back  to  the 
trader’s  face,  and  a  smiling  relief  shone  in  his  eyes.  He 
nodded.  “You  see,  with  these  wretched  Euralians  on 
the  war  path,  and  with  me  standing  around  in  their  path, 
you  can  never  tell.  Maybe  I’ll  live.  Maybe  I  won’t.  If 
I  live  you’ll  be  up  to  your  neck  in  this  ‘strike’  auyway. 
If  I  die  you’ll  work  it  for  Felice,  and  hand  her  her  ‘fifty’ 
of  it  when  the  time  comes.  Is  it  good?” 

“It’s  so  good  I  can’t  tell  you.” 


36 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


“Will  you  swear  to  do  this,  Jim  ?  Will  you  swear  on — 
on  the  thing  you  hold  most  sacred  ?” 

“I’ll  swear  it  on  the  little  life  that’s  just  goin’  to  be 
born  to  Hesther  an’  me.  If  a  thing  happens  to  you, 
Marty,  so  you  lose  the  daylight,  your  little  Felice  shall 
be  seen  right,  and  all  you  can  wish  for  her  shall  be  done, 
though  you  never  tell  me  a  thing  of  this  ‘strike.’  ” 

The  simple  honesty  looking  out  of  Jim’s  eyes  eased  the 
troubled  heart  of  the  older  man.  He  nodded. 

“I  knew  it  would  be  that  way.  I’m  glad,”  he  said. 
“I’m  not  passing  you  thanks.  No  thanks  could  tell  you 
the  thing  you’ve  made  me  feel,  Jim.”  He  laughed 
shortly.  “Thanks?  I  guess  it  would  be  an  insult  when 
a  boy  like  you  is  ready  to  set  himself  to  carrying  the 
whole  of  another  feller’s  burden.” 

Again  he  passed  a  hand  over  his  hair. 

“This  is  how  I’ve  planned,  Jim,”  he  went  on,  after  a 
moment.  “I’m  going  right  back  home  now,  and  I’m 
going  to  pass  some  hours  drawing  out  the  plan  and 
general  map  of  the  ‘strike.’  I’ll  write  it  out  in  the  last 
detail.  Then  I’ll  set  it  in  a  sealed  packet  and  hand  it  to 
you.  You’ll  have  it,  and  keep  it,  and  you  won’t  open  it 
while  I’m  alive.  It’s  just  so  the  thing  shan’t  be  lost  if 
they  kill  me  up.  See?  If  I  live  we’ll  work  this  thing 
together  at  ‘fifty-fifty.’  That  way  there  won’t  be  need 
for  you  to  open  up  those  plans.  Do  you  get  it?  The 
whole  thing  is  just  a  precaution  for  you  and  my  little 
Felice.  You  see,  if  I  pass  over  I’ve  nothing  else  to  hand 
that  poor  little  kiddie.  It’s  her  bit  of  luck.” 

Jim  sat  back  in  his  chair  and  began  to  refill  his  pipe 
which  had  gone  out.  For  some  moments  his  stirring 
emotions  prevented  speech,  while  the  smiling  eyes  of  the 
missionary  watched  his  busy,  clumsy  fingers.  At  last, 
however,  he  looked  up.  And  as  he  did  so  he  thrust  the 


TWO  MEN  OF  THE  NORTH 


37 


tobacco  hard  into  the  bowl  of  his  pipe,  and  the  force  of 
his  action  was  no  less  than  the  headlong  rush  of  words 
that  surged  to  his  lips. 

‘'Oh,  it’s  Hell !  Simple  Hell !”  he  cried  passionately. 
“What  have  we  done  that  we  should  be  cursed  by  these 
murdering  Euralians.  They’re  not  going  to  get  you, 
Marty.  We’ve  got  to  fix  that.  Come  right  over  here. 
Quit  your  shanty,  an’  bring  Felice,  an’  Pri-loo,  an’  Usak 
right  over  here.  It’s  no  sort  of  swell  place,  this  old 
frame  house  the  Company’s  set  up  for  me.  But  the 
stockade  outside  it  stands  firm  twelve  feet  high  right 
around.  And  I’ve  guns  an’  things  plenty  to  defend  it. 
I  can  corral  plenty  trailmen  who’d  be  glad  enough  to 
scrap  these  folk,  and  we  could  fight  ’em  an’  beat  ’em, 
till  we  get  help  from  Placer  where  the  p’lice  can  collect 
a  posse  of  ‘specials.’  We’re  not  goin’  to  sit  down  under 
this  thing.  It’s  not  my  way.  An’  it’s  not  goin’  to  be 
your  way.  We’ll  fight.  Come  right  over  to-morrow, 
Marty.  We’ll  just  be  crazy  for  you  to  come,  and - ” 

Le  Gros  interrupted  him  with  a  gesture. 

“That’s  all  right  boy,”  he  said.  “I  know  just  how  you 
feel  and  I’m  glad.  But  you  don’t  know  the  thing  you’re 
trying  to  bring  on  your  Hesther,  and  your  unborn  baby. 
You  haven’t  seen  the  thing  I’ve  seen.  You  haven’t  seen 
old  men  and  women*  butchered  and  mutilated,  lying 
stark  on  the  ground.  You  haven’t  seen  babes  scattered 
around  legless,  armless,  headless.  And  the  young 
men  and  young  women — gone.”  He  shook  his  head, 
and  the  horror  of  recollection  was  in  his  eyes.  “No. 
You  haven’t  seen  those  things,  and  you  haven’t 
remembered  that  I  carry  this  curse  about  with  me. 
Sheltering  here  I  bring  it  to  your  door.  To  you,  and  your 
Hesther,  and  your  babe.  With  me  across  the  river  there 
you’re  free  and  safe.  No.  I  stand  or  fall  by  my  wits, 


38 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


my  luck,  my  own  efforts.  You  are  doing  for  me  the  only 
thing  I  ask  in  safeguarding  my  secret  and  caring  for  little 
Felice.  That’s  what  I  ask.  And  you’ve  promised  me. 
That’s  all,  Jim,  my  friend,  and  now  I’ll  get  along  back 
and  fix  those  plans.” 

He  rose  from  his  chair,  tall,  strong  and  completely 
calm.  And  the  trader  rose,  too,  and  gazed  up  into  the 
other’s  face. 

“I’ll  take  all  those  chances,  Marty,”  he  said  deliberately. 

“And  Hesther?” 

“And  my  unborn  baby.  Yes.” 

Marty  Le  Gros  thrust  out  his  hand  and  the  two  men 
gripped. 

“You’re  a  good  friend,  Jim.  But  my  mind’s  made  up. 
While  I’ve  life  I’ll  fight  my  own  fight.  When  I’m  dead 
please  God  you’ll  do — what  I  can’t.  So  long  Jim,”  he 
added  wringing  the  fleshy  hand  he  was  still  gripping. 
“Til  be  along  over  with  those  plans  before  you  eat  your 
breakfast.” 


CHAPTER  V 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 

The  brilliant  June  night  was  like  a  midsummer  day.  The 
deathless  sun  knew  no  rest  for  all  the  Arctic  world  was 
wrapt  in  slumber.  The  stillness  of  it  all,  the  perfect 
quiet;  it  was  a  world  of  serene  solitude,  with  only  the 
sounds  which  came  from  unseen  creatures,  and  the  rusts : 
of  stirred  vegetation  caught  on  a  gentle  zephyr,  t  j 
whisper  of  the  life  prevailing. 

Marty  Le  Gros  was  back  in  his  own  home.  He  was 
at  the  little  table  which  served  him  for  such  writing  as 
his  work  as  missionary  entailed.  It  was  a  simple  apart¬ 
ment  characteristic  of  the  habitation  he  had  set  up.  The 
walls  were  plastered  with  a  dun-coloured  mud  smoothed 
down  but  retaining  all  its  crudeness  which  nothing  could 
disguise.  The  room  was  of  considerable  extent.  Its 
furnishing  was  no  less  primitive  than  its  walls,  but  also 
no  less  robust.  Every  article  was  of  his  own  design  and 
manufacture,  and  that  which  it  lacked  in  refinement  it 
made  up  in  substance.  Chairs  were  rawhide-strung, 
square  and  solid.  The  table  had  legs  of  saplings,  and 
a  top  that  was  made  from  packing  cases  obtained  from 
Jim  McLeod.  The  ceiling  above  his  head  was  of  cotton. 
So  were  the  two  windows  which  were  flung  open  to 
admit  air  through  the  mosquito  netting  beyond  them. 

Yes,  it  was  all  very  crude.  Nevertheless  it  lost  nothing 
of  its  sense  of  home.  The  floor  was  strewn  with  sun- 


39 


40 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


dried  furs,  and  there  were  shelves  of  well-read  books. 
The  man’s  simple  sleeping  bunk  was  curtained  off  in  one 
comer  near  by  to  the  doorway  which  communicated  with 
a  lesser  room  where  slept  his  motherless  child.  And  there 
was  still  another  doorway  which  led  to  a  third  room.  It 
was  the  kitchen  place  where  Usak  and  Pri-loo  slept,  and 
where  the  latter  prepared  such  food  as  was  needed. 

There  was  no  sound  in  the  place  but  that  of  the  man’s 
occasional  movements  and  the  scratching  of  the  pen  with 
which  he  was  working.  Felice  was  asleep  in  the  next 
room  in  the  cot  which  he  and  his  dead  wife  had  long 
since  fashioned  and  adorned.  Pri-loo,  awaiting  the 
return  of  her  man  from  the  reindeer  farm,  which  was  his 
work,  had  finally  yielded  her  vigil  and  retired  to  her 
blankets  in  the  kitchen.  It  was  the  calving  season  down 
at  the  farm,  and  as  likely  as  not  Usak  would  not  return 
to  her  for  many  hours. 

The  missionary  had  applied  himself  to  his  task  with 
that  close  concentration  which  betokened  the  urgency  of 
his  desire.  He  had  been  at  work  for  over  an  hour.  Now 
he  sat  with  his  great  body  hunched  over  the  table,  and, 
with  poised  pen,  was  at  last  regarding  his  completed 
work.  The  large  sheet  of  paper  stared  back  at  his  darkly 
brooding  eyes,  and  the  careful  tracery  on  its  surface 
spread  from  one  end  of  it  to  the  other.  It  was  the  draw¬ 
ing  of  a  wide,  winding  river.  And  along  its  entire  course 
was  dotted  every  detail  of  natural  formation  which  his 
keen  memory  supplied  him  with.  Hills  were  carefully 
drawn.  Woodland  bluffs  were  marked  with  due  regard 
to  their  extent.  Everything  that  could  serve  to  guide  the 
explorer  was  there  set  out.  Every  title  for  each  natural 
feature  was  inscribed,  and  one  wide  stretch  of  river  fore¬ 
shore  was  outlined  in  red  ink  and  inscribed  with  the 
words  “mouth  of  creek.” 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


4i 


It  was  complete.  It  was  complete  with  that  care  and 
consideration  which  spoke  of  the  tremendous  anxiety- 
lying  behind  the  man’s  purpose. 

At  last  he  abandoned  his  scrutiny  and  a  deep  sigh 
escaped  him.  Then  he  leisurely  picked  up  his  tobacco 
bag  and  began  to  fill  his  pipe.  Leaning  back  in  his  chair 
his  gaze  sought  the  daylight  beyond  the  window,  and  in 
a  moment  he  became  absorbed  in  profound,  wakeful 
dreaming  and  his  pipe  remained  forgotten. 

He  had  reached  another  great  crisis  in  his  simple  life. 
He  knew  it.  He  understood  to  the  last  detail  the  ominous 
significance  of  the  thing  he  had  just  completed.  His 
thought  began  by  searching  ahead,  but  swiftly  it  was 
caught  and  flung  back  into  the  deep  channels  of  memory 
such  as  never  fail  to  claim  when  the  heart  of  man  is 
deeply  stirred. 

A  wide  panorama  of  the  past  swept  into  his  view.  It 
began,  as  everything  seemed  to  begin  with  him  now,  at 
that  time  when  he  and  his  young  wife  had  taken  their 
final  decision  to  move  northwards  where  their  spiritual 
desires  could  find  expression  in  the  wilderness  of  untamed 
Nature.  He  remembered,  how  keenly  he  remembered, 
the  surge  of  thrilling  anticipation  with  which  they  had 
embarked  on  their  mission.  The  bitter  hardships  they 
had  had  to  endure,  and  the  merciless  labours  that  had 
been  theirs  to  make  even  their  simple  lives  possible  here 
on  the  Hekor  River,  which  followed  so  nearly  the  course 
of  the  Arctic  Circle.  He  remembered  the  selfless  kindness 
of  Jim  McLeod  and  his  gentle  wife.  How  they  had 
helped  him  with  everything  that  lay  in  their  power.  Yes, 
it  was  a  happy  memory  which  eased  the  strain  of  the 
thing  besetting  him  now. 

Then  had  come  that  first  great  happiness  and  finally 
disaster.  Jim  was  looking  forward  now  to  just  the  same 


42 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


moment  in  his  life.  That  first-born  child.  It  was  an 
ineffaceable  landmark  in  the  life  of  any  man. 

He  sighed.  He  was  contemplating  again  the  tragedy 
which  had  followed  hard  in  the  wake  of  his  overwhelm¬ 
ing  happiness.  Poor  little  Jean.  Poor,  poor  little  woman. 

Her  happiness  was  short  enough  lived,  and  his -  In 

his  simple,  earnest  fashion  he  prayed  God  that  Jim  and 
Hesther  should  never  know  a  similar  disaster.  He 
wondered  if  little  Jean  knew  of  the  thing  he  was  doing 
now.  And  if  she  would  have  approved  had  she  been 
there  to  witness  it.  Yes.  Somehow  he  felt  that  her  full 
approval  would  have  been  his.  It  was  for  Felice.  He 
desired  nothing  for  himself  but  to  be  permitted  to  carry 
on  the  labours  of  his  Mission.  But  for  Felice - 

He  stirred  uneasily.  The  scene  of  his  devastated 
Mission  lit  again  before  his  mental  gaze  and  tortured 
him.  And  suddenly  he  sat  up  and  carefully  folded  the 
annotated  map  he  had  prepared.  He  finally  enclosed  it 
in  a  piece  of  American  cloth,  tied  it  up  securely,  and 
sealed  it  with  the  fragment  of  wax  he  had  discovered  for 
that  purpose.  Then  he  stood  up  and  gazed  about  him. 
His  dark  eyes  took  in  every  happy  detail  of  the  home 
which  had  served  him  so  long.  And  presently  the  man  of 
peace  found  himself  contemplating  the  cartridge  belt,  with 
its  two  great  revolvers  protruding  from  their  holsters, 
which  was  hanging  from  its  nail  on  the  log  wall. 

For  some  moments  he  regarded  it  without  any  change 
of  expression.  Then  of  a  sudden  he  stirred  and  moved 
quickly  over  to  it.  He  removed  first  one  gun  from  its 
holster,  then  the  other.  He  examined  them.  They  were 
old-fashioned,  and  their  chambers  were  empty.  Very 
deliberately,  almost  reluctantly,  he  loaded  them  in  each 
chamber.  Then  with  another  sigh  he  returned  them  to 
the  holsters  where  they  belonged. 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


43 


He  turned  away  quickly.  It  was  as  though  he  detested 
the  thing  he  had  just  done  and  was  anxious  to  rid  himself 
of  the  memory  of  it.  So  he  passed  into  the  room  which 
he  had  always  shared  with  his  wife,  but  which  now  was 
given  up  to  the  atom  of  humanity  which  was  the  priceless 
treasure  of  his  life. 

••••••• 

The  man  was  sitting  on  the  stool  set  beside  the  simple 
bedcot.  It  was  the  stool  which  Pri-loo  was  wont  to 
occupy  when  watching  over  the  slumbers  of  the  child  she 
had  taken  to  her  mother  heart.  He  was  gazing  down 
upon  the  sleeping  babe  as  she  lay  there  under  the  coloured 
blankets  and  patch-work  quilt  which  was  the  daintiest 
covering  with  which  he  had  been  able  to  provide  her. 

Fair-haired  and  sweetly  cherubic  the  child  lay  breath¬ 
ing  in  that  calm,  almost  imperceptible  fashion  so  sure  an 
indication  of  perfect  health.  Her  colouring  was  exquisite. 
A  subtle  tracery  of  blue  veins  was  plainly  visible  beneath 
the  delicate,  fair  skin.  She  was  sweetly  pretty,  and  her 
brief  four  years  of  life  had  afforded  her  a  generous 
development  sufficient  to  satisfy  the  most  exacting  parent. 

The  man’s  dark  eyes  were  infinitely  tender  as  he  re¬ 
garded  the  sleeping  child.  Gold  ?  There  was  no  treasure 
in  the  world  comparable  with  that,  which,  with  her  dying 
effort,  his  well-loved  wife  had  presented  him.  Felice — 
little  Felice.  The  smiling,  prattling  creature,  the  thought 
of  whose  wide  blue  eyes  was  unfailing  in  lightening  even 
the  darkest  shadows  which  the  cares  of  her  father’s  life 
imposed  upon  him. 

He  feasted  himself  now  on  the  beauty  which  was  so 
like  to  that  of  the  mother  who  had  given  up  her  life  for 
his  desire.  And  as  he  gazed  a  surge  of  deep,  tender 
feeling  recalled  a  hundred  happy  memories.  And  so  for 
awhile  he  was  filled  with  smiling  thought. 


44 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


But  it  passed.  It  passed  with  a  suddenness  that  left 
a  cold  dew  of  fear  upon  his  brow  for  all  the  warmth  of 
the  Arctic  summer  night.  For  even  as  memory  had 
transported  him  to  the  days  wherein  his  life  had  known 
no  shadow,  so  it  had  brought  him  again  to  the  recollection 
of  the  scene  of  mutilation  he  had  witnessed  at  his  Mis¬ 
sion.  There  he  had  seen  children,  younger  even  than 
Felice,  lying  upon  the  ground  limbless,  headless,  almost 
unrecognisable  trunks. 

An  unconscious  movement  stirred  him,  and  he  shook 
his  head  as  though  in  denial  of  his  thought.  Then  he 
gazed  down  upon  the  sealed  packet  he  was  carrying  in 
his  hand.  For  long  moments  he  looked  at  it,  and  then, 
of  a  sudden,  his  eyes  came  back  to  the  face  of  the  sleeping 
babe,  and  words  came  in  a  low,  tender  whisper. 

“No,  kiddie,”  he  murmured,  “not  while  I  have  life. 
My  poor  Jean  gave  you  to  me,  little  bit.  And  you’re 
just  mine.  All  I  am  in  the  world  will  defend  you  from 
harm  such — such  as — God!  No.  Not  that.  Psha!  No, 
it  couldn’t  be.”  He  wiped  his  forehead  with  a  hand  that 
was  unsteady.  Then  he  forced  a  smile  to  his  eyes  just 
as  he  forced  his  fears  back  and  strove  to  think  of  the 
thing  he  had  spent  so  many  hours  preparing.  He  held 
up  the  packet  in  his  hand  before  the  child’s  closed  eyes. 
“This  wasn’t  sent  my  way  for  nothing,”  he  whispered. 
“It’s  your  luck,  little  kid.  Yours.  It’s  for  you,  half  of 
it.  And — and  if  I  should  fail — well,  there’s  others’ll  see 
you  get  it.  My  little  kiddie.  My  little - ■” 

He  broke  off.  The  man’s  tender  admonition  died  on 
his  lips  which  closed  almost  with  a  snap.  His  whole 
attitude  underwent  a  change.  He  sat  rigid  and  listening, 
and  his  dark  eyes  were  turned  as  though  seeking  to  peer 
over  his  shoulder. 

.  It  was  a  sound.  A  sound  that  came  from  beyond  the 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


45 


outer  room.  It  was  not  from  the  direction  of  the  kitchen 
place  where  Usak  might  be  returning  home.  No.  It 
came  from  beyond  the  front  door  of  the  shanty  which 
was  not  the  way  Usak  would  come. 

The  missionary  made  no  movement.  Every  sense  was 
straining,  every  faculty  was  alert.  Sounds  came  in  the 
night.  It  was  a  common  enough  thing.  But  he  had  that 
in  his  mind  now  which  gave  to  any  sound  in  the  night 
the  possibility  of  a  new  interpretation. 

The  moments  passed.  The  tension  eased.  And  again 
the  father’s  eyes  came  back  to  the  face  of  the  sleeping 
child.  But  it  was  only  for  an  instant.  Of  a  sudden  he 
dropped  the  sealed  packet  into  the  child’s  cot  and  leapt 
to  his  feet. 

Headlong  he  ran  for  the  open  doorway,  and  the 
purpose  in  his  mind  was  obvious.  He  passed  it,  and  ran 
for  the  loaded  guns  hanging  upon  the  wall  of  his  room. 
But  he  failed  to  reach  them.  A  shot  rang  out  and  he 
stumbled.  Putting  forth  a  superhuman  effort  he  sought 
to  recover  himself.  But  his  legs  gave  under  him  and  he 
crashed  to  the  floor  with  the  first  tearful  cry  of  his 
wakened  child  ringing  in  his  ears. 


CHAPTER  VI 


THE  EURALIANS 

Marty  Le  Gros  lay  sprawled  on  the  ground.  He  had 
scarcely  moved  from  the  position  in  which  he  had  fallen. 
Pri-loo,  her  handsome  eyes  aflame  with  fierce  anger,  was 
standing  just  within  the  doorway  leading  to  the  kitchen 
place.  A  man  stood  guard  over  her,  a  small  dark-skinned 
creature  whose  eyes  slanted  with  a  suggestion  of  Mongol 
obliqueness.  It  was  obvious  that  she  was  only  held  silent 
under  threat  of  the  gun  that  her  guard  held  ready.  Two 
other  dark-skinned  strangers  moved  about  the  living 
room  clearly  searching,  and  a  third  stood  looking  on, 
propped  against  the  table  which  served  the  missionary 
for  writing.  Beyond  the  movements  of  the  searching 
men,  and  such  disturbance  as  the  process  of  their  work 
entailed,  and  the  insistent  cries  of  the  child  Felice  in  the 
adjoining  room,  an  ominous  silence  prevailed. 

The  expression  of  the  almost  yellow  eyes  of  the  man 
at  the  table  was  intense  with  cold,  deliberate  purpose.  It 
was  without  one  gleam  of  pity  for  the  fallen  missionary. 
It  was  without  concern  for  the  angry  woman  held  silent 
in  the  doorway.  He  was  regarding  only  the  movements 
of  the  men  acting  under  his  orders.  He,  like  the  man  in 
charge  of  Pri-loo,  was  clad  in  the  ordinary  garb 
customary  to  whitemen  of  the  northern  trail.  But  the 
others,  the  searchers,  had  no  such  pretensions.  They 

46 


THE  EURALIANS  47 

were  in  the  rough  clothing  native  to  the  Eskimo  when 
Arctic  summer  prevails. 

After  awhile  the  terrified  cries  of  the  suddenly 
awakened  Felice  died  down  to  the  intermittent  sobs  which 
so  surely  claim  the  sympathies  of  the  mother-heart.  Even 
Pri-loo’s  fierce  native  anger  yielded  before  their  appeal. 
Distress  stirred  her,  and  only  the  threatening  gun  held 
her  from  rushing  to  comfort  the  helpless  babe  who  was 
her  treasured  charge. 

The  great  prone  figure  of  the  missionary  on  the  ground 
stirred.  It  was  the  preliminary  to  returning  conscious¬ 
ness.  Quite  abruptly  his  head  was  raised.  Then,  by  a 
great  effort,  he  propped  himself  on  to  his  elbow  and  gazed 
about  him.  Finally  his  dark,  troubled  eyes  came  to  rest 
on  the  face  of  the  still  figure  of  the  man  who  stood 
regarding  him. 

There  was  a  searching  pause  while  eye  met  eye.  Then 
the  missionary  sought  to  moisten  his  lips  with  a  tongue 
little  less  parched. 

“Well  ?”  he  demanded  in  the  low,  husky  voice  of  a  man 
whose  strength  is  rapidly  waning. 

The  man  at  the  table  turned  to  the  searchers  whose  task 
seemed  complete. 

“Nothing?”  he  said.  And  his  tone  was  almost  with¬ 
out  question. 

One  of  the  searchers  offered  a  negative  gesture.  There 
was  no  verbal  reply. 

“So.” 

The  man  at  the  table  inclined  his  dark,  close-cropped 
head  and  turned  again  to  the  man  on  the  ground. 

“You’re  going  to  tell  us  of  that  gold  ‘strike,’  Le  Gros,” 
he  said  simply,  without  the  slightest  sign  of  foreign  or 
native  accent.  “You’re  going  to  tell  us  right  away. 
Because  if  you  don’t  we’ve  a  way  of  making  you.  Do 


48 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


you  get  that?  You’d  better  get  it.  It’ll  be  easier  for  you 
and  for  those  belonging  to  you.  We’ve  come  many  miles 
to  hear  about  that  ‘strike,’  and  we  aren’t  returning  empty- 
handed.  Do  you  fancy  handing  your  story?  Or - ” 

“You’ll  get  nothing  from  me.” 

Marty  Le  Gros’  voice  had  suddenly  become  harsh  and 
furious.  All  his  ebbing  strength  was  flung  into  his 
retort. 

The  man  with  the  cold  eyes  shook  his  head. 

“I  shall,”  he  said,  with  calm  decision.  “I’m  not  here 
to  ask  twice.  You’ve  seen  the — remains — of  your  Mis¬ 
sion,  ’way  up  the  river.  Doesn’t'  that  tell  you  about 
things?  It  should — if  you  have  sense.” 

The  man’s  threat  was  the  more  deeply  sinister  for  the 
.  frigidity  of  his  tone. 

The  missionary’s  eyes  lit.  For  all  his  growing  weak¬ 
ness,  for  all  the  suffering  the  wound  in  his  side  was 
causing  him,  a  tinge  of  hot  colour  mounted  to  his  pallid 
cheeks. 

“I  tell  you  you’ll  get  nothing  from  me,”  he  said,  and 
the  strength  of  his  voice  had  ominously  lessened.  He 
raised  his  body  till  he  was  supporting  himself  on  one 
hand  which  rested  in  the  pool  of  his  own  life-blood  stain¬ 
ing  the  earthen  floor.  His  dark  eyes  were  fiercely  de¬ 
fiant  as  they  gazed  up  at  the  other. 

The  Euralian  leader  nodded. 

“We’ll  see.”  Then  he  pointed  at  Pri-loo  standing  in 
the  doorway  watching  the  pitiful  duel,  hardly  realising 
the  full  meaning  of  what  she  beheld.  “You  see  her? 
Watch !” 

There  was  a  sign.  It  was  given  on  the  instant.  And 
the  dying  man  gasped  in  horror. 

“Your  woman,  eh?”  The  Euralian  went  on.  “Well, 
she  won’t  be  any  longer.  Are  you  going  to — speak?” 


THE  EURALIANS 


49 

"‘She’s  not  my  woman.  She’s  the  wife  of  Usak.  If 
— if  you  harm  her  it’s — it’s  sheer,  wanton - ” 

The  words  died  on  the  missionary’s  lips.  There  was  a 
sharp  report.  It  was  the  gun  of  the  man  guarding  Pri- 
loo  fired  at  close  range.  It  rang  out  tremendously  in  the 
narrow  confines  of  the  room.  The  foster-mother  of 
Felice  was  shot  through  the  head,  which  was  completely 
shattered.  The  poor  dead  creature  dropped  where  she 
stood,  without  a  sound,  without  a  cry.  To  the  last  mo¬ 
ment  of  her  staunch  life  her  angry  eyes  had  defied  her 
captors. 

The  dying  missionary  reeled.  He  would  have  fallen 
again  to  the  ground.  But  the  searchers  were  beside  him, 
and  they  seized  and  held  him  lest  he  should  miss  a  single 
detail  of  that  which  was  intended  for  his  infliction. 

“Are  you  going  to — say  about  it?” 

The  Euralian’s  eyes  lit  as  he  made  his  taunting  demand. 
The  tearful  cries  of  the  terrified  Felice  were  again  raised 
in  response  to  the  deafening  report  of  the  gun  that  had 
slain  her  foster-mother. 

But  Marty  Le  Gros’  strength  was  oozing  through  the 
wound  that  had  laid  him  low.  The  shock  of  the  hideous 
massacre  of  the  helpless  Pri-loo  was  overwhelming.  Con¬ 
sciousness  was  nearing  its  extremity. 

“Not  a  word.” 

The  retort  was  whispered.  The  missionary  had  no 
strength  for  more. 

The  man  at  the  table  bestirred  himself.  Perhaps  he 
realised  that  opportunity  was  slipping  away  from  him. 
A  swift,  imperative  sign  to  the  youth  who  had  slain 
Pri-loo,  and  the  next  moment  he  had  passed  into  the 
room  whence  came  the  redoubled  cries  of  the  distracted 
Felice. 

The  closing  eyes  of  the  dying  man  widened  on  the 


4 


50 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


instant.  A  surge  of  hopeless  terror  stared  out  of  their 
dark  depths.  His  lolling  head  was  lifted  erect  and  it 
turned  in  the  direction  of  the  door  through  which  the 
Euralian  had  vanished.  In  supreme  anguish  he  realised 
the  thing  contemplated.  His  child!  Felice!  In  a  spasm 
of  recollection  he  saw  again  the  headless  trunks  of  the 
children  of  his  Mission.  The  man  at  the  table  was 
forgotten.  His  own  sufferings.  Even  he  had  forgotten 
the  thing  he  was  trying  to  safeguard.  Felice !  His  babe ! 
They - 

“If  the  woman  wasn’t  yours,  Le  Gros,  the  child  is,” 
the  man  at  the  table  taunted.  “Well?  Will  you — talk?” 

The  terrible  yellow  eyes  were  irresistible.  There  was 
no  escape  from  them.  And  Marty  Le  Gros  forgot  every¬ 
thing  but  the  anguish  which  the  taunt  inspired. 

“Not  her!  Not  that!”  he  cried.  “Yes,”  he  went  on 

urgently.  “You  can  have  it.  For  God’s  sake  spare - ” 

He  gasped  and  his  head  lolled  helplessly.  But  again  he 
rallied. 

“The  plans?  The  plans  you  made  to-night?  Where 
are  they?  Quick!” 

The  man  at  the  table  had  moved.  He  had  approached 
his  victim.  His  voice  was  fiercely  urgent  for  he  realised 
the  thing  that  was  happening. 

“They’re — there,”  Marty  Le  Gros  gasped.  “They’re — 
in — her — ” 

It  was  his  supreme  effort,  and  it  remained  uncom¬ 
pleted.  His  words  died  away  in  a  gasping  jumble  of 
sounds  that  rattled  in  his  throat.  For  one  brief  spasm 
his  arms  struggled  with  the  men  supporting  him.  Then 
his  head  lolled  forward  again,  and  his  body  limpened. 
A  moment  later  the  supporting  hands  were  removed  and 
Marty  Le  Gros  fell  back  on  the  ground — dead. 


THE  EURALIANS 


5i 


The  yellow  eyes  of  the  leader  were  turned  on  the 
young  man  who  had  just  re-entered  the  room  bearing  in 
his  arms  the  screaming  Felice. 

“Too  late,”  he  said  coldly.  “You’ve  blundered,  Sate. 
It  was  that  clumsy  shot  of  yours.  Maybe  you’ll  learn 
someday.  Tcha!” 

Sate  dropped  the  screaming  child  roughly  to  the 
ground.  His  black  eyes  sparkled.  There  was  triumph 
as  well  as  resentment  in  them. 

“That  so?  Oh,  yes.  Well,  here  are  the  plans.  He 
sealed  them  when  they  were  finished.  We  saw  that. 
Eh?” 

He  held  out  the  packet  he  had  found  in  Felice’s  cot, 
and  the  older  man  accepted  it  without  a  sign.  In  a  mo¬ 
ment  he  withdrew  a  sheath  knife  and  severed  the  fasten¬ 
ings.  Flinging  off  the  outer  cover  he  unfolded  the 
contents.  A  glance  was  sufficient  and  he  looked  up  with¬ 
out  a  smile. 

“Set  fire  to  the  place,”  he  ordered  coldly. 

Then  he  glanced  down  at  the  dead  man.  Felice  had 
crawled  up  close  to  the  body  of  her  father.  Her  baby 
arms  were  thrust  about  his  neck  as  though  clinging  to 
him  for  protection.  Or  maybe  it  was  only  in  that  fond 
baby  fashion  she  had  long  since  learned.  Her  cries  had 
wholly  ceased.  Even  in  death  the  comfort  of  her  father’s 
presence  and  proximity  were  all  sufficient  to  banish  her 
every  terror. 

“Take  her  out,”  he  ordered,  without  a  shadow  of 
softening.  “Set  her  somewhere  near  by  in  the  bluff. 
Maybe  the  folk  across  the  river  will  come  along  and  find 
her  when  they  see  the  fire.  If  they  don’t,  well,  maybe 
the — wolves  will.” 


52 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


Usak  gazed  about  him  in  a  hopeless  amazement.  He 
was  standing  before  the  smoking  remains  of  Marty 
Le  Gros’  Mission.  He  had  hastened  home  from  the 
farm  which  lay  several  miles  away  to  the  east.  In  the 
midst  of  his  work  amongst  his  herd  of  reindeer  he  had 
suddenly  observed  the  smoke  cloud  lolling  heavily  upon 
the  near  horizon,  and  without  a  moment’s  hesitation  he 
had  abandoned  the  new-born  fawn  he  was  attending  to 
ascertain  its  cause. 

He  had  been  filled  with  alarm  at  the  sight.  There  was 
nothing  he  knew  of  in  the  neighbourhood  to  fire  but  the 
bluff  that  sheltered  the  Mission  and  the  house  itself.  So 
he  had  come  at  once  at  a  speed  that  only  he  could  have 
achieved. 

His  worst  fears  were  realised.  It  was  not  the  shelter¬ 
ing  bluff.  That  was  still  standing.  It  was  the  house 
itself,  that  home  which  had  been  his  shelter  as  well  as 
that  of  those  others. 

For  some  moments  he  contemplated  the  scene  without 
any  attempt  at  active  investigation.  It  almost  seemed 
as  if  his  keen  wit  had  somehow  become  dulled  under  the 
shock  of  his  discovery.  Just  at  first  it  was  the  fire  itself 
that  pre-occupied.  Somehow  he  did  not  associate  it  with 
disaster  to  the  occupants.  That  did  not  occur  to  him. 
Doubtless  at  the  back  of  his  mind  lay  the  conviction 
that  the  missionary,  and  Pri-loo,  and  little  Felice  had 
crossed  the  river  and  gone  to  McLeod’s  store  for  shelter. 
That  was  at  first. 

A  light  breeze  drifted  the  smoke  down  upon  him.  For 
a  moment  he  was  enveloped  in  it.  Then  it  passed.  A 
fresh  current  of  wind — a  cross  current — drifted  it  back 
whence  it  came,  and  the  man  which  the  passing  of  the 
smoke  revealed  had  somehow  been  transformed. 

Amazement  was  no  longer  in  his  black  eyes.  They 


THE  EURALIANS 


53 


were  alight  and  burning  with  a  passion  of  anxiety.  That 
cloud  of  smoke  had  borne  upon  his  sensitive  nostrils  the 
smell  of  burning  flesh. 

Usak  moved  up  to  the  charred  walls.  They  were  hot 
and  smoking.  Most  of  them  were  in  a  state  of  wreckage, 
for  the  roof  had  fallen  and  many  of  the  logs  had  crashed 
from  the  tops  of  the  walls.  He  passed  round  them,  a 
swift-moving,  silent  figure  seeking  access  where  the 
smouldering  fire  would  permit.  The  back  door  of  the 
kitchen-place  was  impossible.  Flames  were  still  devour¬ 
ing  that  which  remained.  The  windows  were  surrounded 
with  hot,  fiery  timbers.  The  front  door  giving  on  to  the 
sitting  room  alone  seemed  possible.  But  here  again  was 
fire,  though  it  had  almost  burnt  out. 

But  the  man’s  mood  was  not  such  as  to  leave  him 
standing  before  obstacles.  In  his  half  savage  heart  was 
a  native  terror  of  fire.  But  just  now  all  that  was  com¬ 
pletely  overborne  by  emotions  that  were  irresistible.  The 
smell  of  burning  flesh  was  strong  in  his  nostrils,  he  even 
fancied  he  could  taste  something  of  it  on  his  lips. 

Just  for  one  instant  he  paused  before  the  doorway 
measuring  the  chances  of  it  all.  Then  he  leapt  forward 
and  vanished  into  the  smoking  ruin. 

•  •  •  •  •  •  • 

Jim  McLeod  was  standing  in  the  doorway  of  his  store. 
He  had  been  roused  from  sleep  by  a  furious  hammering 
on  the  door.  He  had  flung  on  a  heavy  skin  coat  over  his 
night  clothes  and  hastily  thrust  a  gun  in  each  pocket  of 
it.  Then  he  had  cautiously  proceeded  to  investigate,  for 
the  memory  of  his  long  talk  with  Marty  Le  Gros  was 
still  with  him. 

But  his  apprehensions  had  been  swiftly  allayed,  or  at 
least  changed,  for  the  harsh  deep  tones  of  Usak  had 
replied  to  his  challenge  through  the  barred  door. 


54 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


Now  he  was  listening  to  the  thing  the  Indian  had  to 
say  and  the  horror  of  the  story  he  listened  to  found  re¬ 
flection  in  his  pale  blue  eyes. 

“They’ve  killed  ’em  an’  burnt  ’em  out?”  he  cried  in¬ 
credulously  as  the  furious  man  broke  off  the  torrent  of 
the  first  rush  of  his  story. 

Usak’s  black  eyes  were  aflame  with  a  light  that  was 
bordering  on  frenzy.  The  infant  Felice,  wrapped  in  a 
blanket,  was  in  his  arms  and  clinging  to  him  with  her 
tiny  arms  about  the  man’s  trunk-like  neck,  silent,  wide- 
eyed,  but  content  with  a  presence  understood  and  loved. 

“Here  I  tell  you.  I  tell  you  quick  so  no  time  is  lost. 
I  work  by  the  farm  all  night.  So.  It  is  the  season  when 
I  work  that  way.  The  young  deer  need  me.  Oh,  yes. 
So  I  work.  Then  I  mak  look  up  in  the  corral.  There 
is  smoke  to  the  west.  Smoke.  I  look  some  more,  an’  I 
think  quick.  Smoke?  Fire?  What  burns  that  way? 
Two  things,  maybe.  The  bluff.  The  house  of  Marty  Le 
Gros.  So  I  mak  quick  getaway.  Oh,  yes.  Very  quick. 
Then  I  come  by  the  house.  It  all  burn.  Yes.  No  house. 
Only  burning  logs  all  break  up.  So  I  stand  an’  think. 
An’  while  I  stand  I  smell.  So.  I  smell  the  cooking  of 
meat.  Meat.  First  I  have  think  Marty  an’  Pri-loo  mak 
big  getaway  to  here.  Then,  when  I  smell  this  thing,  I 
think — no.  Not  getaway.” 

“They  were — burnt?” 

Jim’s  horror  added  fuel  to  the  fire  of  Usak’s  surging 
frenzy.  He  nodded. 

“Yes.  They  burn.  They  bum  all  up.  But  not  so  they 
die.  Oh,  no.”  The  Indian  shook  his  head,  and  the 
brooding  light  in  his  black  eyes  suddenly  blazed  up  afresh. 
“Listen,”  he  cried,  in  his  fierce  way.  “I  tell  you.  I — 
Usak.  I  see  him  all.  I  go  mad.  Oh,  yes.  I  think  of 
Pri-loo.  I  think  of  little  Felice.  I  think  of  the  good 


THE  EURALIANS 


55 


Marty.  So  I  go  into  the  house  just  wher’  I  can,  I  go 
by  the  door  which  him  burn  right  out.  Then  I  find  ’em. 
Then  I  find  ’em  all  dead.  An’  the  fire  cook  ’em  lak — 
meat.” 

The  great  rough  creature  thrust  the  greasy  fur  cap 
back  from  his  forehead.  There  was  sweat  on  his  low 
brow.  But  it  was  the  sweat  inspired  by  his  fierce 
emotions. 

He  turned  away  in  desperation,  and  so  his  black  eyes 
were  hidden  from  the  search  of  the  trader’s.  A  curious 
feeling  of  helplessness  in  the  midst  of  the  storm  of  rage 
besetting  him  threatened  overwhelming.  There  was  a 
moment  even  when  the  soft  arms  about  his  neck  seemed 
to  be  stifling  him.  But  his  weakness  passed  in  a  flash. 
The  next  moment  the  furious  onslaught  of  the  savage  in 
him  held  sway. 

“But  the  fire  not  kill  him,”  he  cried,  his  tone  lowered  to 
something  like  a  snarl  of  savagery.  “I  look.  I  find  ’em, 
Pri-loo.  My  woman.  I  find  her,  yes,  an5  I  think  I  go 
crazy  sure.  They  kill  her — my  woman.  My  good 
woman.  They  shoot  her  by  the  head.  It  all  break  up. 
Oh,  yes.  My  woman.  They  kill  her — dead.”  His  voice 
died  out  and  his  black  eyes  were  turned  away  again  to 
hide  that  which  looked  out  of  them.  But  in  a  moment 
he  went  on.  “Then  I  find  him.  The  good  boss,  Marty. 
Him  belly  all  shoot  to  pieces.  Oh,  yes.  They  kill  him  all 
up  dead,  too.  Then  I  look  for  Felice.  Little  Felice.” 
His  arms  tightened  about  the  child  nestling  against  his 
shoulder.  “No  Felice.  She  all  gone.  I  think  maybe 
they  eat  her.  I  think.  I  look.  No.  No  Felice.  So 
I  go  out  an’  think  some  more.  I  stand  by  bluff.  Then  I 
find  ’em.  She  mak  big  cry  out.  She  by  the  bluff.  So  I 
find  her.  They  throw  her  in  the  bush  in  the  blanket  of 
my  woman,  Pri-loo.” 


56 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


The  man  paused  again  and  a  deep  breath  said  far  more 
of  the  thing  he  was  enduring  than  his  words  told.  After 
a  moment  he  nodded  his  head,  and  his  lank,  black  hair 
brushed  the  fair  face  of  the  child  in  his  arms. 

“So  I  bring  her,  an’  you  tak  her.  You,  an’  your  good 
whitewoman  tak  her  like  your  own.  I  go.  I  find  this 
Euralian  mans.  I  know  ’em  wher’  they  camp.  Oh, 
yes.  Usak  big  hunter.  Shoot  plenty  much  good.  I 
kill  ’em  all  up  dead.  They  kill  ’em  my  woman,  Pri-loo. 
My  good  woman.  They  kill  ’em  my  good  boss,  Marty. 
So  I  kill  ’em,  too.  Now  I  go.  You  tak  Felice.  Bimeby 
I  come  back  when  all  Euralian  kill  dead.  Then  I  tak 
Felice.  I  raise  her  like  the  good  boss,  by  the  farm.  It 
for  her.  Yes.  That  farm.  Marty  love  little  Felice  all 
the  time.  He  mak  all  good  thing  for  Felice.  So  I  mak 
same  all  good  thing,  too.  That  so.” 

Jim  McLeod  made  no  attempt  to  reply.  Somehow  it 
seemed  impossible  even  to  offer  comment  in  face  of  the 
terrible  story  the  man  had  brought  to  him,  and  the  simple 
irrevocable  purpose  in  his  spoken  determination.  He 
held  out  his  arms  to  receive  the  murdered  man’s  child, 
and  Usak,  with  infinite  gentleness,  released  himself  from 
the  clinging  arms  so  reluctant  to  part  from  him. 

“You  tak  ’em.  Yes,”  he  said  as  he  passed  the  babe 
over.  “Bimeby  I  come  back.  Sure.” 

Jim  folded  the  child  to  his  broad  bosom  in  clumsy,  un¬ 
accustomed  fashion.  He  was  hardly  conscious  of  the 
thing  he  did.  His  horrified  imagination  was  absorbed 
by  the  terrible  scene  he  was  witnessing  through  the  eyes 
of  the  Indian.  Quite  suddenly  his  mind  leapt  back  to  the 
thing  Marty  had  intended  and  had  been  at  such  pains  to 
discuss  with  him,  and  his  question  came  on  the  instant. 

“Everything?  Everything  was  burnt  out?  There  was 
nothing  left?  Books?  Papers?” 


THE  EURALIANS 


57 


“Him  all  burn  up.  Oh  yes.” 

Felice  began  to  cry.  In  a  moment  her  little  chubby 
hands  were  beating  her  protest  against  the  broad  bosom 
of  the  trader.  The  sight  of  her  rebellion  somehow  had 
a  softening  effect  on  the  coloured  man,  and  he  spoke  in 
a  manner  and  in  a  tone  of  gentleness  which  must  have 
seemed  impossible  in  him  a  moment  before. 

But  even  his  encouragement  was  without  effect.  The 
child’s  cries  rose  to  a  fierce,  healthly  pitch  of  screaming 
which  promptly  called  forth  protest  from  the  trail  dogs 
about  the  camps  within  the  stockade.  For  some  moments 
pandemonium  reigned,  and  in  the  midst  of  it  the  voice 
of  Hesther,  who  had  hurried  from  her  bed,  brought 
comfort  to  her  helpless  husband. 

“For  goodness’  sake!”  she  cried  at  the  sight  of  the 
terrified  child  in  her  husband’s  arms.  “Are  you  crazy, 
Jim,  havin’  that  pore  baby  gal — Felice?  Little  Felice? 
Say,  what — ?  Here,  pass  her  to  me.” 

The  trader  made  no  demur.  In  a  moment  the  dis¬ 
tracted  child  was  exchanged  into  his  wife’s  outstretched 
arms  which  tenderly  embraced  and  snuggled  her  close 
to  her  soft  motherly  bosom. 

The  men  looked  on  held  silent  by  Hesther’s  presence. 

The  child’s  cries  were  quickly  hushed,  and  the  dogs 
abandoned  their  savage,  responsive  chorus.  Flesther 
looked  searchingly  up  into  Jim’s  troubled  face.  Then 
her  gentle,  inquiring  eyes  passed  on  to  scrutinize  the  face 
of  the  Indian. 

“Tell  me,”  she  demanded.  And  her  words  were 
addressed  to  Usak,  as  she  rocked  the  child  to  and  fro  in 
her  arms. 

But  Usak  was  reluctant.  He  averted  his  gaze  while 
the  whiteman  became  pre-occupied  with  the  broad  ex¬ 
panse  of  the  river  beyond  the  gateway  of  the  stockade. 


58 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


“Something's  happened,"  she  went  on  urgently.  “What 
is  it?  I've  got  to  know.  I  shall  know  it  later,  anyhow, 
Jim!” 

The  trader  shook  his  head.  But  it  was  different  with 
the  Indian.  His  eyes  came  back  to  the  woman’s  face  and 
he  nodded. 

“Sure.  You  know  him  bimeby,"  he  said  quietly. 
“Maybe  your  man  tell  him  all  now.  I  tell  him.  He 
know  this  thing.  Yes.  Now  I  go.  I  go  hunt  all  him 
Euralian  mans.  I  find  ’em.  I  kill  ’em  all  up  dead,  same 
lak  him  kill  up  Pri-loo,  an’  my  good  boss,  Marty.  I 
go  now.  Bimeby  I  come  back,  an’  I  mak  all  good  thing 
for  little  Felice.  I  not  come  back,  then  you  mak  raise 
’em  Felice  lak  your  child.  That  so." 


CHAPTER  VII 


THE  VENGEANCE  OF  USAK 

The  towering  Alaskan  hills  overshadowed  the  broad 
waterway  of  the  Hekor  River.  From  the  level  of  the 
water  the  shores  rose  up  monstrously.  There  were  precipi¬ 
tate,  sterile,  encompassing  walls  of  granite  that  rose 
hundreds  of  feet  without  a  break.  And  back  of  them, 
mounting  by  dizzy  slopes,  the  great  hills  raised  their  snow- 
crowned  crests  till  the  misty  cloud  line  enveloped  them. 
The  world  was  grey,  and  dark,  and  something  overwhelm¬ 
ing  towards  the  headwaters  of  the  great  river.  It  was  a 
territory  barren  of  everything  but  the  tattered  clothing  of 
scattered  primordial  forest  bluffs  clinging  to  sheer  slopes, 
or  safely  engulfed  in  the  shelter  of  deep,  shadowed 
ravines.  It  was  a  scene  of  crude  grandeur  in  which 
Nature  had  designed  no  place  for  man. 

Yet  man  refused  Her  denial.  Man  with  his  simple 
skill  and  profound  daring.  No  rampart  set  up  by  Nature 
was  sufficient  to  bar  the  way. 

A  small  kyak  was  driving  against  the  stream  of  waters 
surging  at  its  prow.  It  was  driven  with  irresistible  skill 
and  power,  for  the  man  at  the  paddle  was  consuming 
with  passionate  desire  and  purpose.  For  days  and  days 
he  had  driven  on  up  against  a  stream  that  was  growing 
in  speed  with  every  passing  mile.  He  knew  the  thing 
confronting  him.  He  knew  every  inch  of  the  great 
waterway’s  rugged  course.  Every  shoal,  every  rapid 

59 


6o 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


was  an  open  book  to  him.  So,  too,  were  the  shelters  and 
easements  where  the  stream  yielded  its  strength.  The 
man  behind  the  paddle  faced  his  task  with  the  supreme 
confidence  of  knowledge  and  conscious  power.  And  so 
he  neared  the  canyon  of  the  Grand  Falls  without  the 
smallest  perturbation. 

A  mere  speck  in  the  immensity  of  its  surrounding  the 
kyak  glided  on.  Here  it  rocked  on  a  ruffled  surface, 
there  it  passed,  perfectly  poised,  a  ghostly  shadow  upon 
a  smooth  mirror-like  surface.  The  dip  of  the  man’s 
paddle  was  precise  and  rhythmic.  Every  ounce  of 
strength  was  in  every  stroke,  and  every  stroke  yielded  its 
full  of  propulsion.  For  Usak  was  a  master  of  river  craft, 
and  understood  the  needs  of  the  journey  that  still  lay 
ahead  of  him. 

His  goal  was  still  far  off.  It  was  less  than  a  day  since 
he  had  crossed  the  unmarked  border  which  opened  the 
gates  of  Alaska  to  him.  He  knew  there  must  be  more 
than  another  nightless  day  pass  before  he  reached  the 
toilsome  portage  where  stood  the  mighty  Falls  which 
emptied  themselves  from  the  summit  of  the  barrier  which 
he  had  yet  to  scale.  The  goal  he  sought  lay  hidden  away 
up  amidst  those  high  lands  where  the  drainings  of  the 
snow-clad  hills  foregathered  before  hurling  themselves 
to  feed  the  river  below.  But  time  mattered  nothing  to 
his  Indian  mind.  He  asked  nothing  of  the  great  world 
about  him.  He  sought  no  favours  or  clemency.  The 
spur  of  his  savage  heart  drove  him,  and  death  alone  could 
deny  him.  As  he  had  already  driven  throughout  the 
endless  Arctic  days  so  he  would  continue  to  drive  until 
his  task  was  accomplished. 

The  man’s  dark  face  was  hard  bitten  by  his  mood. 
Fierce  resolve  looked  out  of  eyes  that  brooded  as  he  gazed 
alertly  over  the  waters.  The  soul  of  the  man  was  afire 


THE  VENGEANCE  OF  USAK 


6l 


with  the  instincts  and  desires  of  centuries  of  savage  for¬ 
bears,  just  as  his  mental  faculties  were  similarly  keyed  for 
their  achievement. 

Not  a  detail  of  the  world  about  him  that  might  affect 
his  labours  escaped  the  eagle  vision  of  his  wide  eyes,  and 
his  swift  understanding  taught  him  how  to  avail  himself 
of  every  clemency  which  the  scheme  of  Nature  vouch¬ 
safed. 

So  the  kyak  progressed  seemingly  with  inadequate 
speed,  but  in  reality  little  less  swiftly  than  the  speed  of 
the  avenging  creature’s  desire.  It  gained  incredible  way 
against  the  surge  of  water  that  split  upon  its  prow.  And 
as  the  shadows  of  the  mighty  walls  enveloped  it,  and  grew 
ever  more  and  more  threatening,  the  man  at  the  paddle 
laboured  on  without  pause  or  hesitation,  certain  of  the 
course,  certain  of  his  powers,  certain  that  no  earthly 
barrier  was  staunch  enough  to  seriously  obstruct  him. 


The  kyak  was  hauled  out  of  the  water.  It  lay  there  on 
a  shelving  foreshore  strewn  with  grey,  broken  granite,  a 
graceful  thing,  so  small  and  light  as  to  look  utterly  inade¬ 
quate  in  face  of  the  terrific  race  of  troubled  waters  that 
was  speeding  by.  It  was  set  ready  for  the  portage.  The 
man’s  simple  outfit  was  securely  lashed  amidships,  and 
his  precious  rifle,  long  old-fashioned,  but  well  cared  for, 
was  made  fast  to  the  struts  that  held  the  frail  craft  to  its 
shape. 

The  Indian  was  standing  at  the  water’s  edge.  He  was 
gazing  up-river  where  its  course  was  a  dead  straight  can¬ 
yon  several  miles  in  length.  It  was  wide,  tremendously 
wide.  But  so  high  were  its  sides  that  its  breadth  became 
dwarfed.  It  was  a  gloomy,  threatening  passage  of  black, 
broken  water,  whose  rushing  torrent  no  canoe  could  face. 


62 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


But  the  awe  of  the  scene  left  Usak  untouched.  It  was 
not  the  sheer  cliffs  that  concerned  him.  It  was  not  the 
swirling  race  of  water  blackened  by  the  shadows.  It  was 
neither  the  might  of  the  great  river,  nor  the  vastness  of 
the  hill  country  about  it  that  pre-occupied  him.  It  was 
the  far-off  white  wall  of  mist  and  spray  at  the  head  of 
the  passage,  and  the  dull  distant  thunder  of  the  Falls,  the 
Grand  Falls,  the  picture  of  whose  might  had  lain  hidden 
from  the  eyes  of  man  throughout  the  centuries. 

He  stood  for  long  contemplating  the  mysterious  far-off. 
His  object  was  uncertain.  Perhaps  the  wonder  of  it  had 
power  to  stir  him.  Perhaps  he  was  not  insensible  to  the 
might  of  the  things  about  him  for  all  the  absorbing  pas¬ 
sion  that  filled  him.  Perhaps  he  was  contemplating  with 
a  sense  of  triumph  this  last  barrier  which  still  remained 
to  be  surmounted. 

At  last  he  turned  away.  He  came  back  to  the  burden 
which  he  knew  he  had  to  shoulder.  He  measured  the  little 
vessel,  and  the  stowage  of  his  outfit,  with  a  keen  eye  for 
the  necessity  of  his  work.  And  that  which  had  been  done 
left  him  completely  satisfied. 

He  bent  down.  He  gripped  the  gunwale  of  the  little 
craft  and  tilted  it.  Then  with  a  swift,  twisting  move¬ 
ment  he  lifted,  and,  rearing  his  great  body  erect  again, 
the  vessel  was  safely  set  where  his  muscular  neck  checked 
it  to  a  perfect  balance. 

©  o  •  «  •  «.  9 

It  was  the  wide  smooth  waters  of  a  high  perched  moun¬ 
tain  lake.  Its  expanse  was  dwarfed  by  the  great  hills  on 
every  hand.  Its  surface  shone  like  a  mirror  in  the  bril¬ 
liant  sunshine,  yet  it  was  without  one  single  grace  to 
temper  the  fierce  austerity  of  its  tremendous  setting.  On 
the  hillsides  there  were  dark  veins  which  suggested  the 
tattered  remnants  of  Nature’s  effort  to  clothe  their  naked 


THE  VENGEANCE  OF  USAK 


63 

sides.  There  were  low  fringes  of  attenuated  vegetation 
marking  the  line  where  land  and  water  met.  But  the 
main  aspect  was  one  of  barren  hills  crowned  about  their 
lofty  summits  with  eternal  snow,  and  the  grey  fields  of 
glacial  ice  that  never  entirely  yielded  up  possession  of 
the  earth  they  held  prisoned. 

Usak’s  kyak  was  hugging  the  southern  shore.  Now 
his  paddle  dipped  leisurely,  for  he  had  no  stream  with 
which  to  battle  and  his  eyes  were  searching  every  yard 
of  the  dishevelled  scrub  which  screened  the  shore. 

Slowly  the  little  craft  crept  on.  There  was  no  uncer¬ 
tainty  in  its  progress.  It  was  simply  that  the  man  sought 
for  the  thing  he  knew  he  would  find  and  had  no  desire  to 
waste  a  single  moment  of  precious  time  through  careless 
oversight. 

He  was  rounding  a  headland.  The  fringe  of  scrub  had 
faded  out,  leaving  only  the  grey  rock  that  sank  sheer  into 
the  depths  of  the  water.  In  a  moment  he  flung  power 
into  the  dip  of  his  paddle  and  the  kyak  shot  ahead. 
There  was  current  here.  Swift,  crossing  current  that 
strove  to  head  his  craft  put  for  the  bosom  of  the  lake. 
The  man  counted  with  prompt  skill,  and  a  savage  satis¬ 
faction  shone  in  his  eyes. 

Passing  the  headland  he  gazed  upon  the  thing  he  had 
been  searching.  It  was  a  narrow  inlet  debouching  from 
a  wide  rift  in  the  rampart  of  hills. 

In  a  moment  his  vessel  shot  head  on  to  the  current. 
Then,  swiftly,  it  passed  from  view  of  the  open  lake  be¬ 
tween  the  sheltered  banks  which  were  heavily  overgrown 
by  unbroken  stretches  of  dense  pine-wood  blufifs. 

•  e  •  •  •  •  o 

An  amazing  transformation  left  the  sterile  setting  of 
the  mountain  lake  forgotten.  Farther  and  farther,  deeper 
and  deeper  into  the  hills  the  country  seemed  to  change  as 


64 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


by  magic.  East  and  west  of  the  valley  the  hills  rose  up 
sheltering  the  gracious  vegetation  that  looked  to  belong 
to  latitudes  hundreds  of  miles  to  the  south,  and  a  heat 
prevailed  that  was  even  greater  than  the  intemperate 
Arctic  summer. 

Usak  needed  no  explanation  of  the  phenomenon.  He 
knew  that  he  was  in  the  region  of  the  great  Fire  Hills  of 
the  North.  Hills  that  were  always  burning,  whether  in 
the  depths  of  winter  or  the  height  of  summer.  And  the 
heat  of  the  earthly  fires  transformed  the  countryside  into 
an  oasis  of  verdant  charm,  a  jewel  of  Nature  set  in  the 
cold  iron  of  the  North. 


A  large  habitation  stood  in  the  heart  of  a  wide  clearing 
in  the  forest.  It  was  deep  hidden  from  the  waterway 
which  split  up  the  length  of  the  valley.  Nearly  a  mile  of 
narrow  roadway  cut  through  the  forest  alone  gave  access 
to  the  river.  And  the  course  of  the  roadway  was  winding, 
and  its  debouchment  on  the  river  was  left  screened  with 
trees.  The  object  of  the  latter  must  have  been  clear  to 
the  simplest  mind.  A  perfect  secrecy  had  been  achieved, 
and  the  great  house  lay  hidden  within  the  forest. 

It  was  a  remarkable  building  whose  only  relation  to 
the  country  in  which  it  stood  was  the  material  of  its  con¬ 
struction.  Its  two  lofty  stories  were  built  of  lateral, 
rough-hewn  green  logs.  It  was  of  logs  carefully  dove¬ 
tailed,  from  the  ground  to  the  summit  of  a  central  tower 
which  rose  to  the  height  of  the  forest  trees  about  it.  Its 
walls  rambled  over  a  wide  extent  of  ground,  and  dotted 
about  its  main  building  were  a  number  of  lesser  buildings, 
both  habitations  and  accommodation  for  material.  It  was 
rather  like  a  log-built  feudal  fortress  surrounded  by,  and 
protecting,  the  homes  of  its  workers  and  dependents. 

A  figure  was  moving  cautiously  through  the  woods  be- 


THE  VENGEANCE  OF  USAK 


65 

yond  the  clearing.  The  moccasined  feet  gave  out  no 
sound  as  it  passed  from  tree  to  tree  or  sought  the  shelter 
of  such  dense  clumps  of  undergrowth  as  presented  them¬ 
selves.  The  buckskin-clad  creature  crouched  low  as  he 
moved,  and  the  colour  of  his  garments  seemed  to  merge 
itself  into  the  general  hue  about  him.  Now  and  again  he 
paused  for  long  contemplative  moments.  And  in  these 
he  searched  closely  with  keen,  purposeful  black  eyes  that 
nothing  escaped. 

He  was  seeking  every  sign  of  life  the  place  might 
afford.  And  so  far  he  had  discovered  none.  There  were 
one  or  two  prowling  dogs,  great  husky,  trail  dogs,  search¬ 
ing  leisurely  for  that  offal  which  seems  to  be  the  sole  pur¬ 
pose  of  their  resting  moments,  but  that  was  all. 

He  was  gazing  upon  the  main  frontage  of  the  building 
which  faced  the  south  with  a  long,  deep,  heavily  con¬ 
structed  verandah  running  its  entire  length.  The  several 
windows  which  gave  on  to  it,  covered  with  mosquito 
netting,  were  wide  open  to  admit  such  cooling  breeze  as 
might  chance  in  the  heat  of  the  day.  But  the  rich  curtains 
hung  limply  over  them  undisturbed  by  the  slightest  move¬ 
ment.  It  was  the  same  with  the  windows  of  the  upper 
story.  They,  too,  were  wide  open,  but  again  the  curtains 
were  unmoving.  The  searcher’s  eyes  passed  over  the 
lounging  chairs  on  the  verandah.  None  were  occupied, 
yet  each  and  all  looked  to  be  standing  ready. 

He  passed  on.  Making  a  wide  detour  within  the  shel¬ 
ter  of  the  woods  he  passed  round  to  the  western  side  of 
the  building.  Here  there  were  other  habitations.  Many 
were  mere  log  shanties,  cabins  such  as  the  searcher  knew 
by  heart.  The  cabin  of  whiteman  or  coloured  in  a  coun¬ 
try  where  makeshift  ruled. 

Again  there  was  no  sign  of  life.  There  was  not  even  a 
dog  prowling  loose  in  this  direction.  Maybe  those  who 


5 


66 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


peopled  these  cabins  were  resting  in  the  heat.  Maybe — 
but  the  searching  man  was  concerned  with  no  such  specu¬ 
lation.  The  thing  was  largely  as  he  had  expected  to  find 
it,  but  he  desired  to  re-assure  himself.  He  moved  on 
rapidly.  From  every  point  of  the  compass  his  searching 
eyes  surveyed  the  scene,  and  finally  he  came  back  to  the 
spot  where  his  prolonged  search  had  started.  He  was 
satisfied. 

He  stood  for  a  moment  while  he  made  his  final  prepara¬ 
tions.  They  were  simple,  savagely  simple.  He  moved 
the  belt  about  his  waist,  and  the  two  long  hunting  knives 
thrusting  from  their  sheaths  were  brought  to  the  front 
where  they  remained  ready  to  each  hand.  Then  he  thrust 
one  hand  into  a  voluminous  pocket  in  his  buckskin  and 
withdrew  a  heavy  pistol.  It  was  a  modern  pistol,  such  as 
one  would  hardly  expect  to  find  in  the  dark-skinned  hands 
of  the  native  bred.  This  he  examined  with  care  and  de¬ 
liberation.  Then  he  thrust  it  back  whence  it  came,  and 
moved  swiftly  out  into  the  open. 

The  quick  eyes  of  a  scavenging  dog  discovered  him 
and  a  low  snarl  accompanied  the  canine  discovery.  In¬ 
stantly  a  well-aimed  stone  silenced  the  creature  and  sent 
it  slinking  to  cover. 

The  point  the  man  had  selected  for  his  approach  had 
been  deliberately  chosen.  It  was  a  door  that  stood  ajar 
on  the  north  side  of  the  house.  It  obviously  admitted  to 
the  kitchen  place  of  the  building. 

With  the  vanishing  of  the  man  through  the  doorway 
the  lifelessness  of  the  place  which  had  been  momentarily 
broken  descended  upon  it  again.  The  still  air  hummed 
with  the  somnolent  drone  of  myriads  of  winged  insects. 
The  hush  of  the  surrounding  forest  seemed  to  crowd 
down  upon  it.  The  very  breathlessness  of  the  day  seemed 
to  suggest  the  utter  impossibility  of  stirring  life. 


THE  VENGEANCE  OF  USAK 


6  7 


After  a  moment,  the  deathly  silence  was  broken.  A 
sound  came  hard  in  the  wake  of  the  passing  man.  It  was 
a  curious,  half-stifled  cry,  and  it  came  from  the  direction 
of  the  open  doorway.  It  was  low,  inarticulate,  but  it  was 
human.  It  suggested  much  and  betrayed  nothing.  Then 
as  it  died  out  the  engulfing  silence  descended  once  more 
and  it  remained  unbroken. 


The  wide  central  hall  was  unlit  by  any  visible  window, 
yet  the  light  was  perfectly  distributed  and  ample.  Fur¬ 
thermore  it  was  the  light  of  day  without  one  gleam  of  the 
dazzling  sunshine. 

It  was  a  spacious  apartment,  lofty  and  square.  Its 
walls  were  covered  with  rich  hangings  of  simple  eastern 
design.  They  were  unusually  tasteful  and  delicate,  and 
obviously  the  handiwork  of  home  manufacture.  The 
floor  of  the  room  was  of  polished  yellow  pine  littered 
with  a  wealth  of  natural  furs  without  any  mountings. 
Every  skin  was  native  to  the  north  of  Alaska,  and  the 
variety  was  extensive.  In  the  centre  of  the  room  stood 
a  large,  open,  log  fire  set  up  on  a  built  hearth,  above  which 
rose  a  chimney  passing  straight  up  through  the  timbered 
ceiling  in  the  fashion  of  an  inverted  funnel.  For  all  the 
summer  heat  the  fire  was  alight,  smouldering  pleasantly, 
a  heap  of  white  wood  ash  yielding  a  delightful  aroma  as 
the  thin  spiral  of  smoke  drifted  leisurely  up  into  the 
mouth  of  the  funnel  above  it. 

About  the  walls  stood  several  low  couches.  They 
were  loaded  with  silken  cushions  adorned  in  a  fashion 
similar  to  the  hangings  upon  the  wall  with  a  lavish  dis¬ 
play  of  the  representations  of  brilliant-hued  flowers,  and 
birds,  amongst  which  chrysanthemum,  wistaria,  and  long¬ 
billed,  long-legged  storks  were  very  prominent. 


68 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


The  only  other  furnishings  in  the  place  were  a  magnifL 
cent  pair  of  oriental  vases  standing  on  carved  wood 
plinths,  a  large  bookcase,  that  was  also  a  desk  with  an 
armchair  before  it,  and  two  great,  manifold  wooden 
screens  with  elaborate,  incised  designs  decorating  their 
panels. 

In  the  shelter  of  one  of  the  latter  a  small  woman  was 
seated  on  a  couch  surrounded  by  the  materials  of  the  deli¬ 
cate  embroidery  she  was  engaged  upon.  She  was  seated 
with  her  feet  tucked  under  her,  and  a  book  lay  in  her 
lap.  But  she  was  neither  reading  nor  sewing  now.  Her 
dark  eyes  were  raised  alertly.  They  were  gazing  steadily 
at  an  angle  of  the  room  where  a  curtain  hung  in  heavy 
folds  over  what  was  clearly  a  doorway. 

The  solitary  occupant  of  the  room  was  not  young.  She 
was  nearing  middle  life,  yet  she  bore  small  enough  traces 
of  her  years.  She  was  pretty  for  all  the  large  tortoise-shell 
rimmed  glasses  she  was  wearing.  Her  jet  black  hair, 
dressed  closely  to  her  shapely  head,  bore  not  a  trace  of 
greying,  and  the  small  mouth  and  softly  tinted  cheeks 
were  as  fresh  and  delicate  as  a  young  girl’s. 

At  the  moment  a  keen  look  of  enquiry  was  revealed 
through  her  large  glasses  as  she  regarded  the  covered 
doorway.  Nor  was  her  look  without  a  suggestion  of  un¬ 
ease.  For  a  sound  had  reached  her  a  moment  before, 
which,  in  the  silence  of  the  house  about  her,  had  suggested 
a  cry — a  cry  of  pain.  Even  a  call  for  help. 

Apparently,  however,  she  dismissed  the  idea.  For  she 
presently  bent  over  the  work  she  had  laid  aside  in  the 
interest  of  the  book  she  had  been  reading. 

She  was  not  easily  disturbed.  She  was  accustomed  to 
long  periods  of  almost  complete  solitude.  There  were 
two  servants  in  the  house.  She  knew  that.  Men  who 
were  fully  capable  of  safeguarding  the  place,  even  though 


THE  VENGEANCE  OF  USAK 


69 


the  rest  of  the  folk  were  abroad  on  their  labours.  No.  A 
long  life  in  the  remote  fastnesses  of  the  northern  Alaskan 
hills  had  taught  her  many  things,  and  amongst  the  things 
she  had  learnt  was  that  perfect  immunity  from  intrusion 
was  vouchsafed  to  the  home  which  had  been  provided  for 
her.  There  were  times,  even,  when  she  felt  that  her  lot 
resembled  that  of  a  closely  guarded  prisoner. 

She  plied  her  needle  with  the  skill  and  rapidity  of  long 
practice.  The  chrysanthemum  she  was  working  was 
rapidly  developing  its  full  beauty  under  her  delicate  hands. 
Then  suddenly  she  dropped  her  hands  into  her  lap  and 
raised  her  eyes  again  to  the  doorway. 

There  was  no  mistaking  her  expression  now.  A  voice¬ 
less  alarm  gazed  out  through  her  glasses.  There  was  a 
sound  of  hurried  approach.  Someone  was  running  be¬ 
yond  the  doorway.  They  were  approaching - 

The  curtain  was  abruptly  dragged  aside.  A  man 
lurched  into  the  room.  He  was  a  smallish,  elderly  man, 
dark-skinned  and  eastern-looking.  He  was  clad  in  the 
ordinary  garments  of  civilization,  and  wore  a  short  apron 
about  his  waist.  He  stood  for  a  moment  clinging  to  the 
curtain  for  support.  Agony  looked  out  of  his  black  eyes, 
and  his  lined  face  was  distorted.  He  sought  to  make  a 
gesture  with  one  hand  and  nearly  fell.  Then  a  sound 
broke  from  his  lips.  It  was  one  word.  Only  one.  And 
that  barely  articulate. 

“Es — cape !”  he  cried. 

With  a  last  gasping  effort  his  hand  released  its  hold  on 
the  curtain  and  he  crashed  to  the  floor.  And  as  he  fell 
a  stream  of  blood  trickled  on  to  the  immaculate  wood¬ 
work  from  somewhere  in  the  region  of  his  neck. 

The  woman  was  on  her  feet.  A  wild  panic  shone  in 
the  eyes  behind  her  glasses.  She  stood  there  a  pretty, 
pathetic,  helpless  little  figure. 


7o 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


Escape ! 

The  word  was  ringing  in  her  ears  as  she  gazed  in 
horror  upon  the  still,  fallen  figure  of  the  man  who  had 
brought  her  warning  as  the  last  faithful  act  of  his  life. 

Escape !  What  did  it  mean  ?  What  could  it  mean  ? 

She  abruptly  turned  away.  She  bent  down  and 
gathered  up  her  sewing  and  her  book.  Then  she  passed 
rapidly  behind  the  screen  which  sheltered  her  couch. 
Only  for  one  instant  did  she  pause  before  passing  out  of 
view.  It  was  to  regard  again,  with  a  gaze  that  was  filled 
with  horror  and  terror,  the  poor  thing  that  had  brought 
her  warning. 


o  O  •  •  o  •  • 

Usak  was  standing  in  the  middle  of  the  great  room* 
He  was  gazing  about  him.  His  dark  eyes  were  aflame 
with  furious  desire.  His  great  body  bulked  enormously 
and  his  rough  clothing  left  him  a  sinister  figure  in  a  place 
of  such  lavish  refinement. 

He  took  in  every  detail  of  the  place,  and  at  last  his 
fierce  eyes  came  to  rest  on  the  dead  creature  lying  just 
within  the  doorway.  He  stared  at  it  without  pity  or  re¬ 
morse.  Without  a  sign  of  added  emotion.  His  thin  lips 
were  shut  tight  and  the  muscles  of  his  jaws  stood  out  with 
the  intensity  of  their  grip.  That  was  all. 

After  awhile  he  moved  away.  He  passed  over  to  the 
couch  sheltered  by  the  screen.  He  bent  over  it  searching 
closely,  and  from  among  the  cushions  drew  some  frag¬ 
ments  of  sewing  silk  and  cuttings  of  material.  He  gazed 
at  them.  But  he  was  not  thinking  of  them.  He  was 
thinking  of  another  woman,  a  woman  whose  hands  had 
been  accustomed  to  ply  a  needle,  and  to  cut  out  material. 
But  the  material  was  different.  It  was  less  refined, 
rougher.  In  Usak’s  mind  Pri-loo’s  sewing  was  mostly  to 


THE  VENGEANCE  OF  USAK  71 

do  with  the  buckskin  and  beads  so  dear  to  the  Indian 
heart. 

He  flung  the  things  aside.  Then  he  hurried  from  the 
room,  passing  again  the  doorway  through  which  he  had 
followed  the  man  he  had  slain. 


CHAPTER  VIII 

THE  VALLEY  OF  THE  FIRE  HILLS 

The  sun  blazed  down  on  a  silent  world.  The  glare  was 
merciless,  and  the  heat,  by  reason  of  the  weight  of  mois¬ 
ture  saturating  the  atmosphere  of  the  valley,  was  almost 
a  torture. 

The  stillness  of  the  world  was  awesome.  The  hum  of 
insect  life  accentuated  it,  and  so,  too,  with  the  murmur  of 
summer  waters,  which  is  the  real  music  of  the  silent 
places.  The  breathlessness  of  it  all  suggested  suspense, 
threat.  So  it  is  always  in  the  great  hill  countries.  The 
sense  of  threat  is  ever  present  to  the  human  mind,  driv¬ 
ing  men  to  seek  companionship,  even  if  it  be  only  associa¬ 
tion  with  the  creatures  who  are  there  to  bear  his  burdens. 

Threat  was  stirring  acutely  now.  It  was  in  the  pro¬ 
found  quiet,  in  the  saturating  heat ;  it  was  in  the  porten¬ 
tous  silence  wrapt  about  the  hidden  habitation  which  the 
man  at  the  water’s  edge  had  just  left  behind  him. 

Leaning  on  his  old-fashioned  rifle  the  Indian,  Usak, 
was  gazing  out  northwards  over  the  winding  course  of 
the  river.  His  dark  eyes  were  alert,  fiercely  alert.  No 
detail  of  the  scene  escaped  his  searching  gaze  as  he  fol¬ 
lowed  the  little  water-course  on  its  way  to  the  mountain 
lake  beyond.  He  searched  it  closely  right  up  to  the  great 
bend  where  stood  the  three  isolated  fire  hills.  His  Indian 
mind  was  calculating;  it  was  seeking  answers  to  doubts 


72 


THE  VALLEY  OF  THE  FIRE  HILLS  73 


and  questions  besetting  him.  For  he  knew  that  on  the 
result  of  his  right  thinking  now  depended  the  achieve¬ 
ment  he  had  marked  out  for  himself. 

Quite  motionless  he  stood  for  many  minutes.  Yet  for 
all  his  great  height  and  the  physical  strength  of  his 
muscular  body  his  presence  was  without  effect  upon  the 
immense  solitude  of  the  world  about  him.  It  had  no 
more  impression  than  had  one  single  creature  amongst 
the  myriads  of  flies  and  mosquitoes  swarming  hungrily 
about  his  dark  head. 

The  house  in  the  woods  behind  him  was  no  longer  of 
any  concern.  There,  as  he  had  set  out  to  do,  he  had  al¬ 
ready  worked  his  fierce  will.  It  was  sufficient.  That 
which  was  yet  to  be  accomplished  he  knew  to  lie  on  the 
waterway  approach,  and  his  mind  was  focussed  upon  the 
three  black,  smoking  hills  which  he  had  passed  on  his 
way  from  the  distant  lake. 

He  stirred  out  of  his  deep  contemplation.  He  raised 
his  rifle  and  slung  it  upon  his  buckskin-clad  shoulder. 
Then  he  turned  about,  and  raised  one  lean,  brown  hand. 
It  was  an  expressive  gesture.  There  was  something  in 
it  similar  to  the  shoulder-shrug  of  callous  indifference. 
He  passed  on  down  the  river. 


The  canoe  was  making  its  leisurely  way  up  the  river. 
The  dip  of  the  paddles  was  easy;  it  was  rhythmic  and  full 
of  the  music  so  perfectly  in  tune  with  Nature  in  her 
gentler  mood.  The  vessel  was  long  and  low,  and  built 
for  rapid,  heavy  transport  where  the  waters  were  not 
always  at  rest,  and  the  battle  with  the  elements  was  fierce 
and  unrelenting.  It  was  the  hide-built  craft  native  to 
the  Eskimo,  whose  life  is  spent  in  the  Polar  hunt. 


74 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


The  vessel  was  served  by  eight  paddles.  But  there 
were  two  other  occupants  lounging  amidships  against  the 
rolls  of  blankets  and  furs  which  were  part  of  their  camp 
outfit.  These  two  were  talking  in  low  voices  while  the 
men  at  the  paddles,  stripped  to  the  waist,  squat,  power¬ 
ful,  yellow-skinned  creatures  whose  muscles  rippled  in 
response  to  their  efforts  under  a  skin  that  shone  like  satin, 
remained  concerned  only  for  their  labours. 

“There  will  be  a  big  noise — later.’’ 

The  snapping  eyes  of  the  younger  man  were  half  smil¬ 
ing  as  he  contemplated  the  shimmering  waters  of  the  river 
ahead.  The  man  beside  him  stirred.  His  curious  eyes 
lit  with  a  gleam  of  irony  as  he  withdrew  his  gaze  from 
the  distant  smoke  cloud  which  lolled  ponderously  on  the 
still  air. 

“Oh,  yes.  There  will  be  a  big  noise,”  he  said.  “But 
it  doesn’t  matter.  Maybe  p’lice  will  come.”  He  laughed 
coldly.  “An’  when  they  come — what?  Later  they  go 
away.  Later  it  is  forgotten.  Winter  comes  and  every¬ 
thing  is  forgotten.  It  is  the  way  of  this  far-north  coun¬ 
try.  Only  is  this  country  for  the  man  who  lives  in  it. 
Not  for  those  who  mark  it  on  a  map,  and  say — ‘it  is 
mine.’  No.  It  is  for  us,  Sate.  It  is  ours.  We  make 
the  law  which  says  the  thing  we  desire  must  be  ours.  Le 
Gros  was  a  big  fool.  But  it  would  have  been  useless  to 
have  his  secret  and  leave  him  living.  One  word,  and 
they  would  have  flooded  the  country  with  white  trash 
from  every  corner  of  the  earth.  It  will  not  be  that  way 
now.  We  wait  for  the  p’lice  to  come.  We  wait  for  them 
to  go.  Then  this  thing  is  ours,  the  same  as  all  the  rest.” 

Sate  turned  his  dark  eyes  upon  the  strong  profile  of  his 
father. 

“Yes,”  he  agreed,  while  his  eyes  questioned. 

There  was  usually  a  question  in  his  eyes  when  regard- 


THE  VALLEY  OF  THE  FIRE  HILLS  75 

ing  his  parent ;  a  question  in  his  hot  impulsive  mind  when 
he  listened  to  the  cold  tone  of  authority  that  was  always 
addressed  to  him.  The  filial  attitude  of  the  youth  was 
no  more  than  skin  deep. 

“You  have  the  plans  safe?”  he  inquired  presently, 
while  he  watched  the  brown  fingers  of  the  other  filling 
the  familiar  red-clay  pipe.  “You  have  not  passed  them 
for  me  to  read?” 

The  tone  was  a  complaint,  and  it  brought  the  curious 
regard  of  the  tawny  eyes  to  the  discontented  face.  For 
a  moment  Sate  confronted  them  boldly.  Then  he  yielded, 
and  his  gaze  was  turned  upon  the  scenes  of  the  river. 

“You  will  see  them  when — it  is  necessary.” 

A  dark  fire  was  burning  behind  the  boy’s  pre-occupied 
gaze.  Nor  was  it  likely  that  the  father  failed  to  under¬ 
stand  the  mood  his  denial  had  aroused.  He  watched  the 
lowering  of  the  black  brows,  the  savage  setting  of  the 
youthful  jaws,  and  a  shadowy  smile  that  had  nothing 
pleasant  in  it  made  its  way  to  his  cold  eyes. 

For  all  his  surge  of  feeling  Sate  continued  to  regard  the 
surrounding  mountains  through  which  they  were  passing. 
There  was  not  a  detail  of  the  course  of  this  little,  hidden 
river  that  held  even  a  passing  interest  for  the  youth.  His 
whole  life  had  been  lived  within  the  Valley  of  the  Fire 
Hills  and  its  beauty,  the  mystery  of  it  affected  him  no 
more  congenially  than  might  a  prisoner  be  affected  by 
the  bare  walls  and  iron  bars  of  his  cell.  His  heart  and 
mind  were  in  fierce  rebellion.  He  was  chafing  impotently. 
But  he  was  held  silent,  for  he  dared  not  pit  himself 
against  the  iron  will,  the  inhuman  cruelty  which  he  knew 
to  lie  behind  the  cold  eyes  which,  in  his  brief  twenty 
years  of  life,  he  had  only  learned  to  obey  through  fear. 

The  man  beside  him  had  lit  his  pipe  without  a  shadow 
of  concern,  and  now  he  sat  smoking  it  like  any  native, 


7  6 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


with  its  stem  supported  by  his  strong  jaws  thrust  in 
the  centre  of  his  hard  mouth.  He  held  the  little  bowl  in 
both  hands. 

The  vessel  passed  out  of  the  shadow  of  the  canyon, 
and  the  welcome  shade  gave  place  to  the  blazing  heat  of 
full  sunlight.  The  sky  was  without  a  cloud  except  for 
the  overhanging  smoke  patch.  The  great  hills  had  sud¬ 
denly  leapt  back  and  the  world  had  become  radiant  with 
a  hundred  verdant  hues,  and  the  soft  purple  of  the  dis¬ 
tance. 

It  was  the  arena  of  the  Fire  Hills.  They  stood  up  in 
the  heart  of  it,  three  of  them.  Three  comparatively  low, 
expansive  hummocks  dwarfed  by  the  tremendous  alti¬ 
tude  of  the  surrounding  mountain  ring.  Standing  widely 
separated  on  the  low  flat,  about  which  the  shrunken  sum¬ 
mer  river  skirted,  they  stood  ominous,  black  and  smoking. 
They  were  bare  to  the  basaltic  rock  which  was  their 
whole  structure,  burnt  black  by  the  centuries  of  fire  con¬ 
tained  within  their  troubled  hearts.  They  were  stark, 
hideous,  like  malevolent  dwarfs,  monstrous  and  threaten¬ 
ing,  frowning  down  upon  a  world  made  gracious  the  year 
round  by  reason  of  their  own  involuntary  beneficence. 

The  man  removed  his  pipe  from  between  his  lips  and 
inclined  his  head  in  the  direction  of  the  smoking  hills. 

“An  hour  more,”  he  said. 

Sate’s  reply  came  without  glancing  round. 

“Yes,”  he  said. 

His  eyes,  too,  were  on  the  three  hills.  It  would  have 
been  impossible  for  it  to  have  been  otherwise.  Their 
great  ugly  shoulders  rose  high  above  the  belt  of  forest 
trees  which  lined  the  left  bank  of  the  river,  and  the  smoke 
cloud  hung  heavily  over  the  summits,  till  their  appearance 
was  like  that  of  giant  mushrooms.  The  smoke  was  mo¬ 
tionless,  dense,  threatening. 


THE  VALLEY  OF  THE  FIRE  HILLS  77 

“It’s  thick,”  the  father  observed  reflectively.  “We 
need  a  wind  to  carry  it  away.  If  the  weather  changes  it’ll 
come  down  in  a  fog.  They’re  queer — those  hills.  Some¬ 
day  they’ll — ” 

The  sharp  crack  of  a  rifle  rang  out.  The  man  in  the 
prow  of  the  vessel  jerked  forward  in  the  act  of  dipping 
his  paddle,  and  sprawled  with  his  body  lolling  over  the 
vessel’s  side. 

The  man  with  the  yellow  eyes  scrambled  to  his  feet  and 
Sate  sat  up.  For  one  tense  moment  every  eye  was  turned 
upon  the  belt  of  trees  that  lined  the  shore  masking  the 
base  of  the  Fire  Hills.  The  shot  had  come  from  that 
direction,  but  there  was  nothing,  no  sign  of  any  sort  to 
give  a  clue  to  the  whereabouts  of  the  man  who  had  fired 
with  such  murderous  accuracy. 

The  man  standing  amidships  gave  a  sharp  order.  His 
crew  had  quit  paddling  in  the  complete  confusion  into 
which  the  attack  had  flung  them.  And,  in  a  moment,  the 
paddles  dipped  again,  but  only  seven  of  them. 

Sate  passed  forward  to  the  wounded  man,  and  his 
father  waited,  still  standing,  for  the  result  of  his  investi¬ 
gations.  It  was  some  time  before  the  youth  gave  a  sign. 
But  at  last  he  dragged  the  fallen  body  into  the  boat  and 
laid  it  out  in  the  bottom  of  it. 

“Well?” 

The  demand  came  sharply.  But  the  tawny  eyes  were 
still  steadily  searching  the  wood-clad  bank  of  the  river. 

“Dead.” 

Sate’s  reply  was  no  less  sharp. 

“Drop  him  overboard.  We’ve  no  room  for  dead  men. 
Take  the  paddle  yourself,  Sate.”  After  delivering  his 
order  the  man  amidships  turned  about  and  spoke  in  a 
foreign  tongue  to  the  man  in  the  stern.  Instantly  the 
prow  of  the  vessel  swung  towards  the  shore. 


78 


THE  LUCK  OP  THE  KID 


Again  a  shot  rang  out.  This  time  it  was  the  man 
whose  paddle  had  changed  the  vessel’s  course  who  was 
the  victim.  He  lolled  forward  like  a  tired  man  at  the 
finish  of  the  stroke  of  his  paddle.  Then  he  crumpled,  col¬ 
lapsing  against  the  man  in  front  of  him,  shot  throught  the 
heart. 


The  dusky  figure  was  moving  rapidly  down  the 
shadowed  aisles  of  leafless  tree-trunks.  Its  movements 
were  almost  without  sound.  They  were  the  stealthy, 
swift  movements  of  the  Indian  in  pursuit  of  a  wary 
quarry. 

Every  now  and  again  Usak  paused  in  the  shelter  of  a 
great  forest  bole,  and  his  fierce  eyes  searched  for  opening 
in  the  barrier  of  undergrowth  that  hid  the  waters  of  the 
river  beyond.  His  patience  seemed  inexhaustible.  Effort 
was  unrelaxing.  He  was  spurred  by  a  lust  that  was  all- 
consuming. 

So  he  kept  pace  with  the  moving  vessel  that  was  be¬ 
hind  him  on  the  river.  His  object  was  to  keep  ever  ahead 
of  it,  not  remaining  a  second  longer  at  any  given  point 
than  his  purpose  demanded.  On,  and  on,  with  the  swift, 
silent  gait  of  the  hunter,  he  passed  from  tree  to  tree  but 
never  did  he  permit  himself  to  pass  out  of  gunshot  of  his 
quarry. 

He  paused  at  a  fallen  tree.  To  the  right  of  him,  look¬ 
ing  down  the  river,  was  a  narrow  break  in  the  tangle  of 
undergrowth.  He  rested  his  queer,  long  rifle  and 
searched  over  the  sights,  holding  a  definite  spot  on  the 
shining  waters  covered.  The  man  was  deadly  in  his  de¬ 
liberation.  Twice  he  re-adjusted  his  sights.  Then  at 
last,  apparently  satisfied,  stretched  prone  on  the  ground 
under  cover  of  the  protecting  tree  trunk,  he  waited  with 


THE  VALLEY  OF  THE  FIRE  HILLS  79 


the  weapon  pressed  hard  into  his  shoulder,  his  lean  tena¬ 
cious  finger  on  the  trigger,  and  an  eye,  that  displayed  no 
shadow  of  mercy,  glancing  over  his  sights. 

The  moments  passed  in  deathly  silence.  The  trees 
above  him  creaked  in  the  super-heated  twilight.  But  none 
of  the  forest  sounds  distracted  him.  His  keen  ears  were 
listening  for  one  familiar  sound.  His  searching  eyes 
were  waiting  for  one  vision  in  the  narrow  opening  of  the 
undergrowth. 

The  sound  came.  And  into  the  open  flashed  the  prow 
of  the  approaching  canoe.  It  was  more  than  two  hundred 
yards  from  the  man’s  place  of  concealment,  but  the  dis¬ 
tance  had  been  calculated  to  a  fraction  with  the  skill  of  a 
great  hunter.  The  finger  pressed  the  trigger. 

The  hidden  man  leaped  to  his  feet,  a  grim  look  of  satis¬ 
faction  shining  in  his  eyes.  He  had  witnessed  the  thing 
he  desired.  He  had  seen  the  man  at  the  vessel’s  prow 
fall  forward.  And  he  knew  it  was  the  man  who  had 
taken  the  place  of  an  earlier  victim. 

He  was  off  on  the  run  as  an  answering  shot  rang  out, 
and  he  heard  the  spat  of  a  bullet  strike  one  of  the  tree 
trunks  somewhere  behind  him.  There  was  another  shot, 
and  another.  But  each  shot  found  its  home  in  the  up¬ 
standing  tree-trunks  far  in  the  rear  of  him,  and  left  him 
grimly  unconcerned.  It  was  a  battle  to  the  death  in  a 
fashion  of  which  he  was  absolutely  master.  It  mattered 
not  to  him  if  the  canoe  continued  on  its  course,  or  re¬ 
treated,  or  if  the  enemy  abandoned  the  river  and  sought 
to  continue  the  fight  in  the  twilight  of  the  forests.  He 
knew  he  held  him  at  his  mercy  on  this  great  bend  of  the 
river.  For  the  far  bank  was  walled  by  the  granite  of  the 
great  hills  which  closed  in  the  arena  of  the  Fire  Hills. 
There  was  no  escape. 

After  awhile  he  paused  again  at  the  foot  of  a  tree  that 


8o 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


had  been  rudely  storm-blasted.  Its  crown  was  shorn  and 
lay  a  vast  tangle  on  the  ground  beside  it.  In  a  moment, 
with  rifle  slung,  he  had  swarmed  the  broken  trunk  and 
lodged  himself  in  the  lower  branches  which  still  remained. 
He  gazed  out  over  the  top  of  the  undergrowth,  and  a 
great  length  of  the  sweep  of  the  river  was  spread  out 
before  his  hungry  eyes.  The  canoe  was  just  entering 
his  field  of  vision.  He  settled  himself  with  his  back  to 
the  tree-trunk,  and  his  knees  were  bent  in  a  squatting 
posture  with  his  feet  supported  on  a  projecting  limb  which 
also  helped  to  screen  him  from  those  on  the  river.  He  ad¬ 
justed  his  sights  and  prepared  to  hurl  death  from  his 
hiding-place. 

Slowly  he  pressed  the  trigger  and  his  ancient  weapon 
faithfully  responded.  The  ivory  sights  were  unfailing  to 
an  eye  behind  which  burned  so  fierce  a  desire.  He  saw 
the  result  even  with  the  rifle  still  pressed  to  his  shoulder, 
and  unconsciously  he  pronounced  the  triumphant  thought 
in  his  mind. 

“Four!” 

He  re-loaded.  The  canoe  was  in  full  view  now,  and 
the  temptation  was  irresistible.  Again  he  pressed  the 
trigger,  and  another  life  had  passed. 

He  lowered  his  weapon  and  watched.  The  short  man 
amidships  was  about  to  answer.  He  saw  a  rifle  raised. 
The  shot  echoed  against  the  granite  walls  behind  it.  And 
something  like  a  smile  lit  the  hunter’s  eyes,  for  the  man 
had  fired  into  the  forest  far  below  where  he  was  securely 
seated.  Instantly  he  re-loaded,  and,  a  moment  later,  a 
sixth  victim  fell  to  his  lethal  weapon. 

He  dropped  from  his  “crow’s  nest”  and  ran  on 
through  the  dark  aisles  that  hid  him  so  well.  Every  foot 
of  the  way  was  mapped  in  his  mind.  He  had  laid  his  trail 
with  the  skill  of  a  man  who,  knowing  his  craft,  will  not 


THE  VALLEY  OF  THE  FIRE  HILLS  81 


yield  one  fraction  of  his  advantage.  So  he  passed  on 
to  where  the  forest  narrowed  down  by  reason  of  the  Fire 
Hill,  whose  ponderous  slopes  came  down  almost  to  the 
river  bank. 

He  passed  from  the  forest  and  began  the  ascent  of  the 
hill.  Here  there  was  no  cover  but  the  rough,  protruding 
boulders  on  the  blackened  slopes.  But  he  had  reached  a 
point  of  calculated  recklessness  when  he  knew  he  must 
court  greater  chances  for  the  success  he  desired.  There 
had  been  ten  men  in  the  canoe  when  first  he  had  welcomed 
the  sight  of  it  upon  the  river.  Ten  men,  all  of  whom 
had  participated  in  the  wanton  destruction  of  everything 
in  the  world  that  had  meant  life,  and  hope,  and  home  to 
him.  Now  there  were  only  four. 

The  canoe  was  within  a  mile  of  its  destination,  and  he 
had  decided  before  that  destination  was  reached  only  one 
single  man  of  its  complement  must  remain  alive.  His 
purpose  was  implacable.  Vengeance  consumed  the  man. 
And  it  was  the  vengeance  that  only  the  savage  heart  of 
a  creature  of  his  ancestry  could  have  contemplated. 

He  passed  on  up  the  slope  with  the  speed  of  some  swift¬ 
footed  forest  creature.  And  the  smoke  haze  rising  from 
the  summit  partially  obscured  the  drab  of  his  clothing 
against  the  blackened  ground.  Up  towards  the  belching 
crown  he  moved,  but  ever  with  a  glance  flung  backward 
lest  the  increasing  density  of  the  smoke  cloud  should  mar 
his  view  of  the  things  below. 

At  last  he  came  to  a  halt.  The  point  had  been  reached 
when  he  dared  proceed  no  farther.  The  haze,  in  the  bril¬ 
liant  air,  was  sufficient  to  screen  him  without  obscuring 
his  vision  of  the  river.  So  he  took  up  a  position  behind 
a  boulder,  and  leant  upon  it  with  his  rifle  supported  for 
steadiness  on  its  clean-cut  surface.  For  some  moments 
he  watched  the  fierce  efforts  of  the  remainder  of  the  crew 


6 


82 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


of  the  canoe  to  make  the  shelter  of  the  house  something 
less  than  a  mile  away  to  his  left. 

Yes,  there  were  four  of  them  only.  And  all  four  were 
paddling  literally  for  their  lives.  He  watched  them 
closely,  a  devilish  smile  lighting  his  satisfied  eyes.  And 
he  saw  that  the  rhythm  of  their  stroke  had  been  lost,  and 
the  speed  of  the  vessel  was  infinitely  slow.  Oh,  yes,  he 
understood.  Panic  had  done  its  work.  The  panic  inspired 
by  complete  impotence.  They  were  there  a  target  for  just 
so  long  as  they  were  in  the  open  of  the  river.  There  was 
no  shelter  for  them  anywhere.  The  granite  of  the  far 
wall  of  the  river  cut  off  escape,  and  the  forest  on  the 
hither  side  contained  the  deadly,  unseen  danger.  So 
there  was  nothing  left  them  but  to  race  on,  zigzagging 
a  course  down  the  river  in  the  hope  of  escape  from  the 
deadly  fire. 

He  re-adjusted  the  sights  of  his  rifle  and  judged  his 
distance.  Slowly  and  very  deliberately  he  pressed  the 
trigger.  The  shot  passed  over  the  canoe.  He  re-loaded 
without  concern,  and  his  second  shot  left  only  three 
paddles  dipping.  The  man  in  the  bow  of  the  boat 
squatted  drooping  and  clutching  for  support. 

He  waited  for  the  final  result  of  his  shot,  and  it  came 
as  the  man  yielded  his  hold  and  dropped  helplessly  into 
the  bottom  of  the  boat.  Again  he  laid  his  weapon.  Two 
more  shots  rang  out  from  the  smoke  shroud  of  the  burn¬ 
ing  hill.  Then,  after  a  brief  interval,  two  more  carried 
their  deadly  burden.  The  man  re-loaded  again  and 
again  till  a  pile  of  empty  shells  lay  close  beside  him. 
Then,  at  last,  he  rose  from  his  crouching  position  and 
stretched  his  cramping  limbs.  He  slung  his  hot  rifle  upon 
his  shoulder,  and  stood  gazing  down  upon  the  slowly 
moving  boat  as  it  laboured  over  the  water.  He  was 
completely  satisfied.  Now  there  was  left  but  one  man 


THE  VALLEY  OF  THE  FIRE  HILLS  83 


to  drive  the  heavy  vessel  to  the  haven  which  should  mean 
shelter  from  his  murderous  sniping. 


The  man  with  the  yellow  eyes  drove  hard  with  his 
paddle  and  the  nose  of  the  vessel  thrust  deep  into  the  mud 
of  the  landing.  For  a  moment  he  remained  kneeling, 
supported  against  the  strut  where  he  had  laboured.  He 
made  no  attempt  to  leave  his  post.  Only  he  gazed  along 
down  the  river  bank  at  the  screen  of  bush  which  lined  it. 
There  was  no  emotion  visible  in  his  mask-like  face. 
There  was  nothing  in  his  eyes  to  tell  of  the  swift,  urgent 
thought  behind  them. 

After  awhile  his  gaze  was  withdrawn  to  the  grim 
freight  of  his  vessel.  Then  he  stood  up  quickly  and 
moved  forward.  Four  bodies  were  lying  huddled  in  the 
bottom  of  the  canoe.  With  three  of  them  he  was  com¬ 
pletely  unconcerned.  But  with  the  fourth  it  was  different. 
He  stood  for  a  moment  gazing  down  unemotionally 
at  the  dead  body  of  the  youthful  Sate.  Then  he 
stooped,  and,  gathering  it  in  his  powerful  arms,  carried 
it  quickly  ashore.  He  laid  it  gently  down  on  a  vivid  bed 
of  Arctic  wild  flowers  and  stood  over  it  in  silent  con¬ 
templation. 

His  pre-occupation  was  intense.  But  he  gave  no  sign. 
Such  emotions  as  were  his  were  his  alone.  They  were 
stirring  in  a  heart  deep  hidden.  And  his  tawny  eyes 
masked  no  less  surely  now  than  was  always  their  habit. 

A  sound  disturbed  him  at  last,  and  he  turned  like  a 
panther  ready  for  anything  it  might  portend.  But  the 
flash  of  alertness  died  out  of  his  eyes  at  the  sight  of  a 
woman’s  small  figure  as  it  broke  its  way  through  the  bush 
in  the  direction  of  the  house  which  was  his  home. 

The  pretty  face  the  man  was  looking  into  was  drawn 


84 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


and  haggard.  The  slanting  eyes  were  full  of  a  terror  that 
even  the  long  awaited  return  of  her  man  could  not  banish. 
The  woman  had  run  to  him  with  little,  hurried  strides  and 
hands  outstretched  in  piteous  appeal. 

“Hela!”  she  cried.  And  into  the  pronunciation  of  the 
man’s  name,  and  in  the  pitch  of  her  voice  she  contrived  to 
fling  a  world  of  woman’s  terrified  despair. 

For  once  the  man’s  eyes  revealed  something  of  that 
which  was  passing  behind  them. 

“Tell  me,  Crysa,”  he  demanded  urgently.  “Tell  me 
quick.” 

The  distraught  woman  stood  clinging  to  the  arm  which 
made  no  effort  to  yield  her  support.  She  broke  at  once 
into  hysterical  speech  in  a  foreign  tongue. 

“They  have  killed  them  all.  Even  the  dogs.  There  is 
not  one  left.  All — all  are  killed.  Myso,  Oto,  Lalman. 
Oh,  they  murder  them  with  the  knife.  I  hid  in  the  secret 
place.  It  was  Oto  who  gave  me  warning  with  his  dying 
words.  He  was  dead — all  dead  in  a  moment.  I  can  see 
the  blood  on  the  floor  now.  Devils  came  to  the  house.  An 
army  of  them.  They — Oh !”  she  cried  breaking  off  the 
torrent  of  her  disjointed  story  in  a  spasm  of  new  horror. 

Her  gaze  had  fallen  on  the  still,  prone  figure  at  her 
man’s  feet.  Her  hands  dropped  from  his  arm.  She 
moved  a  step  from  him,  and  bending  forward,  peered 
down. 

“Dead,  too,”  she  said,  in  a  low  hushed  voice.  “Dead!” 

Then  she  recognized  the  dark  features  of  the  boy  who 
was  her  son.  Suddenly  a  piercing  cry  broke  the  silence 
of  the  woods  about  them,  and  echoed  against  the  far  walls 
that  shut  in  the  river. 

“Sate!”  she  cried.  “Our  Sate!”  And  in  a  moment 
she  had  flung  her  frail  body  upon  the  still  figure  stretched 
upon  its  bed  of  wild  flowers. 


THE  VALLEY  OF  THE  FIRE  HILLS  85 

The  man  looked  on.  He  watched  the  delicate  hands  as 
they  beat  the  ground  in  his  wife’s  paroxysm  of  grief. 
He  listened  to  her  demented  shrieks  of  lamentation.  But 
he  gave  no  sign;  he  offered  no  comfort.  Maybe  he  found 
himself  simply  helpless.  Maybe  in  his  hard,  unyielding 
mood  he  felt  it  best  that  the  woman’s  storm  of  grief 
should  spend  itself.  Perhaps,  even,  the  disaster  of  his 
journey  home  had  left  him  indifferent  to  everything  else. 
Certainly  his  cruel  eyes  were  without  any  softening,  with¬ 
out  any  expression  but  that  which  was  usual  to  them. 

The  woman’s  lamentations  died  down  to  heart-racked 
sobs,  and  the  man  turned  away.  He  passed  slowly  down 
to  the  boat,  so  deeply  nosed  into  the  mud,  and  the  lessen¬ 
ing  cries  of  the  distracted  mother  pursued  him.  But  he 
no  longer  gave  heed  to  them. 

He  laid  hold  of  the  canoe  and  set  to  hauling  it  clear 
of  the  water.  Once,  twice,  thrice  he  heaved  with  all  the 
strength  of  his  powerful  body.  The  boat  was  half  way 
up  the  bank.  Then,  as  he  lay  to  the  work  again,  a  cry  that 
was  something  like  a  snarl  broke  from  him.  Some  great 
body  had  leapt  on  him  from  behind.  His  hold  was  torn 
loose  from  his  task,  and  he  was  flung  bodily,  with  terrific 
force,  sprawling  amidst  the  radiant  flowers  that  littered 
the  river  bank.  The  dark,  avenging  figure  of  the  Indian, 
Usak,  stood  over  him. 

For  one  brief  instant  eye  searched  eye.  No  word 
passed  the  lips  of  either.  It  was  a  moment  of  furious 
challenge,  a  moment  of  murderous  purpose.  It  passed. 
And  its  passing  came  with  the  lunging  of  the  Indian  as 
he  precipitated  himself  upon  his  victim. 

They  lay  writhing,  and  twisting,  and  struggling  on  the 
ground.  No  vocal  sound,  no  sound  but  the  sound  of 
furious  movement  came  in  the  struggle.  The  Indian  was 
uppermost,  as  he  had  intended  to  be  from  the  moment 


86  THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 

and  the  method  of  his  attack.  He  had  one  object,  and  one 
object  only. 

The  Indian’s  great  size  and  strength  were  overwhelm¬ 
ing  with  the  other  caught  at  a  disadvantage.  Then  the 
man  with  the  yellow  eyes  was  fully  two  decades  older. 
Usak  was  lithe,  active  as  a  wild  cat,  with  all  the  bulk  of 
a  greater  forest  beast.  Then  there  was  his  simple,  terrible 
purpose. 

It  was  done,  finished  in  a  few  awful  moments.  A 
sound  broke  from  the  man  underneath  the  Indian’s  body. 
It  was  a  half-stifled  choking  cry.  It  was  inarticulate  ex¬ 
cept  that  it  was  a  cry  of  pain  and  suffering  for  which  there 
could  be  no  other  expression.  And  instantly  all  strug¬ 
gling  ceased. 

The  arms  of  the  man  underneath  fell  away.  Usak 
leapt  to  his  feet  and  his  savage  eyes  glowered  down  on 
the  writhing  body  on  the  ground.  For  a  moment  he 
watched  the  tortured  creature,  effortless  except  for  the 
physical  contortions  of  unspeakable  suffering.  And  pres¬ 
ently  he  heard  the  thing  he  had  awaited.  It  was  a  faint, 
low  moaning  forced  at  last  from  between  the  blinded 
man’s  stubbornly  pressed  lips. 

Fierce,  harsh  words  leapt  in  answer  to  the  sound,  and 
the  Indian  spoke  out  of  the  original  savagery  that  was 
his. 

“So!  Euralian  Chief!”  he  cried  exultantly.  “You  not 
know  all  this  you  mak,  or  you  not  mak  it  so.  No.  I  tell 
you  this — I,  Usak.  You  come  kill  my  woman,  Pri-loo. 
You  kill  my  good  boss,  Marty  Le  Gros.  You  come  to 
steal.  But  you  not  steal.  Only  you  kill  my  woman,  Pri- 
loo,  an’  my  good  boss.  So  I,  Usak,  come.  I  kill  up  all  the 
mans,  everything.  But  not  so  I  kill  your  woman.  Not  so 
I  kill  you.  Oh,  no.  That  for  bimeby.  Now  I  tak  out 
your  eyes.  If  I  kill  up  your  woman  you  die.  No  good. 


THE  VALLEY  OF  THE  FIRE  HILLS  87 


No.  So  I  leave  you  your  woman.  She  lie  there  by  your 
son.  She  look  this  way  now  to  see  the  thing  I  do.  Bimeby 
she  come.  She  forget  the  son  I  shoot  all  up.  She  re¬ 
member  only  her  man  who  will  live  in  darkness.  It  good. 
It  just  how  I  think.  Bimeby  she  come.  She  mak  you  live. 
She,  your  woman.  She  lead  you  by  the  hand.  She  feed 
you.  She  mak  you  see  through  her  eyes.  So  you  know  the 
hell  you  show  to  me.  Oh,  yes.  It  black  hell  for  you.  No 
light  no  more.  Your  folk  come.  They  find  you.  You 
not  see  them.  Nothing.  Then  they  go  leave  you.  An’ 
so  you  live — in  hell.  Bimeby  I  come.  Big  long  time  I 
come.  An’  when  I  come  I  kill  you.  I  kill  you  an’  your 
woman  all  up  dead,  same  as  you  kill  my  woman,  Pri-loo. 
Now  I  go.  I  go  an’  think,  think,  how  I  mak  kill  you — 
sometime.” 


PART  II 

FIFTEEN  YEARS  LATER 


89 


CHAPTER  I 


PLACER  CITY 

Bill  Wilder  smiled  in  an  abstracted,  wry  sort  of  fashion 
as  he  strode  down  the  boarded  sidewalk,  which  was  no 
more  than  sufficient  for  its  original  purpose  of  saving 
pedestrians  from  wallowing  in  the  mire  and  stagnant 
water  of  the  unmade  main  throughfare  of  Placer  City. 

He  was  on  his  way  to  his  office  from  his  house.  His 
house  was  built  well  beyond  the  tattered  city’s  limits  with 
a  view  to  escape  from  the  sordid  atmosphere  of  the  north¬ 
ern  gold  city,  which  in  the  long  years  of  acquaintance  he 
had  learned  to  detest. 

Bill  Wilder  was  the  wealthiest  gold  man  in  a  city  of 
extreme  wealth.  Ten  years  of  abounding  success  had 
transformed  a  youth  of  barely  eighteen,  lean,  large, 
angular,  yearning  with  every  wholesome  human  desire, 
into  a  man  of  twenty-eight,  glutted  and  overburdened  with 
a  fortune  and  mining  interests  the  extent  of  which  even 
he  found  it  well  nigh  impossible  to  estimate.  In  ten  years, 
under  the  driving  force  of  inflexible  resolve,  backed  by 
amazing  good  fortune,  he  had  achieved  at  an  age  when 
the  generality  of  men  are  only  approaching  the  threshold 
of  affairs  that  really  matter. 

But  somehow  his  success  had  brought  him  little  enough 
joy.  It  had  brought  him  labour  that  was  incessant.  It  had 
made  it  possible  that  every  whim  of  his  could  be  satis¬ 
fied  by  the  stroke  of  the  pen.  But  instead  of  satisfaction, 
he  reminded  himself  that  somehow  his  life  had  become 
completely  and  utterly  empty,  and  he  yearned  to  set  the 


91 


92 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


clock  back  to  those  long,  arduous,  struggling  days,  when 
hope  and  resolve  had  been  able  to  drive  him  to  greater 
and  greater  exertions,  with  a  pocket-book  that  was  almost 
as  lean  and  hungry  as  his  stomach. 

His  smile  now  was  inspired  by  the  memory  of  a  brief 
interview  he  had  just  had  on  his  way  down,  in  the  hall  of 
the  McKinley  Hotel,  with  a  Hebrew  acquaintance,  a 
wealthy  and  influential  saloon-proprietor.  A.  Feldman 
had  spent  half-an-hour  in  endeavouring  to  get  him  to  join 
forces  in  the  erection  of  a  new  dance  hall  that  was  in¬ 
tended  to  eclipse  anything  of  the  kind  in  the  country  in 
size,  splendour,  and  profits.  His  reply  had  been  curt.  It 
had  been  harsh  in  its  bitter  condemnation.  And  the 
memory  of  the  Jew’s  hopeless  stare  of  amazement  was 
with  him  now. 

“Not  on  your  life,  Feldman,”  he  had  said  in  conclusion. 
“I’m  a  gold  man.  No  better  and  no  worse.  I’m  not  a 
brothel  keeper.” 

His  smile  passed,  and  he  gazed  about  him  at  the  moving 
traffic  surging  along  the  miserable  highway  under  the 
dazzling  sunlight  of  a  perfect  spring  day.  He  had  no 
particular  claim  to  good  looks.  His  face  was  strong,  and 
his  expression  open.  There  was  a  certain  angularity  about 
his  clean-shaven  features,  and  a  simple  directness  in  his 
clear-gazing  grey  eyes.  He  looked  a  typical  gold  man 
without  pretence  or  display,  and  from  the  careless  rough¬ 
ness  of  his  tweed  clothing  no  one  would  have  taken  him 
for  a  man  who  counted  his  wealth  in  millions  of  dollars. 

But  that  was  the  man.  Achievement  was  the  sole  pur¬ 
pose  of  his  life.  And  it  must  be  the  achievement  of  a 
great  body  and  muscles  rather  than  the  subtle  scheming  of 
the  acute  commercial  mind  which  he  by  no  means  lacked. 

The  life  of  this  mushroom  northern  city  only  stirred 
him  to  repugnance.  He  was  no  prude.  He  had  tasted  of 


PLACER  CITY 


93 


the  life  in  the  fevered  moments  of  youth.  But  he  knew, 
he  had  strong  reason  to  know,  there  was  nothing  in  it  that 
money  could  not  buy,  from  the  governing  corporation  to 
the  women  and  gunmen  who  haunted  the  dance  halls, 
except  the  Mounted  Police  detachment.  And  somehow  the 
knowledge  had  become  completely  hateful  to  him. 

He  had  migrated  to  the  place  during  one  of  its  early 
“rushes/’  when  it  was  only  a  few  degrees  removed  from  a 
mining  camp.  A  whirlwind  rush  of  humanity  had  swept 
down  upon  it  bearing  him  on  its  tide.  And  he  had  re¬ 
mained  to  witness  its  leaping  development  into  an  estab¬ 
lished  city  of  wealth  and  wanton  freedom.  Later  he  had 
participated  in  an  attempt  at  real  government  by  the  saner 
element  of  its  people,  and  the  making  safe  of  life  and 
property.  With  them  he  had  hoped.  He  had  looked  on 
at  the  mushroom  growth  of  great  hotels  and  offices,  and 
greater  and  more  elaborate  halls  of  public  entertainment. 
Then,  with  those  others,  he  had  watched  the  wreckage  of 
the  new  authority  under  pressure  of  vested  interests,  and 
witnessed  the  passing  of  the  moment  or  moral  uplift.  The 
falling  back  into  a  mire  of  corruption  had  been  literally 
headlong. 

The  city  had  grown  up  in  the  wide  valley  of  the  Hekor 
River  at  the  point  where  the  first  alluvial  strike  had  been 
made.  It  was  at  a  point  where  the  river  widened  out  be¬ 
fore  dispersing  its  northern  waters  into  a  great  lake  sur¬ 
rounded  by  the  lofty  range  of  hills  which  had  created  it. 
It  followed  the  usual  lines  of  all  these  improvised  northern 
places  of  habitation.  It  was  designed  in  a  rectangular 
fashion  based  on  one  interminable  main  thoroughfare, 
which  was  the  centre  of  haphazard  development.  The 
road  had  sidewalks,  but  for  the  rest  it  remained  uncon¬ 
structed.  Vehicular  traffic  wallowed  in  mire  during  the 
spring,  jolted  and  bumped  over  a  broken,  dusty  surface 


94 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


in  summer,  and,  in  winter,  enjoyed  a  foundation  of  snow 
on  which  to  travel  that  frequently  stood  five  and  six  feet 
in  depth. 

The  whole  place  was  hopelessly  straggling  and  unkempt. 
Lofty  seven-  and  eight-storied  buildings  looked  down  on 
the  log  shanties  and  frame  hutments  grovelling  at  their 
feet  in  that  incongruous  fashion  which  never  seems  to 
disturb  the  human  sense  of  fitness.  There  were  even  men 
amongst  its  cosmopolitan  people  who  found  joy  in  the 
disparity.  But  these  were  mainly  the  folk  who  owned 
or  had  designed  the  greater  structures. 

Throughout  the  long  winter  night  the  place  was  ablaze 
with  electric  light,  a  never-ending  source  of  joy  to  the 
crude  pioneering  mind.  Arc  lamps  lit  the  main  thorough¬ 
fare,  while  a  multitude  of  winking  signs  served  to  guide 
the  unwary  to  those  accommodating  dens  waiting  to  un¬ 
loose  inflated  bank  rolls.  During  the  six  months  of  sum¬ 
mer  daylight  this  service  was  unnecessary.  And  only  the 
cold  light  standards,  and  the  hideous  framing  of  the  signs, 
and  the  tawdry  decorations  of  the  places  of  entertainment 
were  left  to  replace  the  winter  splendour. 

Bill  Wilder  knew  it  all  by  heart,  from  the  elaborate 
Ely  see,  down  to  the  meanest  cabaret  from  which  a 
drunken  miner  would  be  fortunate  to  escape  with  nothing 
worse  than  a  vanished  store  of  “dust.”  He  hated  it.  The 
knowledge  of  the  life  that  went  on  every  hour  of  the 
twenty-four  sickened  and  bored  him.  He  longed  for  the 
free,  wholesome,  hard-living  life  of  the  outworld  beyond 
the  sordid  prison  bars  which  his  fortune  had  set  up  about 
him. 

It  was  always  the  same  now.  Month  in,  month  out, 
there  was  nothing  but  the  solitude  of  his  home  and  the 
work  of  the  office  in  the  great  commercial  block  he  had 
built,  or  the  pastimes  of  the  dance  hall  and  gambling  hell. 


PLACER  CITY 


95 


He  wanted  none  of  it.  His  great  body  was  rusting  with 
disuse,  while  the  mental  effort  of  the  administration  of 
his  affairs  was  fast  robbing  his  sober  senses  of  all  joy 
of  life.  He  yearned  for  the  open  with  all  its  privations. 
He  wanted  the  canoe  nosing  into  the  secret  places  of  the 
far  world.  The  burden  of  the  battle  against  Nature  in 
her  fiercest  mood  was  something  to  be  desired.  And  so, 
too,  with  the  howl  of  the  deadly  blizzard  beyond  the  flap 
door  of  a  flimsy  tent.  At  this  moment  Placer  City  and  all 
its  alleged  attractions  were  anathema  to  the  man  on  the 
sidewalk. 

He  came  to  an  abrupt  halt.  His  grey  eyes  were  turned 
on  the  elaborate  entrance  doors  of  the  Elysee  on  the 
opposite  side  of  the  road.  It  was  disgorging  its  freight 
into  the  smiling  spring  sunlight,  a  throng  of  men  and 
painted  women  who  had  spent  the  daylit  night  drinking, 
and  dancing,  and  gambling.  He  watched  them  out  of 
sheer  disgust.  Here  at  something  like  ten  in  the  morning, 
when  the  sidewalks  were  thronged  with  business  traffic, 
they  were  just  about  to  seek  their  homes  for  that  brief 
sufficiency  of  rest  which  would  enable  them  to  return  to 
another  night  of  loose  pleasure.  For  all  he  was  on  the 
youthful  side  of  thirty,  for  all  he  was  inured  to  the  life 
of  the  city,  for  all  his  blood  was  no  less  warm,  and  rich, 
and  swift  flowing,  the  sight  mingled  pity  with  disgust  and 
left  him  depressed  and  even  saddened.  The  terrible  false¬ 
ness  of  it;  the  price  that  must  be  ultimately  paid.  The 
bill  of  interest  that  would  be  presented  by  an  outraged 
Nature  later  on  would  mean  overwhelming  bankruptcy  for 
the  majority.  He  turned  away  and  collided  with  an 
officer  of  the  police. 

Superintendent  Raymes  stepped  clear  and  laughed. 

“Bill  Wilder  gawking  at  the  Elysee’s  throw-outs? 
Guess  you  aren’t  yearning  to  join  that  bunch?” 


96 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


“No.” 

Bill  replied  without  any  responsive  laugh. 

Superintendent  Raymes  was  his  oldest  friend  in  Placer 
City.  A  brisk,  dapper  man  of  medium  height  he  was  al¬ 
most  dwarfed  by  Wilder’s  great  size.  He  was  approach¬ 
ing  middle  life,  and  already  a  slight  greying  tinged  the 
dark  hair  below  his  smart  forage  cap.  He  was  wearing 
a  black-braided  patrol  jacket,  and  the  yellow-striped 
breeches  and  top-boots  so  familiar  in  the  regions  under  the 
control  of  the  Mounted  Police. 

Raymes  shook  his  head. 

“No.  That’s  only  for  the  sharks  and  darn  fools 
that  life  seems  to  set  around  like  the  sands  on  the 
sea  shore.  Can  you  beat  it?  Look  at  ’em  piling  into 
the  rigs.  They’re  sick  and  mighty  weary,  and  they’ll 
be  at  it  again  in  a  few  hours.  It  beats  me  the  way  those 
poor  women  keep  going.  As  for  the  boys — God  help 
’em  when  those  vultures  have  wrung  them  dry.  Where 
are  you  making?” 

“Just  the  office.” 

Again  Raymes  laughed. 

“Sounds  like  the  cemetery.” 

A  smile  returned  to  the  eyes  of  the  gold  man. 

“That’s  how  it  seems  to  me,”  he  said,  as  they  walked 
on  together.  “The  cemetery  of  all  that’s  worth  while. 
It’s  tough,  Raymes.  I’m  sick  to  death  counting  dollars 
and  looking  at  that  sort  of  stuff.”  He  jerked  his  head  in 
the  direction  of  the  Ely  see.  “I  tell  you  I’m  going  to  make 
a  break.  I’ve  just  got  to.  It’s  that  or  go  crazy.  I  guess 
I  love  this  Northland  to  death  for  all  the  flies,  and  skitters, 
and  the  other  things,  but  I  can’t  face  its  cities  any  longer 
without  qualifying  for  the  bughouse.” 

The  policeman  remained  silent  in  face  of  the  man’s 
desperate,  half-laughing  earnestness.  He  knew  Wilder’s 


PLACER  CITY 


97 


moods.  He  understood  that  tremendous  fighting  spirit 
which  was  consuming  all  his  peace  of  mind.  They  passed 
on  down  the  sidewalk. 

It  was  not  a  little  curious  how  these  two  men  had  come 
together  in  intimate  friendship.  It  had  begun  when 
Raymes  was  only  an  Inspector  and  Wilder  was  only  be¬ 
ginning  to  realise  the  burden  of  a  wealth  that  grew  like  a 
snowball.  They  had  found  themselves  in  deadly  opposi¬ 
tion  as  a  result  of  a  desperate  outbreak  of  lawlessness  on 
a  big  new  “strike”  for  which  the  gold  man  had  been  re¬ 
sponsible.  The  position  had  been  gravely  threatening. 
There  had  been  murder,  and  claim  jumping,  and  the  whole 
camp  was  on  edge  and  threatening  something  like  civil 
warfare.  In  the  absence  of  police  there  was  no  authority 
to  control  the  camp.  Realising  the  seriousness  of  the 
position  Wilder  had  jumped  in.  Organizing  his  men,  and 
collecting  others  who  could  be  relied  on,  he  armed  them 
for  the  task,  and  forthwith  launched  his  forces  against 
the  marauding  gunmen  who  had  established  a  reign  of 
terror.  There  was  no  mercy  and  only  summary  justice. 
Every  offender  was  dealt  with  on  the  spot,  and,  in  the 
end,  the  camp  was  swept  clean. 

When  it  was  all  over  the  gold  man  found  the  conse¬ 
quences  of  his  action  were  far  more  serious  than  his  logic 
had  suggested.  He  had  to  face  the  tribunal  of  Placer 
City  and  render  a  complete  accounting,  with  Inspector 
Raymes,  keenly  jealous  of  the  law  of  which  he  was 
guardian,  in  deadly  opposition.  It  had  been  a  bitter  fight. 
But  Wilder’s  downright  honesty,  his  frank  sincerity  had 
finally  broken  down  the  police  officer’s  case  and  left  him 
victor  in  a  battle  that  had  been  fought  out  mainly  on 
technicalities.  And  in  the  end,  in  place  of  the  bitter 
antagonism  which  might  well  have  arisen  between  them, 
a  bond  of  great  friendship  was  founded,  based  on  a  deep. 


7 


98  THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 

mutual  admiration  for  the  purpose  by  which  both  were 
inspired. 

All  this  had  taken  place  about  five  years  earlier.  And 
since  that  time  their  regard  for  each  other  had  ripened  to 
an  intimacy  that  had  never  known  set-back. 

Raymes  was  deeply  concerned  for  his  friend’s  outburst. 

“Yes,  Bill,”  he  said  presently.  “It’s  tough  on  a  boy 
like  you.  You  collected  your  dust  too  quick.  You  haven’t 
the  temper  of  a  millionaire.  You  aren’t  the  man  to  sit 
around  spinning  every  darn  dollar  into  two,  and  grousing 
because  you  can’t  make  three  of  it.”  He  laughed.  “You’re 
the  kind  of  hoss  built  for  the  race  track  of  life.  You 
weren’t  made  to  stand  around  in  the  barn  waiting  to  haul 
a  swell  buggy  by  way  of  exercise.  That  break  away 
is  the  thing  for  you,  only  I’ll  hate  to  lose  you  out  of  this 
darn  sink.” 

Bill  nodded  and  smiled,  and  the  whole  of  his  boyish  face 
lighted  up. 

“That’s  the  best  I’ve  listened  to  in  months,”  he  said. 
“I  guessed  you’d  say  I  was  all  sorts  of  a  darn  fool  not 
fancying  stopping  round  and  counting  my  dollars.  But 
this  ‘sink’  as  you  rightly  call  it.  I’m  a  bit  of  a  kid  to  you. 
Maybe  I’m  a  long-headed  kid  in  a  way.  But  a  sink  don’t 
count  much  on  that.  If  you  live  in  a  sink  at  my  age 
there’s  a  mighty  big  chance  you’ll  sooner  or  later  join  up 
with  the  sort  of  muck  you  mostly  find  in  a  sink.  And  the 
thought  scares  me.” 

The  policeman  glanced  round  with  twinkling  eyes. 

“You  can  always  sit  around  on  top.  You  can  breathe 
good  air  that  way  and  enjoy  the  sunlight.” 

The  other  shrugged. 

“An’  risk  falling  in  when  it  gets  you — well  asleep.  No, 
George.  You  were  right  first  time.  I’ll  make  the  break 
an’  get  out  of  the  way  of  any  chance  of — mishap.” 


PLACER  CITY 


99 

They  had  reached  the  square  frame  building  of  the 
police  post  and  paused  at  the  door. 

“There  mustn’t  be  any  mishap,”  Raymes  said  smiling 
up  into  the  earnest  face  of  the  man  for  whom  he  felt  some 
sort  of  responsibility.  “Are  you  yearning  for  that  office 
of  yours?  Or  do  you  feel  like  wasting  an  hour  while  I 
talk.” 

Bill  looked  keenly  down  into  the  other’s  twinkling  eyes. 

“What’s  the  game?”  he  asked  with  a  directness  that 
was  almost  brusque.  Then  he  laughed.  “But  there,  I 
guess  I’m  mostly  ready  to  listen  when  George  Raymes 
fancies  talking.  It  isn’t  every  oyster  that’s  full  of  pearls. 
Sure.  I’ll  be  glad  of  the  excuse  to  dodge  the  office.” 

The  superintendent  shook  his  head  and  his  smile  passed, 
leaving  his  face  set  and  purposeful. 

“Typhoid’s  a  deal  more  prevalent  in  oysters  than 
pearls,”  he  said  grimly.  “Come  right  in.” 

•  •  •  9  •  •  O 

It  was  a  bare,  comfortless  office,  clean  scrubbed  and 
dusted  but  quite  without  anything  in  its  furnishing  to 
indicate  the  superior  rank  of  the  man  who  used  it.  It  was 
characteristic,  however,  of  the  men  whose  ceaseless  activi¬ 
ties  alone  contrive  that  the  northern  outlands  shall  escape 
the  worst  riot  of  human  temper.  The  boarded  walls  were 
hung  with  files.  A  small  iron  safe  stood  in  one  corner 
of  the  room,  and  a  large  woodstove  occupied  another. 
There  was  a  roll-top  desk  near  by  the  one  window  that  lit 
the  room,  and  a  plain  wooden  cupboard  stood  against  the 
wall  directly  behind  the  chair  which  Superintendent 
Raymes  occupied.  There  were  two  or  three  Windsor 
chairs  about  the  walls,  and  the  only  luxury  the  room  af¬ 
forded  was  a  large  rocker-chair  into  which  Bill  Wilder 
had  sprawled  his  great  body. 

On  the  desk  in  front  of  the  officer  was  a  musty-looking 


100 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


file  of  papers.  It  was  unopened  at  the  moment  for  the 
man  was  contemplating  one  of  several  letters  that  lay 
beside  it.  He  was  leaning  back  in  his  revolving  chair,  and 
a  curious,  thoughtful  look  was  in  his  reflective  eyes.  Bill 
Wilder  was  removing  the  paper  band  from  the  cigar  the 
other  had  forced  upon  him. 

Raymes  looked  up  after  awhile  and  sat  regarding  the 
man  with  the  cigar. 

“So  you’re  going  to  sell  out,  Bill,”  he  said  quietly. 
“You’re  going  to  sell  out  everything,  all  your  interests, 
and — quit?” 

“And  make  some  sort  of  use  of  a  life  that’s  creaking 
with  rust  in  every  blamed  joint.” 

Bill  thrust  the  cigar  into  his  mouth  and  prepared  to  light 
it. 

The  other  shook  his  head. 

“We  mustn't  lose  you,  Bill.  You’re  the  only  feller  in 
this  muck  hole  we  can’t  do  without.  I’m  not  thinking 
of  Placer  City  only.  I’m  thinking  of  this  great  old  north 
country  to  which — you  belong.” 

The  policeman  watched  the  cloud  of  smoke  which  the 
gold  man’s  powerful  lungs  exhaled.  He  saw  the  match 
extinguish,  and  followed  its  flight  as  it  was  flung  into  the 
cuspidor  which  stood  beside  the  stove.  He  was  thinking 
hard  and  wondering.  He  was  not  quite  sure  how  best 
to  deal  with  the  thing  he  had  in  his  mind. 

Bill  smiled. 

“That’s  like  you,  George,”  he  said.  “If  I  listened  to 
you,  and  took  you  seriously,  I’d  guess  I’m  some  feller — 
with  dollars  or  without.  But  you're  right  when  you  say 
I  belong  to  this  old  north  country.  I’d  hate  quitting  it. 
I’d  hate  it  bad.  If  I  could  locate  a  real  use  for  myself  in 
it  I’d  sooner  serve  it  than  any  other.  And  the  tougher  the 
service  the  better  it  would  make  me  feel.  Gee !  I’m  soft 


PLACER  CITY  ioi 

and  flabby  like  some  darn  fish  that’s  been  stewing  in  the 
sun.” 

“I  know.”  The  policeman  forced  a  laugh.  He  had 
made  up  his  mind.  “Here,  I’ve  a  mighty  interesting 
letter  come  along.  It’s  from  the  Fur  Valley  Corporation. 
Do  you  know  ’em?  They’ve  a  big  range  of  trading  posts 
up  an’  down  the  country.  They’ve  got  one  on  the  Hekor, 
away  up  north  on  the  edge  of  the  Arctic.  It’s  mainly 
been  a  seal  trading  post,  and  they  collect  sable  and  fox  up 
that  way.  This  letter  says  they’re  closing  it  down.  There’s 
a  reason.  And  they  fancied  handing  it  on  to  me.  Do  you 
feel  like  taking  a  read  of  it?  It’s  quite  short.  These  folk 
are  business  people  without  a  big  imagination  so  they  keep 
to  plain  facts.” 

Bill  reached  out  and  took  the  proffered  letter.  It  was 
dated  Seattle,  and  was  clearly  from  the  head  office  of  the 
company.  He  glanced  at  the  signature  to  it  and  noted  the 
paper  heading.  Then  he  read  slowly  and  carefully,  for  he 
knew  that  George  Raymes  had  serious  reason  for  handing 
it  to  him. 

Dear  Sir, 

In  the  ordinary  course  of  business  we  should  not  think  of 
troubling  you,  a  distinguished  officer  of  the  incomparable 
force  to  which  you  belong,  with  the  contents  of  this  letter. 
Although  it  is  merely  to  notify  our  intention  of  closing  down 
our  trading  post,  Fort  Cupar,  at  Fox  Bluff,  on  the  Hekor 
River,  which  is  within  one  hundred  miles  of  the  Alaskan 
boundary,  there  are  reasons  lying  behind  the  simple  fact 
such  as  we  feel  you,  in  your  official  capacity,  will  be  interested 
to  hear. 

Put  as  briefly  as  possible  these  are  the  reasons. 

Fort  Cupar  at  Fox  Bluff  has  been  one  of  our  fur-trading 
posts,  yielding  us  a  very  fair  harvest  of  Beaver,  Fox,  Sable, 
Seal.  Up  to  some  eighteen  years  ago  we  had  reason  to  con¬ 
sider  it  our  most  profitable  post.  Then  came  a  slump.  This 


102 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


came  suddenly.  And,  according  to  our  factor's  interpreta¬ 
tion,  it  was  simply,  and  solely  due  to  the  appearance  of  a 
large  band  of  foreign  poachers,  who,  without  scruple  for 
humanity,  or  international  honesty,  terrorized  the  Eskimo 
into  passing  them  their  trade  at  starvation  values,  or,  if  they 
refused,  robbed  them  with  the  utmost  violence. 

These  reports  at  the  time  were  duly  passed  on  to  the  head¬ 
quarters  of  the  police,  and  were,  I  believe,  carefully  looked 
into.  But  for  reasons  of  which  we  have  no  cognizance, 
possibly  the  far  inaccessibility  of  the  country,  possibly  be¬ 
cause  these  poachers  were  located  on  the  United  States  side 
of  the  Alaskan  border,  possibly  under  pressure  of  work  in 
the  various  gold  regions,  which  is  the  primary  duty  of  your 
officers,  these  poachers  were  permitted  to  continue  their 
depredations,  which,  as  far  as  we  can  ascertain,  involved 
amongst  other  crimes  that  of  almost  wholesale  murder. 

Our  concern  now  is  to  tell  you  that  for  the  last  fifteen  to 
eighteen  years  we  have  struggled  to  carry  on  our  post  in  this 
region  in  the  hope  that  things  would  ultimately  straighten 
themselves  out,  and  our  trade  return  to  its  normal  prosperity. 
But  this  has  not  been  the  case.  Apparently,  from  our  factor’s 
reports,  the  methods  of  these  poachers,  who  seem  to  be  a 
race  of  Alaskan  Eskimo,  who  are  known  as  the  Euralians, 
have  changed  only  in  process  but  not  in  effect.  Now  they 
seem  to  be  divided  up  into  lone  bands  of  marauders,  fre¬ 
quently  at  war  with  each  other.  There  seems  to  be  no 
controlling  chief  as  there  was  in  years  gone  by.  They  operate 
within  the  Arctic  Circle,  and  only  amongst  the  Eskimo  of 
that  region.  And  the  one  time  descents  upon  the  more  south¬ 
ern  communities  of  whites  and  natives  no  longer  take  place. 
Meanwhile,  however,  all  trade  in  the  furs  we  desire  is  at  an 
end.  Therefore  we  are  reluctantly  forced  to  close  down,  and 
thus  another  serious  blow  to  the  Canadian  fur  trade  is 
involved. 


I  am,  Sir, 

Yours  truly, 

For  The  Fur  Valley  Corporation, 

James  Steely, 
General  Manager, 


PLACER  CITY 


103 

Bill  looked  up  from  his  reading  and  encountered  the 
searching  gaze  of  his  friend. 

“There’s  a  nasty  bite  in  that  ‘brief/  ”  the  policeman 
smiled. 

The  gold  man  nodded  seriously. 

“Not  more  than  I’d  have  put  in  it  if  I’d  been  general 
manager  of  that  corporation.” 

“No.  And  you’d  have  been  right.  That  letter’s  mighty 
reasonable,  and  I’m  with  the  feller  who  wrote  it.” 

Superintendent  Raymes  turned  to  his  desk  and  opened 
the  rusty-looking  file  that  was  lying  in  front  of  him. 

“You  know,  Bill,  that  letter  got  me  right  away.  But  I 
was  a  bit  helpless.  Here,  now,  you  sit  right  there  and 
smoke  that  cheap  cigar  I  pushed  at  you  while  I  do  a  talk. 
I’ve  got  a  yarn  to  hand  you  that’ll  maybe  set  you  thinking 
hard.” 

He  sat  back  tilting  his  chair,  and  the  rusty  file  lay  open 
on  his  lap.  The  papers  it  held  had  lost  their  pristine 
whiteness.  There  were  distinct  signs  of  age  in  their  hues. 

“You  know  I’ve  only  had  charge  of  Placer  City  for 
something  like  seven  years,  and  things  have  been  so  darned 
busy  since  I  first  got  around  I  haven’t  had  a  great  chance 
of  looking  into  the  remoter  things  my  predecessor  left 
behind  him.  Eighteen  years  of  police  life  is  liable  to 
accumulate  a  bunch  of  stories  it  would  take  a  lifetime 
reading. 

“However,”  he  went,  glancing  down  at  the  file,  “when 
I  received  that  letter  I  got  tremendously  busy  hunting  up 
old  records,  and,  after  nearly  a  day’s  work  I  came  to  the 
conclusion  that  I’d  opened  up  one  of  the  worst  stories,  and 
one  of  the  most  important,  that  I’d  found  in  years.  I 
found  story  after  story  of  these  Euralians.  They  mostly 
came  from  Fort  Cupar  at  Fox  Bluff,  but  they  also  came 
from  simple,  uneducated  trappers,  and  from  whitemen 


104 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


who  adventured  northward  of  here  after  gold.  They  came 
from  all  sorts  of  folk,  and  one  and  all  corroborated  all  that 
that  letter  contains  besides  presenting  many  lurid  pictures 
of  the  doings  of  these  toughs  which  that  letter  only  hints 
at.” 

He  removed  several  sheets  of  discoloured  foolscap  from 
the  file.  They  were  pinned  together. 

‘Tve  selected  this  report  which  is  dated  fifteen  years 
ago.  It  comes  from  a  man  named  Jim  McLeod,  and  he 
was  factor  for  the  Fur  Valley  Corporation  at  Fort  Cupar 
at  that  time.  It’s  one  of  several  reports  he  sent  down 
from  time  to  time  pointing  the  conditions  of  his  district, 
and  giving  pretty  red-hot  accounts  of  the  terror  which 
these  Euralians  had  created  there.  But  I’m  not  going  to 
worry  you  with  all  that  stuff.  I’ll  simply  tell  you  that  the 
terror  of  these  folk  was  very  real.  That  these  marauders 
were  undoubtedly  at  that  time  a  large  well-organised  outfit 
who  had  completely  succeeded  in  cleaning  up  the  furs  of 
that  region  and  were  passing  them  over  the  Alaskan 
border  into  foreign  hands. 

'This  is  a  long  report  and  I’m  not  going  to  read  it  to 
you.  I’m  just  going  to  hand  it  you  in  my  own  words.  It’s 
a  bad  story,  but  it’s  full  of  an  interest  that’ll  appeal  to 
you.  Fifteen  years  ago  there  was  a  swell  sort  of  mis¬ 
sionary  feller  up  at  Fox  Bluff,  a  great  friend  of  the  man 
who  wrote  this  report.  His  name  was  Marty  Le  Gros. 
He  wasn’t  a  real  churchman,  but  just  a  good  sort  of  boy 
who  was  yearning  to  hand  help  to  the  Eskimo  and 
Indians.  I  gather,  at  the  time  this  story  occurred,  he  was 
a  widower  with  a  baby  girl  of  about  four  years.  He  also 
had  an  Indian  called  Usak,  and  his  squaw,  working  for 
him  about  his  house.  The  squaw  was  kind  of  foster- 
mother  to  the  kid.  Well,  this  report  tells  how  in  chasing 
over  the  country  visiting  his  Missions  this  Le  Gros  hap- 


PLACER  CITY 


105 


pened  on  a  most  amazing  gold  ‘strike.’  It  doesn’t  say  how 
or  just  where.  But  it  says  that  the  missionary  showed 
this  factor  man  two  chunks  of  pure  gold,  and  a  bunch  of 
dust  that  well  nigh  paralysed  him.  Le  Gros  being  a  simple 
sort  of  feller  didn’t  worry  to  keep  his  news  to  himself, 
but  blurted  his  story  broadcast,  and  I  gather  the  only 
thing  he  didn’t  tell  about  it  was  the  actual  whereabouts  of 
the  ‘strike.’  Apparently  he  let  it  be  understood  that  Loon 
Creek  was  the  locality  without  giving  any  exact  particu¬ 
lars.  This  man  gives  such  a  brief  sketch  of  this  gold 
business  I  sort  of  feel  he  wasn’t  anxious  to  say  too  much. 
The  reason’s  a  bit  obvious.  And  anyway  I  haven’t  ever 
heard  of  a  rush  in  that  direction.  So  the  news  never  got 
around  down  here.  But  it  seems  to  have  got  to  the  ears 
of  these  Euralian  poachers  and  set  them  crazy  to  jump 
in  on  him  with  both  feet. 

“Now  this  is  what  happened,”  Raymes  went  on,  after 
a  brief  reflective  pause,  while  Bill  sat  still,  absorbed  in  the 
interest  which  the  magic  of  a  gold  discovery  had  for  him. 
His  cigar  had  gone  out.  “Up  to  that  time  the  Euralians 
and  their  doings  were  well  enough  known  to  these  people, 
but  only  by  hearsay.  These  ruffians  had  never  operated 
as  far  south-east  as  Fox  Bluff  and  Fort  Cupar.  Well,  the 
missionary  was  out  on  the  trail  on  a  visit  to  some  of  his 
Missions  with  his  man,  Usak.  He  arrived  at  one  of  them 
on  the  Hekor.  It  was  a  settlement  of  fishing  Indians.  The 
whole  camp  was  burned  out,  and  the  old  men,  and  women, 
and  infants  had  been  butchered  to  death.  Further,  from 
their  complete  absence,  it  is  supposed  the  young  men  and 
women  had  been  carried  off  into  captivity  for  slavery  and 
harlotry.  There  was  no  doubt  of  its  being  the  work  of 
these  Euralians.  The  whole  thing  was  characteristic  of 
every  known  story  of  them.  Le  Gros  returned  home  in  a 
panic. 


106  THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 

“He  came  to  McLeod  and  told  him  the  story  of  it,  and 
together  they  realised  that  it  was  merely  prelude  to  some¬ 
thing  further.  They  got  it  into  their  heads  that  it  was  the 
Euralian  method  of  embarking  on  a  campaign  to  get  the 
secret  of  Le  Gros’  gold  discovery.  You  see?  Terror. 
They  meant  to  terrorize  Le  Gros,  and  I  gather  they  suc¬ 
ceeded.  But  he  meant  to  fight.  You  see,  he  reckoned 
this  'strike’  was  for  his  child.  He  wanted  it  for  her. 
Well,  these  two  made  it  up  between  them  to  outwit  these 
folk.  The  missionary  crossed  the  river  to  his  home  to 
prepare  a  map  of  his  discovery  which  he  was  to  place  in 
McLeod’s  hands  for  the  benefit  of  his  child  and  McLeod, 
in  half  shares,  should  anything  happen  to  him,  Le  Gros. 
Something  did  happen.  It  happened  the  same  night. 
Apparently  before  the  map  could  be  drawn.  Sure  enough 
the  Euralians  descended  on  the  missionary’s  house.  They 
killed  Le  Gros,  and  they  killed  the  squaw  foster-mother. 
The  Indian,  Usak,  was  away  from  home  and  so  escaped. 
The  child  was  left  alive,  flung  into  an  adjacent  bluff,  and 
the  whole  place  was  burned  to  the  ground.  That’s  the 
story  in  brief.  I  daresay  there’s  a  heap  more  to  it,  but 
it’s  not  in  that  report,  and  it’s  not  in  subsequent  reports, 
or  in  other  records  of  my  predecessor. 

“It  would  seem  that  this  boy,  McLeod,  died  about  eight 
years  after  all  this  happened  and  was  succeeded  by  another 
factor  for  his  company.  In  the  meantime  my  predecessor 
had  sent  a  patrol  up  to  investigate.  The  only  result  of  this 
investigation  was  a  complete  corroboration  of  McLeod’s 
report,  with  practically  nothing  added  to  it  beyond  an 
urgent  report  on  the  necessity  for  definite  international 
action  on  the  subject  of  these  Euralians  who  came  in  from 
Alaska.  After  that  the  thing  seems  to  have  passed  out  of 
my  predecessor’s  hands.  It  seems  it  was  taken  up  by 
Ottawa  with  the  usual  result — pigeon-holed.  Does  it  get 


PLACER  CITY 


107 


you?  There  it  is,  a  great  gold  discovery,  somewhere  up 
there  on  the  Hekor,  I  suppose,  and  the  mystery  of  this 
people  filching  our  trade  through  a  process  of  outrageous 
crime.  Somewhere  up  there  there’s  a  girl-child,  white — 
she’d  be  about  nineteen  or  twenty  now — lost  to  the  white 
world  to  which  she  belongs.  But  above  all,  from  my  point 
of  view,  there’s  a  problem.  Who  are  these  Euralians,  and 
what  becomes  of  the  wealth  of  furs  they  steal?  Remem¬ 
ber  they  were  at  one  time  at  least  an  organised  outfit.’’ 

The  policeman  replaced  the  file  on  his  desk  and  returned 
the  report  to  its  place.  And  the  pre-occupation  he  displayed 
was  a  plain  index  of  the  depth  of  interest  he  had  in  the 
problem  which  had  presented  itself  to  his  searching  mind. 

Bill  Wilder  struck  a  match  and  re-lit  his  cigar. 

“That’s  a  story  of  the  country  I  know  and  love,”  he 
said  quietly.  “It’s  a  story  of  the  real  Northland.  Not 
the  story  of  one  of  these  muck-holes  which  are  like  boils 
in  the  face  of  civilization.  I  guess  you  haven’t  passed 
me  the  whole  thing  you’ve  got  in  your  mind,  George.” 

“No.” 

The  policeman  swung  round  in  his  chair  and  faced  the 
clear  gazing  grey  eyes  of  the  man  whose  enormous  wealth 
had  still  left  him  the  youthful  enthusiasm  for  the  battle  of 
the  strong  which  had  first  driven  him  to  the  outlands  of 
the  North. 

“Will  you  pass  me  the — rest?” 

Bill  smiled. 

“Sure  I  will,  if  you’ve  nothing  to  ask,  nothing  to  com¬ 
ment  on  that  story.” 

“It’ll  keep.  Maybe  I’ll  have  a  whole  big  heap  to  talk 
when  you’re  through  with  your — proposition.” 

Raymes  nodded.  He,  too,  was  smiling.  He  spread  out 
his  hands. 

“You  want  to  quit.  You  want  to  sell  out  and  pass  on 


io8 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


where  you  can  make  some  use  of  the  life  that’s  creaking 
with  rust  in  every  joint.  Well,  it’s  easy.  Don’t  quit.  Don’t 
sell  out.  Take  a  trip  north  where  there’s  a  big  ‘strike’ 
waiting  on  a  feller  with  a  nose  for  gold.  Where  there’s 
a  mighty  big  mystery  to  be  cleaned  up,  and  the  hard  justice 
of  this  iron  country  to  be  handed  out  to  a  crowd  of  devils 
who’ve  battened  on  its  wealth  and  are  sucking  the  life  out 
of  its  vitals.  Is  it  good  enough?  You’ll  be  able  to  forget 
the  dollars  you’re  forced  to  count  daily  in  this  city.  You’ll 
lose  sight  of  the  Feldman  crowd  and  the  brothels  they 
set  going  to  hand  them  a  stake.  It’s  the  open,  where  God’s 
pure  air’s  blowing.  Where  there’s  room  for  you  to  move, 
and  breathe,  and  live,  and  where  you  can  hit  mighty  hard 
when  the  mood  takes  you,  and  you  can  feel  good  all  over 
that  you’re  doing  something  for  the  country  you  like 
best.  This  thing’s  my  job,  but  I  haven’t  the  troops  or 
time  to  fix  it  the  way  I  should.  I’m  so  crowded  to  the 
square  inch  I  don’t  know  how  to  breathe  right.  I  haven’t 
any  sort  of  right  offering  you  this  thing.  I  know  that, 
and  I  guess  you’re  wise  it’s  so.  But  it  don’t  matter.  I 
do  offer  it  to  you,  Bill,  and  it’s  because  I  know  you.  I 
offer  it  you  because  you’re  the  feller  to  put  it  through, 
and  because  you’re  a  feller  we  can’t  afford  to  lose  out  of 
our  territory.  Well?” 

The  police  officer’s  manner  had  become  seriously  earnest, 
and  the  other  remained  silent  for  some  moments  buried  in 
deep  thought.  George  Raymes  waited.  He  watched  for 
the  passing  of  the  gold  man’s  deep  consideration.  He 
understood  that  the  thing  he  required  of  him  was  no  light 
task  and  looked  like  involving  a  tremendous  sacrifice. 

At  last  Bill’s  cigar  stump  was  flung  into  the  cuspidor, 
and  the  policeman  realised  that  a  decision  had  been 
arrived  at.  The  gold  man  looked  up,  and  a  whimsical 
smile  lit  his  clear  eyes. 


PLACER  CITY 


109 


“If  I  was  crazy  enough  to  take  a  holt  on  this  thing  I 
don’t  just  see — I’ve  no  authority.  I’m  no  policeman. 
I’m  just  a  bum  civilian  without  police  training.  You  boys 
are  red-hot  on  the  trail  of  crime.  It’s  your  job,  and  I 
guess  there’s  no  folk  in  the  world  better  at  it.  But - ” 

“You’ve  forgotten,”  Raymes  broke  in.  “There’s  the 
trail  of  a  gold  ‘strike’  in  this.  And  Bill  Wilder’s  got  the 
whole  country  beaten  a  mile  on  a  trail  of  that  nature. 
Make  that  ‘strike’  an’  I  guess  you’ll  locate  the  rest  in  the 
process.  I’m  asking  for  that  from  you.” 

Wilder  laughed.  It  was  the  clear,  ringing  laugh  of  the 
youth  he  really  was.  It  was  a  laugh  of  appreciation  at  the 
simple  tactics  of  his  friend.  It  was  a  laugh  of  rising 
enthusiasm. 

“But  the  authority,”  he  protested. 

Raymes  took  him  up  on  the  instant. 

“I  have  power  to  enrol  ‘specials.’  ” 

The  other’s  grey  eyes  lit.  Again  his  laugh  rang  out. 

“Yes.  I  forgot.  Of  course  you  can  enrol  ‘specials.’  ” 
Suddenly  he  sprang  from  the  depths  of  the  rocker,  and 
left  it  violently  disturbed.  He  stood  erect,  bulking  largely, 
and  a  flush  of  excitement  dyed  his  weather-stained  cheeks. 
“Of  course  you  can,”  he  cried.  “Yes.  I’ll  get  after  it.  A 
gold  trail!  A  bunch  of  toughs!  A  girl — a  white  girl! 
Ye  Gods!  I’m  after  it.  You  can  swear  me  in  on  any 
old  thing  from  a  Bible  to  a  harvester.  That’s  all  I  need. 
I’ll  find  my  own  outfit,  and  I’ll  get  busy  right  away  and 
collect  up  my  old  partner  Chilcoot  Massy.  I’ll  get  right 
off  now  down  to  my  office  and  start  fixing  things,  and 
I’ll  be  back  again  after  supper  to-night.  But  I  warn  you 
you’ll  need  to  answer  a  hundred  mighty  tiresome  ques¬ 
tions,  and  pass  me  all  the  literature  you’ve  collected  on 
this  subject  when  I  come  back.  Say,  the  gold  trail  again! 
I’m  just  tickled  to  death.” 


CHAPTER  II 


THE  CHEECHAKOS 

The  man  was  standing  at  the  edge  of  the  river  landing 
gazing  out  across  the  broad  waters  as  they  drifted  slowly 
by,  a  calm,  gentle  flood  undisturbed  by  the  rushing  freshet 
of  spring,  which  had  already  spent  its  turbulent  life  leav¬ 
ing  the  sedate  Hekor  embraced  in  the  gentler  arms  of 
advancing  summer. 

The  landing  was  little  better  than  a  wreck.  The  green 
log  piles  were  awry.  There  were  rifts  where  last  sum¬ 
mer’s  timbers  had  been  carried  bodily  away  by  the  crash 
of  ice  at  winter’s  break  up.  For  the  annual  rebuilding 
necessitated  by  the  tremendous  labour  at  the  birth  of  the 
Arctic  spring  had  been  dispensed  with.  There  was  no 
longer  any  need  for  it. 

The  man’s  gaze  was  far-searching.  It  was  seriously 
ruminating.  Perhaps,  even,  it  was  regretful.  For  he 
knew  that  in  a  few  hours  all  that  he  had  looked  out  upon 
for  the  past  seven  years  would  lay  behind  him,  possibly 
never  to  be  looked  upon  again. 

The  mile-wide  river  lay  open  to  the  caressing  sunlight. 
It  was  unshaded  anywhere.  The  far  bank  rose  in  a  gentle 
slope,  a  perfect  carpet  of  wild  flowers,  and  beyond,  as  the 
valley  rose  upwards,  the  shimmer  of  summer  heat  bathed 
the  purpling  distance  in  an  almost  dazzling  haze.  Away 
to  his  left,  beyond  the  waters,  stood  the  dark  spread  of 
Fox  Bluff,  which  gave  the  place  its  name,  a  wide  stretch 
of  tattered  forest,  isolated  on  an  undulating  plain  many 


no 


THE  CHEECHAKOS 


in 


miles  in  extent.  And  the  ruins  of  the  old  Mission  House, 
long  since  burned  out  by  the  Euralian  marauders,  still 
stood  gaunt  and  bare,  a  monument  to  the  tragedy  that 
was  now  some  fifteen  years  old. 

Behind  him,  well  above  the  highest  water  level  of  the 
river,  the  staunch  walls  of  the  stockade  of  old  Fort 
Cupar  still  sheltered  the  frame  building  which  was  about 
to  be  abandoned.  But  already  the  place  had  assumed 
something  of  the  lifelessness  which  human  desertion 
leaves  in  its  wake.  There  were  no  Eskimo  encampments 
gathered  about  its  timbers.  There  were  no  columns  of 
smoke  arising  from  camp  fires.  The  familiar  yelp  of  trail 
dogs,  and  the  shrill  voices  of  native  children  were  silent. 
There  was  no  life  anywhere  but  in  the  presence  of  the 
man  on  the  landing,  and  in  that  of  the  girl  clad  in  native 
buckskin  standing  beside  him,  and  in  the  slow  movements 
of  five  Indians  and  half-breeds  who,  under  the  guidance 
of  the  factor,  were  completing  the  stowage  of  cargo  in 
the  three  canoes  moored  to  the  derelict  landing. 

It  was  the  day  of  the  great  retreat.  It  was  the  final 
yielding  after  years  of  struggle.  It  was  the  giving  up  of 
that  last  thread  of  hope  which  is  the  most  difficult  thing 
in  human  psychology. 

Old  Ben  Needham  was  more  than  reluctant.  He  was  a 
hard-bitten  fur-trader  of  the  older  school.  A  man  of 
force  and  wide  experience.  A  man  bred  to  the  work, 
acute,  rough,  and  not  too  scrupulous.  He  had  been  born 
in  the  Arctic,  schooled  in  the  Arctic,  and  only  when  the 
needs  of  his  trade  demanded  had  he  ever  passed  out  of 
that  magic  circle.  He  was  a  man  approaching  sixty,  full 
of  an  aggressive  fighting  spirit  which  usually  modifies 
in  men  of  advancing  years.  And  he  knew  that  he  was 
about  to  acknowledge  complete  defeat  after  seven  years 
of  battling  against  invisible  odds.  He  knew  that  the 


112 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


company  had  selected  him  out  of  all  their  army  of  ser¬ 
vants  to  attempt  the  rehabilitation  of  the  fortunes  of 
Fort  Cupar,  and  he  had  utterly  and  completely  failed. 
And  so,  as  he  stood  on  the  landing  superintending  the  last 
removal  of  stores,  and  contemplating  the  return  with  his 
story  of  failure  to  those  who  had  sent  him  on  his  forlorn 
hope,  his  mood  was  uneasy,  his  temper  was  sour  and  in¬ 
clined  to  violence. 

The  voice  of  the  girl  beside  him  roused  him  out  of  his 
contemplation  of  the  familiar  scene. 

“You  need  Mum  here  to  put  heart  into  you,  Ben,”  she 
said  with  a  smile  that  masked  her  own  feelings.  “You 
know,  Mum’s  the  wisest  thing  in  a  country  where  fools 
are  dead  certain  to  go  under.  She’d  tell  you  there’s  no¬ 
thing  so  bad  in  the  world  as  flogging  a  dead  mule.  The 
feller  who  acts  that  way  most  generally  gets  kicked  to 
death  by  a  live  one.  Which,  I  guess,  is  only  another  way 
of  saying  it’s  a  fool’s  game  anyway.” 

“Does  she  say  that,  Kid?” 

The  man  turned  from  the  scene  that  had  so  preoccupied 
him,  and  his  deep-set,  hard  grey  eyes  surveyed  the  speaker 
from  beneath  his  bushy,  snow-white  brows.  For  all  his 
mood  there  was  a  sort  of  mild  tolerance  in  his  tone. 

The  girl  he  addressed  as  Kid  smiled  blandly  into  his 
unresponsive  face,  and  her  wide  blue  eyes  were  full  of 
girlish  raillery.  For  all  the  sunburn  on  her  rounded 
cheek,  and  the  rough  make  of  her  almost  mannish  cloth¬ 
ing,  or  perhaps  because  of  these  things,  she  was  amazingly 
attractive.  She  was  young.  Something  less  than  twenty. 
But  she  was  tall,  taller  than  the  broad  figure  of  the  man 
beside  her.  And  there  was  physical  strength  and  vigour 
in  her  graceful  girlish  body. 

She  was  clad  in  buckskin  from  her  head  to  the  reindeer 
moccasins  on  her  shapely  feet.  Her  tunic,  or  parka,  was 


THE  CHEECHAKOS 


ii3 

tricked  out  with  beads  and  narrow  fur  trimmings  in  truly 
Indian  fashion.  And  the  leather  girdle  about  her  slim 
waist  supported  a  long  sheath  knife,  much  as  the  native 
hunters  were  equipped.  But  she  was  white,  with  fair 
curling  hair  coiled  in  a  prodigal  mass  under  her  fur  cap, 
with  wide,  smiling  eyes  that  rivalled  the  blue  of  the  sum¬ 
mer  sky,  and  a  nose  as  perfectly  modelled,  and  lips  as 
warm  and  ripe  as  any  daughter  of  the  more  southern 
latitudes.  Her  manner  was  easy  and  self-reliant.  It  was 
full  of  that  cool  assurance  bred  of  the  independence  which 
the  hard  life  of  the  Northland  forces  upon  its  children. 
Nature  had  equipped  her  with  splendid  generosity,  and 
the  man  understood  that  her  sex  robbed  her  of  nothing 
that  could  make  her  his  equal  in  understanding  of  the 
conditions  in  which  their  lives  were  cast. 

The  girl  laughed  gaily. 

“She  says  a  whole  lot  of  things,  Ben/’  she  cried.  “But 
then  you  see  she’s  the  mother  of  six  bright  kids  who’re 
yearning  to  learn,  and  she  doesn’t  guess  to  let  them  down, 
or  have  them  tell  her  instead.  Yes,  she  said  that  sure, 
when  we  were  wondering  how  your  quitting  was  going  to 
fix  us.  You  see,  I’ve  depended  on  your  store  for  trade. 
I  guess  I  was  the  only  supply  of  pelts  that  came  your  way. 
And  you  were  the  only  supply  for  our  needs.  Your  folks 
are  right,”  she  added,  with  a  sigh.  “You  can’t  run  a 
trading  post  to  hand  out  to  a  bunch  of  kids  the  stuff  that 
makes  life  reasonable,  and  for  the  sake  of  the  few  bales 
of  furs  we’re  able  to  snatch  before  they  fall  into  the 
hands  of  foreign  poachers.  It  was  sure  flogging  a  dead 
mule.  But  it’s  going  to  be  tough.  It’s  going  to  be  tough 
for  us,  as  well  as  for  you  and  your  folk.  I ’ve  tried  to  look 
ahead  and  see  what’s  to  be  done,  but  I  can’t  see  all  I’d  like 
to.  Mum  reckons  we’ll  get  through,  but  she  leaves  it  to 
Providence  and  me  to  say  how.” 


8 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


1 14 

The  man  bit  off  a  chew  of  tobacco  and  shouted  some 
orders  at  the  men  stowing  the  last  of  the  stores.  His 
words  came  forcefully  amidst  a  shower  of  harsh  exple~ 
tives.  Then  he  turned  again  to  the  girl. 

“I’d  say  your  Mum's  as  bright  a  woman  as  the  good 
God  ever  permitted  to  use  up  his  best  air,”  he  said,  with 
a  shake  of  his  grey  head.  “But  I  just  can’t  see  how 
trading  reindeer  with  the  fool  Eskimo  up  north’s  goin’  to 
feed  a  whole  bunch  of  hungry  mouths,  and  clothe  a  dandy 
outfit  of  growin’  bodies  right,  if  there  ain’t  a  near-by 
market  for  your  goods,  and  a  store  to  trade  you  the 
things  you  need.  Ther;  ain’t  a  post  from  here  to  Placer, 
which  is  more  than  three  hundred  and  fifty  miles  by  the 
river.  It  kind  o’  looks  bad  to  me.” 

“Yes.” 

The  smile  had  passed  out  of  the  girl’s  eyes,  and  her 
fair  brows  had  drawn  slightly  together  under  the  rim  of 
her  fur  cap. 

“You  see,  Kid,”  the  man  went  on,  in  a  tone  that  was 
almost  gentle  for  all  the  natural  harshness  of  his  voice, 
“I’d  be  mighty  glad  to  fix  you  as  right  as  things’ll  let  me. 
We’ve  figgered  on  this  thing  all  we  know,  you  and  me, 
and  you’ve  a  year’s  store  of  canned  goods  and  groceries 
by  you  paid  for  by  your  last  bunch  of  pelts.  But  after 
that — what?” 

The  swift  glance  of  the  Kid’s  eyes  took  in  the  earnest 
expression  of  the  man’s  rugged  face.  She  realised  his 
genuine  concern  in  spite  of  all  the  worries  with  which  his 
own  affairs  beset  him.  And  forthwith  she  broke  into  a 
laugh  that  completely  disarmed. 

“We’ll  need  to  feed  caribou  meat,”  she  said.  “The 
farm’s  plumb  full  of  it.  Mum  says  the  good  God’s  always 
ready  to  help  those  who  help  themselves.  And  I  guess  the 
bunch  at  home’ll  do  that  surely  when  they  find  their  vitals 


THE  CHEECHAKOS 


ii5 

rattling  in  the  blizzard.  Don’t  just  worry  a  thing,  Ben. 
You’ve  done  the  best  for  us,  you  know.  For  all  the  grouch 
you  hand  out  to  most  folk  you’re  white  all  thro’.  You’re 
forgetting  there’s  Usak  and  me.  If  it  means  Placer  for 
trade  and  food  for  the  bunch  I  guess  we’ll  make  it.” 

The  girl’s  laugh,  and  her  lightness  of  manner  in  her 
dismissal  of  the  threat  overshadowing  her  future  and  that 
of  those  who  were  largely  her  care  made  their  talk  easy. 
But  there  was  seriousness  and  a  great  courage  lying  be¬ 
hind  it.  She  knew  the  nightmare  this  break  up  of  her 
market  was  to  all  those  she  cared  for.  But  she  had  no 
intention  of  adding  one  single  moment  of  disquiet  to  the 
burden  of  the  man’s  concern  for  his  own  future. 

“But  it’s  a  hell  of  a  long  piece,  Kid,”  the  factor  pro¬ 
tested  with  a  shake  of  his  shaggy  grey  head.  “Couldn’t 
you  folks  quit  too?” 

The  girl  shook  her  head  while  her  blue  eyes  were 
turned  on  the  broad  expanse  of  water  where  it  vanished 
in  the  south.  Perhaps  it  was  the  trend  of  their  talk  which 
had  attracted  her  gaze  in  that  direction. 

“Surely  we  could  quit  if — we  had  the  notion,”  she  said, 
after  a  moment’s  reflection.  “But  what  if  we  did?  I 
mean  how  would  it  help?  Maybe  I  don  t  know.  Placer? 
What  if  we  made  Placer  where  there’s  food  and  trade? 
What  could  we  do?  There’s  Mum,  and  my  six  little 
brothers  and  sisters,  running  up  like  a  step-ladder  from 
inches  to  feet.  Then  there’s  Usak,  an  Indian  man  who’s 
got  no  equal  as  a  pelt  hunter  and  trailman.  Here  we’re 
lords  over  a  limitless  territory.  We’ve  a  herd  of  deer  that 
runs  into  thousands,  and  reindeer  are  the  beginning  and 
end  of  everything  to  the  Eskimo,  but  wouldn’t  be  worth 
dog  meat  in  Placer.  Show  me.  I’m  ready  to  think.  We 
can  go  on  making  out  right  here  if  we  only  make  one  trip 
a  year  to  Placer.  If  we  quit,  I  guess  there’d  be  nothing 


Ii6 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


but  the  dance  halls  of  Placer  you’ve  told  me  about  for 
me  and  my  little  sisters  as  they  grow  up,  while  Usak,  with 
a  temper  like  a  she-wolf,  would  run  foul  of  half  the  city 
in  a  week.  No.  You  said  a  thing  once  to  me,  Ben,  that’s 
stuck  in  my  stupid  head  since.  What  was  it?  ‘The 
North’s  big,  an’  free,  an’  open,  an’  clean.  The  longer 
you  know  it  the  more  you’ll  curse  it.  But  the  feller  who’s 
bred  to  it  can’t  go  back  on  it.  There’s  no  place  on  God’s 
earth  for  him  outside  it  but  the  hell  of  perdition.’  I  guess 
that  fits  my  notion  of — Say,  there’s  an  outfit  coming  up 
out  of  the  south.” 

The  girl  broke  off. 

She  stood  pointing  out  over  the  water  where  the  river 
seemed  to  rise  out  of  the  distance  between  two  low  hill 
breasts.  A  group  of  canoes,  infinitely  small  in  the  dis¬ 
tance,  had  suddenly  leapt  into  view. 

The  man  became  absorbed  in  the  unaccustomed  vision. 
He  raised  a  gnarled  hand,  broad  and  muscular  for  all  its 
leanness,  and  shaded  his  eyes  from  the  sun-glare.  After 
a  moment  he  dropped  it  to  his  side.  A  grim,  cynical  light 
shone  in  his  eyes. 

“Cheechakos,”  he  said  in  profound  contempt. 

“How  d’you  know?”  The  girl  was  full  of  that  interest 
and  curiosity  bred  of  the  solitude  in  which  she  lived. 

“They’re  loaded  down  with  truck  so  they  look  like 
swamping.  It’s  a  big  outfit,  an’  they  look  mighty  like 
they’ve  bought  up  haf  the  dry  goods  the  gold  city  can 
scratch  together.  Yes.  They’re  Cheechakos,  sure.  An* 
they’re  huntin’  the  gold  trail.  I  can  locate  ’em  at  a 
hundred  miles.  I’ve  seen  ’em  come,  but  most  generally 
go,  on  every  blamed  river  runnin’  north  of  Dawson.” 

The  girl  laughed  lightly. 

“To  listen  to  you,  Ben,  folk  might  guess  you  hadn’t 
feeling  softer  than  tamarack  for  a  thing  in  the  world.  I 


THE  CHEECHAKOS 


ii  7 

want  to  laugh  sure.  Sometimes  I  feel  I  could  shake  you 
till  the  bones  rattled  in  your  tough  old  body.  Then  I  re¬ 
member.  An’  I — I  don’t  want  to  do  a  thing  but  laff.  If 
you’re  not  through  with  your  outfit,  and  beating  it  down 
the  river  by  the  time  those  folk  happen  along  I’ll  gamble 
a  caribou  cow  to  a  gopher  you’ll  be  handing  them  just 
anything  you  reckon  they  need,  if  it’s  only  the  wise  old 
talk  I  know  you’re  full  up  to  the  brim  with.  You  can’t 
bluff  me.” 

The  girl  shook  her  head  and  her  eyes  were  full  of 
a  smiling,  almost  motherly  tenderness  for  the  strong  man 
of  many  years  who  was  tasting  the  bitterness  of  real  de¬ 
feat.  She  had  known  him  from  the  day  he  first  set  foot 
at  Fort  Cupar  with  that  sort  of  family  intimacy  which  is 
part  of  the  life  of  the  great  solitudes.  She  had  been  a 
child  then.  Now  she  was  a  grown  woman  with  a  mind 
that  was  simply  serious  despite  her  ready  laugh,  and  a 
heart  full  of  deep,  womanly  sympathy.  All  life  and  hope 
still  lay  before  her.  This  man  had  gone  far  beyond  the 
meridian  of  both.  He  was  rapidly  approaching  those  de¬ 
clining  years  with  a  great  failure  to  his  credit,  and  she 
realised  the  tragedy  of  it. 

“No,”  he  said.  “I  guess  I  can’t  bluff  you,  Kid.  You’re 
kind  of  nimble.”  His  eyes  were  still  on  the  approaching 
outfit.  “I  wonder,”  he  went  on.  “That  wise  old  talk 
you  reckon  I’m  full  of.  Do  you  fancy  me  passing  it  to 
you  before  I  quit,  instead  of  to  that  bunch  of  Chee- 
chakos?” 

The  girl  nodded  with  a  twinkling  smile. 

“Sure,”  she  said.  “I’d  feel  jealous  you  handing  it  to 
the  others.” 

Ben  Needham  laughed  in  that  short,  dry  fashion  which 
was  his  limit  of  hilarious  expression. 

“Well,  you  best  pull  your  freight  out  of  here  before 


n8 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


that  bunch  of  Cheechakos  come  alongside.  Ther’s  a  whole 
heap  o’  things  you  know,  but  a  sight  bigger  heap  of  the 
things  you  don’t  know.  The  junk  that  comes  up  out  of 
Placer  is  mostly  junk,  mean,  human  junk.  The  men  of 
the  gold  trail  ain’t  like  the  metal  they’re  chasing,  except 
in  the  colour  of  their  livers.  One  of  the  things  I  haven’t 
figgered  you’re  wise  to  is  you’re  a  gal  of  nigh  twenty, 
and  you’ve  a  face  that  smiles  like  spring  sunshine,  and  the 
sort  of  eyes  that  makes  a  man  feel  like  shooting  up  the 
other  feller.  Do  you  get  me?  Beat  it,  my  dear.  You’ve 
a  Mum,  an’  you’ve  got  a  dandy  bunch  of  brothers  an’ 
sisters.  You’ve  got  a  home  way  out  there  on  the  Caribou 
River  that  ain’t  ever  known  a  thing  but  what  a  good 
woman  can  make  it.  Wal,  keep  things  that  way.  But 
you  won’t  do  it  if  the  muck  of  the  gold  trail  hits  your 
tracks.” 

The  girl’s  smile  had  passed  as  she  watched  the  old  man 
expectorate  into  the  clear  waters  at  his  feet.  She  re¬ 
mained  completely  silent  while,  in  an  utterly  changed  tone, 
he  hurled  violent  expletives  at  his  workers.  She  looked  on 
while  he  passed  down  to  where  the  lashings  were  being 
made  fast  on  the  last  canoe  whose  load  had  just  been  com¬ 
pleted.  When  he  came  back  her  thoughtful  mood  had 
passed,  and  her  smile  was  supreme  once  more. 

uI’d  wanted  to  see  you  start  out,  Ben,”  she  said  gently. 
“You  know  it’s  hard  not  to  be  able  to  speed  a  real  friend, 
when — when —  But  there,  it’s  no  use.  The  kids  are 
needin’  me,  so’s  Mum,  and  Usak  and  the  deer.  You’re 
so  slow  getting  away  I  just  can’t  stop.”  Her  gaze  wand¬ 
ered  again  to  the  approaching  outfit,  and  it  was  a  little 
regretful,  and  something  wistful.  “Are  all  the  men  of  the 
gold  trail  tough?  I  mean  are  they  just  all  bad?” 

The  grey  head  denied  her.  The  man’s  cynical  smile 
twinkled  in  his  eyes. 


THE  CHEECHAKOS 


119 

“The  men  ain’t  no  better,  an’  no  worse  than  most  of 
us,”  he  said  slily.  “That  is  till  they  get  the  yellow  fever 
of  it  all.  When  that  gets  around  they’re  mighty  sick 
folk  till  the  fever  passes.  Guess  your  memory  don’t  carry 
you  back  to  the  days  when  you  weren’t  more  than  knee- 
high  to  a  grasshopper.  If  it  did  maybe  you’d  be  wise  to 
the  thing  that’s  got  a  mighty  big  place  in  your  dandy  life. 
It’s  gold.  The  yarns  I’m  told  say  it  was  gold  that  robbed 
you  of  a  father.  It  was  gold  that  left  you  helpless,  feed 
for  the  coyotes  that  didn’t  find  you.  It  was  gold,”  he 
went  on,  pointing  across  the  river,  “that  left  them  burnt 
out  sticks,  which  one  time  was  your  rightful  home.  Gold, 
I  guess,  has  played  a  mighty  tough  part  in  your  life,  Kid, 
and  maybe  it  ain’t  goin’  to  let  up.  That’s  the  way  of 
things.  I’d  say  you  ain’t  done  with  gold  yet.  You  see, 
ther’s  the  story  of  that  ‘strike’  your  father  made,  an’ — 
lost.  No,”  he  added  thoughtfully.  “It’s  goin’  to  come 
back  on  you.  An’  that’s  why  I  say  beat  it.  Don’t  wait 
around  for  those  folks  cornin’  up  the  river.  They  got  the 
fever  bad,  I  guess,  or  they  wouldn’t  be  makin’  a  country 
that’s  cursed  by  the  Euralian  fur  poachers.  Yes.  Beat 
it,  Kid.  Light  out.  They’re  cornin’  right  in.” 


The  swift  stroke  reached  its  length.  The  Kid  lifted  the 
paddle  from  the  water  and  laid  it  across  the  little  vessel 
in  front  of  her.  Resting  against  the  paddling  strut  she 
craned  round  and  gazed  back  over  the  shining  waters. 

She  had  passed  the  wooded  bend  of  the  river,  and  the 
far-reaching  shelter  of  Fox  Bluff  completely  shut  her  off 
from  observation  at  the  Fort.  The  landing  was  hidden; 
so,  too,  were  the  three  great  canoes  that  were  to  carry  the 
defeated  factor  and  his  outfit  down  the  river  to  those  who 
quite  possibly  would  have  no  further  use  for  his  services. 


120 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


Even  the  Fort  itself,  on  the  higher  ground  of  the  opposite 
bank,  was  no  longer  visible. 

The  girl  was  satisfied.  She  returned  to  her  labours,  for 
the  drift  of  the  stream  had  carried  her  canoe  back  some 
few  yards. 

It  shot  forward  again,  however,  under  the  skilful 
strokes  of  her  strong  young  arms,  and  the  water 
rippled  and  sang  as  it  smote  the  sharp  cutwater  that 

drove  into  it.  Three  miles  farther  on  she  had  reached 

« 

the  limits  of  the  great  woods,  and  the  turbulent  rapids 
came  into  view. 

They  were  the  rapids  at  the  junction  of  the  two  rivers. 
It  was  here  that  the  Caribou  River  disgorged  itself  upon 
the  flood  of  the  greater  river.  A  wide  litter  of  frothing, 
churning  popple  disported  itself  over  the  shallows  at  the 
mouth  of  the  invading  stream.  In  the  passage  of  time, 
the  Caribou  had  battled  its  way  up  out  of  the  south-east. 
It  had  broken  into  the  sedate  course  of  the  Hekor  diagon¬ 
ally,  meeting  its  stream  defiantly.  Final  overwhelm¬ 
ing  had  been  its  lot,  in  the  process  of  which  a  vast  stretch 
of  sheltering  banks  had  been  washed  completely  out  and 
transformed  into  treacherous  shoals.  It  was  the  girl's 
immediate  objective. 

Again  she  ceased  from  her  labours  and  gazed  smilingly 
over  the  distant  view.  It  was  alight  with  a  lavish  wealth 
of  colour,  the  vivid  hues  of  Arctic  blossoms  with  which 
the  ripening  sun  of  spring  had  set  the  whole  country 
ablaze.  Her  smile  was  full  of  girlish  enjoyment.  For 
she  was  thinking  of  the  wise,  friendly,  cynical  old  Ben 
Needham  and  his  earnest  warning. 

She  was  thinking  of  him  in  no  spirit  of  ridicule,  but  she 
knew  she  meant  to  disregard  his  warning  utterly.  It  was 
the  youth  in  her.  It  was  the  girlish  curiosity  and  a  spirit 
of  independence  that  urged  her.  The  world  beyond  was  a 


THE  CHEECHAKOS 


121 


sort  of  dream  place  of  wonder  to  her;  a  book  whose  pages 
were  sealed  lest  her  eyes  should  seek  the  things  that  were 
there  written.  He  had  warned  her  that  these  folk  coming 
up  out  of  the  south  were  the  Cheechakos  of  the  gold  trail. 
He  was  probably  right,  but  at  least  they  were  white  folk 
who  belonged  to  that  world  from  which  she  was  wholly 
cut  off.  It  was  an  opportunity  she  had  no  intention  of 
missing.  She  would  transform  herself  into  something 
resembling  the  creatures  of  the  shy  world  to  which  she 
belonged.  She  would  lie  hidden,  and  gaze  upon  these 
strange  and  terrible  people  from  another  world,  against 
whom  she  had  been  so  gravely  warned. 

She  turned  her  little  vessel  sharply  towards  the  bank  of 
the  river  where  it  rose  high,  and  the  last  of  Fox  Bluff 
projected  a  dense  mass  of  Arctic  willow  which  hung 
down,  a  perfect  screen,  till  the  delicate  foliage  buried  itself 
in  the  bosom  of  the  stream.  A  few  swift  strokes  of  her 
paddle  and  she  passed  from  view  behind  it. 

The  nose  of  her  vessel  was  securely  resting  on  the  sticky 
mud  of  the  bank.  She  had  turned  about.  And  now  she 
sat  waiting,  peering  out  through  the  foliage  as  might 
some  hunted  silver  fox,  whose  pelt  was  one  of  the  chief 
objects  of  her  trade.  She  gave  no  sign,  she  made  no 
sound.  She  had  no  intention  of  revealing  her  presence. 
But  she  would  see  for  herself  the  thing  she  must  shun, 
the  thing  whose  presence  in  her  home  she  must  always 
deny. 

It  was  a  long  waiting,  but  it  mattered  nothing.  The 
daylight  was  almost  unending  now,  and  anyway  time  had 
small  enough  bearing  on  the  simple  affairs  of  her  life.  She 
had  time  for  the  indulgence  of  every  whim,  and  the  youth 
in  her  prompted  a  full  measure  of  such  indulgence. 

A  happy  excitement  thrilled  her.  Everything  that  lifted 
her  out  of  the  humdrum  routine  of  her  life  on  the  farm 


122 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


became  an  exhilarating  excitement.  She  was  completely 
happy  in  her  life.  She  was  happy  in  her  support  of  the 
mother  woman  labouring  in  her  home  for  her  many  off¬ 
spring,  she  was  happy  in  her  association  with  the  Indian, 
Usak,  whose  untiring  labours  had  built  up  the  great  rein¬ 
deer  farm  of  which  he  had  assured  her  she  was  mistress. 
But  her  mind  was  groping  amongst  a  world  of  girlish 
dreams,  yearning  and  full  of  unspoken,  unadmitted  de¬ 
sires.  A  subtle  restlessness  was  at  work  in  her,  and  it 
found  expression  in  the  impulse  which  had  become  so 
irresistible.  All  her  life  had  been  bounded  by  narrow 
limits  of  association.  Her  only  human  associations  had 
always  been  those  of  her  far-off  home,  and  the  trading 
post  with  its  factor,  and  those  men  of  the  fur  trail  who 
foregathered  about  its  staunch  walls.  Here,  for  the  first 
time,  was  something  new.  And  more  than  all  it  was 
something  that  was  prohibited. 


The  two  men  were  gazing  out  at  the  churning  waters 
storming  over  the  shoals,  and  the  outlook  was  threatening. 
They  were  standing  on  the  low  bank,  trampling  underfoot 
the  carpet  of  flowers  which  grew  in  profusion  down  to 
the  very  edge  of  the  river.  They  were  surveying  the  junc¬ 
tion  of  the  two  rivers  where  the  Caribou  broke  its  way 
into  the  flood  of  the  Hekor,  and  the  endless  battle  of  con¬ 
flicting  streams  was  being  fought  out.  The  cauldron  of 
boiling  rapids  extended  for  nearly  two  miles. 

Wilder  raised  a  sunburnt  hand  and  crushed  the  blood 
glutted  bodies  of  half  a  hundred  mosquitoes  on  the  back 
of  his  powerful  neck. 

“It’s  portage,  sure,  Chilcoot,’,  he  said,  with  that  finality 
which  denoted  a  mind  made  up.  “I  don’t  see  a  passage 


THE  CHEECHAKOS 


123 


anywhere  fit  to  take  the  big  boats.  I’d  say  the  stream’s 
deep  this  side  under  the  bank,  but  we  can’t  chance 

things.” 

Chilcoot  Massy  chewed  on  for  a  moment  in  deep  con¬ 
templation.  He  was  a  silent  creature,  squat,  powerful 
and  grey-headed,  with  the  hard-beaten  face  of  a  pugilist. 
He  was  a  product  of  the  northern  gold  trail  whose  ex¬ 
perience  went  far  back  to  the  first  rush  over  the  Skagway 
in  ’98,  and  looked  it  all  in  the  rough  buckskin  and  cord 
clothing  in  which  he  was  clad.  He  was  Bill  Wilder’s 
chief  lieutenant;  a  man  whose  force  and  courage  was 
unabated  for  all  his  years,  and  whose  restless  spirit  denied 
him  the  comfort  and  leisure  which  the  ample  wealth  he 
had  achieved  in  association  with  his  friend  and  one-time 
employer,  entitled  him  to. 

“It  certainly  looks  that  way,”  he  agreed.  Then  he  de¬ 
murred.  “You  never  can  tell  on  these  rivers,”  he  said. 
“We’d  have  done  a  heap  better  breaking  down  our  out¬ 
fit,  an’  takin’  on  a  bigger  bunch  of  lighter  canoes.  Maybe 
we’ll  run  into  this  sort  of  stuff  right  away  up  the  river  as 
we  get  nearer  the  headwaters.” 

Wilder  shook  his  head. 

“That  trader  feller  didn’t  reckon  that  way,”  he  said. 
“There  isn’t  a  thing  to  worry  from  here  to  the  Great 
Falls,”  he  said.  “And  Loon  Creek  is  twenty  miles  this 
side  of  them.  We’re  liable  to  find  it  tough  on  the  creek. 
But  that’s  not  new.  We’ll  be  at  work  then  with  a  fixed 
headquarters,  and  we  can  travel  light.  Ben  Needham  said 
we  could  get  through  this  stuff  if  we  fancied  taking  a 
chance.  He  guessed  if  we  knew  it  there  wasn’t  any  sort 
of  chance  about  it.  Well,  we  don’t  know  it.  And  I’m 
taking  no  chances.  You  see,  there’s  more  to  this  thing 
than  chasing  a  simple  gold  trail.”  He  laughed.  “Guess 
we  aren’t  civilians  any  longer.  We’re  police.  You  and 


124 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


me,  and  Mike.  And  we’ve  got  our  orders  from  our 
superiors  who  don’t  stand  for  disobedience.  We’re  being 
paid  a  dollar  a  day  to  make  good.  And  I  don’t  reckon 
the  police  pay  out  such  a  powerful  bunch  of  money  to 
folks  to  make  a  failure.  Come  right  on.  We’ll  get  back 
and  eat.  Then  we’ll  start  in  on  the  portage.” 

They  re-traced  their  steps  to  the  camp  that  had  been 
pitched  well  below  the  rough  waters. 

It  was  a  busy  scene.  The  five  great  laden  canoes  were 
moored  nose  on  to  the  bank,  and  two  smaller  vessels  were 
drawn  up  clear  of  the  water  on  the  mud.  It  was  an  im¬ 
posing  fleet,  equipped  to  the  last  detail,  and  old  Ben  Need¬ 
ham  had  done  it  less  than  justice  when  he  had 
contemptuously  characterised  it  for  the  benefit  of  the  Kid. 
This  was  no  Cheechako  outfit  laden  with  the  useless 
equipment  engendered  of  inexperience. 

It  was  an  equipment  such  as  only  the  wide  experience  of 
Wilder  and  Chilcoot  could  have  designed.  It  was  made 
up  of  everything  which  the  outlands  of  the  North  de¬ 
manded,  from  dogs  and  sleds  to  a  miniature  army  of 
Breeds  and  hard-living  whitemen,  armed  to  encounter 
human  hostility  as  well  as  the  fiercest  onslaughts  of 
Nature’s  most  antagonistic  moods.  Furthermore,  full 
preparation  for  a  long  sojourn  in  an  inhospitable  region 
had  been  made. 

Hot  food  had  been  made  ready  when  they  reached  the 
camp,  and  dogs  and  men  were  busily  engaged  satisfying 
keen  appetite  for  all  the  fierce  heat  of  the  day  and  the 
shadelessness  prevailing  everywhere.  The  leader’s  camp 
had  been  set  apart,  and  Red  Mike,  a  red-haired,  giant 
Irishman,  whose  only  sober  moments  were  breathed  be¬ 
yond  the  drink-laden  atmosphere  of  the  dance  halls  of 
Placer,  was  awaiting  their  return.  He  was  third  in  com¬ 
mand,  and  his  responsibility  was  that  of  quartermaster, 


THE  CHEECHAKOS 


125 

and  river  man,  and  for  the  discipline  of  the  ruffian  crew 
of  the  expedition.  His  greeting  was  characteristic. 

“Chance  is  the  salt  of  life,”  he  cried,  in  a  pleasant 
brogue,  addressing  Wilder.  “Are  we  takin’  it,  boss?” 

Wilder  shook  his  head. 

“No,”  he  said. 

“Then  sure  you’ll  set  in  an’  eat,”  was  the  prompt  retort. 
“Guess  portage  was  invented  by  the  divil  himself,  an’  the 
Holy  Fathers  don’t  reckon  we  need  to  get  in  a  hurry 
knockin’  at  Hell's  gates.  This  sow-belly’s  as  tough  as  dried 
snakes.  I  don’t  seem  to  notice  even  the  flies  yearning. 
Tea?  Gee!  It’s  poor  sort  of  hooch,  even  when  you’ve 
skimmed  the  stewed  flies  clear.  I — Mother  of  Snakes! 
Wher’  did  that  come  from?” 

The  man’s  blue  eyes  were  turned  on  the  shining  waters. 
His  roving  gaze  had  been  caught  by  the  sight  of  a  small 
hide  kyak  heading  for  the  camp.  It  was  propelled  by  a 
single  paddle  dipping  in  the  noiseless  fashion  which  be¬ 
longs  to  the  river  Indians.  And  he  squatted  with  a 
mouthful  of  sow-belly  poised  ready  to  be  devoured. 

Chilcoot  had  flung  his  length  on  the  ground,  but  Bill 
Wilder  was  still  standing.  His  eyes  were  turned  at  once 
on  the  approaching  vessel. 

Red  Mike  laughed. 

“That  trader  guy’s  sent  us  along  a  scout,”  he  said. 
“He’s  a  reas’nable  sort  of  citizen.  I  guess  that  Injun’s 
goin’  to  save  us  portage.” 

Wilder  shook  his  head. 

“Needham  was  all  in  beating  it  down  river.  And  any- 

_  >> 
way — 

“He  wouldn’t  be  passin’  us  along  a  white  gal  to  show 
us  them  rapids.” 

Chilcoot  was  sitting  up.  His  hard  face  was  wearing 
a  grin  that  might  well  have  seemed  impossible  to  it.  And 


126 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


he  spoke  with  an  assurance  that  brought  the  Irishman  to 
his  feet,  with  his  food  thrown  aside  as  though  it  were  the 
last  thing  to  be  desired  at  such  a  moment. 

The  kyak  approached  the  bank  within  some  twenty 
yards.  Then  with  a  thrust  of  the  paddle  the  Kid  held 
it  up  and  sat  contemplating  the  men  on  the  shore. 

The  whole  camp  was  agog.  The  crews  lounging  over 
their  rough  trail  food  watched  the  intruder  curiously. 
But  seemingly  they  had  missed,  in  the  sunburnt  figure, 
clad  in  familiar  mannish  buckskin,  the  thing  which  the 
lightning  eye  of  Chilcoot  had  discovered  on  the  instant. 

Wilder  and  Red  Mike  passed  hastily  down  the  bank 
while  the  older  man  followed  more  leisurely. 

It  was  just  a  little  difficult.  Once  the  men  reached  the 
waterside  Chilcoot’s  assertion  was  left  beyond  question. 
Had  the  intruder  been  a  man,  greeting  and  possible  invita¬ 
tion  would  have  been  forthcoming  on  the  instant.  As  it 
was  even  the  Irishman  was  reduced  to  silence  in  sheer 
amazement.  The  girl  was  less  than  twenty  yards  away 
beyond  the  vessels  moored,  a  rampart  between  herself  and 
the  Cheechakos  against  whom  the  factor  had  warned  her. 
Her  beautiful  blue  eyes  were  unsmiling.  Her  sunburnt 
face  was  almost  painfully  serious.  And  her  whole  man¬ 
ner,  and  her  attitude  told  the  men  on  the  bank  that  her 
approach  had  definite  meaning  which  had  nothing  to  do 
with  idle  curiosity.  So  they  waited,  and  finally  the  diffi¬ 
culty  was  solved  by  the  girl  herself. 

“You’re  getting  ready  for  portage  ?”  she  called  across 
the  water. 

“That’s  so.” 

It  was  Wilder  who  replied  to  her,  and  a  smile  lit  his 
angular  face  as  he  noted  the  sweetly  girlish  tones  of  the 
voice  that  reached  him. 

“You  don’t  need  to,”  came  back  the  Kid’s  prompt 


THE  CHEECHAKOS 


127 


reply,  and  her  paddle  stirred  in  the  water  and  her  little 
vessel  crept  in  towards  the  laden  canoes.  “There’s  a  deep 
channel.  It’s  right  along  under  the  bank,  and  it’ll  take  the 
biggest  boat  you’ve  got  without  a  worry.” 

Wilder  stepped  on  to  the  nearest  vessel  and  moved 
down  its  length.  The  prow  of  the  girl’s  canoe  had  come 
within  a  yard  of  him,  and  he  looked  down  into  the  wide 
eyes  gazing  so  confidently  up  into  his. 

“That’s  just  kind  of  you,”  he  said,  in  a  tone  he  in¬ 
tended  should  escape  the  listening  ears  behind  him.  “It’s 
a  mighty  big  proposition  portaging  this  outfit,  and  I  was 
feeling  kind  of  reluctant.”  He  withdrew  his  gaze  from 
the  fascinating  picture  of  the  white  girl  in  the  boat  and 
glanced  in  the  direction  she  had  indicated.  “The  channel 
cuts  in  under  this  bank,  you  say?  And  it’s  clear  all  the 
way?” 

“Sure.” 

The  Kid’s  bright  eyes  were  measuring.  In  her  mind 
was  the  haunting  memory  of  old  Ben’s  warning,  but 
somehow  it  was  powerless  before  her  inclination  and  the 
sight  of  this  large  man  with  his  steady,  good-looking  eyes, 
and  wholesome,  clean-shaven  face.  Her  confidence  in¬ 
creased  and  her  impulse  became  irresistible. 

“If  you  feel  like  it  I’ll  give  you  a  lead,”  she  said.  “I 
know  it  by  heart.  You  see,”  she  added,  with  simple  con¬ 
clusiveness,  “I  was  raised  on  this  river.” 

Wilder  nodded.  His  smiling  eyes  had  come  back  again 
to  the  girl’s  face  as  she  sat  with  her  paddle  stirring  in  the 
water  to  keep  her  place  against  the  stream. 

“Did  Ben  Needham  send  you  along?”  he  asked. 

“Oh,  no,”  the  Kid  denied  frankly.  “I  just  saw  you 
pass  up  stream  and  guessed  you  were  strangers.  So — ” 

She  broke  off.  In  a  moment  she  realised  her  mistake 
from  the  flash  of  inquiry  she  saw  in  the  man’s  eyes. 


128  THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 

“I  don’t  remember  passing  you  on  the  river,”  he  said 
quickly. 

The  girl’s  moment  of  confusion  passed,  and  frank 
impulse  again  took  hold  of  her.  She  laughed  happily, 
and  the  man  felt  the  infection  of  it. 

“I  saw  you  coming  an’  took  cover,”  she  said  simply. 
“I  guessed  you  were  Cheechakos  and  reckoned  I’d  take  a 
look — at  a  distance.” 

“Why  did  you  take — cover?  There  wasn’t  need?” 

“No.”  The  Kid  shook  her  head  a  little  dubiously. 
“There  wasn’t  real  need.  Only — ” 

“Yes?” 

“Well,  anyway  I’ll  be  glad  to  pass  you  through  the 
rapids  if  it’ll  help  you.  It’ll  save  you  more  than  a  day.” 

“I’ll  be  grateful.  I — wonder.” 

“What?” 

“You  see,  my  name’s  Wilder — Bill  Wilder.  And  I 
was  wondering  what  yours  was.” 

Again  the  girl  broke  into  a  happy  laugh  and  the  gold 
man,  in  sheer  delight,  joined  in.  Somewhere  out  of  the 
blue  a  pretty  white  girl,  with  blue  eyes  and  a  wealth  of 
fair  hair,  clad  in  the  vividly  ornamented  buckskin  which 
he  associated  only  with  the  Indian,  had  descended  upon 
him  at  a  time  and  place  when  he  had  only  looked  for  the 
roughness  of  the  northern  trail.  It  was  all  a  little 
amazing.  It  was  all  rather  absurd.  And  she  was  offering 
to  pass  him  practical  help  in  the  work  in  which  he  had 
always  believed  himself  complete  master. 

“I’m — the  Kid,”  she  returned  presently. 

“Is  that  your  name?” 

The  girl  shook  her  head  and  her  smile  was  irresistible. 

“No,”  she  said.  “But  it’s  how  I’m  known  all  along  the 

o  JJ 

river. 

“Then  I  guess  it’s  good  enough  for  me.”  Bill  Wilder 


THE  CHEECHAKOS 


129 


drew  a  quick  breath.  “Well,  Kid,”  he  went  on  with  a 
smile,  “we  were  just  about  to  eat.  Will  you  step  ashore 
and  join  us  ?  Then,  after,  I’ll  be  mighty  glad  to  have  you 
pass  us  up  those  rapids.” 

The  smile  died  abruptly  out  of  the  girl’s  eyes.  She 
remembered  Ben  Needham  and  his  warning. 

“You’re  Cheechakos — on  the  gold  trail?”  she  asked. 

Bill  laughed.  The  whole  position  suddenly  dawned  on 
him. 

“No,”  he  said.  “No,  Kid.  We’re  an  outfit  on  the  gold 
trail,  sure,”  he  went  on  quite  seriously.  “But  we’re 
decent  citizens.  And  there’s  not  a  thing  to  this  camp  to 
scare  you.  Will  you  come  right  ashore?” 

For  answer  the  girl’s  paddle  stirred  more  deeply  and 
the  nose  of  her  canoe  shot  up  to  the  vessel  on  which  the 
man  was  standing.  He  held  out  one  brown  hand  to  assist 
her,  but  it  was  ignored.  The  Kid  rose  to  her  feet,  tall 
and  beautifully  slim,  and  sprang  on  to  the  vessel  beside 
him,  carrying  her  own  mooring  rope  of  rawhide  in  her 
hand. 

“I’m  kind  of  glad  you  ain’t — Cheechakos,”  she  said. 

And  they  both  laughed  as  they  passed  back  together 
over  the  bales  of  outfit  with  which  the  boat  was  laden, 
and  reached  the  river  bank  where  Chilcoot  and  Mike  were 
waiting  for  them. 


9 


CHAPTER  III 


REINDEER  FARM 

The  Indian,  Usak,  and  the  Kid  were  standing  in  the 
great  enclosure  where  three  half-breed  Eskimos  were 
engaged  in  the  operation  of  breaking  young  buck  reindeer 
to  the  sled  work  of  the  trail.  They  took  no  part  in  it. 
It  was  the  daily  occupation  in  the  springtime  of  the  year. 
It  began  before  the  break-up  of  winter,  when  it  was  con¬ 
ducted  with  heavily  weighted  sleds,  and,  with  the  passing 
of  the  snow  it  was  continued  with  the  long  pole  carryalls, 
which  is  the  Eskimo  means  of  transport  over  land  in 
summer.  The  carryall  was  in  use  now  and  it  was  an 
interesting  struggle  between  the  skill  of  the  squat,  sturdy, 
brown-skinned  breakers,  and  the  half-scared,  half-angry 
fighting  will  of  a  finely  grown  buck  deer  whose  ragged 
coat  of  winter  gave  him  the  size  of  a  three-year-old 
steer. 

Haltered,  and  ranged  along  the  rough-poled  fence  of 
the  great  corral  stood  twenty  or  thirty  young  bucks 
awaiting  their  turn  in  the  rawhide  harness,  and  they 
gazed  round  on  the  spectacle  of  their  fighting  brother 
with  eyes  of  mild  wonder  at  the  commotion  he  was  creat¬ 
ing.  Otherwise  they  seemed  utterly  unconcerned  in  their 
gentle  submissiveness.  They  were  all  man-handled  and 
tame.  They  had  been  handled  almost  from  their  birth, 
for  the  whole  success  of  the  farm  depended  on  the  turn¬ 
ing  out  of  fully  broken  cattle,  trained  for  the  work  of 

130 


REINDEER  FARM 


131 

transport  within  the  Arctic,  where  the  Eskimo  estimate 
them  above  every  other  means  of  traversing  the  vast 
spaces  of  snow  and  ice,  or  the  barren,  lichen-grown  ter¬ 
ritory  of  summer  over  which  they  were  wont  to  roam. 

The  great  deer  was  quieting  down.  His  sense  of  the 
indignity  of  the  forked  carryall  resting  on  his  high 
withers  seemed  to  be  passing.  His  wild  jumps  and 
slashing  forefeet  were  less  violent,  and  his  snortings  of 
fear  and  anger  were  replaced  by  meaningless  shakings  of 
the  graceful  head  on  which  his  annual  re-growth  of 
antlers  was  only  just  beginning  to  display  itself.  Finally, 
under  the  skilful  handling  of  the  breakers,  good-temper 
prevailed,  and  the  beautiful  creature  was  induced  to 
move  forward  dragging  the  boulder-weighted  poles  with 
their  ends  resting  on  the  ground. 

“Him  good  buck,”  Usak  said  approvingly,  as  the  men 
led  the  now  docile  creature  round  the  circle  of  the  break¬ 
ing  track. 

“Yes.” 

The  Kid  had  nothing  to  add.  Truth  to  tell  for  once 
she  had  little  interest  in  the  work  the  result  of  which 
represented  the  livelihood,  the  whole  fortunes  of  them  all. 
Her  thoughts  were  far  away,  somewhere  miles  along  the 
broad  course  of  the  Hekor  River.  She  was  thinking  of 
her  previous  day’s  adventure,  and  her  pretty  eyes  reflected 
her  thoughts.  Somehow  her  mood  had  lost  its  buoyancy. 
Somehow  the  years  of  happy  life  on  this  far-off  northern 
homestead  seemed  to  have  dropped  away  behind  her. 
Something  had  broken  the  spell  of  it.  Something  had 
robbed  it  of  half  its  simple,  happy  associations. 

Gazing  upon  the  mild-eyed  creature  now  gracefully 
pacing  the  well-worn  track  under  the  careful  guidance  of 
the  dark-skinned  men  of  the  North,  she  was  thinking  of 
a  pair  of  clear-gazing,  fearless  honest  eyes  which  had 


132 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


looked  into  hers  with  a  man’s  kindly  smile  for  something 
more  weak  and  tender  than  himself,  for  something  that 
stirred  his  sense  of  chivalry  to  its  deepest.  She  under¬ 
stood  nothing  of  his  emotions,  and  little  enough  of  her 
own.  She  only  remembered  the  smile  and  the  kindness, 
and  the  man  whose  outfit  she  had  unfalteringly  guided  up 
the  open  channel  of  the  river  where  it  skirted  the  deadly 
rapids.  And  somehow,  her  adventure  marked  an  epoch 
in  her  life  which  had  completely  broken  the  hitherto 
monotonous  continuity  of  it. 

Bill  Wilder.  The  man’s  name  was  no  less  graven  on 
her  memory  than  was  the  recollection  of  his  great  stature 
and  the  lean  face  which  had  so  re-assured  her  of  the  hon¬ 
esty  and  ability  which  old  Ben  Needham’s  warning  had 
denied  him.  She  remembered  the  half  hour  she  had 
squatted  in  company  of  these  men,  sharing  in  their  rough, 
midday  meal,  and  listening  to,  and  taking  part,  in  their 
talk.  It  had  been  a  thrilling  excitement,  not  one  detail  of 
which  would  she  have  missed  for  all  the  world.  It  had 
been  a  deliriously  happy  time.  She  remembered  how  the 
man  called  Mike  had  pressed  her  to  say  where  she  lived, 
and  to  tell  them  the  name  to  which  she  was  born,  and  she 
remembered  the  sharp  fashion  in  which,  at  the  first  sign 
of  reluctance  on  her  part,  remembering  as  she  had  Ben’s 
warning,  Bill  Wilder  had  told  him  to  mind  his  business. 

Then  had  come  her  little  moment  of  triumph  when 
she  had  passed  the  outfit  up  the  open  channel.  How  she 
had  nursed  it,  and  delivered  her  orders  to  the  men  behind. 
How  she  had  taken  Wilder  himself  a  passenger  in  her 
pilot  kyak,  and  left  him  wondering  at  her  skill  and 
knowledge.  Then  had  come  the  parting  with  her  new 
friends,  when  the  man  had  told  her  in  his  quiet  assured 
fashion  that  someday  they  would  meet  again  when  his 
work  was  done.  Someday  he  would  come  back,  perhaps 


REINDEER  FARM 


133 


in  two  years,  and  wait  by  the  rapids  till  she  appeared. 
And  then  on  the  impulse  of  the  moment  she  had  said  there 
would  be  no  need  for  him  to  wait  by  the  rapids.  All  he 
had  to  do  was  to  turn  off  into  the  mouth  of  the  Caribou 
River  and  pass  some  ten  miles  up  its  course. 

She  was  wondering  and  dreaming  now.  Her  wonder 
was  if  the  man  would  remember  his  promise,  and  her 
simply  given  invitation.  And  her  dreaming  was  of  a 
steady  pair  of  grey  eyes  that  haunted  her  no  matter  where 
she  gazed  and  robbed  her  of  all  interest  in  the  things 
which  had  never  before  failed  to  hold  her  deepest  concern. 

“We  mak  fifty  buck  ready,”  Usak  went  on,  failing  to 
realise  the  girl’s  abstraction.  “Fifty  good  dam  buck. 
An’  I  mak  north  an’  mak  plenty  big  trade.  Yes?”  He 
shook  his  head,  and  his  dark  eyes,  a  shade  more  sunken 
with  the  passing  of  years,  but  lacking  nothing  of  the 
passionate  fire  of  his  earlier  days,  took  on  a  moody  light. 
“Us  mak  no  good  plenty  trade  no  more.  No.  I  go  east, 
Vay  nor-east  plenty  far.  All  time  more  far  as  I  go. 
What  I  mak?  Fox?  Yes.  Beaver?  Yes.  Maybe  I 
mak  wolf  bear.  I  mak  small  truck.  No  seal.  No  ivory. 
No  anything  good.  Now  I  mak  none.  Not  little  bit. 
Him  Euralian  mak  east.  All  time  him  go  east,  too. 
Him  eat  up  all  fur.  Eskimo  all  much  scare.  Him  go 
all  time  farther.  So  I  not  mak  him.” 

The  man’s  half  angry  protest  impressed  itself  upon  the 
girl.  Her  pre-occupied  gaze  came  back  to  his  dark, 
saturnine  face.  An  ironical  smile  played  for  a  moment  in 
the  blue  of  her  eyes. 

“Does  it  matter,  Usak?”  she  asked.  “Old  Ben  Need¬ 
ham  has  gone,  an’  the  store’s  closed  down.  If  you  made 
good  trade  I  guess  we’d  be  left  with  it  piling  in  our  store.” 
She  shook  her  head  almost  disconsolately.  “Ther’s  only 
Placer  for  us  now.  We’ll  need  to  make  the  trip  once  a 


134 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


year,  and  trade  the  small  truck  we  can  scratch  together. 
It’s  that  or - ” 

The  girl  broke  off.  Ben  Needham  had  gone.  Bill 
Wilder  and  his  party  had  vanished  up  the  river.  Quite 
suddenly  the  desolation  of  it  all  seemed  complete. 

There  was  moisture  in  her  eyes  as  she  turned  from  the 
man’s  dark  face  to  the  familiar  scenes  about  her.  The 
wide  Caribou  River  Valley  was  bright  green  with  a 
wealth  of  summer  grass  and  tiny  flowers  which  the  spring 
floods  had  left  behind  them.  The  river  was  shrunken 
now  to  its  normal  bed  in  the  heart  of  the  valley,  which 
was  walled  in  by  high  shoulders  separated  by  nearly  two 
miles  of  flat.  So  it  went  on  for  many  miles;  sometimes 
narrowing,  sometimes  widening.  Sometimes  the  valley 
was  almost  barren  of  all  but  the  Arctic  lichens.  Some¬ 
times  it  was  filled  with  wind-swept  pine  bluffs,  often 
dwarfed,  but  occasionally  extensive  and  of  primordial 
characteristics.  The  farm  was  set  in  a  deep  shelter  of  a 
bluff  of  the  latter  kind.  The  house  lay  behind  them, 
nestling  just  within  great  lank  trees  that  in  turn  were 
sheltered  by  a  granite  spur  of  the  great  walls  which  lined 
the  course  of  the  valley.  It  was  a  crude  but  snug  enough 
home.  It  was  a  structure  that  had  grown  as  the  mood 
and  ability  of  Usak,  and  the  needs  of  those  who  had 
elected  to  share  it  with  him,  had  prompted. 

It  was  seven  years  since  the  change  had  taken  place. 
Before  that,  for  eight  long  years,  it  had  been  the 
home  of  the  child  Felice  and  her  Indian,  self-appointed, 
guardian.  Usak  had  been  as  good  as  his  word.  Felice 
had  been  left  to  the  care  of  Hesther  and  Jim  McLeod 
while  he  went  on  his  mission  of  vengeance  after  he  had 
been  left  wifeless,  and  Felice  had  been  left  a  helpless 
orphan.  He  had  returned  as  he  said  he  would.  He  had 
returned  to  claim  the  orphaned  child  of  his  “good  boss.” 


REINDEER  FARM 


135 


The  whiteman  and  his  wife  had  been  reluctant.  They 
had  realised  their  duty.  Usak  was  an  Indian,  and  they 
felt  that  in  giving  the  child  into  his  keeping  they  were 
committing  a  serious  wrong. 

But  it  so  happened  that  with  the  return  of  Usak  from 
his  journey  into  the  great  white  void  of  the  North,  the 
story  of  which  he  refused  to  reveal,  Hesther’s  first  baby 
was  about  to  be  born.  And  the  coming  of  that  new  life 
pre-occupied  both  husband  and  wife  to  the  exclusion  of 
all  else,  and  helped  to  blind  them  to  their  sense  of  duty. 
So  the  Indian’s  appeal  had  double  force.  And  finally  they 
yielded,  convinced  of  the  man’s  honesty,  convinced  that 
in  denying  him  they  would  have  inflicted  a  grievous 
wound  on  the  already  distraught  creature. 

So  Usak  had  come  into  possession  of  the  treasure  he 
claimed  as  an  offset  to  the  monstrous  grief  of  his  own 
personal  loss,  and  he  set  about  the  task  of  raising  the 
child  with  the  inimitable  devotion  of  a  single-minded 
savage. 

The  man  had  laboured  for  her  with  every  waking 
moment.  He  had  laboured  to  replace  the  mother  woman 
who  had  nursed  her,  and  the  great  white  father  whom 
he  had  loved.  He  had  laboured  to  build  up  about  her 
the  farm  which  was  to  yield  her  that  means  of  livelihood 
which  his  simple  understanding  warned  him  that  Marty, 
himself,  would  have  desired  for  her. 

It  had  been  a  great  struggle  with  his  limited  education 
and  only  his  savage  mind  to  guide  him  in  the  barter 
which  was  the  essence  of  the  success  he  desired.  Then, 
too,  with  each  passing  year  the  depredations  of  the 
invading  Euralians  spread  wider  and  wider  afield  as  the 
central  control,  which  apparently  had  always  existed, 
seemed  to  lose  its  grip  on  the  rapidly  increasing  numbers 
of  the  foreign  marauders.  Futhermore,  his  trade  with 


136  THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 

the  little  people  of  the  Arctic  had  in  consequence  receded 
farther  and  farther,  till,  as  he  had  just  said,  it  had  passed 
almost  beyond  his  reach. 

So  things  had  gone  on  till  eight  years  had  passed  and 
the  dark  eyes  of  the  man  saw  the  womanly  development 
of  the  pretty  white  child.  Then  had  happened  another 
one  of  those  strokes  of  ill-fortune  which  so  often  react 
in  a  direction  quite  undreamed. 

Hesther  and  Jim  McLeod  had  developed  a  family  of 
three  boys  and  three  girls  in  the  course  of  the  eight  years. 
Trade  was  bad,  and  the  threat  of  closing  down  the  store 
was  always  hanging  over  them.  Then,  one  day,  in  the 
depths  of  the  terrible  Arctic  winter,  the  man  was  taken 
ill  with  pneumonia,  and,  in  a  week,  Hesther  was  left  a 
widow  with  six  small  children  and  no  one  to  turn  to  for 
support  and  comfort,  and  with  little  more  in  the  world 
than  the  shelter  of  the  store,  and  such  food  as  it  provided, 
until  the  Fur  Valley  Company  should  remove  her  and 
replace  her  dead  husband  with  a  new  Factor. 

The  Company  dealt  fairly,  if  coldly,  with  her.  Ben 
Needham  was  sent  up  to  replace  the  dead  Jim  McLeod 
at  the  opening  of  spring.  And  the  widow  and  her 
children  were  to  be  brought  down  to  Dawson,  and,  forth¬ 
with  sent  on  to  such  destination  as  she  desired.  The 
Company  gave  her  travelling  expenses,  and  a  sum  of 
money  to  help  her  along.  And  that  was  to  be  the  limit 
of  its  obligations. 

But  Hesther  McLeod  had  definite  ideas.  Her  cheerful 
optimism  and  gentle  philosophy  never  for  a  moment 
deserted  her.  During  the  dark  months  of  winter,  when 
she  was  left  with  only  the  ghost  of  her  dead,  she  strove 
with  all  the  calm  she  possessed  to  review  the  thing  which 
life  had  done  to  her.  She  was  quite  unblinded  to  the 
seriousness  of  her  position.  She  probed  to  the  last 


REINDEER  FARM 


137 


detail  all  it  meant  to  those  lives  belonging  to  her  which 
were  only  just  beginning.  And  finally  the  decision  she 
took  had  nothing  in  it  of  the  promptings  of  hard  sense, 
but  came  from  somewhere  deep  down  in  a  gentle,  brave, 
motherly  heart. 

She  would  not  quit  the  country  in  which  had  been  con¬ 
summated  all  the  joys  of  motherhood.  Her  children 
were  of  the  North,  and  should  be  raised  men  and  women 
of  the  great  wide  country  which  had  yielded  her  all  the 
real  emotions  of  her  life.  She  would  stay.  She  would 
take  the  pittance  which  the  Company  offered,  but  the 
North  should  remain  her  home.  And  curiously  enough 
the  main  thought  prompting  her  heroic  decision  was  the 
memory  of  the  white  girl  she  had  handed  over  to  the 
care  of  the  Indian,  Usak. 

The  rest  had  been  easy  to  a  creature  of  her  simple 
practice.  Usak  was  forthwith  consulted,  and  the  loyal 
creature  jumped  at  the  idea  that  the  whitewoman  and  her 
children  should  make  their  home  on  the  farm  he  was  so 
ardently  labouring  to  build  up  for  the  daughter  of  his 
“good  boss.” 

In  short  order  the  three-roomed  log  shanty  grew.  It 
spread  out  in  any  convenient  direction  under  the  man’s 
indefatigable  labours,  and  the  mother’s  domestic  mind. 
A  room  here  was  added.  A  room  there.  And  so  it  went 
on,  regardless  of  all  proportion,  but  with  keen  regard 
for  necessity  and  convenience.  And  Hesther  brought  all 
her  chattels  with  her  from  the  store,  and  her  busy  hands 
and  invincible  courage  swiftly  turned  the  place  into  a  real 
home  for  the  children,  and  everything  else  calculated  for 
the  well-being  of  the  lives  it  was  her  cherished  desire  to 
do  her  best  for. 

So  in  the  course  of  years,  sometimes  under  overwhelm¬ 
ing  difficulties,  Felice,  who,  from  the  start  had  been  af- 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


138 

fectionately  designated  “the  Kid,”  had  grown  up  to 
womanhood,  taught  to  read  and  write  and  sew  by 
Hesther,  and  made  adept  in  the  laborious  work  of  the 
farm  and  trail  and  river  by  Usak. 

And  through  every  struggle,  under  the  radiance  of  the 
mother’s  courage  and  sweetness  of  temper,  and  watched 
over  by  the  fierce  dark  eyes  of  the  devoted  Indian,  it 
had  always  been  a  home  of  happiness  and  hope.  And  this 
despite  the  fact  that  every  factor  to  make  for  hope  was 
steadily  diminishing. 

The  Indian  was  in  the  mood  for  plain  speaking  now. 
And  the  Kid,  her  mind  disturbed  out  of  its  usual  calm 
by  her  recent  adventure,  was  eagerly  responsive. 

The  Indian  shook  his  head  so  that  his  lank  hair  swept 
the  greasy  collar  of  his  buckskin  shirt. 

“The  good  boss  your  father,  him  speak  much  wise. 
Him  say - ” 

“I  know,”  the  Kid  broke  in  impulsively,  and  with  some 
impatience.  “Guess  you’ve  told  me  before.  ‘When  the 
fox  sheds  his  coat  the  winds  blow  warm.’  We  know 
about  that,  don’t  we?”  She  smiled  for  all  her  real  dis¬ 
tress.  “But  I’d  say  Nature’s  mighty  little  to  do  with 
human  trade.  When  ther’s  no  food  in  the  house  we’ll  have 
to  go  hungry,  or  live  on  caribou  meat.  Say,  can  you  see  us 
sitting  around  with  the  wind  whistling  through  our 
bones?  Does  the  notion  tell  you  anything?  It  won’t 
blow  warmer  because  Mary  Justicia,  an’  Clarence,  an’ 
Algernon,  an’  Percy,  an’  Gladys  Anne,  an’  Jane  Con¬ 
stance  are  hungry.  It  won’t  be  so  bad  for  mother,  an’ 
me,  an’  you.  We’re  grown.  And  it  won’t  be  the  first 
time  we’ve  been  hungry.  No.  It’s  no  use.  You  and  me, 
we’ll  have  to  make  Placer,  where  the  folks  drink  and 
gamble,  and  dance,  most  all  the  time,  and,  when  they  get 
the  chance,  rob  the  folks  who  don’t  know  better.  We’ll 


REINDEER  FARM 


139 


have  to  make  the  river  trail  once  a  year  and  buy  the  truck 
we  need  with  the  furs  we  can  scrape  together.  It’s  that 
or  quit.” 

For  some  moments  the  man’s  resentful  eyes  watched 
the  harnessing  of  a  fresh  buck.  The  creature  bellowed 
and  pawed  the  ground  with  slashing,  wide-spreading 
hoofs. 

“We  mak  ’em,  yes,”  he  said,  as  the  beast  quietened 
down.  Then  he  broke  into  a  sudden  fierce  expletive.  It 
was  the  savage  temper  of  the  man  as  he  thought  of  the 
cause  of  all  their  woes.  “Tcha!”  he  cried,  and  his  white, 
strong  teeth  bared.  “They  kill  your  father.  They  kill 
Pri-loo.  Now  they  kill  up  all  trade — dead.  I  go  all  mad 
inside.  I  tak  ’em  in  my  two  hand,  an’ — an’  I  choke  ’em 
dis  life  out  of  ’em.  I  know.  They  mak  it  so  we  all  die 
dead.  No  pelts,  no  food,  no  deer.  So  we  not  wake  up 
no  more.  Your  father — him  live — plenty  much  gold. 
Oh,  big  plenty.  Us  rich.  Us  not  care  for  trade.  Us 
buy  ’em  up  all  thing.  Yes.”  His  dark  eyes  were  on  the 
movements  of  the  men  with  the  deer.  But  he  saw 
nothing.  Only  the  vision  which  his  passionate  heart 
conjured  out  of  the  back  cells  of  memory.  “Bimeby,” 
he  went  on  at  last,  in  a  tone  that  was  ominously  quiet, 
“I  mak  one  big  trip.  I  go  by  the  river  so  I  come  by  the 
big  hills.  Maybe  I  mak  big  trade  that  place.”  His  eyes 
shone  with  a  fierce  smile.  “Oh,  yes,  maybe.  Then  maybe 
I  come  back.  An’  when  I  come  back  then  us  break  big 
trail  an’  quit.  I  know  him  dis  trail.  Great  big  plenty 
long  trail.  Us  come  by  the  big  river  an’  the  big  lakk 
The  good  boss,  your  father  speak  plenty  him  name. 
M’Kenzie.  Oh,  yes.  M’Kenzie  River.  Much  heap  fur. 
All  fur.  Seal,  bear,  beaver,  silver  fox.  Much,  oh  much. 
Black  fox,  too.  All  him  fur.  Plenty  Eskimo.  Plenty 
trader  mans.  Us  not  mak  him  Placer.  Oh,  no.  Plenty 


140 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


whiteman  by  Placer.  Him  see  little  Felice,  white  girl 
Kid,  him  steal  him.  Oh,  yes.  Usak  know.  Him  steal 
up  all  child,  too.  So.  Missis  Hesther,  too.  They  mak 
Felice  to  dance  plenty  an’  drink  the  fire  water.  Not  so 
Hesther  woman.  Him  mak  him  work.  All  time  work. 
Him  old.  Not  so  as  Felice.  So  I  go  by  the  trail.  Bimeby 
I  come  back.  Then  us  mak  big  trail.  Yes?” 

In  spite  of  herself  the  Kid  was  interested.  But  her 
interest  was  for  that  part  of  the  man’s  planning  which 
related  to  the  mysterious  journey  which  the  Indian 
declared  his  intention  of  taking.  The  talk  of  the 
McKenzie  was  by  no  means  new  to  her.  She  had  heard 
it  all  before.  It  was  the  dream  place  of  the  Indian’s 
mind,  which  the  talk  of  her  dead  father  had  inspired. 
She  shook  her  head  as  her  eyes  followed  the  docile  move¬ 
ments  of  the  newly  broken  buck. 

“Why  must  you  go  up  the  river  to  the  big  hills?”  she 
asked  seriously.  “That’s  new.  The  other  isn’t.” 

The  man  shrugged  his  angular  shoulders. 

“I  just  go.  An’  I  come  back.” 

“What  for?” 

The  blue  eyes  were  searching  the  dark  face  narrowly. 
But  the  man  refused  to  be  drawn. 

“It  plenty  good  place  by  the  hills.  Maybe  I  get  fur. 
Maybe — gold.  I  not  know.  Sometime  I  dream  dis  thing. 
I  go  by  the  hills,  an’  then  I — come  back.  I  know.  Oh, 
yes.” 

“I  see.” 

The  girl  smiled,  and  the  Indian  responded  for  all  his 
mood.  This  girl  was  as  the  sun,  moon,  and  stars  of  his 
life. 

“Say,  Usak,”  she  went  on,  with  a  little  laugh,  “maybe 
I  guess  about  this.  You  have  a  friend  there  by  the  hills. 
A  woman  eh?  That  so?” 


REINDEER  FARM 


141 


“Maybe.” 

The  man’s  eyes  were  sparkling  as  they  grinned  back 
into  the  Kid’s  face.  But  it  was  a  different  smile  from 
that  of  the  moment  before. 

“Then  I  don’t  figger  I  better  ask  any  more,”  the  girl 
said  simply.  “But  we’re  not  going  to  the  McKenzie. 
We’re  not  going  to  quit  here — yet.  No.  We’re  going  to 
make  such  trade  as  maybe  at  Placer  first.  Later,  if  we 
figger  it’s  too  worrying  to  make  Placer,  then  we’ll  think 
of  McKenzie,  an’  you  I  guess’ll  be  free  to  go  right  along 
an’  say  good-bye  to  your  lady  friend  up  in  the  hills.  Let’s 
get  this  fixed  right  now.  You  guess  this  farm  is  mine, 
my  father  started  it  for  me.  An’  you,  big  Indian  that  you 
are,  have  done  all  you  know  to  make  it  right  for  me. 
Well,  I  guess  it’s  up  to  me  to  figger  the  thing  I’m  going 
to  do.  That’s  all  right.  I’ve  figgered.  So  has  our  little 
mother.  We’re  goin’  to  give  this  change  two  summers’ 
trial.  And  after  that,  if  things  are  still  bad,  why,  we’ll 
think  about — McKenzie.” 

The  Kid’s  manner  was  decided.  Usak  was  an  Indian, 
a  man  of  extraordinary  capacity  and  wonderful  devotion. 
But  from  her  earliest  days  he  had  taught  Felice  that  the 
farm  was  hers  and  he  was  her  servant.  And  the  child 
had  grown  to  feel  and  know  her  authority,  and  the  dif¬ 
ference  which  colour  made  between  them.  Whatever  the 
man  proposed,  hers  was  the  final  decision.  And  for  all 
her  real,  deep  regard  for  the  man  who  had  raised  her, 
she  understood  he  was  still  her  servant. 

Now  her  decision  was  taken  out  of  something  that  had 
no  relation  to  the  welfare  of  those  depending  upon  it.  It 
had  nothing  to  do  with  the  prosperity  of  the  farm.  It  had 
nothing  to  do  with  wisdom  or  judgment.  It  was  inspired 
by  one  thing  only.  The  man  whom  she  had  passed  up 
the  rapids  had  said  he  would  come  back.  And  she  had 


142 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


told  him  to  seek  her  ten  miles  up  the  Caribou  River. 
Two  summers.  Yes.  He  must  surely  be  back  in  that 
time.  If  not— well,  perhaps,  the  McKenzie  would  be 
preferable  to  the  Hekor  if  he  had  not  returned  in  that 
time. 

A  shrill  of  childish  voices  broke  upon  the  quiet  of  the 
sunlit  corral,  and  Usak  turned  as  a  troop  of  children  came 
racing  across  to  where  they  were  standing.  Mary 
Justicia,  by  reason  of  her  long  bare  legs  and  superior  age, 
led  the  way.  And  she  was  followed  in  due  sequence  of 
ages  by  Clarence,  Algernon,  Percy,  Gladys  Anne,  and 
the  rear  was  brought  up  by  Jane  Constance,  a  brown¬ 
faced,  curly-headed  girl  of  about  seven  years.  They 
were  all  bare-legged,  and  the  boys  were  scarcely  clad  at  all 
above  the  buckskin  of  their  breeches.  But  they  were  full 
to  the  brim  of  reckless  animal  spirits  and  the  perfect 
health  provided  by  a  life  lived  almost  entirely  in  the 
open. 

“Kid !  Ho,  Kid!  Kid!  Kid!  Kid!” 

The  name  rang  out  in  a  chorus  of  summons  ranging 
from  the  rough,  breaking  voice  of  Clarence  to  the  almost 
baby  treble  of  Jane  Constance. 

The  Kid  swung  about  as  the  youthful  avalanche  swept 
down  upon  her,  and,  in  a  moment,  she  was  almost 
smothered  by  the  struggling  children  reaching  to  get  hold 
of  some  part  of  her  clothing.  There  could  be  no  mistake. 
Adoration  was  shining  in  every  eye  as  the  children 
reached  her.  There  was  laughter  and  a  babel  of  voices 
as  they  took  possession  of  her  and  started  to  drag  her 
towards  the  house  where  dinner  was  waiting  ready. 

Usak  looked  on  without  a  word.  He  was  more  than 
content.  The  girl  had  given  him  her  decision  as  to  the 
future,  and  though  it  clashed  with  his  own  ideas  it  was 
her  decision,  and,  therefore,  would  be  obeyed.  He  was 


REINDEER  FARM 


143 


as  nearly  happy  as  his  fierce,  passionate  temper  would 
permit.  These  children  in  their  amazing  hero  worship  of 
their  older  sister,  as  they  considered  her,  had  his  entire 
approval.  They  were  only  little  less  to  him  than  the 
Kid.  He  was  Indian  and  they  were  white.  And  the  big 
heart  of  the  man  thrilled  at  the  thought  that  these  helpless 
whites  were  no  less  his  charge  than  the  grown  woman- 
child  of  his  “good  boss.” 


They  were  ranged  about  the  rough  table  for  their 
midday  meal.  The  step-ladder  sequence  of  their  ages  and 
sizes  was  only  broken  by  the  presence  of  the  Kid,  who 
sat  at  one  end  of  it  between  Algernon,  of  the  red-head 
and  freckles,  and  the  grey-eyed  Percy,  who  was  the  born 
trader  of  the  community.  Hester  McLeod,  grey  of 
hair  for  all  her  comparative  youth,  smiling,  small,  and 
workworn  sat  at  the  head  of  the  table  between  the  head 
and  tail  of  her  reckless  brood.  Mary  Justicia  was  at  her 
right,  a  pretty,  black-haired  angular  girl  of  nearly  fifteen, 
ready  to  minister  to  everyone’s  wants,  a  sort  of  telephonic 
communication  with  the  cookstove,  and  Jane  Constance, 
with  her  mass  of  brown  curls,  and  a  face  more  than 
splashed  with  the  stew  she  was  devouring,  on  her  left. 

At  the  moment  they  were  all  hungrily  devouring,  and 
silence,  only  broken  by  sounds  of  mastication,  prevailed. 
Each  child  had  a  tin  platter  of  venison  stew  to  consume, 
and  a  beaker  of  hot  tea  was  set  close  to  their  hands. 
They  fed  themselves  with  spoons  as  being  the  most  con¬ 
venient  weapons,  and  attacked  the  fare,  which  was  more 
or  less  their  daily  menu,  with  an  appetite  that  was  utterly 
unimpaired  through  monotony  of  diet. 

The  Kid  looked  up  from  her  food.  For  a  moment  her 
fond  eyes  dwelt  on  the  unkempt  ragamuffins  gathered 


144 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


about  the  table.  There  was  not  one  of  the  six  that  was 
without  individual  interest  for  her.  They  often  plagued 
her,  but  right  down  to  the  generally  incoherent  Jane 
Constance  they  looked  to  her  in  everything,  from  their 
games,  to  the  needs  of  their  growing  bodies.  She  loved 
them  all  for  just  what  they  were,  unkempt,  often  up  to 
their  eyes  in  dirt  and  mischief.  But  more  than  all  she 
loved  the  patient,  mild-eyed  woman  at  the  head  of  the 
crazy  table,  whose  purpose  in  life  seemed  to  be  the  whole 
and  complete  sacrifice  of  self. 

Her  gaze  wandered  over  the  mud-plastered  walls  of 
the  living  room  of  this  Indian-built  shauty.  Every  crack 
in  it,  every  uneven  contour  of  the  green  logs  of  which  it 
was  constructed,  was  known  to  her  by  heart.  There  were 
no  decorations.  There  were  no  other  furnishings  but  the 
table,  and  the  benches  on  which  the  children  sat  for  their 
food  and  lessons,  and  a  makeshift  cupboard  in  which 
were  stored  groceries,  and  such  domestic  articles  as 
Hesther  had  been  able  to  bring  with  her  from  the  Fort. 
It  was  all  crude.  It  was  all  unlovely,  except  for  the 
wealth  of  generous  humanity  it  sheltered.  But  every 
roughness  it  contained  was  bound  up  with  simple  happi¬ 
ness  for  the  girl,  and  the  memory  of  long  years  of 
childish  delights. 

“We're  going  to  give  it  two  years’  trial,  Mum,”  she 
said,  while  the  children’s  voices  were  held  silent.  “It’s 
the  best  we  can  do,  I  guess,  now  old  Ben’s  pulled  out. 
You’ll  have  to  make  out  the  best  you  know  while  Usak 
and  I  beat  down  the  river  to  Placer  once  a  year.  Maybe 
it  won’t  be  so  bad  for  you  now  with  Clarence  and  Alg. 
nearly  grown  men,  and  Mary  fit  to  run  the  whole  bunch 
herself.  If  things  don’t  get  worse,  and  we  make  good 
trade  in  Placer  I  guess  we’ll  scratch  along  right  here  till 
the  boys  are  full  grown.  Then  we’ll  see  the  thing  best  to 


REINDEER  FARM 


145 


be  done.  If  things  get  worse  Usak  wants  to  make 
McKenzie  River.  He’s  crazy  for  the  McKenzie  Valley. 
With  him  it’s  the  thing  to  fix  everything  right.” 

The  mild-eyed  mother  reached  out  with  a  handful  of 
apron  and  wiped  away  the  lavish  helping  of  stew  which 
had  embedded  itself  in  Jane  Constance’s  thick  brown 
curls.  The  smears  on  her  chubby  face  were  hopeless. 
They  could  remain  for  the  wash  tub  afterwards. 

“I  guess  it’s  what  you  say,  Kid,”  she  acquiesced.  “The 
good  God  gave  me  two  hands  and  the  will  to  work.  But 
I  guess  he  forgot  about  the  means  of  guessin’  right  when 
things  got  awry.  The  twins  are  some  men — now,”  she 
went  on  fondly,  gazing  with  pride  upon  Clarence  and 
Algernon,  with  his  fiery  red-head,  the  possession  of 
which  was  always  a  mystery  to  her  contented  mind. 
“We’ll  make  out.  Eh,  Mary?”  she  cried,  turning  to  the 
dark-eyed  girl  who  was  her  eldest  child.  “Things  don’t 
figger  to  worry  you  if  you  don’t  worry  them,  I  say. 
When  do  you  pull  out?” 

“When  the  breaking’s  through,  and  the  deer  are  ready 
for  the  winter  trail.  The  season’s  good  with  us  if  we 
could  only  get  the  pelts.  We’ve  more  deer  to  trade  than 
we’ve  ever  had  before.” 

Percy  looked  up,  his  grey  eyes  alight. 

“Why  don’t  we  quit  trade  and  chase  up  that  gold 
Usak’s  always  yarning  about,”  he  said  eagerly.  “It’s 
yours,  Kid.  Leastways  it  was  your  paw’s.  We  wouldn’t 
need  to  worry  with  furs  then.” 

The  boy  pushed  his  plate  away.  For  all  he  was  not 
yet  twelve,  gold  held  a  surpassing  fascination  for  his 
alert,  trading  mind. 

“I’m  all  for  the  gold,  Mum,”  he  went  on  soberly.  “An’ 
I’m  real  glad  old  Ben’s  gone.  Ther’s  no  one  around  but 
ourselves  now,  when  we  find  it.  Breeds  don’t  figger  in  it. 


10 


146 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


When  we  get  it  well  divide  it  all  up.  Kid’ll  have  most, 
’cos  it’s  hers,  anyway.  The  one  who  finds  it’ll  have  next. 
An’  Jane  don’t  need  any.  You  see,  she’s  a  fool  kid,  an’ 
would  maybe  try  to  eat  it.  Guess  I’m  goin’  to  find  it.” 

The  Kid  laughed,  and  exchanged  meaning  glances  with 
the  mother  across  the  table. 

“Can  you  beat  him?”  she  cried,  and  all  the  children 
laughed  with  her.  “He’s  arranged  for  the  finder  to  have 
next  most  to  me.  Say  Perse,  Mum  had  best  read  you  out 
of  the  Testament.  Ther’s  a  man  in  it  they  used  to  call 
Judas.  I  guess  you  ought  to  know  about  him.  Ther’s 
another  feller,  but  I  don’t  know  about  him.  He  was  in 
another  book.  He  was  the  same  sort  of  feller  only  not 
so  bad.  I  think  they  called  him  Shylock.  He’s  in  one  of 
old  Ben  Needham’s  books,  so  you  can’t  read  about  him.” 

“Don’t  want  to  anyway,”  retorted  the  unabashed  Perse. 
“Soon  as  I’m  as  big  as  Clarence  an’  Red-head  I’m  goin’ 
out  after  that  gold,  an’  I’ll  buy  you  all  a  swell  ranch  an’ 
fixings,  an’  give  you  all  you  want,  an’  Mum  won’t  have 
to  work  no  more.  I  reckon  Clarence  an’  Red-head  are 
kites.  Wish  I  was  big  as  them.” 

“Kite’s  nothin’ !”  Clarence  was  without  humour,  and 
took  his  small  brother  seriously.  “You’ll  do  the  chores 
same  as  us  when  you’re  big  as  us.  Ther’  ain’t  no  gold 
’cept  in  Usak’s  head.  Mum  said  the  Euralians  got  it 
years  back.  You’d  do  a  heap  better  gettin’  after  pelts 
same  as  us — only  we  can’t  get  ’em.  Gold — nothin’ !” 

Perse  thrust  his  empty  plate  towards  Mary  Justicia 
who  took  it  for  replenishment,  and  he  watched  while  his 
mother  wrung  the  small  nose  of  Jane  Constance  which 
had  got  mixed  up  with  her  stew. 

“When  Pm  growed  I  won’t  do  a  thing  I  can’t  do,”  he 
observed  graphically.  “If  ther’  ain’t  pelts  wot’s  the  use 
chasin’  ’em?  You  can’t  say  ther’  ain’t  gold  till  you  chased 


REINDEER  FARM  147 

it.  I’m  goin’  to  chase  that  gold,”  he  finished  up  stub¬ 
bornly. 

“Well,  it  doesn’t  matter  anyway  what  any  of  you  are 
going  to  do  in  the  future,”  the  Kid  said  with  finality. 
“Just  now  we’re  kind  of  up  against  it,  and  you’ve  all  got 
to  help  Mum  all  you  know.  Isn’t  that  so,  Mum?” 

Hesther  beamed  mildly  round  on  the  children,  not  one 
of  whom  she  would  have  been  without  for  all  the  world. 

“I  guess  that’s  so,”  she  said.  “We’re  all  goin’  to  do 
our  best,  sure.  That’s  what  God  set  us  to  do.  You  see, 
kids,  the  folk  who  do  the  best  that’s  in  ’em  mostly  get 
the  best  of  life.  An’  the  best  of  life  don’t  always  mean 
a  heap  of  gold,  an’  not  even  a  heap  of  pelts.  It  mostly 
means  a  happy  heart,  an’  a  healthy  body.  And  when  you 
die  it  ain’t  no  more  uncomfortable  or  worrying  than 
goin’  to  sleep  when  you’re  tired,  same  as  you  do  most 
every  night  when  the  flies  an’  skitters’ll  let  you.  Now 
if  you’re  all  through  we’ll  clean  up.  You  boys  see  an’ 
pass  Mary  Justicia  the  chattels,  an’  fix  ’em  dry  after 
she’s  swabbed  ’em  clean,  while  I  huyk  Jane  Constance 
from  under  the  stew  that’s  missed  her  mouth.  I  guess 
Gladys  Anne  needs  fixing  some  that  way,  too.  Perse, 
you  get  me  a  bucket  o’  water  an’  a  swab.  Maybe  I  won’t 
need  soap — we  ain’t  got  none  to  spare.” 


CHAPTER  IV 

WITHIN  THE  CIRCLE 

Bill  Wilder  was  squatting  on  a  boulder  under  cover  of 
the  stone-built  fortifications.  His  rifle  was  lying  in  an 
emplacement  overlooking  the  waterway  below.  His  grey 
eyes  were  pre-occupied,  searching  the  red,  sandy  fore¬ 
shore  across  the  river,  which  rose  gently,  baldly,  sloping 
steadily  upwards  to  the  boulder-strewn,  serrated  skyline 
beyond. 

Chilcoot  was  seated  near  by.  His  rifle  lay  in  another 
emplacement  ready  for  immediate  use.  He  was  chewing 
in  the  thoughtful  fashion  habitual  to  him,  even  under 
the  greatest  stress.  He,  too,  was  searching  the  far  side 
of  the  river.  His  gaze  was  no  less  intent.  It  was  the 
look  of  a  man  whose  habit  has  become  that  of  ceaseless 
watchfulness. 

“I  wish  I  hadn't  let  him  go  now.”  Wilder  spoke  with¬ 
out  turning.  It  was  almost  as  though  he  were  thinking 
aloud.  “He’s  a  crazy  sort  of  hot-head  who  can’t  sit 
around  when  ther’s  a  scrap  to  be  had.” 

Chilcoot  spat  through  the  loophole  with  great  exact¬ 
ness. 

“You  don’t  need  to  worry  for  Mike,”  he  said,  with  a 
short  laugh  that  was  not  intended  as  an  expression  of 
mirth.  “He’ll  get  along  when  he’s  through.  Ther’  ain’t 
the  darn  Euralian  born  that  could  chew  him  up.  He’s 

148 


WITHIN  THE  CIRCLE 


149 


spent  the  worst  part  of  a  rotten  bad  life  doin’  his  best 
to  lose  it  by  every  fool  play  Placer  could  offer  him — an’ 
failed.  I  guess  a  wild-cat’s  a  poor  sort  of  circumstance  in 
the  matter  of  lives  alongside  Mike.  I  don’t  worry  a 
thing.” 

“No.” 

The  break  in  their  silence  closed  up  at  once.  Chilcoot 
took  a  fresh  chew  and  wiped  the  mosquitoes  from  the 
back  of  his  neck.  Wilder  filled  his  pipe.  The  smell  of 
cooking  was  in  the  air.  There  were  others  lining  the 
fortifications  at  every  point,  and  one  or  two  men  were 
moving  about  the  camp  fire  behind  them.  But  for  all  the 
watch  at  the  outer  walls  the  place  suggested  noonday 
idleness.  Even  the  trail  dogs  were  drowsing  in  the  shade 
of  the  walls. 

The  Arctic  sun  shone  down  out  of  a  cloud-flecked  sky 
on  a  scene  of  barren  unloveliness.  Long  since  it  had 
burned  up  such  meagre  foliage  as  the  floods  of  spring 
had  made  possible.  The  whole  country-side  was  as  bald 
as  an  African  sand  desert.  The  blaze  of  miniature  spring 
flowers  had  been  swept  away,  and  the  dried  grass  was  as 
brown  and  wiry  as  the  sparse  bristles  on  the  back  of 
some  hoary  hog.  Even  the  lichens  which  flourished  on  the 
low,  rock  formations  of  which  the  whole  country  of 
this  northern  river  was  composed,  were  in  little  better 
case.  Utter  sterility  lay  in  every  direction.  The  desola¬ 
tion,  the  heat,  the  flies,  the  mosquitoes,  these  things  made 
for  a  condition  that  was  well  nigh  intolerable. 

The  camp  was  set  at  the  far  headwaters  of  Loon  Creek. 
It  was  nominally  a  gold  camp;  in  reality  it  had  little  to 
do  with  anything  but  defence.  It  was  a  veritable  fortress 
built  out  of  the  millions  of  storm-worn  boulders  that 
littered  the  region.  A  wide,  encompassing  stone  corral, 
nearly  ten  feet  high,  formed  the  outer  defence,  which,  in 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


150 

turn,  contained  a  stout,  similarly  built  citadel  which 
sheltered  quarters  for  men  and  dogs,  and  the  stores  and 
gear  of  the  outfit. 

Bill  Wilder  and  his  men  had  embarked  on  their  ex¬ 
pedition  with  no  greater  concern  than  had  usually  been 
the  case  when  the  magic  of  gold  had  been  the  sole  lure. 
George  Raymes  had  despatched  him  to  these  uncharted 
regions  with  a  curiosity  deeply  stirred,  but  with  the  gold 
fever  burning  fiercely  in  his  veins.  And  Wilder  had 
prepared  for  every  emergency,  but  always  with  a  smile 
of  deprecation  for  the  extent  of  the  war-like  stores  which 
the  police  officer  insisted  were  absolutely  necessary.  Now 
he  was  more  than  thankful  for  the  foresight  of  the  man 
who  had  some  twenty-five  years  of  police  experience 
behind  him. 

He  was  under  no  illusion  now  after  a  year  of  this 
deplorable  territory.  None  of  the  men  with  him  had 
any  illusion  either.  The  lure  of  gold  may  have  been  the 
original  inspiration  with  them,  but  from  the  moment  of 
embarking  upon  the  waters  of  Loon  Creek  it  had  been 
swept  from  their  minds  in  the  fight  for  their  very  ex¬ 
istence  that  was  swiftly  forced  upon  them.  For  all  they 
only  contemplated  the  pursuit  of  a  legitimate  calling  in 
their  own  Canadian  territory  they  found  themselves  cut 
off  by  many  hundreds  of  miles  from  all  help  in  a  country 
peopled  by  a  race  of  beings  who  were  furiously  hostile. 

All  through  the  previous  summer  the  war  had  been 
waged.  It  had  been  a  heart-breaking  guerilla  warfare 
that  knew  no  cessation.  The  mysterious  enemy  seemed 
to  be  waiting  for  them  at  every  possible  point  along  the 
river,  and  in  each  and  every  case  the  resulting  fight  was 
of  that  comparatively  long  range  character  that  was 
more  irritating  than  disastrous. 

The  Euralians  were  past  masters  in  the  art  of  challeng- 


WITHIN  THE  CIRCLE 


151 

ing  Wilder’s  progress.  They  never  offered  a  pitched 
battle.  They  attacked  at  a  distance  with  rifle  and  soft- 
nosed  bullet,  and  the  pin-pricking  of  it  was  like  the  mad¬ 
dening  attacks  of  the  swarming  mosquitoes.  The  whole 
thing  was  amazingly  well-calculated.  There  was  no  re¬ 
spite,  there  was  not  a  moment  in  which  the  creek  could 
be  adequately  explored  for  gold.  The  expedition  was 
forced  to  defence  almost  every  hour  of  the  unending 
daylight. 

In  this  fashion,  during  the  first  summer,  the  head¬ 
waters  of  the  creek  had  been  reached.  But  they  had  been 
reached  with  barely  time  to  build  winter  quarters  before 
the  freeze  up  and  the  long  night  of  winter  descended 
upon  the  world. 

With  the  closing  in  of  the  Arctic  night  hostilities 
ceased  as  far  as  the  human  enemy  was  concerned.  The 
Euralians  fled  before  the  overwhelming  forces  which 
Nature  was  about  to  turn  loose.  Perhaps  they  under¬ 
stood  the  terror  which  the  intruders  would  be  forced  to 
endure  on  these  barren  lands  where  shelter  was  unknown. 
Perhaps  they  considered  it  sufficient.  Perhaps  they  feared 
for  themselves  the  ferocity  of  the  Arctic  night.  Doubt¬ 
less  they  were  simply  satisfied  that  their  prey  was  held 
fast,  a  helpless  prisoner  within  the  walls  of  the  strong¬ 
hold  he  had  set  up  in  defence,  and  was  powerless  to 
operate  in  any  of  the  desired  directions.  At  any  rate 
Wilder  was  left  unmolested  in  the  grip  of  the  northern 
man’s  natural  enemy. 

It  had  been  a  desperate  time  in  which  the  intensity  of 
cold  was  the  least  of  many  hardships.  Fuel  had  been 
scarce  enough,  but  sufficient  driftwood  and  masses  of 
dried  lichen  had  been  collected  to  make  life  possible.  So 
the  expedition  had  endured  through  alternating  periods 
of  snow-storm  and  blizzard,  when  the  blackness  of  the 


152 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


northern  night  could  well-nigh  be  felt.  Then  had  come 
those  brilliant  intervals  of  starlight  when  the  twilight 
grew  under  the  splendour  of  a  blazing  aurora,  and  the 
temperature  dropped,  dropped  till  the  depths  of  cold 
seemed  illimitable. 

It  was  in  these  extremities  that  the  whiteman  displayed 
his  right  to  his  position  in  the  scheme  of  life.  An  iron 
discipline  ruled  the  camp,  and  never  for  a  moment  was 
it  relaxed.  Never  was  the  mind  permitted  to  drift  from 
the  appointed  labours.  Storm  or  calm  it  was  the  same. 
For  Bill  Wilder,  and  Chilcoot,  and  even  the  hot-head, 
Red  Mike  knew  that  it  was  work,  or  the  complete 
disintegration  of  the  will  to  endure,  which,  in  turn,  would 
mean  disruption  and  final  disaster  to  the  whole  of  their 
outfit. 

So  desperate  was  the  interminable  winter  that  every 
man  of  the  outfit  welcomed  the  deluge  of  spring  with  its 
promptly  swarming  flies  and  mosquitoes,  and  the  re¬ 
opening  of  hostilities  with  their  almost  unseen  human 
enemy.  Within  a  month  summer  was  upon  them,  and 
the  previous  summer’s  battle  was  again  in  full  swing. 
So  it  had  gone  on.  And  now  at  last  the  wear  and  futility 
of  it  all  was  beginning  to  have  its  effect.  The  expedition 
had  endured  for  a  year  under  conditions  almost  un¬ 
endurable.  And  during  the  whole  of  that  period  not  one 
single  detail  of  its  original  purpose  had  been  achieved. 

Gold?  It  was  the  last  thing  in  their  thoughts  now. 
And  as  for  the  Euralians,  with  whom  they  had  been  in 
fighting  contact  for  at  least  half  the  time,  their  identity, 
their  personality  was  the  same  sealed  book  to  Wilder 
that  it  had  been  before  he  had  listened  to  their  story  from 
the  lips  of  George  Raymes.  They  had  never  yet  made 
one  single  prisoner,  or  possessed  themselves  of  the  slain 
body  of  a  single  victim  of  their  rifles.  No  member  of  the 


WITHIN  THE  CIRCLE 


153 


outfit  had  as  yet  more  than  a  rifle  shot  view  of  these 
savages,  who  so  skilfully  avoided  contact  while  yet 
prosecuting  their  warfare. 

Chilcoot  regarded  his  leader  and  friend  with  eyes  that 
twinkled  for  all  they  were  serious. 

“No.  Not  for  him,”  he  said  provocatively. 

Wilder  lit  his  pipe.  Then  he  reached  out  and  opened 
the  breech  of  his  rifle  to  let  the  air  pass  through  the  fouled 
barrel. 

“Guess  that’s  a  qualification,”  he  said  regarding  the 
weapon  in  his  hand. 

“Sure,”  Chilcoot  again  laughed  shortly.  “Ther’s 
bigger  things  to  worry  for  than  Red  Mike — crazy  as  he 
is.” 

Wilder  nodded.  He  laid  his  rifle  back  in  its  place  with 
the  breech  closed,  and  a  fresh  clip  of  cartridges  in  its 
magazine. 

“The  boys  are  worrying,  an’  it  ain’t  good.  Buck 
Maberley  told  me  a  bunch  of  stuff,”  the  other  went  on. 
“But  it  ain’t  the  trouble  they’re  liable  to  make.  We  ken 
fix  that  sort  o’  junk  easy — up  here.  No.  They’ve  a 
reas’nable  grouch  though.  For  once  their  fool  brains 
are  leaking  something  better  than  Placer  hooch.  I  guess 
they’re  askin’  each  other  the  questions  you  an’  me  have 
been  askin’  ourselves  without  makin’  a  shout  of  it.  And 
they’re  mostly  finding  the  same  asnwer  we  get.  They’re 
guessing  if  we  lie  around  here  about  another  month, 
makin’  target  practice  for  them  crazy  foreign  Injuns  we 
look  like  takin’  a  big  chance  of  never  hitting  up  against 
Placer  hooch  ever  again.  Which  is  only  another  way  o’ 
sayin’  winter’ll  fall  on  us  before  we  can  get  back  on  to  the 
Hekor,  an’  if  we’ve  the  grub  we  ain’t  got  the  guts  to  see 
it  through.  You  see,  it  would  be  kind  o’  different  if  we’d 
the  colour  of  gold  to  sort  of  cheer  us  up.  But  what  spare 


154 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


time  those  blamed  Injuns  leave  the  boys  they  spend  in 
panning  river  dirt  for  the  stuff  it  never  heard  about  since 
ever  the  world  began.  An’  they’re  sick  to  death  matin’ 
fools  of  their  better  judgment.  Curse  the  skitters.” 

Again  Chilcoot  brushed  his  hand  across  his  blistered 
neck  and  wiped  its  palm  on  his  moleskin  trouser  leg. 

Wilder  nodded  as  he,  too,  strove  to  rid  himself  of  the 
insect  attacks. 

“We’ll  have  to  beat  it,”  he  said  with  a  sigh  of  regret, 
but  with  decision.  “I  hate  quitting,”  he  went  on  a  little 
gloomily.  “I  wouldn’t  say  you’re  right,  boy,  ther’s  no 
♦  gold  on  this  river.  But  we  can’t  get  after  it  right.  If  the 
stuff  right  down  here  on  the  river  in  front  of  us  ain’t 
pay  dirt  I’m  all  sorts  of  a  sucker.  But  it  don’t  matter. 
These  cursed  Euralians  have  got  us  dead  set  so  we  can’t 
shake  a  pan  right.  We’re  beat.  Plumb  beat.  They  got 
us  worried  and  guessing,  which  in  a  territory  like  this, 
means — finished.  Man,  I’m  sick  to  death  of  the  bald 
hummocks  and  the  flies.  Another  winter  up  here  would 
get  me  yeppin’  around  like  a  crazy  coyote.” 

Chilcoot  had  turned  back  to  his  watch  on  the  river. 

“Yep,”  he  agreed,  relieved  at  his  chief’s  swift  decision. 
“When’ll  we  pull  out?” 

“Right  after  Red  Mike  gets  back.” 

The  men  continued  their  vigil  in  silence  for  awhile. 
The  contemplation  of  retreat,  the  acknowledgment  of 
defeat  were  things  that  affected  them  deeply.  Both  were 
of  a  keen  fighting  disposition.  But  their  inclinations  were 
coldly  tempered  by  the  experience  and  wisdom  which  in 
earlier  days  must  have  been  impossible. 

“You  know,  boy,”  Wilder  went  on  presently,  in  the 
contemplative  fashion  of  a  mind  groping,  “these  Indians 
have  got  me  guessing  harder  than  I’ve  ever  guessed  in 
my  life.  It’s  up  to  us  handing  a  report  to  old  Raymes 


WITHIN  THE  CIRCLE 


155 


when  we  get  along  down.  Well,  I  guess  if  I  was  to  pass 
him  haf  the  stuff  jangling  around  in  my  head,  I’d  be 
liable  to  get  a  laugh  from  our  superior  that  ud  make  me 
want  to  commit  murder.  These  darn  neches  are  fighting 
like  Prussian  Junkers.  They’re  armed  like  Bolsheviks. 
And  they’re  using  the  soft-nosed  slugs  you’d  reckon  to 
find  in  the  hands  of  modern  Communists.  Here  they 
are  thousands  of  miles  beyond  the  reach  of  the  folk  who 
could  hand  ’em  that  stuff.  Yet  they’ve  got  it  plenty,  and 
know  every  darn  move  in  the  game  played  by  European 
armies.  Say,  it  wouldn’t  stagger  me  to  find  our  fort 
doused  with  poison  gas.” 

Chilcoot  spat  with  unnecessary  vigour. 

“You’re  guessin’  ther’s  something  white  behind  ’em?” 
he  said  sharply. 

“White?”  Wilder  laughed.  Pie  shook  his  head. 
“Maybe  though,”  he  said,  “the  thing  that  would  best 
please  me  just  now  would  be  for  that  darnation  Irishman 
to  bring  us  in  a  prisoner.  Say,  has  it  hit  you  we’ve 
never  got  a  close  sight  of  these  folks.  Have  you  dis¬ 
covered  that  looking  at  results  it  looks  like  we’ve  never 
killed  one  blamed  rascal  of  ’em,  and  yet  we  reckon  to 
carry  with  us  some  of  the  best  artists  with  a  rifle  this 
darned  country  possesses.  We’ve  had  hundreds  of  brown¬ 
faced  targets  for  ’em,  too.  What  does  it  mean?  Why 
just  this.  Dead  or  alive  these  neches  don’t  mean  us  to 
get  a  close  view  of  their  men.  They’re  afraid  for  a 
whiteman  to — recognise  them.  Well?”  He  laughed 
again.  “Say,  ther’s  a  big  play  behind  this  thing,  and 
we  haven’t  begun  to  discover  it.  I’m  not  through  with 
it.  But  I’m  going  to  beat  it  down  to  the  Hekor  right 
away,  and  get  a  look  into  it  from  another  angle.  Raymes 
was  right.  It  looks  to  me  as  if  the  feller  who  solves  the 
riddle  of  these — Euralians — is  doing  something  mighty 


156 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


good  for  a  whiteman’s  country.  The  gold’s  quit  worry¬ 
ing  me  a  little  bit.  Say — ” 

He  broke  off  and  gazed  musingly  over  the  glittering 
waters  of  the  river,  which  was  visible  for  miles  away  to 
the  north  in  the  flat,  barren  country  through  which  it 
meandered. 

Chilcoot  waited.  His  friend’s  unusual  burst  of  con¬ 
fidence  was  not  a  thing  he  desired  to  interrupt.  Besides 
he  had  voiced  much  of  the  thing  that  had  disturbed  his 
less  sensitive  mind.  So  he  went  on  chewing  with  his  eyes 
glued  to  the  opposite  shore. 

“You  know,  boy,  we’d  have  done  well  to  have  kept 
touch  with  that  dandy  Kid  we  found  at  the  mouth  of  the 
Caribou,”  Wilder  continued.  “I’ve  the  notion  that  bright 
girl  was  wiser  to  the  things  up  this  way  than  that  factor 
feller.  An’  certainly  wiser  than  George  Raymes.  She 
said  she  was  born  an’  raised  on  the  river.  I  wonder.  I 
guess  I’ve  been  wondering  ever  since.  You  know  there’s 
more  to  this  play  of  ours  than  gold,  an’  Euralians  an’ 
things.  There’s  a  ‘girl  child — white.’  You  remember?” 

Chilcoot’s  eyes  were  grinning  into  the  other’s  face  as 
Wilder  broke  off.  He  nodded. 

“Sure  I  do.  She’s  surely  a  dandy  Kid,”  he  said. 

His  grin  passed,  and  seriousness  replaced  it. 

“But  she’d  got  six  brothers  an’  sisters  an’  a  mother,  an’ 
I  don’t  remember  that  Raymes  said  a  word  about  them. 
You  were  feelin’  particular  not  to  ast  questions  of  her. 
Well,  I  guess  it  was  a  pity.  Ben  Needham  never  passed 
us  a  hint  of  her,  either.  Say,  this  is  the  queerest  darn 
country.  It  hides  up  a  whole  heap  of  queer  things. 
Guess  it’s  that  gets  hold  of  us  mutts  who  waste  precious 
years  trying  to  beat  it.  We  can  locate  that  Kid  passing 
down  river,  though.  An’  maybe  you’ll  feel  less  a’mighty 
delicate  astin’  questions.” 


WITHIN  THE  CIRCLE 


157 


“Yes.  I  fixed  to  do  that.” 

“I  guessed  so.  I — Say,  ther’s  Mike  beating  it  for 
home.” 

Chilcoot  stood  up  as  he  spoke  and  leant  over  the  hot 
stone  parapet.  He  was  searching  the  canoe  which  had 
suddenly  appeared  driving  down  the  sluggish  stream  from 
the  north. 

Wilder,  too,  had  risen  to  his  feet.  He  was  looking  for 
the  desired  prisoner  in  the  boat.  He  counted  the  oc¬ 
cupants.  There  were  four.  Only  four.  And  that  was 
the  number  the  Irishman  had  set  out  with.  No.  There 
was  no  prisoner.  The  men  in  the  boat  were  all  whitemen. 
There  could  be  no  doubt  about  it.  Nor  was  there  any 
sign  of  a  wounded  man  lying  in  the  bottom  of  the  little 
craft. 

“The  same  old  story,”  Wilder  grumbled. 

“Meaning?” 

“They’re  coming  back  empty — Gee!” 

A  shot  rang  out.  It  was  followed  by  another  and 
another.  The  men  at  the  fort  saw  the  water  splash  about 
the  canoe  where  the  bullets  took  effect.  But  the  boat 
came  on  through  the  sudden  hail,  and  the  men  at  the 
paddles  remained  unscathed. 

“That’s  Indian  shooting,”  Chilcoot  exclaimed  con¬ 
temptuously.  Then  in  a  tone  of  deep  regret.  “If  those 
guys  would  only  give  our  boys  such  a  target.” 

“That’s  so.”  Bill  stood  with  his  rifle  ready,  waiting 
for  a  sign  of  the  lurking  enemy.  “That  boat  would  never 
make  the  bank  if  it  was  full  of  Euralians.  It  makes  you 
think  they  aren’t  yearning  to  kill.  Only  to  worry.  Come 
on.  Let’s  go  down  and  get  Mike’s  news.” 

Wilder’s  outfit  was  lying  moored  and  camped  at  the 
mouth  of  Loon  Creek  where  its  waters  debouched  on  the 


158  THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 

broad  course  of  the  Hekor.  The  barrens  were  left  far 
behind,  and  these  men  had  come  again  to  a  country  where 
shade  from  the  blistering  sunlight  was  to  be  found  in 
occasional  bluffs  of  forest,  and  where  there  was  complete 
rest  from  the  curiously  unnerving  warfare  they  had  so 
long  endured. 

The  camp  was  pitched  on  a  great  spit  of  land  sup¬ 
porting  a  dwarfed,  windswept  bluff  of  forest  trees.  The 
shade  from  the  burning  sun  was  more  than  welcome  for 
all  the  haunting  mosquitoes  made  it  their  camping  ground 
too.  Great  smudge  fires  of  dank  vegetation  and  lichen 
had  been  lit,  and,  for  the  moment,  even  insect  hostilities 
had  ceased.  The  canoes  had  been  safely  stowed  for  the 
night,  and  the  men  sat  around  in  the  drifting  smoke 
after  their  supper,  while  the  trail  dogs  prowled  in  search 
of  any  refuse  which  the  meal  of  their  human  masters 
provided. 

For  all  it  was  night,  and  rest  and  sleep  lay  ahead,  the 
sun  had  only  changed  its  position  in  the  sky  and  daylight 
was  unabated.  It  might  have  been  high  noon  from  the 
unshadowed  brilliance  of  the  world  about  them.  As 
Red  Mike  had  once  said  in  his  graphic  complaining :  “God 
A’mighty  created  the  summer  sun,  but  the  Divil  set  it 
afire  to  burn  everlastin’  north  of  60  degrees.” 

The  three  leaders  were  squatting  on  their  outspread 
blankets  in  the  shade  cast  by  a  small  clump  of  storm- 
driven  spruce.  They  were  luxuriating  in  the  smoke  of 
three  smudge  fires  set  triangularly  about  them.  Each 
was  clad  as  lightly  as  circumstances  would  permit.  Cot¬ 
ton  shirts  and  hard  moleskin  trousers  belted  about  their 
waists  was  all  and  more  than  sufficient.  Their  arms  and 
chests  were  bare.  Each  man  was  smoking  a  reeking  pipe, 
and  a  curiously  fascinating,  somnolent  atmosphere  pre¬ 
vailed  over  the  camp.  It  was  the  quiet  of  physical  repose 


WITHIN  THE  CIRCLE 


159 

after  heavy  labour,  intensified  by  the  Nature  sounds 
which  are  never  absent  in  the  northern  wilderness. 

Red  Mike  chuckled  in  his  irrepressible  fashion,  and 
Wilder  and  Chilcoot  turned  their  reflective  eyes  in¬ 
quiringly  on  his  grinning  countenance. 

“Say,  it’s  a  night — if  you  can  call  it  night  with  hell's 
own  sun  burning  blisters  on  the  water — for  re  jokin',” 
he  said.  “Is  it  a  drop  o’  the  stuff  you’re  goin’  to  open, 
Bill  Wilder?  Or  has  the  water  wagon  got  you  still  tied 
to  its  tail?  Man,  I  could  drink  the  worst  home-brew 
ever  came  out  of  a  prohibition  State.” 

Wilder  hunched  himself  up  with  his  hands  locked  about 
his  knees,  and  a  faint  smile  of  derision  lit  his  steady  eyes. 

“Rejoicing?”  he  said.  “I  don't  get  you,  Mike.” 

The  Irishman’s  blue  eyes  widened  good-humouredly. 

“Ther's  folks  never  made  to  rec’nize  the  time  for 
rejoicin',  'less  it's  set  for  'em  by  politician-made  law.  It 
seems  to  me  I  remember  the  time  when  Bill  Wilder  didn’t 
need  the  other  feller  to  learn  him  that  way.  Say,  we  come 
down  that  mud-bottomed  creek  nigh  two-hundred  an’  fifty 
mile  without  a  shot  fired.  From  the  moment  we  broke 
that  crazy  camp  we  set  up  to  hold  our  place  on  the  map 
of  this  fool  country  them  Euralians  quit  us  cold.  Guess 
they  said,  ‘The  gophers  are  on  the  run,  let  ’em  beat  it. 
They're  quittin',  an’  we  ain’t  got  time  worritin’  with 
quitters.’  So  they  handed  us  an  elegant  sort  o’  Sunday 
School  picnic  passin’  down  stream,  makin’  twenty-five 
a  day  without  puttin’  the  weight  of  a  fly  on  the  paddles. 
Well?  Ain’t  it  time  fer  rejoicin’?  Here  we  are  right 
back  in  a  territory  that  looks  almost  good  to  me  after 
those  blazin’  barrens  we  left  behind.  We’re  right  back 
with  whole  skins  by  courtesy  of  a  bunch  of  dirty  neches.” 
He  laughed  again.  “It’s  sure  time  to — celebrate.” 

It  was  Chilcoot  who  replied  to  him.  And  his  retort 


160  THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 

came  in  the  sharp  tones  of  a  man  unable  to  appreciate 
the  raillery  of  the  Irishman. 

“We  ain’t  quittin’  them  neches,”  he  said,  his  deep-set 
eyes  snapping.  “Guess  our  work’s  only  started.  But 
you’re  right.  It’s  time  to  rejoice  when  we  quit,  which 
won’t  be  this  side  of  winter.  If  you’d  hoss  sense  you’d 
know  we're  out-fitted  for — three  years.  Guess  Bill  here 
ain’t  openin’  any  old  corks  till  we’re  through.’’ 

Mike  sobered  on  the  instant.  He  turned  to  Wilder. 

“What  comes  next,  boss?”  he  asked  shortly. 

Wilder  nodded  his  head  towards  the  great  hills  in  the 
west. 

“The  Hekor,  Mike,”  he  said  seriously.  “Ther’s  no 
home  run  yet.  There’s  nearly  four  months  to  the  freeze 
up,  an’  we  pull  out  of  here,  west,  after  we’ve  slept.  We’re 
making  west  to  the  headwaters,  an’  to  get  a  look  at  the 
hill  country.  Ther’s  gold  around  somewhere,  and  there 
are  those  neches — as  you  choose  to  call  ’em.  We  aren’t 
‘quitting’  till  we  know  more  about  both.” 

•  •••••  o 

It  was  a  scene  which  years  before  other  eyes  had  gazed 
upon.  It  was  the  canyon  of  the  Grand  Falls  where  the 
Hekor  fell  off  the  highlands  of  the  Alaskan  hills.  Wilder 
and  his  men  were  ashore  at  the  only  landing  available, 
and  again  it  was  a  landing  which  had  been  used  by 
another  years  before. 

The  gold  man  and  his  fellows  were  fascinated  by  the 
tremendous  grandeur  of  the  canyon,  with  the  dull  roar  of 
great  waters  coming  back  to  them  out  of  the  dense  clouds 
of  spray  which  enveloped  the  far  distance  of  the  straight 
hewn  rift  down  which  the  surge  of  dark  waters  rushed. 

“We  can’t  make  that  stuff,”  Chilcoot  demurred,  his 
eyes  on  the  turbulent  race  of  water  which  the  canyon 
disgorged. 


WITHIN  THE  CIRCLE 


161 


“We  aren’t  going  to  attempt  it.”  Wildei  shrugged. 

He  turned  to  Mike  who  stood  gazing  out  into  the  far 
distance  absorbed  by  the  magnificence  which  so  deeply 
appealed  to  his  Gallic  imagination. 

“We  got  to  see  the  thing  lying  back  of  those  Falls,” 
he  said  pointing.  “Will  you  make  it,  Mike?  Will  you 
make  it  with  Chilcoot  and  me?  We  can  leave  camp  to 
Buck  Maberley.  He  can  handle  the  boys  good,  and  you 
can  put  it  up  to  him.  I  guess  it  means  a  portage  up  there. 
Then — Well,  who  knows?  Maybe  we’ll  be  back  here  in 
two  weeks.  Maybe  two  months.  I’ve  got  a  notion,  and 
I’ve  got  to  put  it  through.  That  territory  out  there  is 
Alaskan,  and  I  want  to  get  a  look.  Are  you  falling  for 
it?  I  want  the  answer  right  now.  I’m  guessing  all  the 
time.  I  don’t  know  a  thing.  But  I’ve  got  to  get  a  look 
back  of  those  Falls.  Well?” 

Mike’s  gaze  remained  on  the  distance.  The  fascina¬ 
tion  of  it  refused  to  release  him.  He  replied  without 
turning. 

“Sure  boss,”  he  said  simply.  Then  he  added  whimsi¬ 
cally  “I’ll  fall  for  water — like  that.” 

And  Chilcoot  laughed.  Even  he  found  the  frank 
admission  of  the  red-headed  creature’s  weakness 
irresistible. 


CHAPTER  V 

THE  HOUSE  IN  THE  VALLEY  OF  THE  FIRE  HILLS 

Squat,  broad,  watchful  Chilcoot  Massy  was  standing  on 
a  crazy,  log-built  landing  which  the  years  had  rotted  and 
iclad  with  dank  mosses  and  leathery  fungus.  His  deep- 
set  eyes  were  full  of  wondering  curiosity.  For  the  mo¬ 
ment  his  work  was  standing  guard  over  the  canoe  which 
was  moored  to  the  landing,  and  which  was  the  only  means 
by  which  he  and  his  companions  could  hope  to  return  in 
safety  to  Buck  Maberley  and  the  rest  of  the  outfit  en¬ 
camped  three  weeks’  journey  away  below  the  Falls  of  the 
Hekor  River. 

Bill  Wilder  and  Red  Mike  had  been  away  a  full  hour 
or  more.  They  had  gone  to  search  the  woods  which  came 
down  almost  to  the  water’s  edge.  They  had  gone  to  re¬ 
connoitre  the  crowning  discovery  which  the  search  be¬ 
hind  the  Falls  had  yielded  them. 

Chilcoot  had  spent  his  time  usefully.  With  his  friends’ 
going  he  had  turned  his  attention  first  to  the  human  signs 
about  him.  They  had  not  been  many,  but  they  had  been 
such  as  he  could  read  out  of  his  wide  experience.  The 
rusted  mooring  rings  on  the  landing  told  of  comparatively 
recent  use.  The  moss  and  fungus  had  been  trodden  by 
other  feet  than  his  own  and  those  of  his  companions. 
Then,  on  the  bank,  there  were  the  ashes  of  camp  fires, 
and  a  certain  amount  of  litter  which  camping  never  fails 

162 


THE  HOUSE  IN  THE  VALLEY 


163 

to  leave  behind  it.  There  was  no  doubt  in  his  mind.  For 
all  the  landing  was  more  or  less  derelict,  it  was  still  a  place 
of  call  for  those  who  used  this  hidden  waterway. 

Chilcoot  regretted  not  one  moment  of  the  labours  of 
the  past  three  weeks.  The  portage  up  the  canyon  of  the 
Falls  of  the  Hekor  River  had  been  gruelling.  But  com¬ 
pensation  had  awaited  them.  The  grandeur  of  the  scene, 
the  immensity  of  the  Falls  had  been  something  over¬ 
whelming.  He  had  seen  nothing  comparable  with  either. 
Then  had  come  the  journey  up  the  wide  river  above  them, 
and  ultimately  the  lake  supported  high  up  in  a  cup  formed 
by  the  snow-clad  hills.  He  had  felt,  if  no  other  purpose 
had  been  achieved,  the  wonders  of  this  rugged  hill  coun¬ 
try  were  amply  worth  while.  But  the  ultimate  discovery 
of  the  hidden  channel,  debouching  into  the  lake  through 
a  narrow,  twisted  canyon  cut  through  the  walls  of  the 
surrounding  hills,  which  had  brought  them  to  the  strange, 
super-heated,  mysterious  Valley  of  the  Fire  Hills,  had 
changed  his  entire  estimate  of  the  reckless  journey  upon 
which  Wilder  had  embarked.  Out  of  his  long  experi¬ 
ence  of  the  northern  world  he  realised  that  here  was  a 
discovery  of  real  importance. 

First  it  had  been  the  curious  black  sand  bed,  over  which 
the  sluggish,  oily  waters  of  the  creek  flowed,  that  had 
caught  and  riveted  his  attention.  Then  had  come  the 
black  slopes  of  the  three  smoking  hills.  But,  at  last,  when 
they  reached  the  human  construction  of  the  lumber-built 
landing,  and  glimpsed  the  lofty  watch  tower,  erected 
within  the  heart  of  the  woods  just  inland  of  it,  he  realised 
something  of  the  real  meaning  of  the  thing  they  had 
chanced  upon.  There  was  nothing  of  Indian  or  Eskimo 
about  the  landing.  No  watch  tower  such  as  they  had 
sighted  above  the  tree-tops  owed  its  origin  to  savage  ideas 
of  defence  or  construction.  No.  Here  was  habitation 


164 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


deeply  hidden  with  more  than  native  cunning.  Here  was 
something  which  pointed,  in  conjunction  with  the  curious 
features  of  the  creek,  to  whiteman  enterprise  of  some 
serious  commercial  value.  So,  in  an  atmosphere  of  suffo¬ 
cating  humidity,  he  was  waiting,  keeping  guard  upon  the 
canoe,  lest,  as  in  the  past,  they  were  to  find  themselves 
again  in  hostile  territory. 

Having  explored  the  signs  about  him  he  remained  gaz¬ 
ing  down  upon  the  black  sand  bordering  the  sluggish 
waters,  and  thought  and  speculation  ran  on  while  he 
searched  as  far  as  he  could  see  up  and  down  the  creek. 
Was  he  dreaming?  Was  it  all  fancy?  Would  he  waken 
presently  to  the  rock-littered  country  of  the  “barrens” 
on  Loon  Creek  ? 

No.  He  gazed  out  at  the  distant  smoke  cloud  over¬ 
hanging  the  valley,  and  shook  his  head  in  answer  to  his 
unvoiced  questions.  No.  There  was  no  fancy  to  any  of 
it.  It  was  real.  Amazingly  real.  The  valley  was  no 
magic,  but  a  substantial  reality  of  Nature. 

Memory  was  stirring.  Other  scenes  and  other  times 
had  come  back  to  him.  He  remembered  his  early  days  on 
the  McKenzie.  He  remembered  the  tar-sands  which  were 
common  enough  along  its  almost  illimitable  course.  He 
remembered  the  queer  of  it.  How  the  precious  liquid  tar 
oozed  up  through  the  sand  and  settled  into  great  pools. 
He  remembered  the  curious  jets  of  gas  which  spouted 
through  the  sand,  and  how  they  used  to  set  fire  to  them, 
and  cook  by  the  flame,  and  heat  the  tar  with  which  they 
smeared  the  bottoms  of  their  light  kyaks.  He  remem¬ 
bered  how  the  Indians  and  Breeds  did  the  same  thing,  and 
had  done  so  throughout  the  centuries.  The  thing  which 
chance  had  now  found  for  them  was  something  of  the 
same.  Here  was  a  valley  whose  heart  was  flooded  with 
coal  tar  and  oil.  Oil?  To  judge  by  the  signs  all  down 


THE  HOUSE  IN  THE  VALLEY  165 

the  length  of  the  valley  they  had  so  far  traversed,  there 
should  be  supplies  of  oil  sufficient  for  the  world’s  needs 
for  years.  The  secret  of  the  habitation  which  his  com¬ 
rades  had  gone  to  reconnoitre  was  no  longer  a  secret  in 
his  estimation.  Somewhere  along  this  creek  must  be 
commercial  workings  of  the  precious  material  with  which 
he  judged  the  region  to  be  flooded.  Who?  Who?  His 
mind  groped  along  every  channel  for  an  explanation. 
Whiteman?  Perhaps.  Euralian?  Lie  left  his  final  ques¬ 
tion  without  an  answer. 


“  ’Str 

Mike  laid  a  detaining  hand  on  the  arm  of  Wilder. 
They  were  moving  cautiously  through  the  woods  skirt¬ 
ing  the  clearing  in  which  the  great,  sprawling,  log-built 
house  stood. 

“What  is  it?” 

Wilder  had  halted  in  response  to  the  Irishman’s  ges¬ 
ture,  and  whispered  back  his  inquiry  with  some  impa¬ 
tience. 

“Someone  behind  us.”  The  eyes  of  the  other  were 
searching  amongst  the  trees  and  undergrowth  through 
which  they  had  just  passed.  “Guess  the  bush  broke  twice. 
It’s  no  sort  of  fancy.  Ther’s  someone - ” 

He  broke  off  listening,  and  Wilder  distinctly  recognised 
the  faint  snapping  of  brushwood  somewhere  away  in  rear 
of  them. 

They  waited.  But  as  no  further  sound  was  forthcom¬ 
ing  Wilder  shrugged  his  shoulders  and  nodded  in  the  di¬ 
rection  of  the  clearing. 

“Guess  we  can’t  worry  with  that,”  he  said,  his  eyes 
regarding  the  pile  of  buildings  upon  which  the  sunlight 
was  pouring.  “There’s  not  a  soul  around  that  house  any- 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


1 66 

way,  so  far  as  I  can  see.  Guess  there  isn’t  even  a  cur 
dog.  We  best  quit  this  wood,  and  make  a  break  for  it. 
We  got  to  know  who  lives  there.  And  it  don’t  much 
matter  how  they  take  our  visit.  You  got  your  guns  fixed 
right?” 

The  Irishman  chuckled  in  his  light-hearted  fashion. 
The  invasion  of  the  house  appealed  to  his  reckless  spirit. 
His  fighting  temper  made  him  hope,  and  his  hope  found 
swift  expression. 

“I’ll  be  sick  to  death  if  it’s  white  folk,”  he  said.  “I’m 
yearning  to  hit  up  against  some  of  the  Euralian  gang. 
Come  right  on,  boss.  I’m  your  man  if  you’re  goin’  to 
break  in  on  ’em.  My  guns  are  sure  fixed.” 


Their  guns  were  utterly  unneeded.  As  Wilder  had 
surmised  the  place  was  completely  deserted.  Their  in¬ 
trusion  had  passed  unchallenged  by  any  living  thing  from 
the  moment  of  entering  the  clearing.  Now  at  last,  having 
passed  through  a  seemingly  endless  series  of  rooms  and 
passages,  they  found  themselves  standing  in  a  great  cen¬ 
tral  hall,  beautiful  in  its  simple  display  of  rich  oriental 
decorations. 

The  Irishman’s  blue  eyes  were  grinning  as  they  sur¬ 
veyed  the  deserted  splendour  with  which  he  wTas  sur¬ 
rounded.  He  was  incapable  of  appreciating  the  full 
significance  of  that  upon  which  he  gazed.  He  had  been 
robbed  of  a  forcible  encounter,  but  he  found  some  sort 
of  compensation  in  the  astounding  thing  they  had  dis¬ 
covered. 

“Gee!”  he  cried.  “Makes  you  feel  you’ve  quit  the 
dam  old  north  country,  an’  hit  up  against  some  buzzy- 
headed  Turk’s  harem.  Say,  get  a  peek  at  them  di-vans. 


THE  HOUSE  IN  THE  VALLEY  167 

An9  them  curtain  things.  An’  them  junk  china  pots. 
Holy — !” 

He  broke  off  and  his  grinning  eyes  sobered.  A  thought 
had  flashed  through  his  impulsive  brain  and  held  him 
silent. 

Wilder  was  regarding  him.  All  that  Mike  had  only 
just  sensed  he  had  realised  from  the  moment  they  had 
set  foot  in  the  house.  The  place  was  a  miniature  palace, 
something  decaying,  but  the  whole  interior  told  of  Eastern 
tastes,  Eastern  habits,  Eastern  life.  The  place  had  been 
furnished  for  oriental  occupation.  And  realising  this 
the  name  of  one  race  alone  had  flashed  into  his  mind. 
Japanese ! 

A  surge  of  excitement  stirred.  He  gazed  about  the 
great  hall,  with  its  silken  hangings,  heavily  encumbered 
with  the  dust  of  years,  with  its  low  silken  couches.  Then 
the  carved  wooden  screen,  and  the  central  fireplace  elabor¬ 
ately  built  under  its  smoke  funnel.  He  glanced  at  the 
bureau  bookcase  of  modern  fashioning,  and  with  every 
detail  added  conviction  came  to  him. 

But  desertion,  or  at  least  neglect,  was  stamped  every¬ 
where.  There  was  dust  on  everything.  There  was  a 
curious  musty  smell  which  could  not  be  mistaken.  But, 
somehow,  for  all  that,  there  were  signs,  unmistakable 
signs  that  desertion  was  not  absolute.  There  had  been 
remains  of  food  in  the  pantries.  There  were  ashes  in 
the  cookstoves  in  the  kitchen.  There  was  water  in  vari¬ 
ous  pitchers  and  buckets.  No.  Utter  neglect,  but  not 
complete  desertion.  This  was  Wilder’s  final  verdict, 
gaining  corroboration  as  he  remembered  the  sounds  of 
breaking  bush  which  Red  Mike’s  ears  had  been  so  swift 
to  detect. 

“We  best  make  the  sleeping  quarters,  Mike,”  Wilder 
said  after  awhile.  “They’re  liable  to  tell  us  the  last  thing 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


1 68 

we  need  to  know.”  And  he  passed  round  the  room  in 
search  of  an  outlet  which  might  lead  to  the  apartments 
above. 

o  •  •  •  •  •  • 

Wilder  flung  the  curtains  quickly  aside.  It  was  an 
arched  entrance  to  one  of  the  upper  rooms.  He  stepped 
within  the  room  closely  followed  by  Mike,  and  they  stood 
silently  regarding  the  interior  with  appraising  eyes. 

Here  again  there  was  no  occupant.  It  was  a  bedroom, 
and,  judging  by  its  proportions,  the  principal  bedroom. 
As  it  had  been  in  the  hall  below  the  furnishings  were 
largely  of  Eastern  fashion.  But  a  modern,  Western  bed¬ 
stead  occupied  the  central  place,  and  a  bureau  dressing- 
chest  stood  near  to  a  window.  For  the  rest  there  were 
silken  curtains  of  lavish  wistaria  and  chrysanthemum 
design  hanging  at  the  windows,  and  the  floor  of  yellow 
pine  was  covered  with  Eastern,  tufted  rugs. 

But  the  furnishings  and  decorations  of  this  far  hidden 
home  no  longer  pre-occupied  Wilder.  He  had  discovered 
the  thing  he  wanted  in  the  modern  bed  and  the  faint, 
rather  noxious  odour  which  human  occupation  leaves  be¬ 
hind  it  for  senses  sufficiently  acute.  The  bed  was  un¬ 
made.  It  was  in  the  condition  left  by  a  person  who  has 
just  arisen  from  it.  But  he  also  realised  that  not  one  but 
two  persons  had  been  its  last  occupants.  This  in  itself 
was  illuminating,  but  not  nearly  so  enlightening  as  the 
prevailing  odour  of  the  room.  That  curious  human 
odour  had  been  instantly  recognised.  And  Wilder  knew 
it  had  no  relation  to  beings  of  his  own  race.  Again  the 
name  of  the  sons  of  Nippon  flashed  through  his  mind, 
and  a  deep  satisfaction  warmed  him  as  he  remembered 
that  after  all  it  looked  as  though  he  would  not  have  to 
return  entirely  empty-handed  to  his  friend,  George 
Raymes. 


THE  HOUSE  IN  THE  VALLEY  169 

He  turned  sharply  to  his  companion  who  had  lost  in¬ 
terest  under  his  chief’s  silence. 

“Guess  I’ve  seen  all  I  need,”  he  said,  while  his  eyes  con¬ 
tinued  to  regard  the  bedstead.  “We’ll  get  right  back  to 
the  landing.”  He  thrust  back  his  cap  from  his  broad 
forehead  and  turned  towards  the  window  which  looked 
out  to  the  south.  “Yes,  we’ll  get  right  back.  This  darn 
place  is  not  deserted.  There  are  folks  around.  That 
being  so  there’s  just  one  thing  worrying.  It’s  the  safety 
of  our  canoe,  and  our  outfit.  So  we’ll  get  along,  and  you 
and  Chilcoot  will  have  to  share  guard  on  the  outfit  be¬ 
tween  you.” 

Mike’s  blue  eyes  lit.  The  thing  his  chief  suggested 
restored  hope  to  his  fighting  spirit. 

“If  ther’s  folk  around — an’  I  guess  you’re  right — we’re 

liable  to -  Say,  what’s  your  play,  boss,  with  us  two 

standin’  by  the  outfit?” 

Wilder’s  gaze  came  back  from  the  window.  He  had 
only  looked  out  upon  what  seemed  to  be  unbroken  forest. 
He  shrugged.  And  a  half  smile  lit  his  eyes. 

“Why,  I’m  goin’  to  eat  first,”  he  said.  “After  that — 
why,  after  that  I’m  goin’  to  take  up  a  considerable  tem¬ 
porary  abode  in  this  shanty.” 

“Alone?” 

A  look  of  concern  had  gathered  in  the  Irishman’s  ex¬ 
pressive  eyes. 

“Sure.” 

“But — Say — ” 

“Here.  Listen,  Mike,”  Wilder  exclaimed  a  little  impa¬ 
tiently.  “That  goes.  You  understand.  I’m  going  to 
sleep  one  night  at  least  under  this  roof.  And  I’ve  got  to 
do  it  alone.  Ther’s  folks  belonging  to  this  place,  and 
they’re  around.  If  I’ve  the  sense  of  a  blind  mule  I  reckon 
they’ll  sure  come  back  to  their  camp.  Well,  that’s  what  I 


170 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


want.  And  I  want  ’em  to  find  me  Here  first.  Come  on. 
Let’s  go  an’  eat,  an’  see  how  Chilcoot’s  making  out.” 

•  •  •  •  •  •  • 

The  quiet  of  the  place  was  intense.  Not  a  sound  of 
any  sort  penetrated  the  thick  log  walls  of  the  house  in  the 
clearing.  The  brilliant,  interminable  daylight  went  on, 
for  all  the  hour  belonged  to  night.  No  ripple  of  air  served 
to  temper  the  humid  heat  of  the  valley  outside.  And 
within  the  house  the  feeling  of  suffocation  was  well-nigh 
intolerable. 

Bill  Wilder  had  flung  himself  into  the  upholstered  chair 
which  stood  before  the  bureau  bookcase  which  stood  in 
the  central  apartment.  It  was  midnight,  and  he  was 
completely  weary  of  his  solitary  wanderings  through  the 
deserted  house.  He  had  searched  in  every  direction,  in 
every  outhouse,  and  every  nook  and  corner  of  the  great 
building.  For  something  like  four  hours  he  had  con¬ 
tinued  his  work  from  the  summit  of  the  look-out  tower  to 
the  empty,  filthy  dog  corrals  on  the  fringe  of  the  clear¬ 
ing.  And  all  his  labours  had  yielded  him  nothing  be¬ 
yond  that  which  the  place  had  told  him  in  the  first  few 
minutes  of  his  earlier  visit  with  Red  Mike.  He  was  dis¬ 
appointed.  He  was  tired.  But  somehow  he  felt  that,  for 
all  the  negative  result  he  had  obtained  so  far,  there  was 
something  still  to  come.  Something  which  would  ulti¬ 
mately  reward  his  persistence. 

He  felt  his  early  inspiration  was  not  for  nothing.  He 
knew  it  was  not.  A  subtle  conviction  pursued  him,  had 
pursued  him  every  minute  of  his  lonely  search.  He  could 
not  have  explained  his  reasons  for  the  belief  that  obsessed 
him.  There  were  no  tangible  grounds  for  it,  but  he  knew, 
he  felt  that  from  the  moment  he  had  set  foot  within  the 
strange  house  there  had  been  eyes  following  his  every 


THE  HOUSE  IN  THE  VALLEY 


171 

movement,  there  was  someone,  who,  all  unseen,  had 
never  for  a  single  moment  permitted  him  to  pursue  his  in¬ 
vestigations  unobserved. 

He  was  by  no  means  imaginative  in  the  ordinary  way. 
His  nerves  were  like  highly  tempered  steel.  He  had  no 
fear  of  any  sort  either  physical  or  superstitious.  He  had 
no  thought  of  any  ghostly  presence.  But  he  knew  in¬ 
stinctively  that  someone  belonging  to  that  place  was  mov¬ 
ing  through  it  with  him,  but  along  ways,  and  possibly 
hidden  passages,  which  he  had  been  unable  to  discover. 

His  automatic  pistol  was  fully  loaded,  and,  from  the 
first  moment  of  his  vigil,  he  had  been  reasonably  prepared 
for  any  eventuality,  but  he  knew,  his  hard  common  sense 
told  him,  that  if  his  belief  was  justified  there  was  not  one 
single  instant  as  he  plodded  his  way  through  apartment 
after  apartment,  or  even  while  sitting  in  the  chair  at  the 
desk  with  his  back  turned  on  the  rest  of  the  great  hall, 
that  he  was  not  at  the  complete  mercy  of  those  who  were 
observing  his  movements. 

Now  he  prepared  for  the  last  act  of  his  search.  That 
completed  he  would  carry  out  the  rest  of  his  simple  pro¬ 
gramme.  Yes,  he  must  search  the  desk,  and  the  book 
shelves  above  it.  Then  he  would  betake  himself  to  the 
great  bedroom  upstairs  and  occupy  the  bed  which  he  knew 
had  recently  been  occupied  by  others.  A  grim  smile 
hovered  for  a  moment  in  his  steady  eyes  as  he  thought 
of  the  outrage  this  taking  of  the  bed  of  another  consti¬ 
tuted  in  his  understanding  of  the  decencies  of  life.  May¬ 
be  it  would —  He  dismissed  the  thought  from  his  mind, 
and,  reaching  out,  lowered  the  flap  front  of  the  desk. 

But  he  did  not  commence  the  search  of  the  array  of 
drawers  and  pigeon-holes  laden  with  documents  with 
which  the  interior  was  furnished.  Instead,  he  sat  back  in 
the  capacious  chair  regarding  the  rich  inlay  of  mother- 


172 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


of-pearl,  and  the  exquisite  carving  which  was  revealed. 
The  beauty  of  the  workmanship  of  the  desk  made  only 
a  passing  impression.  It  was  not  admiration  that  left 
him  idly  contemplating  the  thing  before  him.  It  was 
something  else.  Something  all  unexpected  and  uncal¬ 
culated.  Quite  suddenly  a  wave  of  reluctance,  that  was 
closely  akin  to  sheer  repugnance,  had  taken  hold  of  him, 
and  denied  him  the  completion  of  the  work  he  had  set  his 
hand  to.  For  the  life  of  him  he  could  not  pry  into  the 
private  papers  of  his  unknown  host.  Japanese,  or  any 
other,  it  made  no  difference.  That  sort  of  thing  was 
sheer  police  work,  and,  for  all  he  had  been  sworn  a  special 
constable  for  the  occasion  by  his  friend,  George  Raymes, 
the  police  spirit  had  not  yet  fully  taken  possession  of  his 
civilian  feelings.  No.  He  shut  the  desk  up  with  some¬ 
thing  of  the  rough  force  which  his  self-disgust  inspired. 
He  shot  back  the  supporting  arms  into  their  sockets,  and 
turned  his  chair  about  in  a  manner  which  displayed  his 
irrevocable  decision. 

So  he  sat  back,  and  drew  his  pipe  from  his  pocket  and 
filled  it  contemplatively.  His  eyes  were  half  smiling,  and 
his  expression  was  wholly  ironical  for  what  he  regarded 
as  his  own  contemptible  weakness. 

He  lit  his  pipe  and  gazed  about  him  over  the  apart¬ 
ment.  It  was  well  past  midnight  now,  and  the  broad  light 
of  day  lit  the  place  with  a  soft  evenness  that  was  some¬ 
thing  monotonous.  And,  smoking,  he  permitted  his 
thoughts  to  pursue  the  trend  which  his  position  inspired. 

Strangely  enough  they  left  him  without  a  shadow  of 
concern  for  himself,  and  only  sought  to  unravel  the  mys¬ 
tery  with  which  he  knew  he  was  surrounded. 

He  was  in  the  heart  of  the  hills  whence  the  Euralians 
were  reputed  to  hail  from.  He  had  discovered  a  minia¬ 
ture  palace,  not  a  rough  shanty,  and  it  was  furnished  with 


THE  HOUSE  IN  THE  VALLEY 


173 


the  taste,  and  for  the  abode  of  someone  of  unquestion¬ 
ably  Japanese  origin.  A  certainty  existed  in  his  mind 
that  the  owner  of  it  all  was  somewhere  present  in  the 
house  and  in  hiding.  Why  ?  The  territory  was  Alaskan. 
It  had  nothing  to  do  with  Canada,  where  he  had  come 
from.  Why,  then,  should  the  owner  fear  to  show  him¬ 
self?  What  object  could  he  have  in  remaining  hidden? 
He  found  several  possible  answers,  but  none  seemed  to 
furnish  an  adequate  solution.  The  whole  thing  was  an 
enigma  that  completely  defeated  him.  But  he  meant  to 
solve  it  even  if  he  was  forced  to  remain  a  month  in  the 
place.  The  only  certainty  he  felt,  and  that  for  the  reason 
of  his  belief  that  the  owner  was  watching  him  possibly 
at  that  very  moment,  was  that  his  invisible  host  possessed 
none  of  the  hostility  which  the  Euralians  on  Loon  Creek 
had  displayed.  Had  it  been  otherwise,  surely,  long  since, 
he  would  have  discovered  it  in  a  definite  attack  whilst 
engaged  on  his  work  of  unjustifiable  intrusion  and  search. 

However,  it  was  all  useless  speculation.  There  was 
nothing  further  to  be  gained  by  it.  Possibly  the  bureau 
behind  him  might  have  told  him  something.  But  there  it 
was.  A  man’s  private  papers  were  sacred.  And  he  could 
not  outrage  such  sense  of  honour  as  the  traffic  of  gold 
had  left  to  him.  No.  He  would  go  to  the  bed  he  had 
selected  and — see  what  happened. 

He  stood  up  and  knocked  out  his  pipe  on  the  stone-built 
fireplace  and  moved  quickly,  but  without  attempting  to 
conceal  his  movements,  from  the  room. 


CHAPTER  VI 


THE  EYES  IN  THE  NIGHT 

A  belated  sense  of  humour  was  stirring  in  Bill  Wilder 
as  he  passed  on  to  the  quarters  he  had  selected  for  his  oc¬ 
cupation.  The  room,  he  felt  certain,  was  that  usually 
occupied  by  his  invisible  hosts.  Convinced  of  their  secret 
surveillance  of  his  movements  he  believed  they  would 
surely  witness  his  audacious  usurpation  of  their  private 
apartment.  It  was  the  thought  of  this  that  brought  the 
smile  to  his  eyes.  He  was  wondering  what  form  their 
very  natural  resentment  would  take,  for  he  had  no  doubt 
whatever  as  to  what  would  happen  with  the  position  re¬ 
versed.  Anyway,  he  felt  he  was  playing  a  trump  card 
for  bringing  them  into  the  open,  and  that,  at  present,  was 
the  thing  he  most  desired.  He  would  chance  the  rest. 
Meanwhile  further  speculation  was  useless,  and  he 
shrugged  his  broad  shoulders,  and  his  smile  vanished 
under  his  resolve.  He  was  determined  on  a  prolonged 
vigil.  He  would  pretend  sleep  and — await  developments. 

That  was  his  purpose.  But  he  failed  to  reckon  with 
Nature  and  a  vigorous,  healthy  body.  And,  furthermore, 
he  had  forgotten  the  oppressive  humidity  which  weighed 
heavily  upon  the  faculties.  He  had  also  forgotten  that 
he  had  been  bodily  occupied  for  something  like  eighteen 
hours  of  the  endless  daylight.  So  it  came  that  within  five 
minutes  of  flinging  himself  fully  dressed  upon  the 
dishevelled  bed  he  fell  into  a  deep  slumber  of  the  com¬ 
pletely  weary. 


174 


THE  EYES  IN  THE  NIGHT 


175 


How  long  he  slept  he  never  knew.  He  was  dreaming 
chaotically.  He  seemed  to  be  deeply  concerned  with  a 
hideously  misshapen  mountain  from  the  sight  of  which 
it  was  impossible  to  escape.  It  was  lofty,  and  heavily 
snowclad,  and  its  fantastic  shape  continually  changed,  as¬ 
suming  absurd  likenesses  to  still  more  stupid  things. 
First  it  looked  like  his  block  of  offices  in  Placer.  Then  it 
resembled  the  Irishman  Mike,  with  flaming  top  instead  of 
red  hair.  Then,  again,  it  somehow  flattened  out  to  a 
burlesque  of  the  barren  surroundings  of  Loon  Creek, 
only  to  leap  again  into  the  shape  of  a  golden  domed 
palace  with  a  watch  tower  reaching  far  up  into  the  clouds. 
The  last  kaleidoscopic  variation  it  assumed  was  the  huge 
head  of  a  dark- faced  man,  crowned  with  snow-white  hair 
that  streamed  down  over  shoulders  completely  hidden 
under  its  dense  cloak,  and  with  a  pair  of  eyes  flaming 
with  a  fire  that  became  agony  to  gaze  upon.  It  was  the 
lurid  horror  of  those  eyes  that  finally  startled  him  into 
actual  wakefulness.  And  he  found  himself  sitting  on 
the  side  of  his  bed  staring  at  something  that  sufficiently 
resembled  the  nightmare  horror  of  his  dream  to  leave 
him  in  doubt  of  its  reality. 

He  passed  a  sweating  palm  across  his  forehead.  It 
was  a  gesture  of  uncertainty.  Then,  in  a  moment,  full 
realisation  came,  and  he  leapt  to  his  feet  and  his  challenge 
rang  out  vital  and  determined. 

“Not  a  move!”  he  cried.  “Move  and  you're  dead  as 
mutton!  You’re  covered!  An’,  sure  as  God,  I’ll  drop 
you  at  the  first  sign !” 

He  moved  a  step  forward.  His  body  was  half  crouch¬ 
ing,  and  his  fully  loaded  automatic  pistol  was  leading 
threateningly. 

There  was  no  movement  in  response  to  his  threat  and 
he  remained  just  where  his  first  step  had  carried  him, 


176 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


while  horrified  curiosity,  as  he  gazed  on  the  spectacle 
framed  between  the  silken  curtains  of  the  arched  entrance 
to  the  room,  replaced  his  urgency  of  a  moment  before. 

It  was  a  man  and  a  woman.  And  they  were  standing 
side  by  side.  They  were  both  something  diminutive. 
Particularly  was  this  the  case  in  the  woman.  The  man 
was  sturdily  built,  with  lank,  snow-white  hair  that  reached 
from  the  crown  of  his  head,  and  hung  down  upon  his 
broad  shoulders.  A  long,  snowy  beard  covered  his  chest 
with  such  luxuriance  that  it  almost  seemed  part  of  the 
mane  that  flowed  down  to  his  shoulders.  But  all  this, 
striking  as  it  was  to  the  just  awakened  man,  was  quickly 
lost  sight  of  in  the  painful  vision  of  a  pair  of  eyeless 
sockets  that  gaped  at  him,  filled  and  surrounded  with 
vivid  inflammation. 

The  man  was  in  rough  clothing  not  dissimilar  from 
that  which  Wilder  himself  was  wearing.  His  sturdy 
body  was  coatless  and  clad  in  a  simple  grey  flannel  shirt, 
while  his  nether  garments  were  of  the  common  moleskin 
type.  He  was  old,  but  how  old  Wilder  could  not  estimate 
with  any  certainty.  His  eyelessness,  and  his  snow-white 
hair  and  beard  made  the  task  impossible.  One  thing  alone 
impressed  the  onlooker  in  those  first  startled  moments. 
The  man  was  blind,  and  his  skin,  in  sharp  contrast  with 
his  hair,  was  of  a  darkish  yellow.  In  a  moment  he  had 
realised  the  truth  of  his  original  estimate  of  the  nation¬ 
ality  of  his  unwilling  hosts. 

The  woman  at  the  blindman’s  side  was  a  quaint,  pathe¬ 
tic  little  figure.  She,  too,  was  old,  with  greying  black 
hair.  She  was  clad  in  something  in  the  nature  of  a  silken 
kimono,  and  looked  as  fragile  as  a  figure  of  exquisite 
porcelain.  Her  slightly  slanting  black  eyes  were  steadily 
searching  the  face  of  the  white  intruder  while  she  stood 
clasping  the  hand  of  the  man  at  her  side,  in  a  manner 


THE  EYES  IN  THE  NIGHT 


177 


suggesting  motherly  solicitude.  There  was  nothing  re¬ 
sentful  in  her  gaze.  It  was  simply  appealing,  troubled, 
appraising. 

The  whiteman’s  order  held  them.  They  remained  mo¬ 
tionless,  without  a  word  or  sign,  just  where  they  had 
been  discovered.  It  was  almost  as  if,  like  naughty  chil¬ 
dren,  they  were  awaiting  the  expected  chiding  following 
upon  some  escapade  in  which  they  had  been  found  out. 

Realising  their  submission  Wilder’s  attitude  underwent 
a  change.  He  dismissed  his  tone  of  sharp  authority,  but 
retained  his  threatening  gun  in  evidence. 

“If  you’ve  a  notion  to  come  out  into  the  open  instead 
of  spying  around  in  hiding  I’ll  put  this  gun  up,  and  we 
can  talk,”  he  said,  with  a  look  in  his  eyes  closely  approach¬ 
ing  a  smile.  “You  see,  I  knew  you  were  around,  and 
only  took  possession  of  your  room  in  the  hope  of  bring¬ 
ing  you  out  into  daylight.  Guess  you’ve  nothing  to 
worry  with  if  ther’s  no  monkey-play  doing.  Well?” 

He  eyed  them  both  searchingly  while  he  spoke,  but  it 
was  the  queer  little,  troubled-eyed  woman  whom  he  really 
addressed.  The  painful  fascination  of  the  man’s  terrible 
eyes  had  passed  leaving  behind  only  a  feeling  of  nausea. 

After  the  briefest  hesitation  the  woman  spoke.  She 
spoke  in  good  enough  English  with  just  the  faintest  for¬ 
eign  accent  and  occasional  awkward  twist  in  her  phrase¬ 
ology.  Eler  voice  was  low  and  infinitely  sweet,  and  her 
whole  manner  suggested  intense  relief  from  some  over¬ 
whelming  burden  of  terror. 

“We  feared  it  was  the  man,  Usak,  come  back,”  she 
said.  “He  say  he  would  come,  and  we  look  for  him  all 
the  time.  But  you  are  white.  Oh,  yes.  You  are  not  the 
Indian  that  he  is.  You  come  like  all  those  others  who 
look  for  the  thing  this  country  has  to  give.  It  is  so? 
Yes  ?” 


12 


178 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


With  the  mention  of  the  Indian  whom  Wilder  knew  to 
have  been  the  servant  of  the  murdered  Marty  Le  Gros 
there  came  a  movement  on  the  part  of  the  blindman.  It 
was  a  gesture,  sudden  and  almost  forceful.  And  the  hand 
that  made  it  was  that  which  the  woman  beside  him  was 
grasping.  He  half  turned  as  though  about  to  speak.  But 
he  remained  silent,  obviously  restraining  himself  with 
difficulty. 

Wilder  saw  the  movement.  He  realised  the  man’s 
sudden  disquiet.  And  he  understood.  A  feeling  of  ela¬ 
tion  swept  over  him.  These  people  feared  the  coming  of 
Usak.  These  two  strange,  shy  creatures  in  their  far-off 
secret  home.  And  Usak  had  threatened  them  with  his 
return.  Why  ? 

Suppressing  his  elation  Wilder  smiled  down  at  the 
woman,  so  helpless,  so  appealing  in  the  terror  she  was 
unable  to  conceal. 

“No,”  he  said  almost  gently.  “I’m  not  Usak.  I’m  just 
a  whiteman  with  two  companions.  Guess  they’re  white, 
too.  You  see,  we  came  right  on  this  place  of  yours  with¬ 
out  knowing  about  it.  You  don’t  need  to  be  worried. 
But  I  got  to  make  a  big  talk  with  you  before  I  quit.  And 
seeing  ther’s  not  a  big  diff’rence  between  day  an’  night  in 
this  queer  country  do  you  feel  like  making  that  swell  hall 
of  yours  below  and  sitting  around  for  that  talk  ?  Do  you  ? 
Both?” 

Wilder’s  gentleness  was  the  outcome  of  an  irresistible 
feeling  of  pity  for  the  frightened  woman.  It  had  nothing 
to  do  with  the  thing  he  had  in  mind.  The  name  of  Usak 
was  uppermost  with  him  now,  and  he  knew  that  one,  at 
least,  of  these  strange  figures  was  in  some  way  deeply 
connected  with  the  ugly  riddle  it  was  his  work  to  solve. 
His  chivalry  refused  to  associate  the  woman  with  it.  It 
was  different,  however,  with  the  man  for  all  his  terrible 


THE  EYES  IN  THE  NIGHT 


179 


sightlessness.  The  man  replied  to  him  immediately  and 
his  voice  was  harsh  and  cold.  Its  tone  was  wholly  un¬ 
compromising. 

“We  can  talk,”  he  said  shortly. 

Wilder’s  whole  manner  hardened  on  the  instant.  And 
his  answer  came  sharply,  and  his  tone  was  no  less  uncom¬ 
promising  than  that  of  the  other. 

“That’s  all  right,”  he  said.  “Lead  the  way  down. 
And  don’t  forget  ther’s  a  ‘forty-five’  gun  right  behind 
you  all  the  way.” 

•  •*•••» 

Bill  Wilder  had  long  since  learned  the  lessons  of  a 
country  in  which  chance  seemed  to  be  the  dominating  fac¬ 
tor  of  life.  His  hard  schooling  in  the  wide  scattered 
goldfields  of  Yukon  Territory  had  forced  the  conviction 
on  him  that  chance  was  a  better  servant  in  this  northern 
country  than  hard  sense.  And  he  knew  now  that  sheer 
chance  had  flung  him  stumbling  upon  something  that,  if 
not  actually  the  heart  of  the  mystery  of  the  murder  of 
Marty  Le  Gros  by  the  Euralians,  was  at  least  no  mean 
key  to  it. 

At  the  woman’s  mention  of  the  Indian,  Usak,  his  mind 
had  leapt  back  to  the  story  which  George  Raymes  had 
been  able,  however  inadequately,  to  piece  together  from 
his  old  police  reports.  Usak,  he  remembered,  was  the 
husband  of  the  squaw  who  had  been  murdered.  These 
two  people  feared  his  coming  so  that  they  completely  hid 
themselves  at  the  approach  of  strangers.  Usak  had 
threatened  them  with  his  return.  Therefore  he  had 
visited  them  before.  For  what  purpose?  They  were 
frightened  for  their  lives  of  him.  Why  should  they  be? 
Usak’s  squaw  had  been  murdered  by — Euralians. 

Surveying  the  sturdy  back  of  the  white-haired  man, 
blinded,  helpless,  being  led  by  the  pathetic,  devoted 


i8o 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


woman  at  his  side,  as  he  shepherded  them  to  the  hall  be¬ 
low,  he  remembered  once  long  ago,  in  his  chequered 
career  in  Placer,  to  have  seen  a  man  whose  eyes  had  been 
gouged  in  a  bar-room  fight.  He  remembered  the  hideous 
spectacle  he  had  been  left,  and  he  knew  that  the  man  he 
had  just  discovered  had  endured  the  same  terrible,  inhu¬ 
man,  treatment.  Usak?  Was  that  the  source  of  the 
terror  he  had  inspired? 

Reaching  the  hall  his  hosts  took  up  their  position 
standing  near  the  centre,  stone-built  fireplace.  They  had 
faced  about  so  that  they  confronted  him,  and  Wilder 
understood  the  woman  had  simply  obeyed  the  man’s  un¬ 
spoken  command. 

The  harsh  voice  of  the  blindman  jarred  on  the  quiet  of 
the  room. 

“You  are  an  intruder,”  he  declared,  his  eyeless  sockets 
turned  unerringly  on  the  whiteman’s  face.  “You  invade 
our  home  unbidden.  You  threaten  us  with  your  gun  un¬ 
provoked.  You  say  you  are  a  whiteman.  We  are  help¬ 
less.  I  cannot  even  see  you,  and  my  wife  is  defenceless. 
Well?”  He  shrugged  with  infinite  contempt.  “You  de¬ 
mand  talk  with  us.  Go  on.” 

Wilder’s  impulse  was  to  retort  sharply.  But  he  re¬ 
strained  it.  Where  there  should  have  been  pity  for  a 
blindman  living  out  a  darkened  life  in  these  far-off  moun¬ 
tains  there  was  only  antagonism  and  instant  prejudice. 
He  understood  how  it  came  well  enough.  Instinct  as  well 
as  swift  conclusion  warned  him  that  behind  those  eyeless 
sockets  there  dwelt  a  mind  driven  by  a  nature  something 
evil.  For  the  moment,  however,  he  must  adopt  concilia¬ 
tion.  Any  other  course  would,  in  all  probability,  defeat 
his  ends.  So  his  tone  became  that  of  easy  moderation. 
He  laughed. 

“Guess  I’m  all  you  reckon,  sir,”  he  said.  “Yes,  I’m 


THE  EYES  IN  THE  NIGHT 


181 


an  intruder,  and  I  need  to  pass  you  a  hundred  apologies. 
But  what  else  could  I  do?  Anyway,  the  best  now  would 
be  to  hand  you  the  meaning  of  the  thing  I’m  doing.  You 
see,  I’m  out  looking  for  things.  The  sort  of  things  this 
queer  valley  looks  like  handing  out.  I’m  on  a  big  pros¬ 
pect,  and  these  hills  look  to  be  full  of  the  things  I  want. 
This  is  the  second  year  I’ve  been  on  the  trail,  east,  and 
west,  and  north,  and  now — well,  I  guess  it  hasn’t  been 
for  nothing.” 

“Oil?  You’ve  found  the  oil  this  valley  is  full  of?” 

The  blindman’s  question  came  sharply,  but  without 
alarm.  His  tone  had  lost  something  of  its  harshness,  and 
Wilder  was  satisfied.  With  deliberation,  and  almost  os¬ 
tentatiously,  he  put  his  automatic  pistol  back  into  his  hip 
pocket.  And  he  knew  that  the  quick  eyes  of  the  woman 
were  watching  his  movements  and  conveying  the  story 
of  them  voicelessly,  through  her  hand  clasp,  to  the  man. 
Then  he  moved  over  to  the  chair  which  was  turned  about 
from  the  bureau,  and  flung  himself  into  it. 

“Maybe,”  he  said.  Then  he  indicated  the  couch  which 
stood  nearby  to  a  tall  carved  wooden  screen.  “Won’t  you 
sit?”  he  went  on  pleasantly.  “It’s  not  for  me  to  offer 
you  a  seat  in  your  own  house,  but — ”  He  broke  off  with 
a  light  laugh.  “Maybe  we’ll  be  quite  a  while  talking.” 

His  whole  manner  had  assumed  the  cordiality  he  in¬ 
tended.  There  was  a  moment  of  hesitation.  Then,  with¬ 
out  a  word,  the  woman  led  her  charge  across  to  the  dusty 
couch.  But  she  did  not  move  directly  across.  The  couch 
stood  opposite  where  they  stood  yet  she  led  the  man  mak¬ 
ing  a  deliberate  detour  and  Wilder  was  puzzled.  Then, 
glancing  down  at  the  floor,  he  realised  something  which 
had  hitherto  escaped  him.  A  large  ugly  stain  of  brown 
was  splashed  on  the  polished  flooring. 

There  was  no  mistaking  it.  He  recognised  it  instantly. 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


182 

It  was  unquestionably  a  blood-stain,  and  by  its  extent  he 
judged  it  to  be  blood  from  a  mortal  wound.  His  ques¬ 
tioning  gaze  sought  the  two  queer  figures  at  once.  The 
woman  had  carefully  avoided  it,  and  he  interpreted  her 
action  in  the  only  way  possible.  She  evidently  under¬ 
stood  the  origin  of  that  stain,  and  repugnance  inspired 
her  movements. 

They  sat  themselves  on  the  couch  side  by  side  and 
Wilder  went  on  as  though  nothing  had  distracted  his  at¬ 
tention.  He  turned  his  chair  so  that  he  faced  them. 

“Yes,  ther’s  oil  in  this  valley,”  he  said.  “My  two 
friends  reckon  there’s  enough  oil  to  feed  the  whole  world. 
But  I’ve  got  scruples,”  he  laughed,  “for  all  you  may  be 
guessing  the  other  way.  Say,  before  I  get  busy  farther 
up  the  creek  I’d  be  glad  to  know  just  how  we  stand. 
You’re  here  on  an  oil  play?  And  I’m  not  yearning  for 
trouble.  Is  this  oil  game  your  play?  Have  you  a  con¬ 
cession?  Am  I  butting  in  on  a  big  commercial  proposi¬ 
tion  that’s  already  established?  I’d  be  glad  to  know, 
Mr.—” 

Wilder  broke  off  invitingly.  Yet,  for  all  there  were 
signs  of  the  mollifying  effect  of  his  attitude  in  the  man, 
several  moments  passed  before  a  reply  was  forthcoming. 

At  last  the  snow-white  head  inclined  affirmatively. 

“You  have  scruples,”  he  said.  “You  desire  not  to  butt 
in.  Yet  you  invade  my  house.  You  ransack  it.  You 
treat  it  so  as  it  is  your  right  to  do  these  things.  You 
threaten  with  your  gun  when  I  come  forth.” 

He  shrugged.  But  this  time  it  was  without  any  dis¬ 
play  of  feeling.  He  was  calmly  questioning,  and  his 
attitude  displayed  a  suspicion  of  puzzlement. 

Wilder  suddenly  squared  himself  in  his  chair. 

“Here,”  he  cried.  “Let’s  be  frank.  My  name’s 
Wilder.  Bill  Wilder.  I’m  a  gold  man  first  and  foremost. 


THE  EYES  IN  THE  NIGHT  183 

After  that,  why,  I  guess  I'm  just  as  much  an  adventurer 
as  most  of  the  folk  of  this  Northland.  That’s  all  right. 
I’m  not  out  to  rob  a  soul  of  anything  he’s  a  right  to.  And 
as  for  the  things  you  guess  I  had  no  right  to  do,  just 
think  a  bit.  Here  I  find  a  house  without  a  sign  of  life. 
You  choose  to  hide  yourselves  up.  Well?  A  derelict 
house  here  in  the  Arctic?  Why,  I  guess  I’ve  as  much 
right  to  search  it  as  to  search  for  anything  else  this  coun¬ 
try’s  got  to  show  us.  As  for  the  gun  play  it  seems  to  me 
a  man  has  every  right  to  protect  himself  when  folks 
sneak  in  on  him  in  the  night.  That’s  my  answer  to  all 
that’s  worrying  you.  And  my  name,  as  I  said,  is  Wilder. 
Who  are  you?” 

There  was  a  sweeping  bluntness  about  the  challenge 
that  should  have  been  irresistible.  Wilder  waited  for  the 
answer  he  demanded  while  reserving  a  trump  card  to  play 
in  case  of  refusal. 

There  was  no  change  in  the  blindman’s  attitude.  There 
was  no  movement.  His  yellow  face  remained  sphinx- 
like. 

“Maybe  I  should  not  blame  you,”  he  said,  in  his  harsh 
fashion.  “You  make  a  good  case.  But — I  am  blind. 
Here,”  he  went  on,  in  imitation  of  the  other,  with  a  slight 
gesture  of  his  disengaged  hand,  “I  will  not  tell  you  the 
things  you  ask.  But  I  tell  you  some  other.  This  valley 
is  the  great  oil  bed  of  these  mountains,  and  the  oil  is 
being  tapped.  If  you  touch  on  this  oil  you  will  never 
leave  the  valley  alive.  Those  who  are  working  it  have 
been  doing  so  for  many  years.  It  is  their  established 
right,  for  no  one  has  denied  them  in  all  the  years.  No 
one  has  come  near.  They  find  it  and  work  it.  It  is 
equity.  I  have  no  place  in  this  thing.  I  am — blind.” 

Wilder’s  eyes  hardened.  He  glanced  from  the  man  to 
the  woman.  In  the  latter’s  eyes  was  a  look  of  renewed 


1 84  THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 

apprehension,  almost  of  pleading,  and  he  felt  that  she 
was  waiting  for  the  effect  of  her  man’s  words. 

“Then  you  fear  to  tell  me — who  you  are?”  he  asked 
quietly. 

“I  fear  nothing.” 

“Nothing?  Yet  you  fear  the  coming  of  this  man  you 
call — Usak.  You  fear  the  sight  of  every  stranger?” 

Wilder’s  gaze  was  on  the  anxious  face  of  the  woman. 
His  words  were  for  her  benefit.  But  they  had  an  unex¬ 
pected  effect.  The  blindman  suddenly  unbent. 

“It  is  as  I  said,”  he  declared,  his  tone  moderating  but 
assuming  a  bitterness  of  real  feeling.  “I  fear  no  one  and 
nothing.  I  am  blind.  I  am  completely  alone,  but  for  my 
good  wife.  I  live  through  her  hands,  her  eyes,  her  will. 
What  is  the  worst  that  may  happen  ?  Death  ?  It  is  noth¬ 
ing — now.  I  am  a  dead  man  to  the  world — now.  I  am 
blind.  Once  it  was  not  so.  Once  in  this  home,  here  in 
this  valley,  there  were  servants  who  worked  at  my  com¬ 
mand.  There  were  many  interests  in  my  life.  Now  it  is 
changed.  The  light  has  gone  out,  and  with  it  have  passed 
those  who  obeyed  my  will,  those  who  depended  for  their 
well-being  on  my  word.  It  is  the  way  of  such  service. 
Rats  never  fail  to  quit  the  doomed  ship,”  he  cried  bitterly. 
“I  have  nothing  to  fear.  Least  of  all — death.” 

“Not  even — punishment?” 

Wilder’s  hazard  came  instantly.  It  was  well  calculated. 
The  blood-stain  on  the  floor  was  within  his  view.  Then 
there  was  the  story  of  Marty  Le  Gros,  and  of  Usak,  who 
inspired  such  terror  in  the  woman. 

The  yellow  man  started.  It  was  as  if  an  effort  of  will 
was  striving  for  vision  through  his  empty  sockets.  For 
a  moment  he  made  no  answer,  and  headlong  panic  had 
returned  to  the  woman’s  eyes.  It  was  the  latter  that  re¬ 
moved  the  last  shadow  of  doubt  from  Wilder’s  mind. 


THE  EYES  IN  THE  NIGHT  185 

“Punishment?  For  what?”  The  man  spoke  in  a  low, 
fierce  voice. 

Wilder  thought  swiftly  before  replying.  He  under¬ 
stood  that  he  was  right  up  against  the  stone  wall  of  the 
yellow  man’s  determination.  There  was  only  one  course 
left  him.  If  he  could  not  climb  it  he  must  batter  it  to 
ruins.  His  earlier  hazard  was  a  small  enough  thing  com¬ 
pared  with  the  decision  he  took  now.  He  rose  from  his 
chair  and  stood  towering  over  the  diminutive  pair  on  the 
couch.  His  eyes  were  coldly  compelling,  and  his  whole 
manner  was  carefully  calculated  for  its  effect  upon  the 
helpless  little  woman,  whom  he  could  not  help  pitying. 

“Here,”  he  cried  sharply.  “Let’s  cut  this  fencing  right 
out.  You  refuse  to  pass  me  the  name  you  are  known  by. 
You  refuse  to  tell  me  the  meaning  of  this  home  hidden 
beyond  human  sight  in  a  valley  that’s  full  to  the  lips  of 
oil.  Well,  I  guess  I’ll  hand  you  the  story  you’re  scared  to 
hand  me.  You  reckon  you  don’t  fear  a  thing.  Psha!  You 
can’t  get  away  with  that  play.  It  wouldn’t  leave  a  two- 
year-old  kid  guessing.  I’m  quitting  now.  I’ve  brought 
you  into  the  open,  an’  I’ve  located  in  you  an  answer  to  a 
hundred  guesses.  I’m  quitting  now,  but  you  won’t  be  left 
unwatched.  You  won’t  get  a  chance  to  make  a  get-away. 
You’ve  had  mostly  fifteen  years  to  do  that,  an’  I  don’t 
know  why  you  stopped  around  with  the  man,  Usak, 
threatening  to  come  right  back  on  you.  Maybe  because 
you’re  blind  and  deserted.  Maybe  because  you’ve  a  mighty 
big  stake  lying  around.  Maybe  it’s  because  ther’s  other 
queer  folk  of  your  own  race,  who,  for  their  own  reasons, 
don’t  fancy  letting  you  quit.  It  don’t  matter.  What  does 
matter  is  I’m  quitting  now  because  this  is  Alaskan  Terri¬ 
tory.  I’m  going  down  country  to  get  things  fixed  with  the 
United  States  authority  to  have  you  brought  right  into 
our  country  to  tell  us  how  the  missionary,  Marty  Le  Gros, 


i86 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


was  murdered  by  the  Euralians  who  people  these  hills,  and 
who  I  guess  are  nothing  but  a  crowd  of  Japanese  pirates 
out  grabbing  in  whiteman’s  territory.  You’re  scared  of 
nothing,  eh?  Can  you  face  that?  Can  you  face  the 
return  of  the  man,  Usak,  whose  wife  was  murdered  at  the 
same  time  ?  Can  you  tell  us  why  they  were  murdered,  and 
what  happened  to  the  great  gold  ‘strike’  that  poor  darn 
feller  made?  I’m  quitting  now  just  to  fix  this  thing.  An’ 
my  boys’ll  see  you  make  no  get-away  meanwhile.  And 
as  for  your  threat  of  the  Euralian  pirates  working  the  oil 
on  this  valley,  that  cuts  no  sort  of  ice  with  us.  We’ve 
been  fighting  these  folk  a  year  an’  more.  You  see,  we’re 
officers  of  the  Canadian  Police.” 

•  •  •  •  ®  •  • 

The  imagination,  the  sweeping  grasp  of  the  clear-think¬ 
ing  mind  that  had  lifted  Bill  Wilder  from  the  depths  of 
the  whirlpool  of  humanity  that  had  early  flooded  the  gold 
regions  of  the  North,  to  the  highest  pinnacle  of  success  in 
a  traffic  wherein  vision  and  courage  were  the  chief 
essentials,  had  served  him  now  far  better  than  he  knew. 

The  first  spoken  words  of  the  little  Japanese  woman  in 
her  terror  had  welded  a  hundred  links  together  into  a 
connected  chain  such  as  no  amount  of  ordinary  labour  in 
investigation  could  have  supplied  him  with. 

There  was  no  question  except  the  given  names  of  these 
people  left  in  his  mind.  There  were  convictions  that 
perhaps  needed  corroboration  to  reduce  them  to  concrete 
facts.  But  that  caused  him  no  worry.  It  had  been  said 
of  Wilder  that  half  a  story  was  all  he  needed,  he  could 
always  supply  the  rest.  It  was  so  in  the  present  case. 

He  left  the  house  without  a  doubt  remaining.  This 
place  was  the  home  of  the  Euralian  organization,  or  had 
been  before  that  fantastic  figure  of  avenging  had  left  the 
man  he  had  just  parted  from  with  eyeless  sockets.  What 


THE  EYES  IN  THE  NIGHT 


187 


scenes  had  been  enacted  there  he  could  only  guess  at.  But 
there  it  was,  safely  hidden,  with  its  watch  tower,  the  heart 
of  a  natural  fortress  located  with  the  profoundest  judg¬ 
ment  for  the  purposes  desired.  And  he  was  convinced, 
that,  at  any  rate,  the  man  who  still  lived  his  darkened  life 
there  was  surely  one  of  the  instruments,  if  not  the  actual 
instrument,  through  which  the  man,  Marty  Le  Gros,  had 
met  his  death.  He  was  one  of  the  Euralians,  and,  like  as 
not,  the  chief  organizing  head,  since  deposed  through  his 
physical  disability  by  his  lawless  subjects.  Furthermore 
he  had  finally  satisfied  himself  that  he  had  achieved  the 
thing  he  had  set  out  to  accomplish.  The  Euralians  as  they 
called  themselves  were  definitely  of  Japanese  origin. 

As  he  passed  into  the  surrounding  woods  the  immensity 
of  the  truth  he  had  stumbled  upon  came  home  to  him  in 
an  almost  overwhelming  rush.  The  Yellow  Peril  which 
the  world  had  talked  of,  feared,  and  politically  discussed 
for  over  a  decade,  had  suddenly  become  a  reality  to  him. 
Here  was  just  one  little  branch  of  it.  And  the  manner  of 
it  gave  point  to  the  subtle,  secret  fashion  in  which  it  was 
being  developed.  Imagination  was  a-riot.  These  people 
were  Japanese.  They  were  probably  a  hardy  people  from 
northern  Japan,  under  the  control  of  a  carefully  chosen 
leader  of  capacity  and  knowledge,  such  as  he  realised  the 
man  he  had  just  left  to  have  been  before  his  disaster  of 
blindness.  They  were  imported  through  the  far-hidden 
northern  inlets  to  the  country  on  which,  leech-like,  they 
had  battened.  They  came,  a  sea-faring  race,  over  the 
northern  waters,  and  set  about  the  simple  task  of  possess¬ 
ing  this  far,  almost  unpeopled  territory,  and  extracting 
its  wealth  for  their  own  service.  And  what  became  of  that 
wealth,  mineral  and  animal?  What  of  the  furs  which 
they  stole,  or  traded  with  the  Eskimo?  What  of  the  oil 
of  this  valley?  What  of  the  unguessed  wealth  of  coal 


i88 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


deposits  which  were  believed  to  exist?  The  gold,  too, 
and  the  hundred  and  one  other  raw  materials  which 
littered  this  far-off,  unexplored  land? 

The  northern  seas;  the  great  harbours  of  the  northern 
coasts,  lost  from  view  of  the  few  scattered  white  folks, 
hidden  amongst  rugged,  snow-capped  hills,  and  more 
than  half  their  time  completely  icebound.  It  was  simple, 
so  very  simple  to  the  north-men  of  Japan,  who  were  born 
sailors.  Doubtless  a  steady  traffic  among  those  hidden 
inlets  went  on,  and  disguised  freighters  passed  to-and-fro 
between  the  Alaskan  coast  and  the  remoter  ports  of  the 
land  of  Nippon. 

And  meanwhile  the  penetration  of  this  whiteman’s 
country  was  steadily  progressing.  Who  could  say  the 
extent  of  that  penetration?  It  was  southern  California 
over  again.  And  the  invaders  were  only  waiting,  waiting 
for  the  day  to  dawn  when - 

The  breaking  of  bush  just  behind  him  as  he  passed  on 
towards  the  creek  brought  him  to  a  halt.  He  faced  about 
alertly  and  his  hand  shot  into  the  pocket  where  his  auto¬ 
matic  pistol  lay  ready  for  use.  But  it  was  withdrawn 
empty  almost  immediately.  The  diminutive  woman  with 
the  slanting,  terrified  eyes  broke  from  the  undergrowth, 
something  breathless  from  her  exertion,  and  stood  before 
him. 

His  eyes  were  smiling  with  a  kindliness  he  made  no  at¬ 
tempt  to  disguise  at  sight  of  her.  The  memory  of  her 
devotion  to  her  sightless  man  was  uppermost  for  all  he 
had  fathomed  the  meaning  of  their  presence  on  the  river. 
She  seemed  to  him  a  gentle  creature,  hopelessly  con¬ 
demned  to  a  task  of  utter  self-sacrifice.  And  he  deplored 
the  painful  terror  under  which  she  suffered  so  acutely. 
The  shame  and  pity  of  it  all  touched  him  deeply. 

“Say,  mam,”  he  said,  in  a  re-assuring  tone,  “you  took 


THE  EYES  IN  THE  NIGHT 


189 

a  big  chance  coming  that  way.  I’m  guessing  for  the  thing 
that  set  you  worrying  to  come  up  with  me  on  the  run  in 
a  heat  liable  to  hand  apoplexy  to  a  brass  image.” 

But  there  was  no  re-assurance  in  the  urgent  gaze  that 
looked  up  into  his  face.  The  poor  creature’s  bosom 
heaved  with  obvious  emotion.  She  opened  her  almost 
colourless  lips  to  speak,  but  no  sound  came.  Instead  she 
closed  them  again  and  glanced  behind  her  fearfully. 

Wilder  understood.  He  had  supposed  her  to  be  simply 
a  messenger.  Now  he  realised  she  feared  discovery  by 
the  blindman  she  had  left  behind  her. 

Presently  she  turned  to  him  again,  and  thrust  one  thin, 
delicate  hand  into  the  bosom  of  her  gown  where  it  re¬ 
mained  while  she  flung  a  terrified  inquiry  at  him. 

“You  go  so  to  make  it  that  they  come  and  take  him, 
and  kill  him,  for  the  killing  of  the  miss — the  man,  Le 
Gros?”  she  shook  her  head  violently.  “No,  no!”  she 
cried  passionately.  “He  not  kill  Le  Gros!  They  must 
not  kill  him.  Sate  kill  Le  Gros,  and  Usak  come  and 
kill  Sate,  and  all  the  men.  He  fight  to  kill  my  Hela,  too. 
But  he  put  out  his  eyes.  You  are  officer  police.  The 
great  Canadian  Police.  You  know  good  what  is  right, 
what  is  wrong.  I  tell  you  all.  I  tell  you  all  the  truth. 
My  Hela  not  kill  no  man.  It  our  dead  son  kill  this  man, 
an’  the  other.  I  know.  Hela  tell  me.  He  tell  me  all.” 

The  smile  had  passed  from  Wilder’s  eyes  as  he  listened 
to  the  almost  breathless,  headlong  rush  of  the  poor  crea¬ 
ture’s  desperate  appeal  for  her  man. 

“Did  he  send  you  to  say  this?”  he  asked,  knowing  well 
that  the  man  could  not  have  inspired  such  acting  in  her. 

“Hela  send  me?”  The  woman’s  eyes  widened.  “No! 
Oh,  no !  If  he  know  I  am  come  then  I — I  know  no  more. 
Hela  send  me?  No!  I  come  for  him.  I  come  so  you 
know  all  the  thing  he  will  not  tell.” 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


190 


“Why?” 

“Because  I  die  if  you  send  and  kill  my  Hela,”  she  cried, 
with  a  world  of  despair  in  the  simple  declaration. 

Wilder  stood  for  a  moment  thinking  deeply.  He 
turned  from  the  pathetic  figure  which  somehow  distracted 
his  judgment.  And  he  knew  that  he  must  decide  quickly 
and  make  no  mistake. 

Finally  he  turned  to  her  again.  And  the  smile  had  re¬ 
turned  to  his  steady  eyes. 

“Tell  me  so  I  can  understand,”  he  said  gently.  “Tell 
me  all  there  is  to  it,  just  the  truth.  Tell  me  who  you 
are,  and'  what  you’re  doing  around  this  valley.  And  if 
you  show  me  the  whole  thing  right,  and  if  your — Hela — 
did  not  kill,  then  you  need  have  no  sort  of  worry  he’ll 
come  to  harm  through  me.  You  get  that?  Pass  me 
the  story,  and  make  it  short.  But  it’s  got  to  be  sheer 
truth.” 

The  woman’s  hand  remained  buried  in  the  bosom  of 
her  gown,  and  now  she  raised  the  other,  and,  a  picture  of 
submission  and  humility,  she  stood  with  it  pressed  over 
that  which  was  hidden  in  her  bosom.  Her  black  eyes 
were  less  fearful,  her  lined  cheeks  were  less  drawn.  Her 
whole  appearance  suggested  the  passing  of  something 
of  the  weight  of  terror  under  which  she  had  been  labour¬ 
ing. 

She  began  her  story  at  once.  She  spoke  quietly,  in 
contrast  with  her  recent  emotion,  and  in  the  curious 
broken  phraseology  which  denoted  her  rare  use  of  a 
tongue  she  otherwise  knew  well  enough. 

She  told  him  that  her  man  was  Count  Ukisama — Hela 
Ukisama — and  that  she  was  his  wife,  Crysa.  She  told 
him  that  he  was  the  head,  and  original  organizer  of  the 
people  who  were  called  the  Euralians.  She  told  him  they 
came,  as  he  had  already  guessed,  from  Northern  Japan, 


THE  EYES  IN  THE  NIGHT 


191 

and  were  engaged  in  a  great  traffic  in  furs  with  the 
Eskimo,  which  were  secretly  exported  in  whalers  from 
the  far  northern  harbours  of  the  country.  But  she 
warned  him  this  was  not  the  whole  trade.  There  was  oil 
and  coal.  But  most  desired  of  all  was  the  gold  which 
they  had  found  in  these  northern  valleys  for  years. 

Close  questioning,  as  she  proceeded,  quickly  showed 
Wilder  that  she  was  completely  ignorant  of  the  methods 
by  which  this  traffic  was  carried  on.  She  knew  nothing 
of  the  hideous  murder  and  piracy  which  was  the  whole 
story  of  these  yellow  marauders.  Obviously  she  was 
told  by  her  husband  only  those  things  he  considered  were 
sufficient  for  her  to  know. 

When  she  came  to  the  story  of  Marty  Le  Gros,  and  his 
gold  “strike,”  it  was  clearly  different.  Here  she  was  ap¬ 
parently  aware  of  every  detail,  and  she  made  it  plain  that 
after  the  coming  of  Usak,  and  Ukisama  had  been  so  in¬ 
humanly  blinded,  she  had  forced  her  husband  to  tell  her 
the  true  meaning  of  the  terrible  thing  that  had  happened. 

It  was  a  story  that  lost  nothing  of  its  awful  significance 
from  her  broken  and  sometimes  almost  incoherent  way  of 
telling  it.  He  learnt  how  Ukisama  and  his  son  Sate  had 
heard  of  Le  Gros’  “strike,”  and  how  they  strove  by  every 
means  in  their  power  to  jump  in  on  it.  How  they  had 
searched  Loon  Creek  from  end  to  end,  and  finally  aban¬ 
doned  their  search  convinced  that  the  missionary  had 
given  that  as  the  locality  simply  to  mislead.  Then  at 
once  they  became  angry  and  were  determined  to  make 
him  yield  them  his  secret. 

She  told  him  of  the  descent  upon  the  mission  at  Fox 
Bluff,  where  they  meant  to  wring  his  secret  from  him, 
and  how  they  had  utterly  failed  through  the  impetuosity 
of  her  son,  Sate,  who,  when  the  missionary  prepared  to 
defend  himself  with  his  guns,  fired  a  reckless  shot  which 


192 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


mortally  wounded  him.  Hela,  she  declared,  deplored  the 
act  as  ruining  his  chance  of  learning  the  man’s  secret. 
Then  she  declared  that  the  squaw  of  the  man  Usak  had 
interfered,  and  again  the  hot-headed  Sate  had  taken  the 
matter  into  his  own  hands  and  shot  her  down. 

“And  your  Hela,  this  boy’s  father,  just  looked  on  while 
this  was  done?” 

Wilder’s  question  came  sharply  when  the  woman  nar¬ 
rated  this  incredible  detail  of  her  story  with  an  air  of 
entirely  honest  conviction. 

“No,  no,”  she  cried,  and  hastily  launched  a  torrential 
defence  of  her  blinded  charge. 

She  denied  flatly  that  her  husband  desired  to  harm  a 
hair  of  the  head  of  anyone.  But  Sate  was  a  wild  youth 
whom  none  could  tame,  and  least  of  all  his  father.  No. 
When  his  father  found  what  had  been  done  he  became 
scared,  and  it  was  then  he  did  the  only  thing  left  him. 
He  fired  the  mission  in  the  hope  of  hiding  up  his  son’s 
crime.  Then  she  said  they  hastened  away,  and  came  up 
the  river  with  all  speed.  But  they  had  forgotten  Usak, 
whom  they  had  not  encountered.  She  did  not  know  how 
it  came,  nor  did  her  husband.  But  Usak  knew  them.  He 
knew  their  home  here  in  this  valley,  and  he  set  out,  and, 
by  means  they  did  not  understand,  he  arrived  at  this  house 
before  them. 

Then  she  detailed,  with  painful  emotion  the  things  that 
happened  with  Usak’s  coming.  How  he,  a  great,  fierce 
Indian  man,  stole  in  on  the  house  and  murdered  their 
three  servants — the  rest  all  being  away  with  her  husband. 
The  last  one,  after  being  mortally  wounded  by  the 
Indian’s  hunting  knife,  managing  to  reach  her  in  the 
sitting  hall  to  warn  her.  He  fell  dead  on  the  floor  in  a 
pool  of  blood  before  her  eyes.  In  her  terror  she  had 
hastily  fled  to  the  secret  cellars  which  were  under  the 


THE  EYES  IN  THE  NIGHT 


193 


house,  where  they  stored  their  trade  in  gold.  And  so 
she  remained  until  Usak  had  passed  from  the  house  of 
death.  Then  long  afterwards,  she  learned  from  Hela 
that  he  passed  down  the  river  and  waited  for  their  return 
with  the  canoe.  He  waited  hidden  on  the  bank.  And  he 
shot  every  man  in  the  canoe  as  it  passed,  including  their 
son  Sate.  He  spared  none.  Not  one — except  her  hus¬ 
band.  And  so  her  husband  made  the  landing  where  she 
was  awaiting  him. 

Then  came  the  final  tragedy.  The  Indian  was  in  hid¬ 
ing.  He  had  kept  pace  with  the  boat,  and  when  Hela 
landed  he  leapt  out  on  him  to  complete  his  terrible  pur¬ 
pose.  He  fought  not  to  kill  but  to  blind.  And  he  suc¬ 
ceeded.  He  left  her  man  alive,  but  with  his  eyes  lying  on 
his  cheeks.  And,  before  he  went,  he  warned  them  what 
he  had  done  was  sufficient  for  the  time.  But  that  later, 
after  a  long  time,  he  would  return  and  kill  them  both. 

“And  he  will  come,”  she  wailed  in  conclusion.  “For 
he  is  an  Indian,  and  his  squaw  was  killed  by  our  son.  He 
will  come.  Oh,  yes.” 

“Yet  you  stay  here?  Why?”  Again  came  Wilder’s 
sharp  question.  He  had  steeled  himself  against  the  pity 
which  the  woman’s  unutterable  despair  inspired. 

The  little  creature  shook  her  head  in  complete  helpless¬ 
ness. 

“How  we  go?”  she  asked.  “It  cannot  be.  He  is  blind. 
We  are  alone.  The  men  leave  us  now  he  is  blind.  They 
trade  for  themselves.  Hela  no  longer  has  power.  They 
laugh  in  his  face  if  he  make  order  for  them  to  obey.  No. 
And  they  will  not  let  him  go  either.  They  keep  him 
here.  They  know.  If  he  go  back  to  Japan  then  another 
is  sent  who  sees.  Then  these  men  no  longer  trade  for 
themselves.  No.  They  will  not  let  him  go.  They  keep 
him  here.  They  pass  us  food.  They  let  them  not  know  in 


13 


194 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


Japan  the  thing  it  is.  An’  so  they  work  the  oil,  and  coal, 
and  gold.  And  they  travel  far  for  the  furs.  And  so  it  is. 
And  then  sometime  Usak  will  come  again,  and  then — 
and  then - ” 

Suddenly  she  withdrew  the  hand  which  had  remained 
all  the  time  she  was  telling  her  story  in  the  bosom  of  her 
dress.  It  was  grasping  a  large,  folded  paper.  She  held] 
it  out,  literally  thrusting  it  at  Wilder,  who  took  it  from 
her  with  gravely  questioning  eyes. 

“What  is  it?”  he  demanded,  and  curiosity  had  replaced 
the  sharpness  in  his  voice. 

“The  plan  of  the  gold.  The  gold  of  this  Marty  Le 
Gros.  It  is  for  you.  I  give  it.  So  you  will  make  it  that 
Usak  not  come  again  to  kill.  You,  an  officer  police.” 

Wilder  opened  the  paper  and  glanced  at  it.  A  clear 
exact  drawing  was  inscribed  on  its  discoloured  surface. 
It  was  a  map  in  minute  detail,  and  he  re-folded  it  quickly 
while  his  gaze  searched  the  urgent  eyes  raised  to  his. 

“You  give  me  this?”  he  said,  in  a  quiet  fashion  that 
revealed  none  of  the  surge  of  excitement  with  which  he 
was  suddenly  filled. 

“Yes.” 

The  little  woman  who  had  called  herself  Crysa  Uki- 
sama  suddenly  flung  out  her  hands  in  an  agony  of  vehe¬ 
ment  appeal. 

“I  give  it.  I  take  this  thing  from  its  place.  This  bad 
thing,  which  is  evil  to  us.  He  not  know  I  take  it.  Oh, 
no.  Sate  find  it  in  the  house  of  the  missionary  before 
they  fire  it.  And  he,  Hela,  not  give  it  up.  No.  Yet  he 
cannot  see  it.  He  cannot  find  this  place.  He  say,  too, 
it  is  evil,  and  no  one  must  see  it.  So  I  hide  it  all  this  long 
time,  and  keep  it.  But  I  know.  So  long  we  keep  it  this 
Usak  sure  come  back  an’  kill  us.  It  is  for  that  bad  paper 
he  come.  It  make  him  come.  You  take  it.  You  have  it. 


THE  EYES  IN  THE  NIGHT 


195 


And  maybe  you  give  it  Usak  so  he  will  not  come  back. 
You  officer  police.  You  know  this  man?  You  say,  Hela 
Ukisama  send  it  so  he  not  come  an’  kill  my  Hela?  You 
think  that?  You  make  him  not  come?  Oh,  I  go  mad 
when  he  come  bimeby.  Yes.  He  kill  my  Hela.  Same  as 
he  kill  all  other  man.  I  know.  Oh !” 

With  her  last  wailing  cry  Crysa  buried  her  face  in  her 
delicate,  ageing  hands,  and  a  passion  of  emotion  racked 
her  frail  body.  Wilder  looked  on  in  that  helplessness 
which  all  men  experience  in  face  of  a  woman’s  outburst 
of  genuine  grief.  He  waited.  There  was  nothing  else 
for  him  to  do,  and,  presently,  the  distraught  creature 
recovered  herself. 

Then  he  reached  out,  and  one  hand  came  to  rest  on 
the  silken-clad  shoulder. 

‘‘You’ve  told  me  the  truth  as  far  as  you  know  it,  my 
dear,”  he  said  very  gently.  “You’ve  been  hit  hard. 
Darn  hard.  So  hard  I  don’t  know  just  what  to  say  to 
you.  But  you’ve  done  well  passing  me  that  story  and 
that  paper,  and  I’m  going  to  do  all  I  know  to  help  you. 
See  here,  I’m  not  going  to  hand  you  out  all  sorts  of  rash 
promises,  but,  if  ther’s  a  thing  I  can  do  to  stop  that 
Indian  man,  Usak,  getting  around  back  here  to  hurt  you, 
why,  I’m  just  going  to  do  it.  Go  right  back  to  your  man 
now.  He’s  been  pretty  badly  punished.  So  badly  it 
don’t  seem  to  me  he  needs  a  thing  more  of  that  sort 
this  earth  can  hand  him.  And  as  for  you  you’ve  deserved 
none  of  it.  Go  back  to  him,  and  you  have  my  given 
word,  that,  just  as  hard  as  I’ve  worked  on  the  thing  the 
p’lice  have  sent  me  out  to  do,  I’ll  work  to  see  no  harm 
comes  to  you  from  this  Indian  man.  So  long.” 


CHAPTER  VII 


THE  DREAM  HILL 

It  was  less  than  ten  weeks  to  the  time  when  the  first 
fierce  rush  of  winter  might  be  expected.  Already  the  days 
were  shortening  down  with  their  customary  rush,  and  in 
a  brief  time  only  the  Caribou  Valley,  the  river,  the  whole 
world  of  the  far  North  would  be  lost  to  sight  under  the 
white  shroud  of  battling  elements,  whose  merciless  war¬ 
fare  would  be  waged,  with  only  brief  intervals  of 
armistice,  until  such  time  as  the  summer  daylight  dawned 
again. 

Hesther  McLeod  was  sitting  in  her  doorway.  It  was 
the  favoured  sitting  place  she  usually  selected  when  the 
flies  and  summer  heat  made  her  rough  kitchen  something 
approaching  the  intolerable.  The  intense  heat  of  summer 
was  lessening,  but  the  ominous  chill  of  winter  had  not 
yet  made  itself  felt.  The  sky  had  lost  something  of  its 
summer  brilliance,  and  clouds  were  wont  to  bank  heavily 
with  the  threat  of  the  coming  season.  But  the  flies  re¬ 
mained.  They  would  undoubtedly  remain  until  swept 
from  the  face  of  the  earth  by  the  first  heavy  frost. 

Hesther  was  assiduously  battling  with  one  of  her  many 
tasks  while  she  talked  in  her  simple,  homely  fashion  to 
the  Kid,  who  was  standing  beside  her.  The  foster-mother 
was  frail  but  wiry,  and,  with  her  greying  brown  hair  and 
thin  face,  looked  the  work-worn,  happy  philosopher  she 

196 


THE  DREAM  HILL 


197 


actually  was.  The  Kid  was  a  picture  of  charming 
femininity  for  all  the  mannish  mode  of  her  working 
clothes.  Her  pretty,  rounded  figure  would  not  be  denied 
under  the  beaded  caribou-skin  parka  that  reached  almost 
to  her  knees.  It  was  belted  in  about  the  waist,  and  a 
fierce-looking  hunting  knife  protruded  from  its  slung 
sheath.  Her  wealth  of  fair  hair  was  supposed  to  be 
tightly  coiled  under  the  enveloping  cap  drawn  down 
over  it.  But  it  had  fallen,  as  it  usually  fell,  upon  her 
shoulders  as  though  refusing  to  endure  imprisonment 
when  the  sun  it  loved  to  reflect  was  shining.  Her  blue 
eyes  were  deeply  thoughtful  just  now  as  they  regarded 
the  bowed  head  of  the  beloved  mother  woman.  She 
watched  the  nimble  fingers  spread  the  buckskin  patch  out 
over  the  jagged  rent  in  the  seat  of  Perse’s  diminutive 
breeches. 

“You  know,”  Hesther  said,  without  looking  up,  “that 
little  feller  Perse’ll  make  good  someways.  I  can’t  guess 
how.  But  his  queer  little  head’s  plumb  full  of  things  that 
stick  worse  than  flies.  An’  even  though  the  seat  of  his 
pants  drops  right  out,  which  it’s  mostly  doing  all  the  time, 
he’ll  foller  his  notion  clear  through  to  the  end.  He’s 
got  the  gold  bug  now,  an’  spends  most  all  his  time 
skiddin’  himself  over  rocks  an’  things  chasin’  what  he 
wouldn’t  rec’nise  if  he  beat  his  pore  little  head  right  up 
against  it.  I  want  to  laff  most  all  the  time  at  his  yarns. 
But  I  just  don’t.  I’ve  a  hunch  to  see  him  do  things.” 

The  Kid  nodded. 

“Yes,”  she  agreed  simply.  Then  her  gaze  was  turned 
to  the  distant  river  where  its  shining  waters  could  just 
be  seen  beyond  the  lank  jack  pines  which  surrounded  the 
rambling  house.  “Perse  is  the  brightest  of  the  bunch. 
You  know,  Mum,  it’s  kind  of  queer  us  talking  of  the 
kids  making  good.  We  don’t  ever  stop  to  guess  how 


198 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


they’re  going  to  do  it — away  up  here,  thousands  of  miles 
from,  from  anywhere.” 

Hesther  flung  a  quick  upward  glance  at  the  sweet 
weather-tanned  face  that  was  no  longer  smiling.  She 
was  wondering,  for  the  girl’s  tone  had  a  note  in  it  to 
which  she  was  quite  unaccustomed.  In  a  moment,  how¬ 
ever,  her  eyes  had  dropped  again  to  the  thick  patch  cut 
from  a  caribou  moccasin  she  was  endeavouring  to  make 
fast  to  the  child’s  tattered  pants. 

“Trouble,  Kid?”  she  asked,  without  looking  up  again. 

These  two  understood  each  other.  A  deep  bond  of 
sympathy  and  love  held  them.  The  girl  looked  to  this 
brave  little  widow  of  Jim  McLeod  for  sympathy  and 
comfort  in  her  distress  as  a  child  looks  to  its  mother.  In 
affairs  which  needed  capacity  and  strong  execution  the 
position  was  reversed.  This  girl  of  twenty,  supported  by 
the  staunch  Usak,  strong  in  spirit  and  youthful  optimism, 
wide  in  her  grasp  of  the  affairs  of  the  farm,  was  responsi¬ 
ble  leader  in  all  pertaining  to  their  livelihood.  Just  now 
the  girl  was  troubled  and  Hesther  realised  that  the  Kid 
had  not  abandoned  her  afternoon’s  work  at  the  corrals 
simply  for  idle  talk  at  her  doorway.  Her  interrogation 
was  calculated.  She  wanted  the  girl  to  talk. 

“Nothing  worse  than  usual,  Mum,”  she  said  with  a 
sigh.  “It’ll  be  two  years  since  Ben  Needham  went,  come 
next  opening.  We’ve  enough  supplies  to  see  us  through 
six  months.  That’s  the  limit.  Usak’ll  be  along  back 
before  the  freeze-up.  Weil,  things  depend  on  the  trade 
he  brings  back,  and  a  winter  trail  to  Placer.  Do  you 
get  it?  By  next  spring  our  stores’ll  be  run  out.  If  he 
brings  back  good  trade,  and  no  accident  happens  along 
on  our  winter  trail,  we’ll  be  in  fairly  good  shape  for 
awhile.  But  it  just  means  we  can’t  put  in  another  season 
right  through.  I  don’t  see  how  we  can,  unless  we  have 


THE  DREAM  HILL 


199 


mighty  good  luck.  The  thing’s  as  dead  as  caribou  meat 
without  a  market  right  alongside,  like  it  was  when  Ben 
Needham  was  around.  We’re  right  here  beyond  the 
edge  of  the  world,  and — and  it  can’t  be  done.” 

“You  mean — quit?  An’  with  the  boys  coming  along? 
The  twins  are  nearly  sixteen.” 

The  mother  laboured  on  assiduously.  The  busy  needle 
punched  its  way  through  the  tough  buckskin  with  a  sharp 
click  as  the  strong  fingers  plied  it. 

The  Kid  glanced  down  at  the  bowed  figure. 

“The  boys  are  good.  Alg  is  a  real  man  around  the 
deer,”  she  said,  with  a  shadow  of  a  smile  in  her  pretty 
eyes.  “Clarence  is  hardening  into  a  tough  trail  man. 
Usak  reckons  he’s  a  great  feller  to  have  with  him.  But 
it’s  not  that,  Mum.  It’s  the  trade  these  wretched 
Euralians  beat  us  out  of,  and  the  distance  to  our 
market.” 

“Is  that  all  it  is.  Kid?” 

Hesther’s  needle  was  still.  She  was  looking  up  with  a 
pair  of  soft,  brown,  questioning  eyes,  and  the  gentle 
mentality  behind  them  was  reading  the  girl  through  and 
through  with  a  certainty  that  her  transparent  simplicity 
and  innocence  made  possible. 

“How  can  it  be  anything  else,  Mum?  I  guess  ther’s 
nothing  around  this  farm  to  worry  with  but  the  feeding 
of  hungry  mouths.” 

The  Kid  had  turned  away.  Again  her  eyes  had  sought 
the  gleam  of  waters  sedately  flowing  on  to  their  junction 
with  the  greater  river  beyond. 

The  mother  shook  her  head.  She  leant  forward  on 
her  door-sill  with  her  lean,  bare  arms  folded  over  her 
offspring’s  clothing. 

“I  don’t  just  see  how  it  can  be  a  thing  else,”  she 
admitted  promptly.  “But  I  was  thinkin’.  You  see,  Kid, 


200 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


you’re  over  twenty.  Let’s  see.  Why,  I  guess  you’re 
over  twenty-one.  Yes.  Sure  you  must  be.” 

And  she  deliberately  began  to  count  up  the  years  that 
had  passed  since  the  terrible  time  of  the  descent  of  the 
Euralians  on  Fox  Bluff.  The  girl  watched  the  counting 
fingers,  and  the  abstracted  gaze  of  the  other  as  she 
reckoned  up  her  sum. 

“But  what’s  that  to  do  with  it,  Mum?”  she  cried. 
“Sure  I’m  over  twenty-one,  but - ” 

Hesther  laughed  gently.  She  shook  her  head. 

“There  was  no  talk  of  quitting,  whatever  our  trade, 
before  you  made  Placer  last  year  with  Usak.  Say,  Kid,” 
she  went  on,  with  infinite  sympathy  and  gentleness, 
“you’re  a  woman  now.  You  aren’t  a — Kid — any  longer. 
Does  it  tell  you  anything?”  She  raised  a  pointing  finger 
that  was  painfully  work-worn,  and  admonished  her. 
“My  dear,  things  are  a  heap  different  through  a  woman’s 
eyes.  When  you’re  a  kid  you’re  mostly  crazy  with  every 
new  thing  just  living  can  show  you.  When  you’re  a 
woman  it  isn’t  life  just  to  live.  Ther’s  a  whole  book  full 
o’  feelings,  and  wants,  an’  notions  start  in  to  worry 
around,  and  the  answer  to  ’em  isn’t  found  in  the  work 
of  running  a  caribou  farm,  and  beating  a  bunch  of 
scallawags  who’re  grabbing  your  trade.  It  isn’t  found 
in  yearning  to  hand  a  stomach  full  o’  food  to  a  crowd 
of  kids  you  love  like  brothers  an’  sisters,  either.” 

The  girl’s  eyes  were  searching  for  all  their  responsive 
smile,  and  she  made  no  attempt  at  denial. 

“Wher’  d’you  find  the  answer,  Mum?”  she  asked. 

The  older  woman’s  eye  fell  serious.  A  wistful  yearn¬ 
ing  crept  into  them. 

“I  found  it  in  two  things  when  I  was  your  age,”  she 
said.  “First  it  was  in  the  excitement  of  fancy  clothes, 
and  parties,  where  folks  of  my  own  age  got  around,  boys 


THE  DREAM  HILL 


201 


and  gals.  Then  I  guessed  the  answer  to  every  yearning 
I  had  was  in  my  Jim,  and  in  the  bunch  o’  scallawags  he 
set  crawling  around  my  knees.  Why,  Kid,  this  queer 
old  world’s  just  got  only  one  place  where  it  can  make  me 
feel  good.  It’s  where  my  Jim’s  babies  are.  You  been 
down  to  Placer.  You  and  Usak.  You’ve  seen  a  big  city 
where  ther’s  white-folk  like  yourself,  where  ther’s  lights 
burning  on  the  streets,  and  folks  dancing,  and  parties 
racketing,  and  the  boys  and  gals  are  having  quite  a 
time.  Then  you  get  along  back  to  the  farm  here,  and  the 
kids,  and,  maybe,  me.  And  I  guess  you’re  glad — for 
awhile.” 

The  girl  moved  from  the  door-casing  where  she  had 
been  leaning.  She  abruptly  dropped  to  a  seat  on  the 
door-sill  beside  Hesther,  and  took  possession  of  the  thin, 
strong  hand  nearest  to  her.  There  was  a  change  in  her 
as  sudden  as  had  been  her  movements.  Her  eyes  were 
shining  and  full  of  something  Hesther  had  never  seen 
in  them  before.  And  somehow  the  magnetism  of  it,  her 
sudden,  almost  passionate  earnestness  claimed  the  older 
woman  and  left  her  with  a  feeling  that  was  something 
scared. 

“Tell  me,  Mum,”  she  cried,  in  a  thrilling  voice.  “You 
haven’t  told  me  enough.  You  loved  your  Jim.  Tell  me 
just  how  you  loved  him.” 

“It  ’ud  be  easier  to  tell  you  how  the  thunder  banks  up 
in  summer  and  bursts  over  us,”  Hesther  replied  with  a 
headshake,  while  her  hand  responded  with  sympathetic 

pressure  to  the  clasp  of  the  girl  s. 

She  gazed  into  the  earnest  face  that  so  reminded  her  of 
the  father  who  had  been  slain  so  many  years  before,  and 
the  pretty,  fair-haired  woman  who  had  borne  this  foster 
child  of  hers.  She  was  wondering  at  the  girl’s  sudden 
passion  of  interest  in  her  love  for  the  dead  man  who 


202 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


had  given  her  such  a  wealth  of  simple  happiness.  It  was 
a  new  phase,  and  it  meant  something.  And  she  wondered 
what  the  meaning  was. 

“No,  Kid/’  she  went  on.  “I  don’t  reckon  if  I  talked 
from  now  to  Kingdom  Come  I  could  ever  tell  you  the 
thing  you’re  asking.  He  was  my  man,  just  all  of  him. 
Could  you  feel  so  that  any  feller  could  tell  you  to  do  the 
craziest  thing  and  you’d  want  to  get  busy  right  away 
doing  it?  Could  you  feel  so  that  a  feller’s  frown  was 
better  than  the  whole  world’s  smile?  Could  you  feel 
you’d  rather  have  one  man  call  you  a  crazy  fool,  and  beat 
you  over  the  head  with  a  club,  than  a  hundred  swell  fellers 
bowing  an’  scraping  to  hand  you  a  good  time?  If  you 
could  feel  all  that  foolish  stuff  you’d  know  something 
how  I  loved  my  Jim.  He  was  mine,  Kid,”  she  went 
on  squeezing  the  girl’s  plump  hand  in  her  thin,  strong 
fingers.  “He  was  mine  from  the  roof  of  his  head  to 
the  soles  of  his  caribou  moccasins,  and  life  with  him  was 
full  of  sunshine,  even  when  the  night  of  winter  shut 
down.  And  he  handed  me  all  these  ‘God’s  blessings’ 
that  aren’t  never  content  but  that  I’m  doing  an’  making 
for  them  all  the  time.  My,  but  I’d  be  glad  to  have  you 
feel  all  those  things.” 

The  girl  nodded.  Her  eyes  were  deeply  contemplative. 
She  was  not  looking  at  the  woman  beside  her  but  gazing 
abstractedly  into  space. 

“I — I  think  I  could  feel  all  that,”  she  said  after  awhile. 
“I — I  think  I  could  feel  so  a  man  could  beat  me  to  death 
if  he  wanted  to.  But - ” 

She  broke  off.  Then  her  gaze  came  back  to  the  brown 
eyes  beside  her,  and  a  sort  of  ecstatic  smile  lit  her  eyes 
and  transformed  her  with  its  radiance. 

“But  he’d  have  to  be  a  great  feller,  with  the  courage  of 
a  fighter.  He’d  have  to  be  a  man  who  ordered  other 


THE  DREAM  HILL 


203 


folks  around,  a  man  who  knew  no  fear.  A  man  who’d 
help  a  friend  with  his  last  dollar  or  kill  the  enemy  who 
hurt  him.  Yes,”  she  went  on  dreamily,  “and  he’d  have 
grey  eyes,  and  a  strong  face  that  wasn’t  maybe  too  good- 
looking,  and  dark  hair,  and  shoulders  like  a  bull  caribou, 
and - ” 

“Be  like  to  some  feller  you  got  a  look  at  down  in 
Placer?” 

Hesther  had  returned  to  her  work,  and  drew  a  deep 
breath  of  expectancy.  But  the  girl  ignored  the  challenge. 
She  turned  suddenly  and  spoke  with  feverish  eagerness. 

“You  felt  that  way,  Mum,  for  your  Jim?”  she 
demanded.  “That’s  the  way  all  gals  feel  when  they  want 
— want  to  marry  someone?  Maybe  the  Eskimo  squaws 
feel  that  way,  too?  Just  every  woman?  Is  that  so?” 

Hesther  smiled  and  nodded. 

“Sure.  Tell  me  about  him.” 

The  older  woman’s  philosophy  had  been  swallowed  up 
by  the  irresistible  emotions  of  her  sex.  She  wanted  to 
hear  the  story  of  this  child’s  tender  romance.  She  had 
made  up  her  mind  there  was  a  romance  deeply  hidden 
within  her  innocent  heart,  and  that  it  had  taken  place  in 
that  great  gold  city  the  girl  had  visited  with  Usak.  She 
was  hungering  for  the  story  of  it  as  every  real  woman 
hungers  for  the  love  story  of  another,  after  having  passed 
a  similar  milestone  in  her  own  life.  She  was  thrilled,  and 
her  calm  veins  were  afire  with  the  recrudescence  of  her 
youth. 

But  the  Kid  suddenly  came  out  of  her  dreaming,  and 
smilingly  shook  her  head  in  a  fashion  that  flooded  the 
other  with  disappointment. 

“No,  Mum,”  she  said.  “There  wasn’t  a  feller  in  Placer 
made  me  feel  that  way.  Not  one.  I — I  was  just 
thinking.  That’s  all.” 


204 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


“And  it  makes  you  want  to  quit  and  get  around  where 
life’s  real  life?”  Hesther  cried  incredulously.  “An’ 
where  there’s  folks  and  parties,  and  marrying,  and  you 
can  have  a  place  in  it  all?” 

Again  the  girl  shook  her  head.  This  time  all  smiling 
had  passed.  Her  lips  were  no  longer  happily  parted. 
And  the  corners  of  her  mouth  were  slightly  depressed. 

“No,  dear,”  she  said,  with  a  decision  which  the  other 
felt  had  cost  her  an  effort.  “I  don’t  feel  like  quitting. 
I  don’t  want  to  quit.  Ever!  I  want  to  stay  right  here, 
till — till — I  want  to  stay  here  always  with  you,  and  the 
kids,  and  Usak.  But  sense  says  I  can’t.  None  of  us  can. 
We’ve  played  our  game  to  the  limit,  an’  I  guess  the  cards 
are  dead  against  us.  We  must  go  next  year  for — the 
sake  of  those  babies  your  Jim  handed  to  you.  I  don’t 
just  know  all  it  means.  I  don’t  just  see  what  we’re  to 
do  to  earn  our  food.  But  we’ll  have  to  make  the  break, 
and  take  what  the  good  God  hands — Hello!” 

The  girl  broke  off.  Her  final  exclamation  came  at  the 
sight  of  a  little  procession  which  hurried  round  the  angle 
of  the  building.  It  was  headed  by  Mary  Justicia  and  the 
adventurous  Perse.  Alg  was  behind  carrying  Jane  Con¬ 
stance  in  his  sturdy  arms,  while  Gladys  Anne  clung  to  him 
yielding  him  her  moral  support. 

It  was  a  subdued  procession,  and  the  Kid  and  the 
mother  looked  for  the  thing  which  had  affected  them  so 
seriously.  Their  attention  became  promptly  fixed  on  the 
dripping  bundle  of  humanity  in  the  elder  boy’s  arms. 
An  explanation  was  instantly  forthcoming  in  the  coolest 
phraseology. 

“Darn  crazy  little  buzzock  reckoned  to  drown  herself,” 
the  boy  said  with  a  grin.  “Hadn’t  no  more  sense  than 
to  fall  off’n  the  driftwood  pile  into  six  foot  of  water. 
We  shaken  most  of  it  out  of  her.” 


THE  DREAM  HILL 


205 


The  mother  was  on  her  feet  in  a  moment,  and  the 
child,  despite  her  liquid  condition,  was  snatched  to  her 
eager  bosom.  And  in  her  anxiety  everything  else  was 
completely  forgotten. 

“You  pore  little  bit,”  she  cried  solicitously  as  she 
hugged  the  moist  bundle  in  her  arms.  Then  she  turned 
on  the  gawking  youth  with  which  she  was  surrounded. 
She  glanced  swiftly  over  the  faces  grinning  up  at  her, 
and  punctuated  her  survey  with  a  sweeping  condem¬ 
nation. 

“You  bunch  o’  hoodlams,”  she  cried.  “The  good  God 
gave  you  the  image  of  Hisself,  did  He?  Well,  I  guess 
He  must  ha’  forgot  the  mush  you  need  to  think  with. 
Be  off  with  you.  The  whole  bunch.  You,  Mary  Justicia, 
stay  around  an’  help  me  scrape  the  pore  mite  clean.  The 
rest  of  you  get  out  o’  my  sight.  I  don’t  feel  like  looking 
at  any  of  you  again — ever.” 

She  vanished  into  the  house,  a  diminutive  figure  of 
righteous  indignation,  and  the  Kid  was  left  to  the  eager, 
laughing  explanations  of  the  unimpressed  culprits. 


The  kyak  darted  down  the  river  on  a  stream  that  made 
its  progress  something  like  the  flight  of  an  arrow.  Its 
great  length  and  narrow  width  left  it  a  crazy  enough 
vessel  to  handle,  but  the  Kid  had  been  born  and  bred  to 
its  manipulation,  and  she  played  with  it  as  she  chose 
without  concern  for  its  crankiness.  Her  gun  lay  in  the 
bottom  of  the  hide-built  craft,  for  she  was  speeding  down 
towards  the  marshes  in  quest  of  water-fowl. 

With  the  rapid  passing  of  the  shortening  northern  day 
she  knew  she  would  find  the  marsh  alive  with  duck. 
Game  was  plentiful  just  now.  In  another  few  weeks  the 
approach  of  winter  would  drive  the  migratory  fowl  south, 


206 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


where  the  waters  remained  open  and  winter  feed  was  to 
be  had  in  abundance.  The  girl  was  pot-hunting,  and  the 
full  stocking  of  the  farm  larder  was  an  important  duty 
in  her  routine  of  life. 

Silently,  almost  ghostlike,  the  dip  of  her  paddle  giving 
out  no  sound,  she  sped  on  over  the  shining  waters  be¬ 
tween  high,  lichen-grown  banks,  that  were  mostly  rock- 
bound  and  almost  completely  sterile.  It  was  a  wild, 
broken  stretch  of  country,  without  any  of  the  vegetation 
which  was  the  inspiration  of  the  setting  of  the  farm.  It 
was  without  any  graciousness,  from  the  southern  hills  to 
the  northern  limits  containing  the  shallow  valley.  But 
even  so,  to  this  girl,  who  had  known  the  Caribou  Valley 
all  her  young  life,  there  was  intense  attraction  in  every 
detail  of  its  familiar  uncouthness. 

Quite  abruptly  she  passed  beyond  the  undulating,  rock- 
bound  stretch,  and  shot  into  the  jaws  of  a  short  but  nar¬ 
row  canyon.  For  no  apparent  reason  the  country  about 
her  suddenly  reared  itself  into  a  tumbled  sea  of  low, 
broken  hills  that  darkly  overshadowed  the  passage  which 
the  river  had  eaten  through  them.  The  gleaming  waters 
had  lost  their  vivid,  dancing  light  and  assumed  an  almost 
inky  blackness.  Their  speed  had  increased,  and  they 
frothed  and  churned  as  they  beat  against  the  facets  of 
the  encompassing  walls,  as  though  in  anger  at  a  resistance 
they  had  never  been  able  to  overcome. 

The  girl  was  gazing  ahead  at  the  far  opening,  where  the 
hills  gave  way  to  the  wide  muskeg  which  was  her  goal. 
It  was  at  the  sort  of  giant  gateway  which  was  formed 
by  two  sheer  sentry  rocks  standing  guard  on  either  side 
of  the  river,  overshadowing,  frowning,  lofty,  windswept 
and  bare. 

A  girlish  impulse  urged  her.  These  two  barren  crests 
were  old-time  friends  of  her  childhood.  The  leaning 


THE  DREAM  HILL 


207 


summit  of  the  hill  on  the  left  bank  was  the  dream  place 
of  childish  fancy.  It  was  always  windswept,  even  on  the 
calmest  day.  It  was  beyond  the  reach  of  the  mosquitoes 
and  flies  abounding  on  the  river.  It  was  free  and  open  to 
the  sunlight,  which  was  getting  shorter  now  with  every 
passing  day.  And,  somehow,  an  hour  passed  on  its 
chilly  summit  never  failed  to  inspire  her  heart  with 
feelings  freed  from  the  oppressive  weight  of  the  cares  of 
her  life  below. 

Yes.  She  would  leave  the  feeding  fowl  to  their  evening 
meal.  For  the  present  there  was  no  shortage  in  the  farm 
larder.  The  marshes  could  wait  till  to-morrow.  For  the 
moment  she  felt  deeply  in  need  of  that  consolation  she 
never  failed  to  find  in  this  old  friend  of  her  earlier  years. 
She  would  pass  an  hour  with  it.  She  would  confide  to  it 
the  story  of  those  feelings  and  desires,  which,  with  every 
passing  month,  were  absorbing  her  more  and  more  deeply. 
For  she  was  restless,  disturbed.  As  Hesther  had  sug¬ 
gested,  the  dawning  womanhood  in  her  was  crying  out. 

Oh,  yes.  She  understood  now.  The  life  of  the  farm 
was  no  longer  the  satisfying  thing  it  had  always  been. 
Something  was  amiss  with  her.  A  great,  unrecognised 
longing  had  been  urgent  in  her  for  months  past.  And  a 
glimmer  of  its  meaning  had  come  to  her  while  listening 
to  Hesther’s  endeavour  to  show  her  the  thing  which  her 
own  love  for  her  dead  husband  had  been. 

Suddenly  she  dipped  her  paddle  and  held  it.  Instantly 
her  light  vessel  swung  about  and  headed  up  stream. 
Slowly,  laboriously  it  nosed  in  against  the  stream  and 
glided  gently  up  to  the  familiar  landing  place. 

Leaping  ashore,  the  Kid  stooped  and  grasped  the 
central  struts  of  her  craft.  Then  she  lifted  it  bodily  out 
of  the  water,  and  set  it  in  safety  on  the  broad  strand. 


208 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


The  Kid  was  squatting  trail  fashion  with  her  back 
thrust  against  the  smooth-worn,  almost  polished  sides  of  a 
great  boulder.  The  chill  wind  was  beating  against  her 
rounded  cheeks.  There  were  moments  when  its  nipping 
blast  brought  tears  to  her  eyes.  And  her  soft,  fair  hair 
streamed  from  under  her  cap  in  response  to  its  rough 
caresses. 

Her  eyrie  was  set  more  than  a  hundred  feet  above  the 
rest  of  the  world  about  her.  Her  gaze  was  free  to  roam 
the  length  and  breadth  of  the  valley  below  her.  There 
was  nothing  whatsoever  but  the  limit  of  vision  to  deny 
her.  Here  she  could  feast  herself  upon  the  world  she 
had  learned  to  love,  with  fancy  free  to  riot  as  it  listed. 

It  was  a  wonderful  panorama  for  all  its  harshness. 
Away  to  the  north  lay  endless  miles  of  barren,  low  hills 
and  shallow  valleys  which  lost  themselves  in  the  far-off 
purple  of  falling  daylight.  To  the  south  of  her  it  was 
the  same,  except  that  the  dying  sun  of  summer  lolled 
heavily  on  the  horizon,  gleaming,  blinding  in  its  last 
passion.  To  the  east  lay  the  farm  and  the  corrals  that 
claimed  all  her  working  hours,  and  beyond  that  was  the 
purple  of  distance  enshrouding  lank,  sparse,  woodland 
bluffs  whose  stunted,  windswept  tops  cut  sharp  drawn 
lines  against  the  far-off  shadows.  It  was  all  wide  flung, 
and  harsh,  and  infinitely  small  viewed  from  her  lofty 
crow’s-nest.  And  even  the  river,  immediately  below,  was 
no  better  than  a  silver  ribbon  dropped  by  some  careless 
hand  on  a  carpet  that  was  drab,  and  worn,  and  utterly 
without  beauty. 

But  none  of  these  claimed  her  now.  The  girl’s  gaze 
was  to  the  westward.  Even  the  hour  was  forgotten,  and 
the  spread  of  cold  grey  cloud  which  the  biting  wind  was 
driving  down  upon  the  world  out  of  the  fierce  north-east. 
Her  gaze  was  on  the  dark  line  beyond  which  flowed  the 


THE  DREAM  HILL 


209 


mighty  Hekor,  where  it  beat  the  meeting  waters  of  the 
two  rivers  into  a  cauldron  of  boiling  rapids.  It  was  on 
the  great  bluff  of  woodland  which  had  sheltered  her 
original  home,  and  beyond  which  lay  the  deserted  Fort, 
which  had  been  the  pulsing  heart  making  life  possible  for 
them  all.  And  she  was  thinking,  thinking  of  a  man  with 
“grey  eyes,  and  a  strong  face  that  wasn’t  too  good- 
looking,  and  dark  hair,  and  shoulders  like  a  bull  caribou.” 

He  had  said  he  would  return,  this  man  who  called  him¬ 
self  Bill  Wilder.  He  and  his  red-headed  companion  and 
the  grey  hard-bitten  creature  he  called  Chilcoot.  They  had 
gone  out  into  the  far  North.  The  great,  wide-open 
North  with  its  treacherous  smiling  summer  masking  a 
merciless  wintry  heart.  Would  he  return?  Would  he 
come  again  down  the  river?  Would  he  forget,  and  pass 
right  on  down  to  the  city  which  contained  his  home? 
She  wondered.  And,  with  each  possibility  that  presented 
itself,  a  cold  constriction  seemed  to  grip  her  strong 
young  heart. 

How  long  had  he  said?  She  remembered.  She  had 
never  forgotten.  She  could  never  forget.  The  man’s 
smiling  eyes  had  haunted  her  ever  since  the  first  moment 
they  had  gazed  so  earnestly,  so  kindly  into  hers.  Oh,  she 
knew  nothing  of  whence  he  came  or  whither  he  was 
bound.  She  knew  nothing  of  the  man  he  might  be. 
These  things  concerned  her  not  at  all.  She  had  judged 
him  in  the  first  moments  of  her  meeting  with  him  nearly 
two  years  ago,  and  from  the  first  words  he  had  spoken 
in  his  easy  way,  and  her  judgment  had  been  of  a  splendid 
manhood  that  harmonised  with  the  deep  woman  instinct, 
which,  for  good  or  ill,  is  the  final  tribunal  of  a  woman’s 
life. 

He  had  been  the  ideal  of  everything  that  appealed  to 
her  in  manhood.  She  had  learned  her  simple  under- 


14 


210 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


standing  of  life  amongst  the  rough  men  of  the  northern 
trail.  Here  was  a  man  recklessly  plunging  into  the  far- 
off  world,  ready  to  face  and  battle  with  every  chance  with 
which  that  world  was  crowded.  He  was  fearless.  Yes. 
He  was  all  she  looked  for  in  courage.  He  was  a  leader,  a 
strong,  determined  leader  of  men  no  less  brave  and 
adventurous  than  himself.  And  as  for  the  rest  it  was  all 
there.  She  had  seen  for  herself.  A  great  stature,  a 
strong  man’s  face.  And  eyes  that  calmly  shone  with 
honesty  and  kindliness. 

She  sighed.  Would  he  return?  The  hands  about  her 
knees  broke  apart.  They  fell  from  about  her  knees,  and 
she  stirred,  and  twisted  her  body  round  so  that  she  sat 
with  one  hand  on  the  bare  rock  supporting  it.  She  was 
facing  round  to  the  west. 

Why,  why  did  she  so  long  for  his  return?  He  had 
said  he  would  return  in  two  years.  Two  years?  That 
would  not  be  up  till  next  opening.  The  winter  ahead 
suddenly  looked  to  be  an  interminable  period  of  waiting. 
Winter.  And  anything  might  happen  to  him  in — winter. 
Suddenly  she  became  weakly  anxious  for  his  safety.  She 
knew  the  dangers.  She  knew  the  conditions  of  the 
country  into  which  he  had  gone.  The  Euralians.  The 
desperate  storms.  The —  But  she  dismissed  her  fears. 
She  remembered  the  man’s  equipment.  But  more  than 
all  she  remembered  his  confident,  commanding  eyes.  No. 
Nothing  could  harm  him.  Nothing.  Nothing.  But 
would  he  remember.  Would  he - ? 

She  started.  Suddenly  she  sprang  to  her  feet  with  the 
easy  agility  of  one  of  the  young  deer  it  was  her  work  to 
handle.  And  she  stood  against  the  sweeping  breeze,  at 
the  very  edge  of  the  ledge,  silhouetted  against  the  back¬ 
ground  of  a  dying  sun. 

The  biting  wind  swept  her  hair  across  her  eyes.  She 


THE  DREAM  HILL 


21 1 


raised  a  brown  hand  and  thrust  it  aside  and  held  its  mass 
firmly,  while  she  stared  out  wide-eyed  in  amazement. 
Then  she  raised  the  other  hand,  pointing',  a  thrill  of 
excitement,  and  gladness,  and  hope,  surging  through  her 
heart.  And  as  she  stood,  utterly  unconscious  of  the  thing 
she  did,  words  sprang  to  her  lips  and  she  counted  aloud. 

“One!  Two!  Three!  Yes.  Five  large  and  two 
small !” 

And  with  each  numeral  she  uttered,  her  pointing  hand 
moved  from  one  tiny  distant  object  on  the  river  to 
another. 

For  awhile  she  remained  spellbound  by  the  vision.  She 
remembered.  Oh,  yes.  There  could  be  no  mistake.  Five 
large  canoes  and  two  smaller.  That  had  been  the  extent 
of  Bill  Wilder’s  outfit  as  she  had  first  discovered  it.  It 
was  he.  He  was  coming  up  the  river.  He  had  returned. 
And — he  had  returned  sooner  than  he  promised. 

A  wild  tumult  of  feeling  consumed  her  as  she  stared 
at  the  distant  procession  of  boats.  Then,  in  a  moment, 
a  surge  of  colour  swept  up  into  her  cheeks,  and  a  fierce 
panic  of  shame  robbed  her  of  all  her  delight.  She  turned; 
tearing  herself  from  the  glad  sight,  and  fled  headlong  to 
her  kyak  below. 


CHAPTER  VIII 


BILL  WILDER  RE-APPEARS 

Hesther  was  perturbed,  yet  she  was  engaged  on  the  task 
of  all  tasks  which  appealed  to  her  in  her  life’s  routine. 

It  was  wash-day.  She  was  standing  over  a  boiler  of 
steaming  water,  frothing  with  soap  suds  and  full  of  a 
laundry  made  up  of  the  rainbow  hues  of  a  Joseph’s  coat. 
The  kitchen  was  reeking  with  steam.  It  was  also  littered 
with  piles  of  well-wrung  garments  awaiting  the  services 
of  Mary  Justicia  for  transfer  to  the  drying  ground  out¬ 
side.  The  swarming  flies  were  more  than  usually  sticky 
in  the  humid  atmosphere,  and  the  prevailing  confusion 
in  the  rough  living  room  was  as  splendid  as  the  most 
ardent  housewife  could  have  desired  on  such  an  occasion. 

Perturbation  with  Hesther  could  only  have  one  source. 
Something  must  be  amiss  with  one  of  the  large  family 
for  which  she  held  herself  responsible.  Nothing  else 
could  have  disturbed  her  equanimity.  She  was  com¬ 
pletely  single-minded  and  even  in  her  emotions.  Beyond 
the  four  walls  of  her  house  she  had  no  concern.  She 
was  utterly  abandoned  to  the  six  young  lives  entrusted  to 
her  efforts  by  her  dead  husband,  and  the  girl  who,  from 
her  earliest  infancy,  had  been  called  “the  Kid.” 

It  was  of  the  Kid  she  was  thinking  now.  Their  talk  of 
the  day  before  had  filled  her  with  disquiet.  The  girl  had 
denied  so  much,  and  yet,  to  the  patient  mother-woman, 
there  had  been  signs  that  only  afforded  one  interpretation. 


212 


BILL  WILDER  RE-APPEARS 


213 


And  now  she  was  asking  herself  all  the  many  questions 
which  her  woman’s  heart  instinctively  prompted.  Who 
was  the  man?  Where  was  the  man?  When  had  the 
Kid  encountered  the  man  ?  What  was  he  like  ?  How 
far  had  this  thing  gone  that  it  had  stirred  the  child  to 
a  fever  of  excited  interest  in  another  woman’s  love  for 
her  man?  She  was  mystified  beyond  words.  None  but 
trailmen  and  trappers  had  come  near  them  throughout 
the  years.  They  were  mostly  half-breeds  and  Eskimos, 
and  one  or  two  poor  whites  who  thought  of  nothing  but 
the  mean  living  they  were  able  to  scratch  out  of  this 
Euralian-ridden  territory. 

No.  It  was  none  of  these.  Of  that  she  was  convinced. 
And  for  all  the  girl’s  denial  her  mind  persistently  turned 
to  Placer.  There  had  been  a  definite  change  in  the  Kid, 
she  fancied,  since  her  return  from  the  gold  city.  A 
change  which  her  keen  anxiety  of  the  moment  forthwith 
exaggerated.  She  felt  that  she  must  take  Usak  into  her 
confidence.  Yes.  When  he  returned  from  his  summer 
trip  with  Clarence,  trading  the  trail-broken  deer,  she 
would  question  him.  She  warned  herself  that  it  was 
imperative  for  all  it  seemed  like  disloyalty,  and  distrust 
of  the  Kid’s  denial.  Yes.  That  was  the  only  course  for 
her. 

She  glanced  up  from  her  steaming  tub  where  her  busy 
hands  were  rubbing  and  squeezing  the  highly  coloured 
garments  in  the  suds.  Mary  Justicia  had  appeared  in  the 
doorway  and  was  standing  outlined  foggily  in  the  steam. 

“Those,”  Hesther  said,  indicating  the  litter  on  the 
rough-boarded  table.  “It’s  a  big  wash,  child,”  she 
observed  contentedly,  “but  I  guess  we’ll  get  through  in 
time  for  dinner.  You  see  we  got  all  Janey’s  stuff,  an’ 
it’s  that  stained  with  mud  an’  the  like  it  makes  you  wonder 
the  sort  o’  muck  that  comes  down  the  river.” 


214 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


Mary  Justicia  seized  on  the  garments.  Then  she 
paused  and  turned  with  her  arms  full. 

“The  kids  are  cornin’  right  along  up  from  the  river, 
Mum,”  she  declared,  dismissing  her  mother’s  remarks 
under  an  interest  much  more  to  her  liking.  “Guess 
they’re  coming  along  up  on  the  run,  an’  Alg’s  with  ’em. 
You  wouldn’t  say  Perse  had  located  something,  or — or 
got  hurt?  I  didn’t  just  see  him  cornin’  along  with  the 
bunch.” 

The  mother  wiped  the  suds  from  her  hands  and  dried 
them  on  her  overall. 

“It’s  an  hour  an’  more  to  food,”  she  said,  with  a  sharp 
inquiry  in  her  tone  and  look.  “Wot’s  got  ’em  heatin’  it 
to  home  now  ?  Alg  should  be  along  up  at  the  corrals  with 
the  Kid.” 

She  hurried  to  the  door  and  looked  out.  Sure  enough 
there  was  a  tailing  procession  of  children  racing  for  the 
house.  But  all  four  of  them  were  there.  Perse  was  run¬ 
ning  last,  behind  the  toddling  figure  of  Jane  Constance. 

•  •  •  •  «  •  • 

It  was  a  breathless  crew  that  broke  into  the  steaming 
kitchen.  From  the  sixteen-year-old  Alg  down  to  the 
round,  grubby-faced  Janey,  with  her  mass  of  curling 
brown  hair  and  dark  eyes,  excitement  was  a-riot,  and 
they  hurled  their  amazing  news  at  the  busy  mother  in  a 
chorus  that  set  her  flourishing  a  half-wrung  garment  at 
them  in  protest. 

“Say,  quit  it,  all  of  you!”  she  cried.  “I  haven’t  ears 
all  over  my  head  if  you  think  I  have.  Outfit?  What 
outfit?  Here,  quit  right  away,  the  whole  bunch.  An’ 
you  Alg,  tell  your  crazy  yarn  while  I  get  right  on  with 
the  wash.  You  ‘shoo’  the  others  right  out  into  the  open, 
Mary  Justicia,  while  Alg  hands  me  his  fairy  tale.  They’ll 
be  takin’  pneumonia  in  this  steam  else.” 


BILL  WILDER  RE-APPEARS 


215 


The  elder  girl  obediently  “shooed”  the  rest  of  the 
children  from  the  room,  and  stood  guard  in  the  doorway 
lest  the  avalanche  returned.  But  she  was  all  eyes  and 
ears  for  Alg  who  was  simply  bursting  with  his  astonishing 
news. 

“It’s  an  outfit  come  right  up  the  river,”  he  began  at 
once,  his  eyes  alight  and  dilating  with  an  excitement 
he  could  scarcely  contain  sufficiently  to  leave  him 
coherent.  “It’s  a  swell  outfit  of  white  folk,  ever  so  many 
of  ’em.  I  guess  they  must  ha’  come  through  in  the 
night  an’  passed  right  up  to  the  gravel  flats  along  up 
beyond  the  corrals.  Guess  they  pitched  camp  three  miles 
up,  an’  they  got  five  big  canoes,  an’  all  sorts  of  camp 
stuff.  Ther’s  a  feller  with  bright  red  hair,  an’  two  fellers 
who’re  sort  of  bosses.  The  rest  are  just  river  folk,  an’ 
the  like.  It  was  Perse  located  ’em,  an’  I  guess  he  come 
along  and  tell  us,  and  we  went  right  up,  an’ - ” 

“Did  you  tell  the  Kid?” 

Hesther’s  sharp  demand  was  the  natural  impulse  which 
the  boy’s  news  stirred  in  her.  The  arrival  of  a  strange 
outfit  of  white  folk  on  the  river  was  a  matter  of  serious 
enough  importance  in  their  lives,  but  it  was  outside  her 
province.  Her  real  concern  was  for  her  washing  and 
all  that  that  implied.  The  Kid,  in  the  absence  of  Usak, 
was  her  resource  in  such  a  situation.  The  boy  shook  his 
rough  head. 

“I  didn’t  see  her  around  as  we  came  along  back,”  he 
said,  “an’  I  didn’t  wait  to  chase  her  up.  I  guessed  I 
best  come  along  an’  tell  you  first.” 

The  mother  nodded  and  wrung  and  rinsed  a  flannel 
garment  as  though  nothing  else  in  the  world  mattered. 
She  was  thinking  as  hard  as  a  mind  concentrated  upon 
her  manual  effort  would  permit.  And  somehow  the 
result  was  sufficiently  negative  to  leave  her  without  any 


2 16 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


inspiration  beyond  that  the  Kid  should  be  told  at  once  so 
that  there  should  be  no  delay  in  the  responsibility  of  the 
newly  developed  position  finding  the  proper  person  to 
deal  with  it. 

“Beat  it  right  up  to  the  corrals,”  she  said  at  last,  “an’ 
locate  the  Kid,  and  hand  her  your  yarn,  son.”  Then  the 
working  of  her  simple  mind  eased  to  its  normal  condition. 
“An’  when  you  done  that  come  right  back  to  home,  an* 
don’t  get  running  around  pecking  at  them  folks.  We 
don’t  know  who  they  are.  Maybe  they’re  a  bum  outfit 
o’  low  down  whites  chasing  after  no  good.  You’re  mostly 
a  grown  feller,  Alg,  an’  you  got  women-folk  around.  I 
guess  it’s  right  up  to  you,  an’  me,  an’  the  Kid,  with  Usak 
away,  an’  with  strangers  around.  Now  you  get  right 
along  an’  beat  it.  Food’ll  be  about  ready  against  you 
get  along  back.  An’  I’ll  finish  the  wash  after.  Ho, 
Mary,  here’s  another  bunch  to  set  out  dry  in’.” 

But  Hesther  was  infinitely  disturbed.  Her  perturba¬ 
tion  on  the  Kid’s  account  had  been  something  very  much 
less  disturbing  than  this  sudden  and  totally  unlooked  for 
development.  Strangers!  White  strangers!  Strangers 
on  their  river!  What  had  they  come  for?  And,  more 
than  all,  what  manner  of  white  folk  were  they?  The 
woman  in  her  had  taken  alarm,  for  all  she  gave  no  sign. 
There  was  the  Kid  and  Mary.  They  were  alone,  with¬ 
out  any  sort  of  help  except  Alg  and  the  two  or  three 
half-breed  Eskimo  working  about  the  farm.  At  that  mo¬ 
ment  she  would  have  given  all  she  possessed  to  have  had 
Usak  on  hand  to  look  to  for  the  protection  she  desired. 

It  was  curious.  For  years  she  had  lived  under  the 
threat  of  the  Euralian  marauders  who  had  passed  through 
the  country  like  a  devastating  pestilence.  They  were 
foreigners.  They  were  savages.  Their  crimes  were 
wanton  in  their  cruelty.  Yet  the  dread  of  them  failed  to 


BILL  WILDER  RE-APPEARS 


217 


quicken  her  sturdy  pulse  by  a  single  beat.  Now,  how¬ 
ever,  at  the  coming  of  these  men  of  her  own  race,  it  was 
utterly  different.  A  sort  of  stupefied  panic  suddenly 
descended  upon  her,  and  her  wash  day  had  ceased  to 
interest  her.  She  removed  the  boiler  from  her  cook- 
stove,  and  prepared  for  the  mid-day  meal. 

Mary  Justicia  had  abandoned  her  post  at  the  doorway. 
She  had  cleared  the  table  of  the  litter  of  washing  and  was 
setting  the  meal  ready  while  her  mother  gave  herself  up 
to  the  work  at  the  cookstove,  when  a  small  head  was 
thrust  in  at  the  doorway. 

“Mum  1” 

There  was  a  note  of  suppressed  excitement  in  Perse’s 
eager  summons. 

Hesther  turned  from  the  stove  on  the  instant. 

“You  be  off  with  you!”  she  cried.  “Food  won’t 
be - ” 

“Tain’t  food,  Mum,”  retorted  the  boy  urgently,  as  he 
gazed  into  the  steam-filled  room.  “It’s  a  feller,  a  great 
big  feller,  bigger  than  Usak,  cornin’  right  along.  What’ll 
I  do?  Tain’t  any  use  tryin’  to  ‘shoo’  him.  He’s  too  big 
fer  that.  Guess  it  wouldn’t  be  any  use  Mary  ‘shooin’  ’ 
him  either.  I - ” 

Hesther  ran  to  the  doorway.  She  stood  framed  in  it, 
her  thin,  bare  arms  folded  across  her  spare  bosom.  It 
was  an  attitude  that  might  have  suggested  defiance.  But 
at  that  moment  there  was  only  a  deepening  panic  surg¬ 
ing  in  her  mother  heart. 

And  standing  there  she  beheld  the  approach  of  a  man 
of  unusual  stature.  He  was  clad  in  trail-stained,  hard 
clothing  that  by  no  means  helped  his  appearance.  His 
buckskin  coat  was  open,  and  under  it  was  revealed  a  plain 
cotton  shirt  that  gaped  wide  at  the  neck,  about  which  was 
knotted  a  coloured  scarf.  His  dark  hair  hung  loose 


218 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


below  his  low-pressed  cap.  But  these  things  passed  un¬ 
noticed.  For  the  woman  was  concerned  only  with  the 
face  of  the  man,  and  the  thing  she  was  trying  to  read 
there.  As  he  came  up  he  removed  his  cap  and  stood 
bareheaded  before  her.  And  he  smiled  down  into  her 
troubled,  inquiring  face  out  of  a  pair  of  grey  eyes  that 
never  wavered  for  a  moment. 

“I  guessed  I’d  best  come  right  along  down  at  once, 
mam,”  he  said  in  easy,  pleasant  tones.  “We  pulled  in 
up  the  river  last  night  And  seeing  things  are  kind  of 
lonesome  about  here,  and  we’re  a  biggish  outfit  of 
strangers  such  as  maybe  you  weren’t  guessing  to  see 
about,  I  felt  it  might  get  you  worried.  Well,  I  just  want 
to  make  it  so  you  don’t  feel  that  way.  We’re  a  gold 
outfit  figgering  to  prospect  this  river,  and  I’m  running 
it.  My  name’s  Bill  Wilder.  It  won’t  tell  you  a  thing, 
I  fancy.  But  I  want  to  say  right  here  that  just  so  long 
as  we’re  around  ther’s  not  a  feller  in  my  bunch  that’s 
going  to  worry  you  or  yours  without  getting  a  broken 
neck  from  me.  That’s  all  I  came  along  to  pass  you. 
You  see,  mam,  it’s  a  queer  country  full  of  queer  folk, 
and  I  sort  of  fancied  making  things  easy  for  you.” 

The  woman  in  Hesther  was  deeply  stirred.  The  man’s 
whole  attitude  was  one  of  simple  respect  and  kindliness. 
There  was  no  mistaking  it,  and  her  favourable  judgment 
of  him  was  as  instantaneous  and  headlong  as  had  been 
her  panic  of  the  moment  before.  It  was  the  voice,  the 
clear  smiling  eyes  of  this  whiteman  stranger  that  claimed 
her  ready  confidence.  For  she  was  a  woman  whose 
simplicity  of  heart  dictated  at  all  times. 

“Why,  say,  now,  that’s  real  kind  of  you,  sir,”  she 
replied  beaming  with  genuine  relief.  “It  surely  is  a 
rough  country  for  a  lone  woman  with  a  bunch  of  God’s 
Blessings  around  her.”  Then  she  moved  back  into  the 


BILL  WILDER  RE- APPEARS 


219 


house  with  an  air  of  removing  the  hurriedly  set  up 
defences  of  her  home,  and  turned  to  Mary  Justicia,  while 
the  other  children  gawked  at  the  stranger.  “You’ll  set 
another  platter,  girl.  I  guess  Mr.  Wilder’ll  take  hash 
with  us,  if  he  ain’t  scared  to  death  eating  with  a  bunch 
of  kids  with  the  manners  of  low-grade  Injuns.”  Then 
she  smiled  apologetically  at  the  man  with  his  powerful 
shoulders  and  great  height.  “You  see,  it’s  wash-day 
with  us,  sir,”  she  went  on,  “an’  it  ’ud  take  a  wise  feller 
to  rec’nise  our  kitchen  from  a  spring  fog.  But  the  ducks 
have  been  shot  four  days  by  the  Kid,  an’  I  reckon  they’ll 
eat  as  tender  as  Thanksgiving  turkey.  Will  you  step 
right  in  an’ — welcome?” 

The  cordiality  of  the  little  woman’s  invitation  was 
irresistible.  But  Wilder  shook  his  head  in  partial  denial. 
Her  reference  to  “the  Kid”  had  changed  his  original 
intention  of  complete  refusal. 

“Mam,  ”  he  said,  “ordinarily  I’d  be  mighty  glad  to 
take  that  food  with  you  all.  But  I  guess  I  need  to  get 
back  to  camp  in  awhile.  You  see,  we  only  pulled  in  last 
night  at  sundown,  and  ther’s  a  deal  needs  fixing  when 
you’re  runnin’  a  bunch  of  tough-skinned  gold  men.  But 
I’d  be  glad  to  step  in  and  yarn  some  if  wash-day 
permits.” 


Wilder’s  reputation  amongst  the  men  of  his  craft  was 
that  of  scrupulous  straight  dealing  and  honesty  for  all 
he  was  an  astute  man  of  affairs  in  the  business  in  which 
they  trafficked.  They  knew  him  for  a  man  who  never 
needed  to  sign  when  his  word  was  given.  Beyond  that 
they  knew  little  of  the  real  man.  Amongst  those  whom 
he  counted  as  friends  there  was  an  infinitely  warmer  side 


220 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


to  the  man.  They  saw  the  native  simplicity  and  kindli¬ 
ness  which  he  usually  kept  closely  hidden  under  a  harder 
surface.  But,  somehow,  the  real  man  was  reserved  for 
the  eyes  of  such  women  as  he  encountered.  His  chivalry 
for  the  sex  was  imiate.  It  was  no  make-believe  veneer. 
To  him  it  mattered  nothing  if  a  woman  were  plain  or 
beautiful,  old  or  young.  Even  her  morals  had  no  power 
to  influence  his  attitude.  A  woman,  with  all  her  faults 
and  virtues,  was  just  the  most  sacred  creature  that  walked 
the  earth.  Good,  bad,  or  in  a  category  between  the  two, 
she  left  the  mundane  gods  of  daily  life  nothing  compara¬ 
ble  in  their  claim  upon  him. 

His  feelings,  however,  reduced  him  to  no  extravagant 
display  of  sentiment  towards  women.  On  the  contrary. 
He  loved  to  regard  them  as  creatures  created  for  the 
beautifying  of  human  life,  companions  on  complete 
equality  with  man,  except  where  the  disability  of  sex  was 
involved.  It  was  in  such  circumstances  he  claimed  man’s 
right  to  succour  to  the  limit  of  his  powers. 

Something  of  all  this  had  stirred  him  at  the  sight  of 
the  brown-eyed,  work-worn  woman  with  her  ‘'God’s 
Blessings,”  as  she  called  them,  about  her.  But  it  had  had 
nothing  to  do  with  the  inspiration  of  his  prompt  visit  to 
the  homestead  he  had  discovered  ten  miles  up  from  the 
mouth  of  the  Caribou  River.  He  had  contemplated  this 
visit  all  the  way  down  the  long  journey  on  the  Hekor 
River.  He  had  visualized  the  existence  of  some  such 
home,  and  had  determined  to  locate  it.  And  the  purpose 
had  remained  in  his  mind  ever  since  that  day,  two  summers 
ago,  when  the  girl  who  was  called  “the  Kid”  had  flung 
him  her  parting  invitation.  Even  now,  as  he  bulked  so 
hugely  in  the  one  real  chair  the  homestead  afforded,  and 
which  was  the  rest  place  for  Hesther  when  her  many 
labours  permitted,  he  saw  again  in  fancy  the  girl’s  frankly 


BILL  WILDER  RE-APPEARS 


221 


smiling  blue  eyes,  full  of  delight  and  pride  at  the  masterly 
fashion  in  which  she  had  piloted  the  great  outfit  up  the 
narrow  channel  of  the  Hekor  rapids.  Her  pretty  weather- 
tanned  face  had  lived  witji  him  every  day  of  his  long 
sojourn  in  the  desolate  wastes  farther  north,  and  he  had 
longed  for  the  time  when  he  could  run  her  to  earth  in 
that  home  which  she  had  told  him  lay  ten  miles  from  the 
mouth  of  the  Caribou  River. 

At  last  it  had  come.  And  in  how  strange  a  fashion. 
It  almost  looked  as  though  Fate  had  taken  a  hand  in 
bringing  about  the  thing  he  desired.  It  was  not  only  his 
desire  to  look  again  upon  the  sun-browned  face  of  the 
girl  who  had  so  surely  leapt  into  his  heart  that  had 
brought  him  to  the  Caribou  River.  It  was  the  diagram 
map,  so  carefully  drawn  by  the  dead  Marty  Le  Gros* 
hand,  which  the  terrified  little  Japanese  woman  had  thrust 
upon  him  in  the  hope  of  saving  her  blinded  husband. 
The  great  gold  “strike”  of  the  dead  missionary  was  on  the 
Caribou  River,  and  he  held  the  detailed  key  of  it. 

He  was  thinking  of  the  Kid  now  as  he  listened  to  the 
ripple  of  talk  wdiich  flowed  so  naturally  from  Hesther’s 
lips  as  she  stood  over  the  savoury  stew  on  the  cook- 
stove. 

“It  makes  me  want  to  laff,”  she  said,  “you  folks 
reckoning  to  try  out  the  Caribou  for  gold.  You’re  jest 
like  my  Perse,  only  you  don’t  skid  out  the  seat  of  your 
pants  chasing  the  stuff.  Say,  that  kid — he’s  nigh  thirteen 
years — has  the  gold  bug  dead  right,  an’  he  reckons  to 
locate  it  around  this  valley.  I’d  say  you  couldn’t  beat  it, 
only  you’re  reckoning  that  way,  too.  Gold  ?  Gee !  Gold 
on  this  mud  an’  rock  bottom?  Why,  you’ll  need  all  the 
dynamite  in  the  world  to  loosen  up  this  territory,  ’cept 
where  it’s  muskeg,  an’  then  you’ll  need  a  mighty  long  life 
line  to  hit  bottom.” 


222 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


Bill  nodded. 

“Guess  you  folks  should  know  the  valley,  mam,”  he 
admitted,  with  a  smile  of  amusement  in  his  eyes. 

Hesther  turned  about  from  her  work. 

“You  aren’t  thinking  that?”  she  said  quickly. 

“No.” 

“Ah,  that’s  a  man  all  through.  You  reckon  ther’s  gold 
on  Caribou,  and  you’ll  chase  it  to  a  finish.  Say,  my 
Perse  ’ud  just  love  you  to  death  for  that.” 

Wilder  watched  Mary  Justicia  moving  silently  around 
the  room  preparing  the  table. 

“Where  did — Perse — get  his  notion  from,  mam?” 
Wilder  inquired  disarmingly. 

In  a  moment  Hesther’s  brown  eyes  became  serious. 
There  crept  into  them  an  abstracted  far-off  look.  And  in 
repose  a  curious  sadness  marked  her  expression. 

“Why,  the  Kid’s  father.  The  missionary,  Marty  Le 
Gros,  who  was  murdered  by  the  Euralians  nigh  eighteen 
years  back.” 

Wilder  started.  A  flood  of  excitement  hurled  through 
his  body.  He  almost  sprang  from  the  square,  raw-hide 
seat  of  his  chair.  But  he  controlled  himself  with  an 
effort  and  spoke  with  a  calmness  that  betrayed  nothing  of 
his  sudden  emotion. 

“You  said  Perse  was  only  thirteen,”  he  argued. 

“That’s  so,”  Hesther  nodded,  setting  the  tea-kettle  to 
boil  beside  the  stew.  Then  she  turned  about  to  the  two 
children  squatting  on  the  doorstep.  “That’s  Perse,”  she 
said,  indicating  the  boy  who  was  listening  avidly  to  the 
talk.  “He’s  only  heard  of  the  yarn  that  the  Kid’s  pore 
father  made  a  big  ‘strike.’  I  know  he  made  it.  Jim 
and  me- — Jim’s  my  dead  husband  who  used  to  run  the 
Fur  Valley  Store  at  Fort  Cupar — handled  the  chunks  of 
yellow  stuff  he  showed  us.  They  were  wonderful.  Oh, 


BILL  WILDER  RE-APPEARS 


223 


yes,  he  made  a  big  ‘strike' — somewhere.  But  I  don’t  guess 
it  was  on  Caribou.  We  were  to  have  known.  He  was 
going  to  hand  us  the  yarn.  But  he  didn’t.  You  see, 
they  got  after  him,  an’  murdered  him.  So  no  one  ever 
knew.  You  see  Perse  hasn’t  a  notion  beyond  Caribou. 
So  he  reckons  if  ther’s  gold  anywhere  in  creation  it  must 
be  on  Caribou.” 

“He’s  a  wise  kid.” 

Hesther  laughed. 

“Because  he  thinks  your  way?” 

“Sure.  But  say,  mam,  I  guess  you’re  waiting  to  serve 
out  that  food  and  I’m  holding  things  up.” 

The  woman  shook  her  head. 

“The  Kid  ain’t  down  from  the  corrals  yet.  We  don’t 
eat  till  she  comes.” 

The  man  nodded  and  made  no  attempt  to  take  his 
departure. 

“I  see,”  he  said  reflectively.  Then  he  laughed. 

“Say,  mam,”  he  went  on  with  a  gesture  of  deprecation, 
“you’ve  got  me  guessing  good.  I’m  just  a  gold  man  an’ 
not  a  highbrow  logician  or  guesser  of  riddles.  You’re 
here  with  your  bunch  of  God’s  Blessings,  as  you  call  these 
dandy  kids  of  yours.  You  talk  of  corrals  as  if  you  were 
running  a  swell  cattle  ranch.  You  talk  of  the  Kid’s  father 
who  was  Marty  Le  Gros,  a  missionary,  murdered  by 
Euralians  eighteen  years  ago.  An’  you  haven’t  even 
spoke  as  if  you  had  any  sort  of  name  yourself.  Well, 
as  I  said  I’m  just  a  gold  man  chasing  up  a  creek  you 
don’t  reckon  to  hold  anything  better  than  mud  and  rock, 
but  I’m  liable  to  be  a  neighbour  of  yours  for  something 
like  a  year  at  least.  And  if  it  isn’t  putting  you  about 
I’d  just  love  to  sit  and  listen  to  anything  you  feel  like 
handing  out.” 

It  was  the  way  it  was  said.  It  was  so  frankly 


224 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


ingenuous  and  inviting.  Hesther  looked  into  the 
stranger’s  grey  eyes,  and  no  question  remained  in  her 
mind.  So  she  laughed  in  response  and  shook  her  greying 
head. 

“Say,  living  on  the  edge  of  the  Arctic  has  quite  a  way  of 
cutting  out  the  manners  we’re  brought  up  to,”  she  said  at 
once.  “I’m  Mrs.  McLeod,  and  my  man,  Jim,  as  I  said, 
was  factor  at  Fort  Cupar.  Well,  he  died.” 

For  one  thoughtful  moment  she  glanced  into  the  stew 
pot.  Then  she  dipped  some  steaming  beans  from  a 
boiler  and  emptied  them  into  the  stew.  After  that  she 
turned  again  to  the  waiting  man  in  the  chair. 

“This  is  a  reindeer  farm.  It’s  a  sort  of  crazy  notion 
in  a  way,  but  it’s  handed  us  a  living  ever  since  Marty  Le 
Gros,  who  started  it  up,  was  murdered  by  the  Euralian 
toughs.  Will  I  hand  you  the  story  of  that?  Or  maybe 
you’re  heard  it?  Most  folks  in  the  North  have.” 

Wilder  nodded. 

“Don’t  trouble  to  tell  it,  mam,”  he  said  quickly.  “It’s 
bad  med’cine  that  I’ve  heard  all  about.  And  it’s  not 
likely  to  hand  you  comfort  in  the  telling.  So  this  was 
his  farm?” 

“Sure  it  was.  He  started  it  reckoning  to  build  it  up 
for  his  little  baby,  Felice,  who  we  call  the  Kid,  and  the 
Indian  man,  Usak,  who  was  his  servant,  ran  it  for  him. 
Well,  after  he  was  done  up  and  his  place  was  burnt  out, 
Usak  came  along  from  here  and  found  his  little  kiddie 
flung  into  the  bluff  to  die,  or  get  eaten  by  wolves  and 
things.  Usak  was  nigh  crazy.  But  he  claimed  the  Kid 
and  raised  her  on  this  farm,  which  he  went  on  building: 
for  her.  When  the  Kid  was  about  twelve  my  man  Jim 
took  ill  and  died,  and  I  came  along  right  over  from  the 
store  with  my  bits  and  my  kiddies,  and  just  live  with 
’em.  It  helped  me  and  mine,  and  it  helped  the  Kid  and 


BILL  WILDER  RE-APPEARS 


22  5 


Usak  some.  And  that’s  all  ther’  is  to  it.  I’m  sort  of 
foster-mother  to  the  Kid.  And  we  all  scratch  a  living 
out  of  Usak’s  trading  the  trail-broke  caribou  with  such 
Eskimo  as  the  Euralians  have  left  within  reach.”  She 
laughed,  shortly  and  without  mirth.  “It’s  nothing  much 
to  tell,  sir,  but  there  it  is,  and  you’re  welcome  to  know 
it.” 

The  woman’s  brief  outline  contained  the  whole  drama 
of  the  past  eighteen  years  told  without  emphasis,  almost 
as  though  it  were  a  simple  matter  of  everyday  oc¬ 
currence.  Years  ago  it  might  have  been  different,  but 
now — why,  now  only  the  present  seriously  concerned  her, 
and  that  was  the  preparation  of  food  and  the  execution 
of  those  many  duties  which  were  demanded  by  the 
young  lives  who  looked  to  her  mothering. 

For  some  moments  Wilder  offered  no  comment.  He 
was  concerned,  deeply  concerned.  This  woman’s  homely 
trust  and  courage  affected  him  deeply.  But  more  than 
all  else  was  a  superlative  thankfulness  that  Providence, 
through  George  Raymes,  had  sent  him  on  what  had  first 
looked  to  be  a  hopeless  pursuit  of  something  completely 
impossible  of  achievement.  He  remembered  the  Super¬ 
intendent’s  final  summing  up  of  the  work  set  for  him 
to  accomplish. 

“Does  it  get  you?”  he  had  asked,  “there  it  is,  a  great 
gold  discovery,  somewhere  up  there  on  the  Hekor,  I 
suppose,  and  the  mystery  of  this  people  filching  our  trade 
through  a  process  of  outrageous  crime.  Somewhere  up 
there  there’s  a  girl-child,  white — she’d  be  about  nineteen 
or  twenty  now — lost  to  the  white  world  to  which  she 
belongs.  But  above  all,  from  my  point  of  view,  there’s 
a  problem.  Who  are  these  Euralians,  and  what  becomes 
of  the  wealth  of  furs  they  steal?” 

The  whole  of  the  work  was  well-nigh  completed.  He 


15 


226 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


had  completely  satisfied  himself  on  the  problem  of  the 
Euralians.  He  had  recovered  the  plans  of  Marty  Le 
Gros’  gold  “strike,”  and  it  only  remained  for  him  to  fol¬ 
low  their  directions  to  complete  the  re-discovery  of  the 
find  itself.  And  now — -now  he  had  at  length  discovered 
the  “girl-child,  white,”  who,  to  his  mind  was  heir  to  the 
things  her  dead  father  had  left  behind. 

Yes,  the  end  of  his  task  looked  to  be  drawing  near,  but 
he  could  not  resign  himself  to  the  fact.  Somehow  it 
seemed  to  him  that  he  was  only  approaching  the  thresh¬ 
old.  That  the  drama  of  the  whole  thing  was  still  in 
being.  That  there  were  scenes  yet  to  be  depicted  that 
would  deeply  involve  him.  There  was  the  blind  Japanese 
man  and  his  panic-stricken  woman.  There  was  the 
terrible  Usak  whom  he  had  yet  to  meet.  Then  there  was 
>he  Kid. 

The  Kid.  What  was  her  real  name?  Felice.  Yes. 
That  was  the  name  Mrs.  McLeod  had  told  him.  Felice. 
It  meant  happiness.  It  was  a  good  name.  But  the  irony. 
Poor  child.  Raised  by  the  terrible  Usak.  Fostered  here 
on  the  barren  lands  of  the  North,  without  a  hope  beyond 
the  hard  living  these  poor  folk  were  able  to  scrape  with 
the  crude,  uncultured  assistance  of  an  Indian.  The  whole 
thing  was  appalling.  He  loved  the  Northland.  But  to 
be  condemned  to  it  without  hope  of  better  things  left 
him  wondering  at  the  amazing  courage  which  Felice  and 
this  gentle  mother  must  possess. 

In  that  one  brief  moment  headlong  determination  came 
to  his  assistance.  It  was  not  for  nothing  that  Providence 
had  directed  his  steps  into  this  crude,  desolate  valley. 
No.  And  his  heart  warmed,  and  emotions  stirred  under 
the  gladness  of  his  inspiration. 

He  eased  himself  in  his  chair  and  rose  abruptly  to  his 
feet. 


BILL  WILDER  RE-APPEARS 


227 

“Mam,”  he  said,  thrusting  out  a  hard  brown  hand 
towards  Hesther,  “I  want  to  thank  you — I — ” 

But  the  out-held  hand  dropped  abruptly  to  his  side, 
and  he  broke  off  in  the  midst  of  the  thing  he  had  to  say. 
For  Perse  and  Jane  Constance  had  rolled  themselves  clear 
of  the  door-sill  to  admit  their  foster-sister.  The  Kid 
stood  framed  in  the  opening  with  the  grey-noon  daylight 
shining  behind  her:  She  was  radiant  in  her  mannish 
parka,  and  the  buckskin  trousers  terminating  in  high 
moccasins  reaching  almost  to  her  knees.  Her  eyes  were 
alight  and  shining  in  their  sunbrowned  setting,  and  her 
fair  hair  had  fallen  from  beneath  her  low-pressed  cap. 
Health  and  beauty  were  in  every  contour  of  her  vigorous 
young  body,  and  in  her  smiling  eyes  as  she  gazed  upon 
the  plain,  angular  face  of  the  man  who  had  just  risen 
from  Hesther’s  chair.  But  a  curious  shyness  left  her 
hesitating  and  something  dismayed. 

For  one  instant  the  girl’s  eyes  encountered  the  man’s. 
Then  she  swiftly  glanced  at  the  older  woman  by  the 
stove.  And  Hesther  jumped  at  the  cue  she  felt  to  be  hers. 

“It’s  Felice,  who  we  all  call  the  Kid,”  she  said  for  the 
man’s  benefit.  Then  she  turned  to  the  girl.  “This  is 
Mr.  Wilder,  my  dear — Mr.  Bill  Wilder.” 

The  girl’s  shyness  passed  in  a  quick  smile  that  was 
like  a  sudden  burst  of  sunshine. 

“I  know,  Mum,  dear,”  she  cried.  “I  met  him  two 
summers  ago  on  the  river  and  passed  him  and  his  out¬ 
fit  up  through  the  rapids  at  the  mouth  of  the  river.” 
Then  she  crossed  over  to  the  man  whose  eyes  were  smil¬ 
ing  in  perfect  content.  “You’ve  found  our  little  shanty,” 
she  said  holding  out  a  soft  brown  hand,  “and  I’m  glad. 
You’re  real  welcome.” 

The  frankness  of  her  greeting  was  utterly  without  em¬ 
barrassment,  and  Wilder  took  the  outstretched  hand  in 


228 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


both  of  his  and  held  it  for  a  moment  while  he  turned  to 
the  mother  who  was  looking  on  in  amazement. 

“She  saved  me  a  two  days’  portage,  mam,”  he  said,  in 
explanation.  “And  I  guess  she’s  the  brightest  jewel  of 
a  waterman  I’ve  seen  in  years.” 

“My!”  Hesther’s  exclamation  was  almost  a  gasp  as  she 
watched  their  hands  fall  apart.  Then  with  the  mildest 
shadow  of  reproach :  “An’  you  never  told  me,  Kid,  You 
never  said  a  word.” 


CHAPTER  IX 


THE  GREAT  SAVAGE 

Usak  stood  up  from  the  camp  fire  that  was  more  than 
welcome.  He  stood  with  his  broad  back  to  the  shelter  of 
low  scrub  to  leeward  of  which  the  midday  camp  had  been 
pitched,  and  gazed  out  over  a  wide  expanse  of  barren, 
windswept  country.  The  threat  overhanging  the  grey 
world  was  very  real.  Winter  was  in  the  dense,  ponder¬ 
ously  moving  clouds;  it  was  in  the  bite  of  the  northerly 
wind,  which  was  persistent  and  found  the  weak  spot  in 
such  human  clothing  as  had  not  yet  given  place  to  the 
furs  of  winter.  The  light  of  noonday,  too,  was  sadly 
dull.  For  the  hidden  sun  had  lost  so  much  of  its  sum¬ 
mer  power,  and  its  range  of  daily  progress  had  narrowed 
down  to  a  line  that  was  low  on  the  horizon. 

But  the  savage  was  unconcerned  for  the  outlook  of  the 
day.  He  was  unconcerned  for  the  sterile  territory  over 
which  his  long  summer  journey  had  carried  him.  The 
man’s  whole  being  was  focussed  upon  the  needs  of  life. 
The  needs  of  those  who  depended  on  him.  The  needs 
which  were  no  less  his  own.  And  for  once  a  sense  of 
satisfaction,  of  ease,  was  all-pervading.  His  trade  had 
been  something  more  profitable  than  it  had  been  for  years, 
and  he  understood  that  the  needs  of  the  coming  winter, 
and  next  year’s  open  season,  looked  like  being  comfort¬ 
ably  provided  for.  Oh,  yes,  there  was  much  labour  ahead. 


230 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


His  trade  must  be  translated  into  the  simple  provisions 
which  must  ultimately  be  obtained  in  far-off  Placer.  He 
knew  all  that.  But  it  left  his  staunch,  fierce  spirit  un¬ 
afraid,  The  means  of  obtaining  the  things  needed  were 
in  his  hands.  The  rest  was  the  simple  battle  with  the 
winter  elements  which  had  no  terrors  for  his  unimagina¬ 
tive  mind. 

It  was  the  last  lap  of  a  journey  of  several  months. 
Night  would  find  him  in  the  shelter  of  his  own  home, 
with  the  voices  of  the  white  children,  who  had  become 
so  much  a  part  of  his  life,  ringing  in  his  ears.  And  be¬ 
fore  he  slept  he  knew  that  he  would  have  witnessed  the 
glad  smile  of  welcome  and  satisfaction  in  the  white  girl 
who  was  as  the  sun,  moon,  and  stars  of  his  life.  He 
would  have  told  her  of  his  good  news,  and  together  they 
would  have  examined  and  appraised  the  values  with  which 
he  had  returned  from  the  far-off  Eskimo  camps  which 
good  fortune  had  flung  into  his  path. 

So  the  grey  world  looked  good.  Even  the  naked  un¬ 
dulations  amongst  which  the  ribbon-like  river  wound  its 
way  had  lost  something  of  their  forbidding  aspect.  It 
was  the  world  he  knew,  the  world  he  had  battled  with 
all  his  manhood.  His  satisfaction  had  translated  it. 

He  stood  for  a  moment  or  two,  a  figure  of  splendid 
manhood.  His  far-gazing  eyes  looked  out  with  some¬ 
thing  in  them  akin  to  that  which  looks  out  of  the  sailor- 
man’s  eyes.  They  were  searching,  reposeful  and  steady 
with  quiet  Confidence. 

He  turned  at  last  at  the  sounds  of  movement  at  the 
fire,  and,  for  a  moment,  he  watched  the  white  youth,  who 
was  his  companion,  as  he  collected  the  chattels  out  of 
which  they  had  taken  their  midday  meal. 

Then  he  moved  quickly  to  the  boy’s  side  and  took  the 
pan  and  camp  kettle  from  his  hands.  And  his  actions 


THE  GREAT  SAVAGE  231 

were  accompanied  by  a  swift  protest  in  a  voice  that  rarely 
softened. 

“Him  Injun  work,”  he  said  gruffly.  And  the  manner 
of  it  left  no  doubt  as  to  the  definite  understanding  of  their 
relations.  It  was  the  man’s  fierce  pride  that  his  mission 
was  to  serve  the  white  folk  entrusted  to  his  care. 

Clarence  yielded,  but  his  thin  cheeks  flushed.  Then  he 
laughed  but  without  mirth.  He  was  a  strapping  youth 
of  unusual  physique.  At  sixteen  he  was  all  the  man  his 
mother  claimed  for  him,  for  somehow  the  hardship  of 
the  trail  had  eaten  into  his  youthful  character  and  robbed 
it  of  the  boyhood  his  years  should  have  made  his.  He 
was  serious,  completely  serious,  and  his  freckled  face  and 
brown  eyes  looked  something  weary  of  the  labour  thus 
early  flung  on  him. 

“It’s  most  always  that  way,  Usak,”  he  grumbled 
sharply.  “Nothin’s  my  work  you’ve  got  time  to  do.” 

The  Indian  made  no  reply.  He  moved  quickly  over  to 
the  three  great  caribou,  standing  ready  for  the  trail,  har¬ 
nessed  to  their  long,  trailing  carryalls.  They  were  fine, 
powerful  bucks,  long-trained  to  the  work,  and  their 
widespreading,  downy  antlers,  now  in  full  growth  and 
almost  ready  for  their  annual  shedding,  indicated  their 
tally  of  years  in  the  service  of  the  northern  trail.  He 
bestowed  the  gear  in  its  allotted  place  in  the  outfit  and 
returned  to  the  fire. 

For  a  few  moments  he  held  out  his  brown  hands  to 
the  warming  embers,  squatting  low  on  his  haunches. 
Then  he  turned  to  the  boy.  His  reply  to  the  youth’s  chal¬ 
lenge  had  been  carefully  considered. 

“What  you  mak  him  this  word?”  he  said,  in  his  harsh 
way.  “You  my  white  boss  I  lak  him  mak  work  for.  It 
good.  Oh,  yes.  Someday  it  come  you  grow  big  white 
man  lak  to  the  good  boss,  Marty.  I  know.  Then  you 


232 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


think  ’em  this  dam  Injun  no  good.  Him  mak  white  boy 
work  for  him.  No  good.  I,  whiteman,  no  work  for  In¬ 
jun  man.  Oh  no.”  His  black  eyes  smiled,  and  his  smile 
had  no  more  softness  in  it  than  his  frown.  “I  tell  you,” 
he  went  on.  “I  think  much  big  think.  You  mak  big  trail 
man  bimeby.  Bimeby  Usak  die  dead.  Maybe  he  get  kill 
’em  all  up  on  winter  trail.  Who  knows?  Then  he 
think  much  for  him  Kid.  He  think  much  for  him  white- 
mother,  Hesther.  Him  say,  Usak  all  dead.  No  matter. 
Him  Clarence  big  fine  trail  man.  Him  mak  good  all 
thing  Usak  no  more  do.  So  Usak  not  care  the  big  spirit 
tak  him.  So.  Whiteman  tell  Injun  all  time  work.  It 
so.  The  good  boss,  Marty,  speak  so.  Injun  man  no 
good,  never.” 

Clarence  turned  quickly.  He,  too,  was  squatting  over 
the  welcome  fire.  A  sharp  retort  was  on  his  lips.  He 
knew  that  the  Indian  was  his  master  on  the  trail.  He 
knew  that  the  man  was  almost  superhuman  in  his  ability. 
He  knew  that  the  man’s  desire  was  just  as  he  said.  But 
somehow  the  spirit  in  him  refused  to  accept  the  other’s 
self-abnegation.  Usak  was  his  teacher,  not  his  servant. 
And  somehow  he  felt  there  was  no  right,  no  justice,  for 
all  the  difference  in  colour,  that  this  creature  should  so 
humble  himself  by  reason  of  that  absurd  difference. 

But  his  lips  closed  again  without  a  spoken  word.  He 
was  held  silent  under  the  sway  of  the  man’s  powerful  in¬ 
fluence.  And  so,  as  it  was  always,  Usak  had  his  way. 

After  a  moment  the  white  youth  accepted  the  position 
thrust  on  him. 

“We  best  pull  out?”  he  said  almost  diffidently. 

The  Indian  nodded.  Then  his  dark  eyes  smiled  again, 
and  his  powerful  hands  rubbed  themselves  together  over 
the  luxurious  warmth. 

“I  wait  for  that,”  he  said  quietly.  “You  my  boss.  My 


THE  GREAT  SAVAGE 


233 


good  white  boss.  Same  lak  the  white-girl,  Kid,  an’  the 
good  Marty.  Sure  we  pull  out.  We  mak  him  the  farm 
this  night.  It  good.  Much  good.” 

He  rose  to  his  full  height  without  effort,  and  turned  at 
once  to  the  waiting  caribou. 


The  night  was  dark  but  the  burden  of  cloud  had  com¬ 
pletely  dispersed.  In  its  place  was  a  velvet  sky  studded 
with  myriads  of  starry  jewels.  Then  away  to  the  north 
the  world  was  lit  by  a  shadowy  movement  of  northern 
lights.  The  night  was  typical  of  the  fall  of  the  northern 
year,  chill,  still,  haunted,  for  all  its  perfect  calm,  by  the 
fierce  threat  of  the  approach  of  winter. 

The  ice-cold  waters  of  the  river  lay  behind  the  outfit. 
They  had  just  crossed  the  shallow  ford  where  the  stream 
played  boisterously  over  the  boulder-strewn  gravel  bed. 
The  labouring  caribou  were  moving  slowly  up  the  gentle 
incline  of  lichen-covered  foreshore.  And  the  Indian  on 
the  lead,  and  the  white  youth  trailing  behind  the  last  of 
the  three  beasts  of  burden,  knew  that  in  less  than  two 
hours  fche  last  eight  miles  or  so  of  their  summer-long 
journey  would  be  accomplished. 

Usak  dropped  back  from  his  lead  and  permitted  the 
caribou  to  pass  him,  and  took  his  place  beside  the  leg- 
weary  youth.  For  some  time  they  paced  on  in  silence 
each  absorbed  in  his  own  thought. 

It  was  a  great  looking  forward  for  both.  Both  were 
contemplating  that  modest  home  they  were  approaching 
with  feelings  of  something  more  than  content.  Clarence 
was  yearning  for  the  boisterous  companionship  of  his 
brothers  and  sisters.  The  boy  in  him  was  crying  out  for 
the  youth  which  the  rigours  of  the  northern  trail  had  so 
long  denied  him.  The  ramshackle  habitation  which  was 


234 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


his  home  possessed  for  him  just  now  a  splendour  of  com¬ 
fort,  and  ease,  and  delight  such  as  only  a  starving  imagin¬ 
ation  could  create  about  it.  He  was  heart-sick  and  bodily 
weary  with  the  interminable  labour  which  the  long  trail 
demanded. 

With  the  Indian  it  was  different.  The  joy  of  return 
for  him  had  no  relation  to  any  weariness  of  body  or  spirit. 
He  was  contemplating  only  the  good  news  which  was 
carefully  packed  up  on  the  primitive  carryalls  to  which 
the  caribou  were  harnessed,  and  the  happiness  he  looked 
to  see  shining  in  the  eyes  of  the  whitewoman  it  was  his 
mission  to  serve. 

It  was  out  of  this  spirit  of  happy  satisfaction  he  had 
abandoned  his  place  at  the  head  of  the  outfit,  and  dropped 
abreast  of  his  white  companion.  For  once  in  his  life  it 
was  his  desire  to  talk.  And  the  inspiration  came  from 
the  fulness  of  his  savage  heart. 

“The  white  mother  much  glad  bimeby,”  he  said,  in  his 
curious  halting  fashion. 

Clarence  nodded.  He  paused  a  moment  and  ran  his 
strong  hands  down  the  legs  of  his  buckskin  nether  gar¬ 
ments.  The  ice  cold  water  of  the  river  was  partially 
squeezed  out  of  them,  but  they  remained  saturated  and 
chilly  to  the  sturdy  legs  they  covered. 

“Sure,”  he  said  in  brief  agreement. 

“I  think  much,”  Usak  went  on.  “This  winter  trail. 
You  mak  him  with  me?  Him  Kid  much  good  trail  man. 
Plenty  big  white  heart.  She  mak  ’em  good,  yes.  But  she 
much  soft  white  woman.  Winter  trail  him  hard.  Placer 
long  piece  far.  It  no  good.  No.  Clarence  big  trail  man 
now.  Snow.  Ice.  Storm.  It  nothing  to  big  trail  man 
Clarence — now.  You  come  mak  him  with  Usak?  Then 
him  Kid  sleep  good  by  the  farm.  All  time  much  warm. 
All  time  much  eat  good.  Yes?” 


THE  GREAT  SAVAGE 


235 


The  boy  looked  up  into  the  darkly  shadowed  face  in  the 
starlit  night  as  they  walked  rapidly  behind  the  great  deer 
who  were  hurrying  towards  the  homestead  which  they 
knew  lay  ahead.  For  all  his  weariness  a  great  pride  up¬ 
lifted  the  youth.  The  desperate  winter  trail.  The  long 
trail  which  hitherto  had  been  steadily  denied  him  by  rea¬ 
son  of  his  youth  and  lacking  experience.  Usak  had  bid 
him  face  it.  The  vanity  of  the  youth  flamed  up  in  him. 

“You  mean  that,  Usak?”  he  demanded  sharply.  And 
the  Indian  realised  the  tone. 

v  “The  winter  trail  for  big  man,”  he  said,  subtly. 

“Yes.” 

Clarence  drew  a  deep  breath.  Then  after  a  moment  he 
went  on.  And  again  the  Indian  recognised  and  approved 
the  new  tone  that  rang  in  his  voice. 

“That  goes,  Usak,”  he  said.  Then  with  sudden  pas¬ 
sionate  energy :  “Fm  no  kid  now,”  he  cried.  “The  winter 
trail  I  guess  needs  menfolk,  not  women  or  kids.  I’m 
with  you,  sure.  And  I  play  my  hand  right  through.  Say, 
I  go,  but  I  go  right.  Ther’s  goin’  to  be  no  play.  The 
work  that's  yours  is  yours.  The  work  that's  mine's  mine. 
An’  I  don’t  let  any  feller  do  my  work  on  the  trail.  Not 
even  you.  Does  that  go?  Say  it  right  here  an'  now.” 

The  smile  that  changed  the  Indian’s  expression  so  little 
was  there  under  cover  of  the  shadows  of  night. 

“Him  go  all  time,  sure.  You  big  boss  whiteman  mak 
him  trade  by  Placer.  You  say  all  time  the  thing  we  do. 
Oh,  yes.  That’s  so.  Usak — Sho!” 

The  man  broke  off  and  his  final  exclamation  had  in  it 
the  curious  hiss  so  indicative  of  a  mind  started  profoundly 
and  unpleasantly.  He  had  halted  on  the  summit  of  a  high 
ground  roller  and  stood  pointing  out  ahead,  somewhere 
on  the  opposite  shore  of  the  river  where  the  twinkling 
lights  of  camp  fires  were  burning  brightly.  He  stood 


236 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


awhile  in  deep,  concentrated  contemplation,  and  his  arm 
remained  out-flung  for  his  companion’s  benefit 

Clarence,  too,  was  gazing  at  the  amazing  sight  of  the 
twinkling,  distant  camp  fires. 

The  same  thought  was  in  the  mind  of  each.  But  it 
was  the  uncompromising  spirit  of  the  savage  that  first 
gave  it  expression. 

“Euralian!”  he  said,  in  a  tone  of  devastating  hatred. 

Instantly  the  youth  in  the  other  cried  out. 

“Mum!  She’s  alone  with  the  kids !” 


Bill  Wilder  kicked  the  embers  of  the  fire  together. 
Then  he  leant  over  to  the  driftwood  stack  and  clawed 
several  sticks  from  the  pile.  He  flung  them  on  the  fire 
and  watched  the  stream  of  sparks  fly  upward  on  the  still 
night  air. 

It  was  the  second  night  of  camping  on  the  gravel  flats 
of  the  Caribou  River,  and  the  last  brief  hour  before  seek¬ 
ing  the  fur-lined  bags  in  which  the  northern  man  is  wont 
to  sleep.  Chilcoot  and  Wilder  were  squatting  side  by  side, 
Indian  fashion,  over  the  camp  fire  burning  adjacent  to 
the  tent  they  shared  with  the  Irishman.  And  the  latter 
faced  them  beyond  the  fire,  sprawled  on  the  ground  baked 
hard  by  the  now  departed  summer  heat. 

Talk  had  died  out.  These  men  rarely  wasted  words. 
They  had  long  since  developed  the  silent  habit  which  the 
northern  solitudes  so  surely  breed.  But  even  so,  for 
once  there  was  a  sense  of  restraint  in  their  silent  com¬ 
panionship.  It  was  a  restraint  which  arose  from  a  sense 
of  grievance  on  the  part  of  both  Chilcoot  and  the  Irish¬ 
man.  And  it  had  developed  from  the  moment  of  quitting 
the  mysterious  habitation  in  the  western  hills. 


THE  GREAT  SAVAGE 


237 


The  facts  were  simple  enough  from  their  point  of  view. 
Both  the  Irishman  and  Chilcoot  had  been  left  in  complete 
ignorance  of  their  leader’s  adventures  during  his  long 
night  vigil  in  the  deserted  house.  He  had  returned  to 
them  only  to  order  a  hurried  departure,  and  had  definitely 
avoided  explanations  in  response  to  their  eager  inquiries 
by  evasive  generalisations. 

“I  just  don’t  get  the  meaning  of  anything,  anyway,”  he 
had  declared,  with  a  shake  of  the  head.  “Ther’s  some 
queer  secret  to  that  shanty  the  folks  who  own  it  don’t 
reckon  to  hand  out.  If  we’d  the  time  to  pass  on  up  the 
creek  maybe  we’d  locate  the  meaning  of  things.  But  we 
haven’t  and  seemingly  that  darn  house  is  empty,  and 
there  isn’t  a  thing  to  it  to  tell  us  anything.  No,”  he  said, 
“I’ve  passed  a  long  night  in  it  and  taken  chances  I  don’t 
usually  reckon  to  take,  and  I’ve  quit  it  feeling  like  a  feller 
who’s  got  through  with  a  nightmare,  an’  wonders  what 
in  hell  he’s  eaten  to  give  it  him.  I’m  sick,  to  death  chas¬ 
ing  ghosts,  and  mean  to  quit  right  here.  We’ll  just  need 
to  report  to  our  superiors,”  he  smiled,  “an’  leave  ’em  to 
investigate.  Meanwhile  we’ll  get  right  on  after  the  stuff 
which  seems  to  me  to  lie  in  one  direction,  and  that’s  the 
location  where  the  dead  missioner  worked  around.  We’ll 
beat  it  down  to  the  Caribou  River  for  a  last  fling,  and 
after  that  Placer’s  the  best  thing  I  know.” 

Chilcoot  who  understood  his  friend  through  long  years 
of  experience  and  association  was  by  no  means  deceived. 
But  his  loyalty  was  the  strongest  part  of  him.  He  read 
behind  the  man’s  words.  He  saw  and  appreciated  the 
suggestion  of  excitement  lying  at  the  back  of  Wilder’s 
smiling  eyes,  and  understood  that  the  claimed  unproduc¬ 
tiveness  of  the  night’s  vigil  was  sheer  subterfuge.  Fur¬ 
thermore  he  realised  that  the  hurriedly  ordered  departure 
had  been  inspired  by  the  events  of  the  night.  But  he  at- 


238 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


tempted  no  further  question.  And  even  aided  his  friend 
in  denying  the  torrent  of  questioning  which  the  Irish¬ 
man  did  not  scruple  to  pour  out. 

Mike’s  reminders  of  the  obvious  oil  and  coal  wealth 
of  the  black,  mysterious  hills,  and  the  queer  soil  of  the 
whole  region,  left  Wilder  unmoved.  He  agreed  simply. 
But  he  dismissed  the  whole  proposition  as  being  outside 
anything  but  the  range  of  their  natural  curiosity.  He  re¬ 
minded  the  persistent  creature  that  the  territory  was  Alas¬ 
kan,  and  they  were  for  the  time  being  debarred  from 
further  investigation  through  being  enrolled  officers  of 
the  Canadian  Police. 

So  he  had  had  his  way  and  the  eastward  journey  was 
embarked  upon.  And  as  the  waters  of  the  oily  creek 
passed  away  behind  them,  and  the  queer  Fire  Hills 
dropped  back  into  the  distance  he  hugged  his  secrets  of 
the  night  to  himself  for  the  purpose  of  using  them  in  the 
fashion  he  had  already  designed.  Thus  his  companions 
were  left  puzzled  and  dissatisfied. 

All  the  way  down  the  great  waterway  of  the  Hekor, 
Wilder  had  pondered  the  position  in  which  he  found  him¬ 
self  and  the  events  which  had  led  up  to  it.  The  figures 
of  the  blinded  Japanese  and  his  little  wife  haunted  him. 
Then  there  was  that  carefully  detailed  chart  which  showed 
the  locality  of  the  dead  missionary’s  discovery  to  be  on 
the  Caribou  River.  And  the  thought  of  the  Caribou  had 
brought  again  into  the  forefront  of  his  vision  the  memory 
of  the  fair  young  white  girl  who  had  passed  him  up  the 
rapids  which  churned  about  its  mouth,  and  with  her  part¬ 
ing  farewell,  had  flung  her  invitation  at  him  to  that 
home  which  was  ten  miles  up  from  the  junction  of  the 
two  rivers. 

The  memory  of  the  Kid  had  been  with  him  ever  since 
he  had  first  gazed  down  into  her  wonderful  blue  eyes,  and 


THE  GREAT  SAVAGE 


239 


had  realised  the  perfect  rounded  figure  of  her  womanhood 
under  her  mannish  garb.  He  had  always  remembered 
those  peeping  golden  strands  of  hair,  which,  despite  her 
best  effort  to  conceal  them,  never  failed  to  escape  from 
under  the  fur  cap  which  was  so  closely  drawn  down  over 
her  shapely  head.  Then  her  wonderful  skill  on  the  water, 
her  confidence  and  her  pride  in  her  achievement.  He 
needed  nothing  beyond  those  things.  The  girl  had  held 
him  fascinated.  She  had  set  all  the  youth  in  him  afire. 
And  now — now  the  wonder  of  it.  The  chances  of  those 
remote  hills  had  sent  him  racing  down  towards  her 
home  full  of  a  dream  that  surged  through  his  senses 
with  all  the  pristine  fire  of  his  hitherto  unstirred  man¬ 
hood. 

He  was  thinking  of  her  now.  He  was  thinking  of  his 
visit  to  her  home  that  very  noonday,  the  first  of  his  arrival 
upon  the  river.  As  he  sat  over  the  fire  silently  contem¬ 
plating  the  depth  of  its  ruddy  heart  with  calm  unsmiling 
eyes,  a  passionate  desire  was  stirring  within  him.  Since 
the  moment  of  return  to  his  camp  on  the  gravel  flats,  with 
the  picture  of  that  happy,  unkempt  home  full  of  sturdy 
young  life  haunting  him,  he  had  been  concerned  only 
for  the  sweet,  blue,  smiling  eyes  of  the  girl  of  the 
northern  wild. 

He  had  heard  the  story  of  the  courageous  mother.  He 
had  heard  the  girl’s  story  from  her  own  pretty  lips  as  they 
had  walked  to  the  bank  of  the  river  where  he  had  left  his 
canoe  moored.  And  he  had  been  filled  with  only  the 
greater  admiration  for  the  simple  strength  and  courage 
with  which  these  devoted  souls  had  embarked  upon  their 
tremendous  struggle  for  existence. 

At  last  he  knocked  out  his  charred  pipe  and  thrust  it 
away  into  a  pocket.  Again  his  hands  were  outspread  to 
the  blaze,  but  now  his  eyes  were  directed  to  the  red- 


240 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


headed  creature  beyond  the  fire.  Wilder  suddenly  cleared 
his  throat.  He  began  to  speak,  addressing  himself  to 
the  Irishman.  And  Chilcoot  looked  round  from  his  con¬ 
templation  of  the  fire. 

“You  boys  best  listen  awhile  while  I  make  a  talk.” 
Wilder’s  manner  was  quiet  enough,  but  there  was  that 
in  his  tone  which  impressed  his  companions.  “You’ve 
maybe  both  got  a  grouch  on  me.  And  I’ll  admit  I’d  feel 
the  same  if  I  were  you.  You’re  both  of  you  guessing 
all  sorts  of  bad  med’cine  about  that  business  back  there 
in  the  hills.  You’re  reckoning  I  got  visions  I  haven’t 
figured  to  pass  on  to  you.  Well,  I  sort  of  feel  like  clear¬ 
ing  things  up  some — I  mean  that  old  grouch.” 

His  eyes  began  to  smile  and  he  turned  to  the  older  man 
beside  him  and  shook  his  head. 

“No,”  he  went  on,  “I’m  not  going  to  say  a  word  about 
that  night  I  passed  in  that  darn  place.  I’m  just  going  to 
ask  you  boys  to  sort  of  forget  it,  and  forget  your  grouch. 
You  just  got  to  trust  me  same  as  you’ve  done  right  along, 
and  maybe  later,  I’ll  be  able  to  hand  you  the  story  as  I 
know  it.  You,  Chilcoot,  know  me,  and  I  guess  you’ll  act 
that  way  without  a  kick.  It’ll  be  harder  for  Mike,  who 
hasn’t  worked  with  me  the  years  you  have.  Still,  maybe 
I  can  make  it  easy  even  for  him.” 

He  thrust  out  a  foot  and  kicked  the  fire  together  while 
the  two  men  maintained  their  silent  regard. 

“The  thing  I’ve  to  talk  about  is  the  thing  we  got  to  do 
right  here,”  he  went  on.  “I’ve  got  it  planned,  and  I 
want  to  hand  you  the  schedule  of  it.  We’ve  drawn  a  bad 
run  of  blanks  for  the  stuff  we’ve  been  chasing  for  the  past 
year,  but  the  run’s  ended.  The  stuff’s  in  sight.  It’s  right 
here  on  these  mud  flats,  for  all  the  notion’ll  seem  plumb 
crazy  to  you  boys.” 

The  Irishman,  stirred  and  sat  up. 


THE  GREAT  SAVAGE 


241 

“Ther’s  gold  on  this  darn — creek?”  he  cried  incredu¬ 
lously. 

“There  surely  is.” 

Wilder’s  tone  had  suddenly  hardened. 

“How’d  you  know  that?” 

Quick  as  a  flash  came  the  red-headed  man’s  question. 

Wilder’s  eyes  responded  coldly  to  the  challenge.  He 
shook  his  head. 

“Ther’s  no  reason  for  me  to  hand  you  that,  Mike,”  he 
said  sharply.  “Ther’s  no  reason  for  me  to  hand  you  a 
word  that  way.  You  signed  a  partnership  in  this  layout, 
with  me  to  lead  without  question.  The  thing  that  con¬ 
cerns  you  is  the  stuff.  Here.  You  don’t  believe  that 
stuff  is  on  this  creek.  That’s  so.  I  say  it  is.  Our  part¬ 
nership  doesn’t  quit  till  fall  next  year.  Well,  I  guess  I’m 
not  yearning  to  hand  you  presents.  Guess  you  haven’t 
found  it  my  way - ” 

“No.” 

Mike  grinned  as  he  punctuated  the  other’s  remark. 

“Just  so,”  Wilder  nodded.  “That  being  so  it’ll  make 
you  appreciate  the  thing  I’ll  hand  you  now.  I’ll  pass  you 
a  bank  draft  for  haf  a  million  dollars  the  day  we  set  foot 
in  Placer  if  we  haven’t  located  that  missioner’s  ‘strike’ 
somewhere  along  this  mud-bottomed  creek.  An’  I’ll  call 
Chilcoot  to  witness  that  goes.” 

The  two  men  gazed  eye  to  eye  through  the  haze  of 
smoke.  Mike  made  no  movement,  but  a  look  of  almost 
foolish  doubt  was  in  his  mute  regard  of  the  man  who 
made  his  amazing  offer.  It  was  different  with  Chilcoot. 
He  turned  almost  with  a  jump. 

“Say,  you’re  crazy,  Bill,”  he  protested. 

“I’m  not,”  Wilder  snapped,  while  his  gaze  remained 
steadily  fixed  on  the  face  of  the  man  beyond  the  fire. 
“Does  it  go,  Mike?”  he  asked.  “And  does  it  cut  out 


16 


242 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


your  kick?  That’s  the  thing  I’m  looking  for.  You  get 
the  thing  we’re  looking  for  under  my  leadership,  or  I 
hand  you  haf  a  million  dollars  a  present.  Well?” 

The  Irishman  raised  a  hand  and  thrust  his  fur  cap 
back  from  his  forehead.  His  amazement  was  almost 
ludicrous. 

“Chilcoot’s  right,”  he  blurted  at  last. 

“He  isn’t.” 

“You — mean  that?” 

“Sure.” 

The  Irishman  suddenly  broke  into  a  laugh  of  derision. 

“Well,”  he  cried,  “Chilcoot’s  witness.”  Then  he  flung 
up  his  hands.  “Say,  I  haven’t  any  sort  of  kick  left  in 
me.  I  don’t  care  a  curse  if  you  passed  the  night  in  that 
darnation  shanty  with  an  army  of  murderin’  spooks. 
Gee!  Haf  a  million  dollars.  I’d  hate  to  death  a  sight 
of  that  missioner’s  ‘strike’  between  now  an’  next  fall. 
Hand  out  your  dope,  Bill.  You’re  boss  of  this  layout. 
Haf  a  million !  Gee !” 

Wilder  nodded.  He  turned  at  once  to  Chilcoot.  He 
shook  his  head  with  quiet  confidence. 

“I’m  not  crazy,  boy,”  he  cried,  in  a  tone  of  pleasant 
tolerance.  “Do  you  mind  our  ‘strike’  back  there  on 
Eighty-mile  in  those  days  when  we  were  worried  keeping 
our  bellies  from  rattling  against  our  backbones?  Get  a 
look  into  this  darn  swamp  and  think  back.  It’s  twin  to 
Eighty-mile.  The  formation  is  like  as  two  beans.  The 
same  mud,  an’  granite,  with  the  same  queer  breaks  of  red 
gravel  miles  on  a  stretch.  Ther’s  that.  But  ther’s  more. 
That  missioner  lived  right  on  this  creek.  It  was  his  home 
country.  And  he  wasn’t  the  boy  to  chase  around  on  a 
prospect.  If  he  made  a  ‘strike’  it  was  on  home  territory 
that  was  always  under  his  eye.  And  you’ll  mind  he  never 
mentioned  Caribou  in  his  yarns.  He  said  Loon  Creek, 


THE  GREAT  SAVAGE 


243 


which  is  far  enough  to  keep  prying  eyes  from  getting 
around  the  real  location.  Maybe  he  was  wise  for  all  they 
beat  him.  There  it  is  anyway.  I’ve  got  a  mighty  hunch 
for  this  creek.” 

He  turned  again  to  the  fire,  and  thrust  out  his  hands. 

“An’  you  reckon  to  stake  a  haf  million  on  your  no¬ 
tion?”  Chilcoot  cried  uneasily. 

‘Til  play  my  luck.”  Wilder  nodded.  ‘Til  go  further. 
I  know  the  stuff  is  here.” 

“You  know  that?”  Mike  broke  in. 

“I  surely  do.” 

“You  reckon  you  ken  set  your  finger  on  it?” 

“More  or  less.” 

The  man  with  the  flaming  head  suddenly  sprang  to  his 
feet. 

“More  or — less !”  he  cried  almost  contemptuously  in  his 
headlong  way. 

Wilder  remained  unmoved. 

“Here,”  he  said  quietly  spreading  out  his  hand  in  an 
expressive  gesture,  “we  only  got  a  matter  of  weeks  to  the 
freeze-up.  We’re  liable  to  snow  any  day  now,  and  every 
night  ther’s  frost.  In  awhile  the  ground’ll  be  solid  so  we 
can’t  break  into  it  without  more  dynamite  than  we  got 
stowed.  That  being  so,  here’s  the  schedule.  You,  Mike, 
now  you  feel  good  about  it,  ’ll  need  to  beat  up  stream 
and  locate  prospect  ground  for  next  spring.  You’ll  use 
the  whole  outfit  and  you’ll  locate  camp  ground.  That’s 
your  billet  till  the  freeze-up,  and  you’ll  need  to  make  right 
up  to  the  head  waters.  Chilcoot  and  I’ll  beat  our  own 
trail.  An’  don’t  forget  it,  boy,  Chilcoot’s  witness  ther’s 
haf  a  million  for  you  if  we  don’t  make  that  ‘strike.’ 
Does  it  tickle  you  any?” 

“Just  plumb  +0  death,  chief.” 

The  Irishman  was  grinning  from  the  roots  of  his 


244 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


flaming  hair  to  a  neck  that  was  none  too  clean.  The  last 
shadow  of  his  discontent  had  vanished  from  his  expres¬ 
sive  eyes.  And  even  Chilcoot  was  smiling  in  his  slow 
fashion. 

“That’s  good,”  said  Wilder.  “Guess  we  can  roll  into 
our— Hello!  What  the—  ?” 

He  sat  peering  out  down  the  river  bank  with  a  hand 
shading  his  eyes  from  the  firelight.  Chilcoot  too  had 
turned  searching  into  the  night.  The  Irishman,  standing, 
was  in  possession  of  the  better  view. 

“It’s  two  fellers  cornin’  up  from  the  river,”  he  said. 
“An’  they  got  a  small  kyak  drawn  up  on  the  shore.” 


The  gathering  about  Wilder’s  camp  fire  had  been  aug¬ 
mented.  Five  men  sat  about  it  where  before  there  had 
only  been  three.  Of  the  newcomers  one  was  a  white 
youth  and  the  other  was  an  Indian,  who  left  Wilder’s 
stature  no  more  than  ordinary.  The  newcomers  were 
squatting  on  the  river  side  of  the  fire,  slightly  apart  from 
the  others.  And  they  sat  side  by  side,  closely,  as  though 
there  remained  a  definite  barrier  of  antagonism  between 
them  and  the  strangers  they  had  found  on  the  river. 

Usak  sat  with  his  long  old  rifle  laid  across  his  knees. 
Clarence  was  armed,  too,  but  his  weapon  was  in  the  na¬ 
ture  of  a  more  modern  sporting  rifle.  Of  the  gold  men 
one  at  least  realised  the  personality  of  these  visitors  in 
the  night. 

There  had  been  no  greeting.  The  Indian  and  his  com¬ 
panion  had  approached  watchfully.  They  had  reached 
the  fire  without  a  word.  But  their  eyes  had  been  busy, 
and  their  minds  full  of  searching  questions.  Forthwith 
they  had  squatted.  But  only  on  their  recognition  that 
their  hosts  were  whitemen. 


THE  GREAT  SAVAGE 


245 


It  was  Wilder  who  broke  up  the  strained  silence.  The 
moment  the  flame  of  fire  had  lit  up  the  white  youth’s  face 
recognition  had  been  instant.  The  likeness  in  it  to  the 
faces  of  those  brothers  and  sisters  he  had  encountered 
that  noonday  left  the  identity  of  both  him  and  his  dusky 
companion  beyond  question. 

“You  are  Clarence,”  he  said,  with  quiet  friendliness. 
Then  his  gaze  rested  thoughtfully  upon  the  inscrutable 
eyes,  and  harshly  moulded  features  of  the  Indian.  “And 
you  are  Usak.” 

It  was  the  white  youth  who  replied.  He  nodded  while 
the  Indian  sat  searching  the  whitemen’s  faces  with  a  gaze 
that  was  almost  lost  in  eyes  narrowed  down  to  the  merest 
slits. 

“Yes.  Who  are  you?” 

“Gold  men  on  the  trail.  My  name’s  Wilder.  Bill 
Wilder.” 

The  Indian  raised  one  arm  and  indicated  the  others. 

“Him  men,  too?  What  you  call  ’em?” 

His  young  white  boss  having  answered  the  first  ques¬ 
tion  Usak  had  no  scruple  but  to  take  up  the  rest  of  the 
matter  himself. 

“Chilcoot  Massy  and  Red  Mike  Partners  with  me. 
And  we  come  from  Placer.” 

Wilder’s  ready  reply  was  in  studied  friendliness.  But 
his  keen  eyes  searched  the  Indian’s  face,  which  was  com¬ 
pletely  expressionless.  The  dusky  face  had  neither  friend¬ 
liness  nor  antagonism.  Yet  it  was  potential  for  either 
under  the  harsh  mask  which  Nature  had  set  upon  it. 

Chilcoot  and  Mike  left  the  situation  in  the  hands  of 
their  chief,  and  simply  sat  waiting  and  curious.  The 
white  boy  afforded  them  little  concern.  It  was  the  Indian, 
with  his  grim  manner,  and  his  long,  old-fashioned  rifle 
that  claimed  their  whole  attention,  as  it  did  their  chief’s. 


246 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


But  Wilder  was  studying  the  man  out  of  his  knowledge 
of  his  malevolent  reputation.  He  knew  he  was  confront¬ 
ing  the  dreaded  creature  who  had  perpetrated  his  terrible 
vengeance  upon  those  two  people  he  had  encountered  at 
the  house  in  the  hills.  He  knew  it  at  once  when  he  recog¬ 
nised  Clarence  as  one  of  the  family  he  had  visited  that 
noonday.  And  he  was  anxious  to  discover  the  impression 
his  presence  on  the  river  made  upon  the  man. 

He  had  not  long  to  wait. 

“You  gold  men/’  Usak  said,  in  a  tone  that  was  deep- 
throated  and  full  of  the  latent  savage  in  him.  “You  come 
for  gold?  You  come  to  Caribou.”  He  shook  his  head, 
and  his  eyes  suddenly  opened  wide,  and  their  black  depths 
were  full  of  that  fierce  resentment  which  was  to  be  feared 
like  a  cyclonic  storm.  “I  tell  you  no!”  he  cried  hotly. 
“Caribou  is  not  for  whiteman  gold  man.  No.  It  is  for 
the  white  girl  the  good  boss  Marty  leave  to  the  care  of 
Usak.  Him  all  mans  quit  Caribou  quick.  I  say  him.  I 
— Usak.  You’m  go  quick  as  you  come.  You  not  go, 
then  all  mans  get  kill  up  dead.  It  so.  Him  no  gold  on 
Caribou,  an5  Caribou  him  for  my  good  white-girl  boss, 
Kid.” 

With  his  last  word  the  man  stood  erect  and  his  move¬ 
ment  was  without  any  apparent  effort.  Fie  stood  a  crea¬ 
ture  of  mighty  stature  grasping  a  long  rifle  that  was 
dwarfed  beside  him.  He  deliberately  spat  in  the  fire  and 
turned  away.  Then  it  was,  for  the  first  time,  he  experi¬ 
enced  the  authority  he  had  forced  on  his  white  companion’s 
shoulders.  Clarence,  too,  had.  risen,  but  he  did  not  turn 
away. 

“Say,  Usak,  just  stop  right  here,”  he  ordered  sharply. 

The  Indian  was  startled.  Fie  turned  again  and  waited 
at  the  boy’s  bidding,  while  his  passionate  eyes  narrowed 
on  the  instant. 


THE  GREAT  SAVAGE 


247 

Clarence  gave  him  no  time  to  speak.  He  passed  round 
the  fire  to  Wilder  and  thrust  out  a  welcoming  hand. 

“I’m  glad  to  meet  you,  sir/’  he  said,  with  an  amiable 
boyish  smile.  “Guess  I’m  only  a  kid,  but  I  can  speak 
for  my  mother  an’  the  Kid.  You  see,  Usak’s  our  guard¬ 
ian  around  here.  He’s  the  best  thing  to  us  that  was 
ever  put  into  an  Indian’s  body.  But  he  reckons  this  river 
and  all  the  territory  around  it  belongs  to  my  mother  an’ 
the  Kid,  an’  hates  the  sight  of  folks  he  thinks  likely  to 
do  us  hurt.  You  get  that?  But  he  don’t  quite  understand 
things  between  white  folk.  I’m  glad  to  welcome  you  to 
our  country,  an’  I’ll  be  glad  to  welcome  you  by  our  home 
down  the  river.  And  I  guess  Mum,  and  the  Kid’ll  feel 
that  way,  too.  Maybe  you’ll  forget  Usak  spat  into  your 
fire.” 

Wilder  took  the  boy’s  hand  in  a  powerful  grip,  and 
smiled  up  into  his  ingenuous  tired  face. 

“Why,  sure,”  he  cried.  “You  don’t  need  to  say  an¬ 
other  word.  I’ve  been  along  this  morning  to  pay  my  re¬ 
spects  to  your  splendid  mother,  and  your — Kid.  And 
seeing  I’m  located  on  this  river  of  yours  for  the  next  year, 
why,  I’m  hoping  I’ll  see  a  deal  of  you  all.  My  friends 
here  feel  that  way,  too.  We’re  not  pirates  come  to  steal 
anything  you  reckon  is  yours,  or  to  hand  you  a  moment’s 
worry.  That  goes,  an’  I  guess  your  mother’ll  tell  you  the 
same.” 

The  boy  stood  for  a  moment  a  little  overwhelmed  by 
the  easy,  friendly  manner  of  the  stranger.  And  in  his  con¬ 
fusion  at  his  impulsive  assertion  of  authority  over  the 
Indian  he  resorted  to  the  only  thing  his  wit  suggested. 
He  took  refuge  in  a  swift  withdrawal. 

“Thank  you,  sir,”  he  said  lamely.  ‘T  guess  we’ll  get 
right  on  home.  You  see,  we’re  just  in  off  a  summer 
trail.”  He  turned  away  and  looked  squarely  into  the 


248 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


Indian’s  face.  “We’ll  beat  it  home,  Usak,”  he  said 
shortly. 

•  ©  •  •  •  •  • 

They  watched  the  shadowy  figures  in  silence  as  they 
passed  down  the  river  bank  and  were  swallowed  up  by 
the  shadows  of  the  chilly  night. 

Red  Mike  turned  and  grinned  at  his  companions 
through  the  haze  of  smoke. 

“That  boy’s  chock  full  of  real  sand,”  he  said  with  ap¬ 
preciation. 

Chilcoot  rubbed  his  gnarled  hands. 

“I’d  sooner  be  up  against  the  worst  Euralian  ever  bred 
than  that  darn  redskin,”  he  said  meditatively. 

Wilder  nodded  and  extended  his  hands  over  the  fire. 

“Yes,”  he  said,  regarding  the  fire  with  serious  eyes. 
“Or  a  whole  darn  legion  of  ’em.” 


CHAPTER  X 


DAYS  OF  PROMISE 

The  Kid  stood  up  from  her  task.  She  was  no  longer  in 
her  working  clothes,  and  the  translation  was  something 
almost  magical.  Her  tall,  slim,  yet  beautifully  rounded 
figure  was  clad  in  a  simple  shirtwaist  of  some  cheap 
cotton  material,  which,  with  a  plain,  dark  cloth,  shortish 
skirt,  completed  the  costume  in  which  she  loved  to  array 
herself  at  the  close  of  her  working  day.  She  was  smiling 
her  delight,  and  her  whole  expression  was  radiant.  Her 
pretty  eyes  were  alight  with  all  that  satisfaction  which 
Usak,  in  his  simple  mind,  had  dreamt  he  would  witness  in 
them.  Her  lips  were  parted  for  the  eager  talk  which 
sprang  so  readily  to  them.  And  as  the  brooding  eyes  of 
the  savage  gazed  upon  her  he  felt  that  his  reward  was 
ample.  * 

They  were  in  the  leanto  storehouse  built  against  the  log 
shanty  which  was  Usak’s  own  abode.  It  was  all  a  part  of 
the  ramshackle  homestead  which  housed  them  all,  but  it 
was  set  apart  and  without  communication  with  the  abode 
given  up  to  the  white  folks  of  the  queerly  assorted  house¬ 
hold. 

An  oil  lamp  lit  the  place  with  its  inadequate  yellow 
light,  and  produced  profound  shadows  amongst  the 
general  litter.  It  was  set  on  an  up-turned  packing  case 
which  was  part  of  the  stock-in-trade  for  transport.  The 
dry  mud  floor  was  littered  with  the  result  of  the  Indian’s 


250 


THE  LUCK  OP  THE  KID 


summer  trade,  the  extent  and  quality  of  which  was  far 
more  generous  than  the  girl  had  hoped  would  be  the  case. 
There  were  a  number  of  pelts  amongst  which  were 
several  white  and  red  fox.  There  were  two  or  three 
freshwater  seals,  some  beaver  and  fishers,  and  a  make¬ 
weight  of  wild  cat.  But  best  of  all  were  several  ivory 
walrus  tusks,  and  the  prize  of  all  prizes  to  the  pelt  hunter, 
which  the  girl  was  holding  in  her  brown  hands  and 
stroking  gently  in  her  delight.  It  was  a  jet  black  fox. 
And  she  knew  its  value  to  be  far  more  than  the  rest  of 
the  trade  put  together. 

“It’s  a  wonderful,  wonderful  skin,  Usak,”  she  said,  her 
eyes  feasting  on  the  crudely  dried  fur,  which,  even  in  its 
rough  state  was  still  soft,  and  thick,  and  full  of  promise. 
“Whoever  took  it  was  a  swell  hunter,”  she  declared, 
scrutinising  it  with  the  eye  of  an  expert.  “Trapped. 
And  not  a  scar  to  show  how.  My,  but  it’s  worth  a  pile. 
How  much?” 

She  raised  her  delighted  eyes  to  the  dark  face  of  the 
big  man  standing  by. 

“Sho!”  The  Indian  shrugged.  “I  not  say  him. 
Tousand  dollar,  maybe.  Him  much  plenty  good  pelt. 
Oh,  yes.” 

“Thousand?”  The  girl’s  tone  was  scornful.  “More 
like  fifteen  hundred.  We’ll  get  that  in  Placer,  sure.  An’ 
these  ivories,”  she  went  on.  “Oh,  it’s  a  good  trade.”  She 
laid  the  skin  aside  reluctantly  and  smiled  again  into  the 
man’s  face.  “Guess  if  I  know  a  thing  we  haven’t  a  worry 
for  a  year  an’  more.  Mum’ll  sleep  easy  for  a  year  cer¬ 
tain,  I  guess.  An’  Perse’s  pants  won’t  always  have  her 
figgering.” 

Then  the  woman  in  her  became  uppermost  as  she  con¬ 
templated  the  further  meaning  of  the  Indian’s  success. 

“Mum’ll  get  a  new  outfit.  And  so  will  Mary  Justicia. 


251 


DAYS  OF  PROMISE 

HRjH  r 

An’  we  can  fix  up  all  the  others,  the  boys  as  well,  I  mean. 
It’s  just  great,  Usak.  You’re — you’re  a  wonder.  How 
did  you  do  it?  Did  you  locate  a  bunch  of  Euralian  rob¬ 
bers,  an’ — ” 

The  Indian  shook  his  head.  But  he  offered  no  verbal 
denial.  Truth  to  tell  the  girl’s  curiosity  and  obvious  de¬ 
sire  for  the  story  of  his  summer-long  labours  made  no 
appeal  to  him.  For  all  his  satisfaction  at  the  Kid’s  readily 
expressed  delight  he  had  been  robbed  of  more  than  half 
his  joy  of  return  by  that  final  incident  of  his  journey 
home.  His  passionate  heart  was  full  of  a  sort  of  crazy 
resentment  at  the  presence  of  the  outfit  of  white  intruders 
on  the  river.  And  even  as  the  girl  talked  and  questioned 
he  remained  absorbed  in,  and  nursing  his  bitter  grievance. 

His  silence  and  lack  of  interest  were  too  painfully  obvi¬ 
ous  to  be  missed.  And  the  Kid  suddenly  dropped  to  a 
seat  on  a  box  beside  the  beautiful  fur  she  had  laid  aside. 

“What  is  it,  Usak?”  she  asked,  with  that  quick  return 
to  the  authority  which  existed  between  them.  “Ther’s 
things  worrying.  I  can  see  it  in  your  face.  Best  tell  it 
right  away.  Is  it  Clarence  ?  Has  he  failed  after  the  good 
things  you  hoped  of  him?  Yes.  Best  tell  it.  I  can  stand 
things  to-night  with  a  clean  up  of  trade  like  this  around 
me.” 

The  Indian  moved  away.  He  squatted  himself  on  an 
upturned  sled  awaiting  repairs  to  its  runners.  And  the 
girl  watched  him  closely. 

Young  as  she  was  there  was  much  that  the  Kid  under¬ 
stood  instinctively.  She  had  not  spent  all  her  childhood’s 
days  with  this  great  savage  without  learning  something 
of  his  almost  insanely  passionate  moods,  and  the  poten¬ 
tialities  of  them.  To  her  he  was  just  a  savage  watch-dog, 
loyal  from  the  crown  of  his  black  head  to  the  soles  of  his 
moccasined  feet.  But  she  understood  that  his  curious 


252 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


ferocity  was  none  the  less  for  it.  There  was  one  thing  in 
him  that  never  failed  to  stir  her  to  some  alarm.  It  was 
the  narrowing  of  his  black  eyes,  which,  in  his  more  vio¬ 
lent  moods,  had  a  knack  of  closing  to  mere  slits.  His 
eyes  were  so  closed  just  now. 

While  she  waited  for  him  to  speak  she  watched  him 
reach  out  and  possess  himself  of  his  beloved  rifle  which 
had  been  stood  against  the  wall  of  the  leanto.  He  took  it, 
and  laid  it  across  his  knees,  and  his  powerful  fingers 
caressed  the  quaint  old  trigger-guard.  It  seemed  to  her 
that  never  in  her  life  had  she  observed  him  in  so  ominous 
a  mood. 

“Well?”  she  demanded  sharply,  and  her  alarm  added  a 
strident  ring  to  her  voice. 

The  man  looked  up. 

“You  mak  him  this  question?”  he  demanded,  without 
softening.  “This  thing  I  mak  to  myself.  Oh,  yes.  It 
for  me.  I  feel  him  all  here,”  he  beat  his  chest  with  one 
clenched  fist  to  indicate  his  bosom.  “I  mak  him  no  say. 
Not  nothing.  Clarence  him  big  whiteman.  Much  good 
trail  man.  So.  I  mak  you  big  trade.  Plenty  food  come 
next  year.  Plenty  good  thing  much.  So.  You  lak  him? 
Oh,  yes.  It  good.  Then  why  you  mak  him  this  ques¬ 
tion?” 

The  man’s  jaws  seemed  literally  to  shut  with  a  snap. 

The  Kid  smiled  with  an  effort.  She  was  without  per¬ 
sonal  fear.  Her  smiling  blue  eyes  confronted  and  held 
him  as  she  determined  they  should. 

“I’m  waiting,”  she  said.  “If  I  wait  here  all  night  in 
the  cold  you’ll  surely  have  to  say  it.  What’s  troubling?” 

The  girl’s  power  over  the  savage  was  tremendous.  In 
a  curious  negative  sort  of  way  she  understood  that  this 
was  so.  She  never  looked  for  the  reason,  simply  ac¬ 
cepting  the  obvious  fact,  and  sometimes  rejoicing  in  it. 


DAYS  OF  PROMISE 


253 


For  all  her  youth  she  understood  the  danger  of  his  un¬ 
tamed  spirit.  And  many  times  in  her  young  life  she  had 
learned  the  value  of  the  restraining  influence  she  exer¬ 
cised  over  him. 

The  man  knew  his  weakness  in  confronting  her.  There 
were  times  when  his  hot  soul  rebelled  at  his  own  power¬ 
lessness.  It  was  that  way  now.  But  through  it  all  a 
subtle  gladness  never  failed  to  soften  the  irritation  their 
clashes  of  will  were  wont  to  inspire.  The  truth  was  his 
utter  and  complete  worship  of  her  was  irresistible.  As 
an  infant  the  Kid  had  caught  the  rebound  of  his  devo¬ 
tion  to  his  murdered  wife,  Pri-loo,  and  the  perfect  loyalty 
that  had  been  his  for  her  father.  From  the  moment  of 
the  passing  of  these  two  creatures,  who  had  bounded  the 
whole  of  his  life’s  horizon,  he  had  found  salvation  from 
the  wreckage  of  his  savage  passions  in  the  infant  life 
that  had  been  flung  into  his  empty  arms.  Perhaps  his 
worship  of  her  was  a  sheer  insanity.  But  it  was  an 
idolatry  of  parental  purity. 

He  chafed  under  her  insistence.  Once  he  sought  to 
avoid  those  compelling  eyes.  He  gazed  about  among  the 
shadows  of  the  hut  in  a  helpless  fashion  that  was  almost 
pathetic,  whilst  his  great  hand  fondled  the  breech  of  his 
beloved  weapon.  But  he  returned  to  the  magnet  that 
never  failed  to  claim  him  as  surely  held  as  any  bond- 
slave. 

“Tcha!”  The  exclamation  was  the  man’s  final,  un¬ 
gracious  yielding.  He  flung  his  rifle  aside  and  stood  up. 
And  in  a  moment  he  was  rapidly  pacing  the  narrow 
limits  of  the  hut.  “You  ask  him  this?  I  tell  you,  ‘no.’ 
No  good.  So  I  tell  you.”  He  paused  and  flung  out  an 
arm  pointing  in  the  direction  of  the  river.  “This  white- 
man.  Bimeby  I  go  kill  ’em  all  up.” 

He  remained  pointing.  His  eyes  were  wide  now  and 


254  THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 

full  of  deadly  purpose.  A  volcanic  rage  was  consuming 
him. 

The  Kid’s  eyes  also  widened  for  an  instant.  She  re¬ 
mained  unmoving.  Then  a  smile  diawned  about  her  lips 
and  presently  illuminated  her  whole  face.  She  raised  one 
hand  and  thrust  out  a  pointing  finger  at  him,  and  a  clear, 
happy,  ringing  laugh  broke  from  her  parted  lips. 

“You  kill  up  these  whitemen?”  she  cried.  “These 
folks  who’ve  just  come  along  up  the  river?  No,”  she 
said,  suddenly  sobering,  and  shaking  her  head.  “If  you 
kill  them  you  kill  me,  too.  They’re  all  my  good  friends, 
Usak.  An’  if  you  hurt  a  hair  of  their  heads  I’ll  just  hate 
you  to  death  for  ever  an’  ever.” 

It  was  a  tense  moment.  The  man  had  come  to  a  stand¬ 
still,  staring  incredulously  down  at  the  fair-haired  crea¬ 
ture  who  was  his  whole  earthly  delight.  For  all  her  laugh 
there  was  fear  in  the  Kid’s  heart.  The  impulse  had  been 
irresistible.  There  could  be  no  half  measures.  The  sit¬ 
uation  had  called  for  strong  and  definite  challenge. 

“You  say  him  this?”  The  man’s  tone  was  like  the 
threatening  growl  of  a  wild  beast.  “This  whitemans  all 
your  good  friend?  I  tell  you — No!  Him  mans  your 
enemy.  Him  come  steal  all  things  what  are  yours.  Him 
river.  Him  land.  Him — gold.  Usak  know  plenty  much. 
Him  no  damfool  Injun  man.  Oh,  no.  Him  wise  plenty. 
Him  say  this  whitemans  no  good  friend.  Only  big  thief 
come  steal  all  thing.  So  I  kill  ’em  up,  sure.” 

The  Kid  breathed  a  deep  sigh.  The  joy  of  this  wild 
man’s  return  had  lost  its  glamour.  Deepening  fear 
gripped  her  heart.  And  it  was  for  the  whiteman  with  the 
grey  eyes  that  smiled  so  gently,  and  reflected  so  clearly 
the  big,  honest  soul  behind  them. 

“You  just  got  to  listen,  Usak,”  she  cried  urgently, 
stifling  the  fear  which  was  striving  to  display  itself  in 


DAYS  OF  PROMISE 


255 


eye  and  voice.  ‘'An'  when  I’ve  done  my  talk  you’ll  need 
to  quit  that  wicked  spirit  that’s  always  wanting  to  kill 
when  folks  offend  you.  I  didn’t  know  you’d  had  time  to 
locate  these  folks.  But  it  don’t  matter  a  thing.  I  tell  you 
they’re  friends — of  mine.  I’ve  known  Bill  Wilder  since 
two  summers  back.  I  found  him  in  trouble  with  his  out¬ 
fit  on  the  river  below  the  rapids,  and  passed  him  right 
up  through  the  channel  on  his  way  north.  And  I  asked 
him  right  then,  when  he  got  along  down,  to  come  up  the 
Caribou  an’  make  a  friendly  visit.  He’s  come  along  be¬ 
cause  I  asked  him.  Pie’s  my  friend  an’ — ” 

“You  lak  him,  this  man  ?  Him  your  man  ?  You  marry 
him  same  lak  Pri-loo  was  my  woman?” 

The  man’s  tone  had  changed  to  one  of  simple  wonder 
and  almost  of  incredulity.  His  understanding  had  only 
one  interpretation  for  a  man  and  woman’s  friendship, 
and  perhaps  he  was  the  wiser  for  it.  But  his  savage,  un¬ 
tutored  directness  of  expression  sent  the  hot  blood  of 
shame  to  the  simple  girl’s  cheeks.  The  yellow  lamp-light 
revealed  the  flushed  cheeks  and  the  half  closed  eye¬ 
lids  that  sought  to  defend  the  woman’s  secret  from  the 
man’s  searching  gaze. 

The  Kid  shook  her  head,  and  denial  cost  her  an  effort. 

“It’s  not  that  way  with  white-folk,”  she  said  en¬ 
deavouring  to  evade  direct  denial.  “Maybe  I  just  like 
him.  He’s  big,  an’  strong,  an’  good.  I  like  his  talk.  So 
I  think  Mum  an’  the  children  like  him,  too.” 

“So  you  say  this  man  to  come  by  Caribou — that  you 
see  him  some  more?  Oh,  yes.  So  white  mother  Hesther 
may  lak  him,  too?  An’  those  others?” 

The  man’s  eyes  were  no  longer  fierce.  They  were 
smiling  derisively  out  of  his  savage  wisdom. 

The  Kid  stirred  restlessly  under  his  words  and  man¬ 
ner.  His  smile,  which  was  intended  for  no  unkindness, 


256 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


became  a  hateful  thing  to  her.  And  she  understood  the 
reason.  She  knew  that  her  explanation  was  without 
truth.  She  had  trapped  herself  into  foolish  evasion.  She 
knew  she  had  desired  herself  to  see  this  man  again.  She 
knew — But  she  permitted  herself  no  further  admission. 
Anger  rose  swiftly  in  her,  and  she  sprang  to  her  feet. 
Her  pretty  eyes  flashed  in  the  yellow  light  and  for  the 
first  time  in  his  life  the  Indian  realised  something  of  that 
which  centuries  of  civilization  has  bred  into  the  white- 
woman. 

“How  dare  you  say  that  to  me?”  she  cried.  “You — 
an  Indian!”  She  laughed  a  curious  shrill  sort  of  laugh. 
“What  is  it  you  say?  ‘Injun  man  no  good.’  Maybe 
you’re  right.  I’m  your  good  boss  Marty’s  daughter. 
Remember  that.  I’m  your  boss.  Your  white  boss.  And 
now  I  tell  you  to  obey.  You  leave  that  whiteman,  all 
those  whitemen  alone.  I  tell  you  this.  Who’re  you  to 
say  who  comes  on  this  river?  Who’re  you  anyway? 
Usak,  the  Indian.  An  Indian — the  servant  of  my  dead 
father,  and  now  my  servant.  Remember!” 

She  stood  in  the  fitful  light  a  tall  slim  figure  of  angry 
authority  and  outraged  womanhood.  And  the  great 
Indian  stood  cowed  before  the  torrent  of  her  scorn  and 
wrath.  No  longer  was  the  smiling  derision  in  his  eyes. 
No  longer  was  that  blaze  of  volcanic  wrath  in  them.  She 
had  smote  him  in  the  most  vulnerable  joint  of  his  armour. 
His  worshipped  idol  had  turned  and  rended  him,  and 
spurned  him  as  she  might  some  pariah. 

The  great  fellow’s  eyes  avoided  the  girl’s.  His  simian 
length  of  arms  left  his  great  hands  hanging  seemingly 
helpless  by  his  sides.  His  great  size  reduced  him  to  a 
painful  picture  of  pathetic  dejection.  The  Kid’s  swift 
scorn  had  beaten  him  as  nothing  else  in  the  world  could 
have  beaten  him. 


DAYS  OF  PROMISE 


25 1 


She  moved  towards  the  door  without  a  further  glance 
in  his  direction.  Her  body  was  erect,  and  her  heart  was 
hard  set  and  coldly  determined.  There  was  no  pause  or 
further  word.  But  she  knew. 

It  came  as  she  reached  the  door.  There  was  a  sound 
behind  her.  The  next  moment  Usak  was  beside  her  hold¬ 
ing  out  the  precious  black  fox  skin  she  had  left. 

“You  tak  him  this?”  he  said,  in  a  tone  of  humility  and 
appeal  that  was  irresistible  to  the  girl  who  knew  so  well 
all  he  had  always  been  to  her.  “I  mak  him  this  trade  for 
the  white  boss,  Kid.  I  see  ’em  five  Euralian  by  the  camp. 
I  kill  ’em  all  up  dead.  So  I  mak  tak  ’em  this  black  fox, 
an’  this  ivory.  Oh,  yes.  I  kill  ’em  all  man’s  for  white 
boss,  Kid.  All  time  I  do  this.  I  do  all  thing  for  Kid. 
So  as  she  say — all  time.” 

The  girl  looked  up  into  the  man’s  dark  eyes.  In  a 
moment  her  heart  melted.  She  took  the  priceless  skin 
from  his  hands  and  laid  it  over  her  arm  with  one  hand 
resting  caressingly  upon  it. 

“You  killed  five  Euralian  men  for  this?”  she  said. 

“I  kill  ’em,  yes,”  the  man  returned  simply. 

The  girl  shook  her  head,  and  her  eyes  were  troubled. 

“I — I  kind  of  wish  you  hadn’t,”  she  said  gently. 

“Euralian?”  The  man’s  eyes  widened.  “It  not  matter 
nothing,”  he  said,  with  a  shrug.  “So  I  get  him  skin  an’ 
him  ivory  for  white  boss,  Kid.  I  kill  all  thing.  Yes.” 


The  two  men  were  standing  on  a  gravel  foreshore.  It 
was  the  foreshore  of  a  well-nigh  dried  out  creek  which 
in  more  abundant  season  was  wont  to  flow  turbulently 
into  the  greater  stream  of  the  Caribou.  It  was  an  almost 
hidden  creek,  for  there  existed  no  apparent  inlet  to  the 
bigger  river,  except  at  such  times  as  the  spring  freshet 


17 


258 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


translated  it  into  a  surge  of  flood  water.  Now,  in  the  late 
fall,  there  was  scarcely  water  enough  in  its  bed  to  do  more 
than  moisten  the  soles  of  a  man’s  moccasins,  and,  at  the 
junction  with  Caribou,  there  was  scarcely  an  indentation 
in  the  latter’s  banks  to  mark  its  course. 

But  a  mile  and  more  to  the  north  it  was  quite  different. 
Here  the  creek  was  sharply  marked  between  high,  wide, 
barren  shoulders  that  gave  its  course  a  breadth  of  some¬ 
thing  little  less  than  a  quarter  of  a  mile.  And  its  whole 
bed  was  a  curious,  copper-hued  gravel  which  every  gold 
man  recognises  as  the  precious  “pay-dirt,”  in  pursuit  of 
which  he  spends  his  life. 

Bill  Wilder  and  Chilcoot  were  moving  slowly  over  this 
loose  gravel  gazing  searchingly  at  the  higher  ground 
which  enclosed  the  deepening  cutting.  For  the  moment 
they  had  no  concern  for  the  stuff  they  were  treading 
under  foot.  They  were  looking  for  signs  and  landmarks 
which  they  had  already  learned  by  heart  from  minute  de¬ 
scriptions. 

With  every  furlong  they  explored  the  encompassing 
walls  rose  steadily  higher,  and  grew  ever  more  and  more 
rugged.  Their  formation  was  rapidly  changing.  The 
rock  walls  were  cut  with  sharp  facets  and  riven  in  a 
hundred  directions.  There  was  no  foliage  anywhere. 
The  cliffs  were  bald  and  not  a  yard  of  the  wide  pay-dirt 
bottom  yielded  a  scrag  of  grass,  or  a  single  Arctic  flower. 
It  looked  as  if  Nature  had  refused  one  atom  of  fertility 
to  the  soil  in  which  she  had  chosen  to  bestow  her  treasure. 

It  was  nearly  noon  when  the  explorers’  investiga¬ 
tions  were  first  interrupted.  And  the  interruption  came 
at  a  low  headland  where  the  whole  course  of  the  ravine 
swung  away  in  an  easterly  direction,  which  looked  to 
carry  it  in  an  exact  parallel  with  the  upper  waters  of 
the  Caribou. 


DAYS  OF  PROMISE 


259 


Chilcoot  was  on  the  lead  at  the  bend  and  he  came  to  a 
standstill,  and  flung  out  an  arm  pointing. 

“Get  a  look,  Bill,”  he  cried,  in  the  rough  tone  that  for 
him  was  something  indicative  of  the  unusual.  “It’s  a 
shanty,  or  I’m  a  ‘dead-beat.’  ” 

The  ravine  had  narrowed  abruptly,  but  beyond  the  bend 
it  instantly  widened.  Chilcoot  was  standing  gazing  be¬ 
yond,  where  the  dark,  rocky  walls  had  risen  to  a  great 
height  and  overhung,  shadowing  the  canyon  ominously. 
He  was  pointing  across  the  almost  dried  out  stream  at  a 
tiny  human  habitation  crushed  in  against  the  base  of  the 
opposite  wall. 

Wilder  instantly  abandoned  his  pre-occupation  with  a 
curious  facet  of  black  rock  that  was  not  unlike  pumice 
in  its  queer  formation.  He  had  been  examining  a  vein 
of  crystal  quartz  running  through  it.  He  hurried  up  to 
his  companion  and  gazed  at  the  strange  vision  of  a  log- 
built  shack  that  seemed  a  complete  anachronism  in  this 
wilderness  of  Nature, 

•  •  •  •  o  •  • 

Wilder  gazed  about  him.  The  interior  of  the  dilapi¬ 
dated  hut  was  no  less  interesting  than  its  exterior.  It  was 
old  and  decayed,  hanging  together  simply  by  reason  of 
the  support  of  the  cliff  against  which  it  had  been  built. 
For  the  moment  imagination  was  stirred,  and  he  saw  in 
fancy  the  picture  of  a  simple  missionary  carrying  on,  in 
his  untutored  fashion,  a  work  that  had  no  relation  to  his 
spiritual  calling. 

Chilcoot,  with  the  practical  interest  which  the  discovery 
inspired  in  his  lesser  imagination,  was  examining  the 
signs  and  indications  with  which  the  place  was  littered. 
There  was  a  rusted,  riffled  pan.  There  were  several 
shovels  in  a  more  or  less  state  of  decay.  There  was  an 
old  packing  case  filled  with  odds  and  ends  for  a  camper’s 


260 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


needs.  There  were  the  remains  of  a  fire  set  between  two 
blackened  stones,  a  battered  camp  kettle  and  a  pannikin  or 
two.  Just  within  the  doorway  stood  a  bent  crowbar  and 
a  haftless  pick.  Another  pick  was  leaning  up  against  the 
box  of  oddments. 

It  was  easy  enough  to  interpret  the  story  of  this  de¬ 
cayed  and  deserted  shelter.  And  the  men  who  had  dis¬ 
covered  it  were  prompt  in  their  reading  of  its  story.  It 
was  a  gold  prospector’s  shelter  littered  with  the  crudest 
implements  of  his  craft.  And  from  the  decaying  walls 
and  rafters,  and  the  rust-eaten  condition  of  every  metal 
utensil,  they  read  a  story  of  long  years  of  disuse  and  the 
stress  of  the  northern  seasons. 

Chilcoot  was  stooping  over  the  box  of  camp  rubbish. 
Wilder  had  turned  to  the  doorway,  leaning  out  of  its 
original  truth,  and,  for  awhile,  the  scene  beyond  it  com¬ 
pletely  preoccupied  him.  It  was  a  shadowed  canyon 
which,  as  the  distance  gained,  grew  more  and  more 
rugged  with  vastly  higher  surroundings.  But  the  gravel 
bed  remained  with  its  tiny  stream  of  water  drifting 
gently  down  from  its  far-off  source.  Directly  opposite 
him  stood  a  spire  of  rock  that  rose  up  like  a  monolith  far 
above  all  its  surroundings,  and  the  sight  of  it  seemed  to 
absorb  all  his  interest. 

A  sharp  exclamation  from  Chilcoot  startled  him  and 
he  turned  his  head. 

“What  you  found?”  he  asked. 

Chilcoot  was  standing  over  the  box  and  its  contents 
were  littered  about  him  on  the  ground.  He  was  peering 
into  a  rusted  tin  box,  stirring  the  contents  with  a  knotted 
forefinger. 

“Dust,”  he  replied  laconically.  But  his  tone  was  tense. 

Bill  came  quickly  to  his  side  and  together  they  gazed 
down  at  the  loose  yellow  stuff  that  shone  dully  against 


DAYS  OF  PROMISE 


261 


the  red  rust  with  which  the  years  had  corroded  the  tin 
containing  it.  In  spite  of  their  years,  their  wealth,  the 
sight  of  the  precious  metal  held  them  fascinated,  and 
stirred  emotions  deeply.  It  was  a  generous  sample  weigh¬ 
ing  several  ounces,  and  amongst  it  were  two  or  three 
nuggets  the  size  of  well-grown  peas.  Chilcoot  picked  out 
the  largest  and  held  it  up  for  his  companion’s  inspection. 

Wilder  nodded,  but  his  eyes  were  shining. 

“Sure,”  he  said.  Then  he  turned  away.  “Set  it  aside, 
old  friend,”  he  went  on,  “an’  let’s  get  outside.  We  need 
to  talk.” 

The  sky  was  drearily  overcast,  and  the  walls  of  the 
[canyon  further  helped  to  overshadow  the  world  about 
them.  The  two  men  were  lounging  on  the  bare  gravel 
which  formed  the  bed  of  the  creek.  Wilder  had  his  back 
propped  against  the  crazy  shanty  they  had  just  explored. 

Chilcoot  folded  up  the  paper  which  the  other  had  passed 
him  for  examination.  It  was  the  plan  of  Marty  Le 
Gros’  gold  “strike,”  and  it  was  the  first  time  since  it  had 
come  into  Wilder’s  possession  that  other  eyes  than  his 
had  been  permitted  to  gaze  upon  it. 

The  older  man  returned  it  without  comment,  but  his 
deepset  grey  eyes  were  expressive.  There  was  puzzle¬ 
ment  in  them.  There  was  something  else.  They  had  nar¬ 
rowed  curiously.  And  the  hard  lines  of  his  weather¬ 
beaten  face  were  a  shade  more  hardly  set. 

Wilder  returned  the  map  to  the  bosom  of  his  buckskin 
parka.  He  flaked  some  tobacco  from  a  plug  with  his 
sheath  knife  and  lit  his  pipe.  He  ignored  his  compan¬ 
ion’s  mood,  although  perfectly  aware  of  it. 

“Ther’s  a  deal  to  do  yet,”  he  said  calmly.  “A  piece 
farther  up  the  creek  is  Le  Gros’  old  working.  The  map 
shows  that  just  as  it  hands  us  a  picture  of  this  shanty, 


262 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


and  that  queer  spire  of  rock  standing  up  right  over  there,” 
he  added,  nodding  his  head  at  the  curious  crag  which 
rose  sheer  from  the  bed  of  the  creek  and  towered  above 
the  high  walls  enclosing  it.  “Yes,  we  got  to  prospect  that 
working,  and  try  out  the  creek  right  along.  If  the  ‘strike' 
is  right,  and  the  old  yarn  proves  true,  the  rest’s  easy — or 
should  be.” 

Chilcoot  lit  his  pipe.  But  he  shook  his  head  emphati¬ 
cally. 

“Guess  I  can’t  hand  no  sort  of  opinion,”  he  said  coldly. 
“I  ain’t  wise  to  a  thing.” 

The  tone  of  voice,  the  curtness  of  the  thing  he  said, 
should  have  had  their  effect.  But  Wilder  still  refused 
to  be  disturbed  out  of  his  calm.  His  eyes  smiled  as  he 
gazed  out  over  the  gravel  bed  where  the  thin  stream  of 
the  creek  flowed  on  almost  without  a  murmur.  He  was 
smoking  with  that  leisurely  luxury  suggesting  a  contented 
mind. 

“Just  so,  old  friend,”  he  replied.  “You  don’t  know 
a  thing — yet.  But  you’re  going  to  know  it  right  now. 
All  of  it.” 

“I’m  glad.”  The  asperity  was  still  in  the  other’s  tone 
and  Wilder’s  smile  deepened. 

“You  see  I  hadn’t  the  nerve  to  insult  your  intelligence, 
boy,  by  handing  you  a  fairy  tale — while  it  was  just  a  fairy 
tale,”  he  said.  “Guess  I  can’t  stand  the  laff  when  it’s  on 
me,  either.  So  I  guessed  I  best  cut  the  talk  and  stand 
for  a  grouch.  Well,  it’s  not  a  fairy  tale  now.  No.  Not  by 
a  long  piece.  An’  the  laff — well,  it’s  not  on  me  anyway.” 

Chilcoot  had  sat  up.  His  sturdy  legs  were  drawn  up 
and  tucked  under  him  in  the  fashion  supposed  to  belong 
to  the  tailor.  He  was  gazing  round  on  his  friend  with  a 
look  of  expectancy.  Somehow  his  whole  expression  had 
undergone  a  swift  change.  He  had  clearly  forgotten  his 


DAYS  OF  PROMISE 


263 


resentment.  He  was  always  quick  to  react.  His  nature 
was  easy  where  Wilder  was  concerned.  Now  a  twinge 
of  compunction  at  his  own  hastiness  set  him  eager  to 
make  amends. 

“You  don’t  need  to  say  a  thing,  Bill.  If  it  suits  you  to 
keep  your  face  shut  it  goes  with  me  all  the  time.” 

But  Wilder  shook  his  head.  He  grinned  and  raised  a 
hand  and  thrust  back  his  cap. 

“I  need  to  say  a  whole  heap.  Maybe  when  I’m  through 
you’ll  wish  I  hadn’t.  Say.”  He  paused  thoughtfully. 
Then  his  eyes  lit  and  gazed  straight  into  the  eyes  of  the 
older  man.  “I  best  tell  you  the  thing  that  lies  back  of 
everything  first.  You’ll  feel  like  laffing,  maybe.  But  I 
don’t  care  a  curse.  You  got  to  know,  an’  I’m  crazy  to 
tell  you.  You  see,  you’ve  been  pardner  an’  friend  to  me 
ever  since  the  gold  bug  got  into  my  liver.  I’m  nigh 
crazy  for  a  pair  of  dandy  blue  eyes,  just  as  blue  as — as  a 
summer  sky  in  California,  and  a  golden  halo  of  hair  like 
— like  an  angel’s.  Yes,  an’  for  a  kit  of  buckskin,  all 
beaded  an’  fine  sewn  like  an  Indian’s.  I  surely  am  crazy 
for  it— all.” 

The  man  had  removed  his  pipe,  and  his  hands  had 
made  a  gesture  of  emphasis  that  told  his  companion  far 
more  than  his  words. 

Chilcoot’s  eyes  were  grinning,  but  there  was  no  derision 
in  them.  They  were  shining  with  a  depth  of  interest 
that  changed  his  whole  expression. 

“Snakes,  man!”  he  cried.  “You’ve  fallen  fer  that 
gal  ?  That  Kid  that  floated  us  up  the  river  goin’  north  ? 
An’  who  you’ve  located  again  right  now  over  at  that  darn 
queer  outfit  of  a  Reindeer  farm?  Say!” 

Wilder  nodded  and  returned  his  pipe  to  his  mouth. 

“I  surely  have,  old  friend,”  he  said,  with  a  restraint 
that  the  look  in  his  eyes  denied.  “I’ve  fallen  fer  that — - 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


264 

Kid.  That  Kid  whose  name  is  Felice  Le  Gros.  She’s 
just  been  a  dream  picture  to  me  ever  since  I  saw  her 
handling  that  queer  skin  kyak  of  hers  on  the  river,  look¬ 
ing  like  some  fairy  Injun  gal  such  as  maybe  you  used  to 
read  about  when  story  books  were  filled  with  wholesome 
fairy  tales  that  set  you  crazy  for  the  darn  old  wilderness. 
Fve  fallen  for  her  so  I  don’t  even  want  to  pick  myself  up. 
I  want  her  bad.  She’s  got  to  be  my  wife,  or  this  darn  life 
don’t  mean  a  thing  to  me  ever  again.  Life?  Gee!  I 
can’t  see  a  day  of  it  worth  a  regret  on  a  deathbed  if  I 
can’t  make  that  Kid  feel  the  way  I  do.” 

Chilcoot’s  ill  mood  was  entirely  swept  away.  Hard  old 
citizen  as  he  was,  saturated  as  he  was  with  the  iron  of  his 
early  days  of  struggle  to  loot  the  earth,  a  surge  of  de¬ 
lighted  interest  thrilled  him  to  the  depths  of  his  rough 
soul.  No  mother  listening  to  the  first  love-story  of  an 
only  daughter  could  have  been  moved  more  deeply.  His 
years  were  nearly  twice  those  of  the  other,  but  it  made  no 
difference,  unless  it  were  to  add  to  the  feeling  of  the 
moment. 

“Does  she  know  about  it?”  he  demanded.  “Does — 
Say,  her  name’s — she’s  daughter  to  Marty  Le  Gros? 
She’s  the  'gal-child,  white,’  Raymes  told  us  of?  Say, 
Bill,  I’m  crazy  for  the  rest.  Best  get  right  in.  I  just 
don’t  know  a  thing.  An’  I  seem  to  know  less  than  ever 
I  did  before  you  began.  But  you’ve  found  a  gal  to  share 
life  with  you.  And  I’m  just  so  glad  I  can’t  rightly  say. 
Get  right  on  with  the  yarn  an’  I  won’t  butt  in.  I’m  all 
out  to  pass  you  any  old  hand  you’re  needing.” 

“That’s  how  I  figgered,  Chilcoot,  knowing  you,”  Wil¬ 
der  said  in  his  earnest  fashion.  “That’s  why  I  told  you 
this  thing  first.  Now  just  sit  around  and  I’ll  tell  you  the 
stuff  that  looked  like  a  fairy  tale  and  kept  my  mouth 
shut.” 


DAYS  OF  PROMISE 


265 


Wilder  began  his  story  at  once  and  talked  on  without 
any  sort  of  interruption  from  his  companion.  Lost  in 
the  dark  heart  of  the  ravine,  overshadowed  by  a  wintry 
sky  and  the  rugged,  barren,  encompassing  walls  that 
rose  up  and  shut  out  so  much  of  the  grey  northern  day¬ 
light,  he  told  the  story  as  he  had  learned  it,  and  pieced 
together,  of  the  tragedy  of  the  apparently  deserted  habita¬ 
tion  which  he  knew  to  be  the  home  and  secret  hiding-place 
of  the  one-time  leader  of  the  fierce  Euralian  horde.  He 
told  of  the  events  of  his  search  and  vigil  in  the  house  from 
the  time  of  his  discovery  of  the  blinded  Japanese,  Count 
Hela,  and  his  panic-stricken  wife,  to  the  final  moment 
when  the  woman  had  pursued  him  with  her  story,  and 
sought  to  bribe  him  with  the  precious  map  stolen  from 
the  murdered  missionary.  He  told  it  all  in  close  detail, 
dwelling  upon  the  mention  of  the  dreaded  Usak’s  name  by 
the  terror-stricken  woman,  that  the  other  might  follow 
out  all  his  subsequent  reasoning  and  re-construction  of 
the  story  of  Le  Gros  and  his  orphaned  daughter.  He 
told  it  right  down  to  the  story  of  his  visit  to  the  Rein¬ 
deer  Farm,  on  their  arrival  on  the  Caribou,  which  fur¬ 
nished  him  with  the  final  corroboration. 

“There  it  is,  old  friend,”  he  said  in  conclusion.  “Usak, 
the  husband  of  the  murdered  Pri-loo,  never  gave  those 
folk  the  chance  to  use  that  map.  He  deliberately  blinded 
the  man  and  killed  his  son.  And  when  I  got  wise  from 
the  map  that  this  precious  strike  was  on  Caribou  I  got  my 
big  notion.  I  jumped  for  it  right  away  and  jumped 
right.  This  wonderful — Kid — with  a  face  like —  Say, 
I  guessed  right  away  at  the  start  she  was  the  ‘girl-child, 
white’  I  was  chasing  up,  and  the  rightful  heir  to  her 
murdered  father’s  ‘strike.’  It  was  that  closed  up  my 
mouth.  I  just  couldn’t  say  a  word.  We — you  boys — 
the  whole  outfit  were  on  a  gold  trail  looking  to  share  in 


266 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


the  stuff.  And  I  knew  that  when  it  was  located,  by  every 
sort  of  moral  right  an’  justice,  it  would  belong  to  the 
Kid.  And  anyway  she’d  be  entitled,  an’  all  her  folks,  to 
the  first  rake  over  of  the  claims.  Ther’  could  be  nothing 
for  you  boys  till  her  interest  was  safeguarded.  See? 
She’s  the  daughter  of  Marty  Le  Gros,  and  was  raised  by 
that  murdering  Indian,  Usak,  who  came  right  along  the 
other  night  and  threatened  to  clear  us  out  of  Caribou  at 
the  muzzle  of  a  rifle  that  looked  to  have  served  an  interior 
decoration  for  old  Noah’s  Ark.  Can  you  beat  it?” 

Chilcoot  shook  his  head  helplessly.  The  story  had 
lost  nothing  from  his  companion’s  telling.  He  was  well- 
nigh  staggered  at  the  hideous  completeness  of  it  all,  and 
certainly  amazed.  His  pipe  had  been  forgotten  until  that 
moment,  and  he  knocked  the  charred  remains  of  tobacco 
out  of  it  on  a  large  flint  lying  nearby. 

Wilder  re-lit  his  pipe  and  smiled  contentedly. 

“Do  you  get  what  I  reckon  to  do,  Chilcoot?”  he  asked. 

But  the  older  man  made  no  effort.  He  shrugged  his 
broad  shoulders. 

“I’d  say  it  ’ud  be  the  sort  of  crazy  stunt  most  folks 
wouldn’t  reckon  to  find  come  out  of  the  mighty  clear 
head  they  guess  stands  on  the  shoulders  of  Bill  Wilder.” 

His  words  were  accompanied  by  a  deep-throated 
chuckle. 

“Maybe  that’s  so,  boy,”  Wilder  retorted  without 
umbrage.  “But  anyway,  it’s  a  stunt  to  suit  my  notion  of 
honesty,  and — yours.  See?  I  sent  Mike  an’  the  bunch 
off  to  get  ’em  right  out  of  the  way  while  we  came  along 
here.  That’s  all  right.  Our  work’s  just  beginning.  You 
an’  me  we’re  going  to  get  right  to  it  and  test  out  this 
queer  old  canyon.  We  got  the  time  before  winter,  if  the 
thing’s  what  I  guess  it  is.  When  we’ve  located  the 
stuff  ther’s  got  to  be  the  pick  of  the  claims  for  that  gal. 


DAYS  OF  PROMISE 


267 


An’  one  each  for  Mrs.  McLeod,  at  the  farm,  and  her 
kids.  Then  we’ll  pass  right  down  to  Placer  and  make 
the  titles  good  with  the  Commissioner.  After  that — 
next  Spring — we’ll  turn  the  bunch  loose  on  the  ground, 
and  they  can  grab  how  they  please.  How’s  that?  Does 
it  go?  Yes,  sure  it  does.  I  know  you.  You  and  me, 
we  can  afford  to  cut  right  out  and  play  the  game  to  help 
these  others  along.  That’s  my  crazy  notion.  Well?” 

Chilcoot  rose  to  his  feet.  There  was  no  doubt  of  his 
agreement.  An  almost  child-like  delight  was  stirring 
his  rugged  heart. 

“Surely,  Bill,”  he  said  simply.  “It’s  good  for  me. 
But  that  murdering  Indian.  Does  he  come  in?” 

Wilder’s  eyes  suddenly  sobered.  He,  too,  scrambled 
to  his  feet.  And  for  a  moment  he  stood  gazing  thought¬ 
fully  down  the  shadowed  ravine. 

“He  worries  me  some,”  he  admitted  at  last.  “Ther’s 
things  mighty  good  in  him,  I  guess.  Ther’  must  be. 
He  raised  the  Kid.  But  ther’s  things  mighty  bad  I 
haven’t  told  you  about.”  Then  he  shrugged.  “It  don’t 
matter  anyway.  No,  he  don’t  stand  in.  Maybe  things’ll 
happen.  We’ll  just  have  to  wait.  You  never  can  tell 
with  a  darn  neche.” 

A  vision  of  the  terrified  Japanese  woman  had  risen  up 
before  his  mind’s  eye.  He  remembered  the  nightmare 
she  was  enduring  at  the  thought  of  Usak’s  promised 
return.  Suddenly  he  flung  out  his  hands  dismissing  the 
vision. 

“It’s  all  queer,  Chilcoot,”  he  cried.  “But  we  must  see 
it  through.  It’s  strange.  To  think  I’ve  had  to  beat 
about  this  darn  old  North  to  find  the  thing — the  only 
thing  to  make  life  worth  while.  I  could  laff,  only  I  don’t 
feel  like  laffing.  Say,  boy,  you  just  don’t  know  how  I 
want  that — that  Kid.” 


CHAPTER  XI 


CHILDREN  OF  THE  NORTH 

Each  day  the  sun’s  brief  reign  was  growing  less.  There 
was  perhaps  six  hours  of  daylight,  fiercely  bright  when 
the  snow  clouds  permitted,  but  otherwise  grey  and  cold, 
and  without  beneficence.  To  the  human  mind  day  was 
no  longer  a  thing  of  joy,  but  only  a  respite  in  which  to 
complete  those  labours  essential  to  existence  in  the  north¬ 
ern  wilderness  before  the  long  twilight  of  night  finally 
closed  down  upon  the  world. 

At  the  farm  on  the  Caribou  preparations  for  the  winter 
were  already  in  full  swing.  Already  the  reindeer  herd 
had  been  passed  up  to  the  shelter  of  the  hills  to  roam  well- 
nigh  free  through  the  dark  aisles  of  the  woodland  bluffs 
which  lined  the  deeper  valleys  of  the  great  divide,  out  of 
the  heart  of  which  the  waters  of  the  Caribou  sprang. 
The  labour  of  banking  the  outer  walls  of  the  homestead 
with  soil  for  greater  security  against  the  cold  had  been 
completed.  For  the  ground  was  already  hardening  under 
the  sharp  night  frosts,  and  almost  any  day  now  might 
see  the  first  flurry  of  snow.  Daily  the  hauling  of  fuel 
went  on  from  the  distant  forest  bluff  which  sheltered  the 
ruins  of  the  missionary’s  home  where  the  Kid  had  first 
seen  the  light  of  the  northern  day.  And  this  work  was 
undertaken  by  the  boys,  and  the  half-breed  Eskimos, 
whose  work  amongst  the  deer  herd  had  ceased  with  its 
departure  to  the  hills  in  search  of  winter  keep. 

268 


CHILDREN  OF  THE  NORTH 


269 


Life  just  now  was  a  sheer  routine.  A  routine  which 
demanded  faithful  observance.  The  least  neglect  might 
well  spell  disaster  for  those  who  knew  the  narrowness  of 
the  margin  in  human  victory  over  the  merciless  winter 
season.  But  these  northern  people  knew  the  routine  of 
it  by  heart,  and  nothing  would  be  neglected,  nothing 
forgotten.  The  haulage  of  fuel  would  go  on  far  into 
the  winter,  and  when  the  world  froze  up  and  the  white 
pall  was  spread  over  its  dead  body  only  the  method  of 
its  transport  would  be  changed. 

But  for  all  the  drear  of  outlook  in  the  coming  season 
life  was  apparently  no  less  the  care-free  thing  which  the 
youth  of  the  farm  so  surely  made  it  appear.  Childish 
laughter  was  proof  against  a  falling  sun.  It  was  proof 
against  the  anxious  labour  of  it  all,  just  as  it  was  proof 
against  the  contemplation  of  unending  darkness.  It  was 
almost  as  though  the  change  had  its  appeal.  Was  not 
the  twilight  of  winter  something  to  inspire  imagination? 
Was  not  the  fierce  blizzard,  when  the  world  was  com¬ 
pletely  blinded  for  days  on  end,  something  to  confront 
and  defy  with  all  the  hardy  spirit  of  youth?  Was  not 
the  brilliant  aurora  something  about  which  to  weave 
romantic  dreams  as  fantastic  as  was  the  great  crescent  of 
dancing  light  itself?  And  the  ghostly  northern  lights, 
and  the  brilliant  night-lit  heavens,  with  their  moon,  and 
reflected  moons,  were  not  these  matters  in  which  the 
budding  human  mind  could  find  a  wealth  of  inspiration 
for  the  riot  of  imagination? 

Yes,  the  long  night  of  winter  was  not  without  its 
appeal  to  the  young  life  on  the  Caribou  River.  Only  was 
it  for  those  elders,  who  knew  its  desperateness,  who  had 
long  since  learned  the  littleness  of  human  life  in  the 
monstrous  battle  of  the  elements,  a  season  of  grave 
anxiety  that  left  them  indifferent  to  the  irresponsible 


270  THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 

imaginings  and  dreamings  of  those  at  the  threshold  of 
life. 

For  Mary  Justicia  down  to  the  youthful  Jane  Con¬ 
stance,  with  her  curling  brown  hair  and  her  velvet  dark 
eyes,  the  coming  of  winter  was  a  season  of  exciting- 
interest.  And  this  year  even  more  so  than  usual.  This 
year  there  was  a  curious  hopeful  change  in  their  lives. 
The  measure  of  it,  perhaps,  they  failed  to  fully  under¬ 
stand.  But  the  effect  was  there,  and  they  felt  its  influence. 
They  one  and  all  knew  that  Usak  had  returned  with  a 
really  good  trade.  Usak  was  the  genius  of  their  lives, 
and  this  year  he  had  waved  his  magic  wand  to  some 
purpose.  They  had  heard  whispers  amongst  their  elders 
of  a  good  time  coming.  They  had  heard  the  Kid  and 
their  mother  discussing  colours  and  materials  for  suitings. 
They  had  heard  talks  of  dollars  in  thousands.  And 
visions  of  canned  delicacies,  of  nice,  fat,  sticky  syrup, 
and  succulent  preserves,  had  crept  into  their  yearning 
minds. 

But  that  was  not  all.  There  was  a  wondrous  change 

o 

in  the  hero  of  their  youthful  worship.  The  Kid’s  smile 
was  rarely  shadowed  as  she  ordered  their  lives.  A  soft 
delight  looked  out  of  her  pretty  eyes  which  shone  with 
happy  contentment  whatever  their  childish  aggravations. 
Then  the  mother  of  them  all.  Infrequent  and  gentle  as 
were  her  scoldings  generally,  just  now  she  seemed  to 
have  utterly  forgotten  her  dispensing  of  them.  The 
wash  tub  claimed  her,  her  needle  claimed  her,  her  cooking 
claimed  her,  leaving  her  happily  oblivious  to  their  many 
and  frequent  shortcomings. 

Then  there  were  the  gold  seekers  on  the  river.  The 
laughing,  red-headed  Irishman,  who  had  vanished  up  the 
river  with  the  rivermen  and  those  poorer  whites  in  whom 
they  were  less  interested.  But  the  two  others  visited  the 


CHILDREN  OF  THE  NORTH 


271 

homestead  pretty  regularly,  and  laughed,  and  talked,  and 
did  their  best  to  make  life  one  long  joy  for  them. 

Especially  was  this  the  case  with  the  man  Bill  Wilder. 
Bill  Wilder  had  caught  the  fancy  of  all,  from  their  mother 
down  to  the  merry  Janey,  whose  table  manners  were  a 
source  of  never-ending  anxiety  to  Hesther.  The  children 
loved  him  as  children  will  so  often  love  a  big  man  who 
is  never  reluctant  to  encourage  their  games.  Perse  clung 
to  him  at  every  opportunity.  Was  he  not  a  gold  man,  and 
was  not  his  coming  to  Caribou  a  justification  of  his  own 
boyish  dreams  of  gold?  Clarence  found  in  him  a  kindred 
spirit  of  the  trail.  And  Alg.  sought  his  advice  on  his 
domestic  labours  on  any  and  every  excuse.  But  Gladys 
Anne  and  Janey  were  his  favourites — next  to  the  smiling 
Kid. 

And  the  mother  looked  on,  watchful  and  wisely  alert. 
Her  busy  mind  was  full  of  speculation  and  contentment. 
She  was  thinking  how  she  and  her  brood  would  fare 
should  these  men  ultimately  find  the  gold  they  sought. 
She  refused  to  build  on  the  notion.  It  was  not  her  way. 
And  just  now,  as  a  result  of  Usak’s  return,  she  felt  that 
ways  and  means  were  less  pressing,  and  so,  in  her  easy 
philosophy,  that  aspect  of  the  position  was  permitted  to 
drift  into  the  background. 

The  Kid  was  her  main  thought  just  now.  Her 
woman’s  wisdom  was  sufficient  for  her  to  grasp  the  real 
meaning  of  Wilder’s  frequent  attendance  at  the  farm.  It 
was  plainly  written  in  his  manner.  It  was  still  more 
plainly  written  in  the  manner  of  the  girl  in  his  absence. 
She  had  long  since  dragged  the  full  story  of  their  original 
meeting  at  the  Hekor  rapids  from  the  diffident  and  almost 
reluctant  girl.  She  had  laughingly  chidden  her  for  her 
long  reticence.  She  had  even  admonished  her  for  the 
invitation  she  had  flung  at  him,  a  gold  man  stranger. 


272 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


But  under  it  all,  away  back  in  her  simple  woman's  mind 
she  nursed  the  romance  of  it  all,  and  hoped  and  hoped, 
while  yet  she  gravely  feared  for  the  orphan  she  had 
mothered. 

The  brief  days  flew  rapidly  by.  Almost  every  night  the 
tall  figure  of  Wilder  came  up  from  the  river  bearing 
something  for  their  supper,  which  he  was  scrupulously 
determined  to  share.  The  meal  was  partaken  of  by  the 
yellow  light  of  an  oil  lamp.  Big  Bill,  as  the  children 
loved  to  call  him,  was  for  a  brief  while  a  part  of  the 
family,  and  sat  around  in  the  warm  kitchen,  smoking  and 
laughing,  and  submitting  to  the  ready  banter  which  his 
search  for  gold  on  the  Caribou  inspired.  Then  later  he 
strode  off  to  his  canoe  lying  drawn  up  on  the  river  bank, 
and,  not  infrequently,  he  was  accompanied  by  some  of 
the  elder  children,  and  on  occasions  by  the  Kid,  herself, 
alone. 

Of  all  the  folk  at  the  homestead  Usak  took  no  delight 
in  these  visits.  He  definitely  resented  them.  But  he  said 
no  word,  and  simply  refrained  from  taking  any  part  in 
the  welcome  extended  to  the  intruding  whiteman.  There 
was  never  a  protest  forthcoming.  His  protest  had  been 
made  on  the  occasion  he  had  stirred  the  Kid  to  wrath, 
and  he  had  no  desire  to  experience  another  such  encounter. 
So  he  remained  at  his  labours  in  his  own  quarters,  watch¬ 
ful,  alert,  determined.  And  he  made  his  preparations  for 
the  winter  trail  which  was  to  yield  something  approaching 
affluence  for  those  he  served. 

It  was  at  the  end  of  his  first  week  on  the  river  that 
Bill’s  voice  hailed  the  homestead  as  he  came  up  from  the 
landing,  bearing  a  string  of  a  dozen  or  more  speckled 
mountain  trout.  The  night  was  dark  with  heavy  cloud, 
but  the  younger  children  raced  out  of  the  house  to  meet 
him  at  his  summons. 


CHILDREN  OF  THE  NORTH 


27  3 

A  few  moments  later  Perse  dashed  into  his  mother’s 
presence  flourishing  the  shining  fish  at  her. 

“It’s  a  dandy  bunch,  Mum,”  he  cried,  sprawling  them 
on  the  table.  “They’re  for  supper.  Big  Bill’s  cornin’ 
right  along  up  with  Janey  an’  Gladys  Anne.” 

He  turned  to  the  Kid  who  was  gazing  down  at  the  fish 
without  any  display  of  interest.  The  boy’s  grinning  eyes 
were  full  of  mischief.  He  came  round  to  her  side  and 
looked  into  her  unsmiling  eyes. 

“Guess  you  didn’t  get  it,  Kid,”  he  said.  “Big  Bill’s 
cornin’  right  along  up.” 

Then  he  jumped  and  ran  for  the  door  under  a  swift 
cuff  that  came  from  his  mother’s  work-worn  hand. 

“Be  right  off  you  imp  o’  perdition,”  she  cried.  “The 
Kid  ain’t  worried  whose  cornin’  to  this  house.  Ef  I  get 
that  talk  agin  ther’s  a  rawhide  waitin’  on  you.” 

Then  she  moved  to  the  girl’s  side.  She  reached  up  and 
laid  a  sympathetic  hand  on  her  slim  shoulder. 

“Say,  Kid,”  she  said,  with  a  gentle  smile.  “Ther’s 
scarce  a  night  he  don’t  come  along.”  She  glanced  hastily 
round  the  room  to  be  sure  they  were  alone.  “Are  you 
kind  o’  glad?”  she  ventured  anxiously.  “Does  it  make 
you  feel  sort  o’ — glad?” 

The  girl  smiled  down  into  the  soft  brown  eyes.  She 
nodded. 

“Yes,  Mum,  I’m  just  glad  all  through.”  She  paused. 
“But  I  was  kind  of  thinking.  It  was  fixed  Clarence  was 
to  make  the  trail  to  Placer  with  Usak.  Well,  Usak  don’t 
reckon  it’s  safe  to  trust  to  him — a  boy.  He  figgers  I  best 

g°- 

The  mother  nodded.  Then  she  drew  a  deep  breath. 

“He’s  queer,”  she  said.  “I  reckon  he  hates  Big  Bill 
Wilder.” 

The  Kid  laughed,  but  it  was  without  mirth. 


18 


274  THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 

“He  surely  does,  Mum,”  she  said  with  bitter  emphasis. 
•  «•••*  ** 

The  man  was  standing  just  inside  the  doorway.  The 
pleasant  warmth  was  welcome  enough  in  contrast  to  the 
sharp  night  air  outside.  But  he  made  no  attempt  to 
remove  the  seal  parka  which  had  replaced  the  thick 
peajacket  he  usually  wore. 

“No,”  he  said  with  a  laugh,  in  response  to  the  mother’s 
urging  to  “sit  around”  while  she  prepared  the  supper. 
“Guess  I’m  not  eating  with  you  dear  folk  to-night.”  His 
gaze  sought  the  shyly  smiling  eyes  of  the  Kid.  “There 
aren’t  enough  of  those  trout  to  make  a  right  feed  for  the 
bunch.  And,  anyway,  Chilcoot  and  I  are  making  a  party 
to  ourselves.” 

He  turned  to  the  mother  who  was  at  the  stove,  about 
to  shake  down  the  ashes  and  fire-up  for  the  preparation  of 
the  evening  meal. 

“We’d  have  fancied  askin’  you  all,  the  whole  bunch, 
to  come  right  along  up  and  eat  with  us.  But  I  guess  the 
kiddies  need  to  make  their  blankets  early,  and  anyway 
our  camp  fixings  aren’t  unlimited.  So  we  reckoned  to 
ask  you,  mam,  and  the  Kid,  here,  and  say  one  of  the  boys. 
That  ’ud  leave  Mary  and  the  other  standing  guard  over 
the  bunch  of  mischief  you  leave  behind  to  see  they  don’t 
choke  themselves.  And  there’s  always  the  great  Usak 
to  see  no  harm  comes  to  them.  Do  you  feel  like  making 
the  trip?  Chilcoot’s  waiting  around  at  the  landing,  and 
ther's  two  canoes  to  take  us  up.” 

“Say,  if  that  ain’t  real  mean.” 

It  was  Perse,  who  had  flung  himself  into  the  chair 
usually  at  the  disposal  of  Big  Bill  on  his  evening  visits. 
His  small  body  was  lost  in  the  ample  rawhide  seat. 

“I  call  that  dirt  mean,”  he  went  on,  in  an  aggrieved 
treble.  “What  you  makin’  the  party  for,  Bill?  Ha’ 


CHILDREN  OF  THE  NORTH 


275 


you  made  the  big  ‘strike’?”  Then  his  intelligent  grey 
eyes  turned  shrewdly  on  the  Kid.  “Guess  I  know  though. 
I’ll—” 

For  a  second  time  he  hastily  vacated  the  room.  The 
ready  hand  of  the  mother,  quick  as  it  was,  had  no  time 
to  descend  before  he  had  jumped  clear. 

“Yes,”  she  cried  after  him,  “you  beat  it,  and  send 
Clarence  along  right  at  once.  He’s  working  around  with 
Usak  an’  Alg.  in  the  fur  store.  You  ken  send  Mary 
Justicia  right  along,  too.” 

Then  she  turned  to  the  smiling  man  who  found  keen 
amusement  in  the  outrageous  Perse. 

“He’s  an  imp,  that’s  what  he  is,”  she  declared,  while 
the  Kid  moved  quickly  to  the  stove  and  shook  it  down. 
“But  that’s  real  kind  of  you,  Bill.  I’d  like  fine  to  come 
along  and  eat  with  you,  but  I  guess  these  ‘God’s  Blessings’ 
o’  mine  ’ud  run  wild  without  me.  Would  you  fancy 
takin’  Mary  Justicia  along,  and  that  bright  little  feller, 
Perse,  an’  Clarence,  an’  the  Kid?  I’ll  pass  Perse  a  word 
and  set  him  behavin’  right.  He’ll  make  one  more  bit  for 
you  to  feed  than  you  reckon,  but  I  don’t  guess  that’ll 
worry  your  outfit.  He  can  take  his  own  platter  an* 
pannikin.  He’d  be  mighty  grieved  not  to  go.  You  see, 
he  thinks  Big  Bill  the  greatest  proposition  north  o’  ‘sixty’ 
— seeing  he  guesses  ther’s  gold  on  Caribou.” 

The  woman’s  eyes  twinkled  with  humour  as  she  con¬ 
cluded  with  the  now  time-honoured  jest  at  her  visitor’s 
expense. 

Bill  nodded  good-humouredly,  and  his  eyes  sought  the 
face  of  the  girl  standing  in  the  background  beside  the 
stove. 

“Sure,”  he  said.  “I’ll  be  real  glad  for  the  boy  to  come 
along.”  He  laughed.  “Ther’  won’t  be  anything  fancy 
for  him  t’eat.  It’s  just  duck,  an’  some  trout,  an9  some 


276 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


canned  truck.  But  I’d  sure  be  glad.  Wot  you  say, 
Kid?”  he  asked,  his  tone  not  without  a  shade  of  con¬ 
cern.  “Will  you  come  along  up  with  us?  Bd  been 
mighty  thankful  for  your  Mum  to  share  in,  but  I  sort 
of  knew  beforehand  the  social  whirl  on  Caribou  hadn’t 
a  claim  on  her  to  compare  with  her  ‘  God’s  Blessings.’ 
Will  you  come?  Chilcoot  reckons  he’s  all  sorts  of  a 
feller  at  entertaining  women  folk  to  supper.  An’  maybe 
he’ll  start  in  to  yarn  of  the  gold  trail,  an’  we’ll  be  hard 
set  to  stop  him.  Ther’s  an  elegant  moon  for  the  trip. 
And  you’ll  all  be  right  back  before  she  sets.” 

His  manner  was  light  but  behind  it  was  real  earnest¬ 
ness,  and  a  shade  of  anxiety.  Hesther,  all  the  mother 
in  her  alert,  was  swift  to  detect  it.  She  smiled 
encouragingly  round  on  the  girl. 

The  Kid  nodded.  Her  gaze  was  averted  with  just  a 
shadow  of  shyness. 

“I’d  just  love  the  trip,”  she  declared  quickly.  Then  her 
shyness  passed  and  her  sweet  blue  eyes  laughed  happily 
into  the  man’s  face.  “What  is  it?  Have  you  found  Perse’s 
color?  Ther’s  sure  something  back  of  this,”  she  went  on 
in  delighted  enjoyment,  as  she  watched  the  man’s  ex¬ 
pressive  face  as  he  strove  for  unconcern.  She  shook  her 
head.  “No,”  she  declared.  “Guess  it’s  not  Perse’s  gold. 
I  guess  you  reckon  Mum’s  cooking  isn’t  the  thing  she 
believes,  and  you’re  goin’  to  show  us  the  sort  of  swell 
thing  Chilcoot  and  you  make  of  it.  My!  I’m  dying  to 
see  how  two  great  men  live  on  the  trail.  Sure  I’ll  come, 
an’  so  will  Mary,  an’  Clarence,  an’  Perse.  Do  we  need 
to  fix  ourselves  for  the  party?  Perse  most  always  needs 
fixing,  anyway.” 

There  was  a  laugh  in  every  word  the  girl  spoke,  and 
to  the  man  it  was  a  delight  to  listen  to  her,  and  to  watch 
the  play  of  her  expressive  face. 


CHILDREN  OF  THE  NORTH 


277 


To  the  mother  eyes  there  was  that  in  the  girl’s  manner 
which  wholly  escaped  the  man.  She  knew  the  Kid  was 
striving  with  everything  in  her  power  to  conceal  the 
feelings  Wilder  had  so  deeply  stirred  in  her.  She  sighed 
quietly,  and  hoped  and  prayed  that  all  might  be  for 
the  best  happiness  of  the  girl  she  had  come  to  lean  on  so 
surely  in  the  battle  they  fought  together  for  existence. 
She  only  had  her  instinct  to  guide  her.  She  had  no  real 
worldly  wisdom.  She  liked  the  steady,  honest  gaze  of 
Bill’s  eyes.  So  she  yielded  to  that  best  philosophy  in  the 
world,  which,  in  sober  moments,  she  was  wont  to  hurl  at 
her  inquiring  offspring:  “Act  right,  an’  eat  good,  an' 
don’t  worry  to  get  after  Fate  with  a  club.” 

Bill  laughed.  He  was  in  the  mood  to  laugh. 

“No,”  he  said.  “Come  right  along,  just  as  you’re 
fixed.  Chilcoot  don’t  reckon  to  receive  you  in  swallow¬ 
tails.  Maybe  he’s  greased  his  roof  with  seal  oil  to  make 
it  shine  some.  I  can’t  say.  Ah,  here’s  Clarence,  an’ 
Mary,  and  Master  Perse.  Now  beat  it  all  of  you  and 
get  right  into  parkas.  Your  Mum  figgers  to  be  rid  of 
you  awhile  so  you’re  coming  right  along  to  eat  with  me. 
Guess  Chilcoot’ll  be  nigh  frozen  to  death  waiting  down 
at  the  river.” 


The  leanto  was  shadowed.  The  single  oil  lamp  cast 
its  feeble  rays  on  the  general  litter.  And  the  scene  was 
characteristic  of  the  Indian  whose  methods  obtained  so 
largely  in  the  running  of  the  farm. 

Usak  laboured  silently,  grimly  amongst  the  shadows. 
His  movements  were  in  that  quiet  fashion  which  the 
padding  of  moccasined  feet  on  an  earthen  floor  never 
fails  to  intensify.  He  was  quite  alone  now,  for  the  last 
of  his  helpers  had  departed  at  the  urgent  summons  of  the 


278  THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 

boy,  Perse,  who  had  bidden  them  to  the  presence  of  their 
visitor. 

The  man’s  dusky  face  was  hard-set  as  he  moved  about 
amongst  his  chattels.  His  black  eyes  were  narrowed  and 
pre-occupied.  There  were  moments  when  he  paused  from 
his  labours  and  stood  listening.  It  was  as  though  he 
expected  some  jarring  sound  which  he  was  ready  to 
resent  and  hate  with  all  the  strength  of  his  heart. 

It  was  at  such  moments  that  his  gaze  seemed  inevitably 
to  be  drawn  to  the  long,  old  rifle  leaning  against  the  wall 
just  within  the  wide  doorway.  It  was  his  life-long 
friend.  It  was  his  oldest  associate  in  his  lighter  as  well 
as  his  darker  moods.  And  just  now  his  mood  left  him 
yearning  for  the  feel  of  its  ancient  trigger  under  a 
mercilessly  compressing  forefinger. 

The  man  was  sorting  and  classifying  his  summer  trade, 
and  preparing  it  for  transport.  Pelts  lay  scattered  about, 
and  the  smell  of  pepper,  and  other  preservatives,  was  in 
the  air.  The  long  sled  was  set  on  its  runners,  repaired, 
and  ready  to  face  the  coming  winter  trail  to  Placer.  And 
about  it,  littered  in  almost  hopeless  confusion,  was  an  ill 
assortment  of  camp  outfit  which  needed  cleansing  and 
repair.  The  whole  scene  was  of  the  tentative  preparations 
of  the  trail  man.  There  might  be  many  weeks  before  the 
snow  and  freeze-up  would  make  the  journey  possible. 
But  Usak  was  possessed  of  that  restless  spirit  which 
refuses  to  submit  to  idleness,  and  whose  sense  of  responsi¬ 
bility  drove  him  at  all  times. 

As  the  moments  passed  his  pauses  from  the  work  of 
sorting  and  bestowing  became  prolonged.  Once  he  passed 
to  the  doorway  and  stood  out  in  the  chill  night  air,  and 
his  sense  of  hearing  was  clearly  directed  to  windward 
where  the  night  breeze  came  directly  across  the  white- 
folk’s  portion  of  the  rambling  habitation.  And  on  its 


CHILDREN  OF  THE  NORTH 


279 


breath  sounds  of  laughter  and  happy  voices  came  to  him. 
And  amongst  them  he  was  clearly  able  to  distinguish  the 
strong,  deep  tones  of  the  big  man  whose  presence  he  so 
deeply  resented  on  the  river. 

He  stood  thus  for  some  moments.  Then  a  sharp 
sound  escaped  his  set  lips  and  he  passed  again  within,  as 
though  in  self-defence  against  the  passions  which  the 
sound  of  that  hated  voice  had  stirred. 

His  examination  of  the  skins  had  lost  its  deliberate¬ 
ness.  He  picked  them  up  and  flung  them  aside  only  half 
scrutinized.  And,  at  last,  he  abandoned  his  task 
altogether.  He  deliberately  squatted  on  the  blackened, 
up-turned  bottom  of  an  iron  camp  kettle,  and  sat  staring 
out  into  the  dark  night  in  the  direction  in  which  he  knew 
lay  the  landing  at  the  river  bank. 

There  was  no  longer  any  attempt  to  hide  the  desperate¬ 
ness  of  his  mood.  It  was  in  every  line  of  his  dusky 
features ;  it  was  in  the  coming  and  going  of  his  turbulent 
breathing;  it  was  in  the  smouldering  fire  that  shone  in 
his  black  eyes.  The  native  savage  was  definitely  upper¬ 
most.  And  insane  passion  was  driving. 

He  remained,  statue-like,  on  his  improvised  seat,  and 
every  sound  that  reached  him  from  the  house  was  noted 
and  interpreted.  Sometimes  the  sounds  were  so  low 
as  to  be  almost  inaudible.  Sometimes  they  were  the 
sounds  of  laughter.  Sometimes  they  smote  his  ears  with 
clear  definite  words,  for  the  night  was  very  still,  and  the 
darkness  rendered  his  animal-like  hearing  profoundly 
acute. 

Suddenly  there  came  the  opening  and  shutting  of  a 
door,  and  with  it  a  sound  of  voices  and  laughter.  He 
started.  He  rose  from  his  seat  and  moved  almost 
furtively  to  the  doorway,  and  his  hand  instinctively  fell 
upon  the  muzzle  of  his  leaning  rifle. 


28o 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


He  listened  intently.  The  voices  were  still  plain,  but 
becoming  rapidly  fainter.  Yes.  He  could  clearly  dis¬ 
tinguish  the  individual  tones  he  knew  so  well.  He  heard 
the  voice  of  the  Kid.  And  replies  came  in  the  voice  of 
the  man.  There  were  other  voices,  but  somehow,  they 
seemed  quite  apart  from  these  two. 

He  could  stand  it  no  longer.  He  turned  about  and 
extinguished  the  lamp.  Then  he  moved  over  to  his  leaning 
rifle  and  possessed  himself  of  his  old  friend.  Just  for 
one  moment  he  remained  listening.  Then,  with  a  curious 
movement  suggesting  a  shrugging  of  his  great  shoulders, 
he  passed  out  into  the  night. 


CHAPTER  XII 


YOUTH  SUPREME 

The  silence  of  the  night  was  broken  by  the  sounds  of 
youthful  voices,  and  the  gentle  splash  of  the  driving 
paddles.  There  was  laughter,  and  the  passing  backwards 
and  forwards  of  care-free,  light-hearted  banter.  Now 
and  again  came  the  deeper  note  of  strong  men’s  voices, 
but  for  the  most  part  it  was  the  shriller  treble  of  early 
youth  that  invaded  the  serene  hush  of  the  night. 

The  two  small  canoes  glided  rapidly  up  the  winding 
ribbon  of  moon-lit  waters.  They  were  driven  by  eager, 
skilful  hands,  hands  with  a  life-training  for  the  work. 
And  so  they  sped  on  in  that  smooth  fashion  which  the 
rhythmic  dip  of  the  paddle  never  fails  to  yield. 

The  Kid  was  at  the  foremost  strut  of  the  leading 
canoe  with  Big  Bill  Wilder  at  the  stern.  Their  passenger 
was  the  irrepressible  Perse,  who  lounged  amidships  on  a 
folded  blanket.  Behind  them  came  the  sturdy  form  of 
Chilcoot  Massy  guiding  the  destiny  of  the  second  vessel 
which  carried  the  youth,  Clarence,  and  the  sedate  form 
of  Mary  justicia  lifted,  for  the  moment,  out  of  the 
sense  of  her  responsibility,  which  years  of  deputising  for 
her  mother  in  the  care  of  her  brothers  and  sisters  had 
impressed  upon  her  young  mind. 

Hearts  were  light  enough  as  they  glided  through  the 
chill  night  air.  Even  Chilcoot  Massy,  so  perilously  near 
to  middle  life — and  perhaps  because  of  it — found  the 

281 


282 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


youthful  gaiety  of  his  guests  irresistible.  It  was  a 
journey  of  delighted,  frothing  spirits  rising  triumphant 
over  the  dour  brooding  of  the  cold  heart  of  the  desolate 
territory  which  had  given  them  birth. 

The  cold  moon  had  driven  forth  the  earlier  bankings  of 
snow-clouds.  It  lit  the  low-spread  earth  from  end  to  end, 
a  precious  beacon,  which,  in  the  months  to  come,  would 
be  the  reigning  heavenly  light.  The  velvet  heavens, 
studded  with  myriads  of  sparkling  jewels,  and  slashed 
again  and  again  from  end  to  end  with  the  lightning  streak 
of  shooting  stars,  were  filled  with  a  superlative  vision  of 
dancing  northern  light.  The  ghostliness  of  it  all  was 
teeming  with  a  sense  of  romance,  the  romance  which  fills 
the  dreams  of  later  life  when  the  softening  of  recollection 
has  rubbed  down  the  harshnesses  of  the  living  reality. 

The  delight  of  this  sudden  break  in  the  crudeness  of 
life  waxed  in  the  hearts  of  these  children  of  the  North. 
There  were  moments  when  silence  fell,  and  the  hush  of 
the  world  crowded  full  of  the  ominous  threat  which  lies 
at  the  back  of  everything  as  the  winter  season  approaches. 
But  all  such  moments  were  swiftly  dismissed,  as  though, 
subconsciously,  its  dampening  influence  were  felt,  and 
the  moment  was  ripe  for  sheer  rebellion.  It  was  an  ex¬ 
pression  of  the  sturdy  spirit  which  the  Northland  breeds. 

There  was  no  thought  of  lurking  danger  other  than  the 
dangers  they  were  bred  to.  How  should  there  be  ?  Was 
not  this  Caribou  River,  with  its  spring  floodings,  with  its 
summer  meanderings,  with  its  winter  casing  of  ice,  right 
down  to  the  very  heart  of  its  bed,  their  very  own  high¬ 
way  and  play  ground?  Did  not  these  folk  know  its 
every  vagary  from  the  icy  moods  of  winter,  to  its  benefi¬ 
cent  summer  delights  ?  How  then  could  it  hold  for  them 
the  least  shadow  of  terror  on  a  night  to  be  given  up  to  a 
gaiety  such  as  their  lives  rarely  enough  knew? 


YOUTH  SUPREME 


283 


Yet  the  shadow  was  there,  a  grim,  voiceless  shadow, 
soundless  as  death,  and  as  unrelenting  in  its  pursuit.  A 
kyak  moved  over  the  silvery  bosom  of  the  water  hard 
behind  the  rear-most  canoe  of  the  revellers,  driven  by  a 
brown  hand  which  made  no  sound  as  the  paddle  it 
grasped  passed  to  and  fro,  without  lifting,  through  the 
gleaming  water. 

It  was  a  light  hide  kyak,  a  mere  shell  that  scarce  had 
the  weight  of  a  thing  of  feathers.  And  the  brown  man 
driving  it  was  its  only  burden,  unless  the  long  old  rifle 
lying  thrusting  up  from  its  prow  could  be  counted.  It 
crept  through  the  shallows  dangerously  near  to  the  river 
bank,  and  every  turn  in  the  twisting  course  of  the  silver 
highway  was  utilized  as  a  screen  from  any  chance  glance 
cast  backwards  by  those  whose  course  it  was  dogging. 

The  shadowy  pursuit  went  on.  It  went  on  right  up  to 
within  a  furlong  of  the  final  landing.  For  the  mood  of 
the  brown  man  was  relentless  with  every  passion  of 
original  man  stirring.  But  he  never  shortened  by  a  yard 
the  distance  that  lay  between  him  and  his  quarry.  And 
as  the  leading  boats  drew  into  the  side,  and  the  beacon 
light  of  a  great  camp  fire  suddenly  changed  the  silvery 
tone  of  the  night,  the  pursuing  kyak  shot  into  the  bank 
far  behind,  and  the  brown  man  leapt  ashore. 


The  feast  was  over.  And  what  a  feast  it  had  been. 
There  had  been  mountain  trout,  caught  and  prepared  by 
the  grizzled  camp  cook,  whose  atmosphere  of  general 
uncleanness  emphasised  his  calling,  and  who  was  the  only 
other  living  creature  in  this  camp  on  the  gravel  flats. 
There  had  been  baked  duck,  stuffed  with  some  con¬ 
glomeration  of  chopped  “sow -belly,”  the  mixing  of 
which  was  the  cook’s  most  profound  secret.  There  had 


284 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


been  syrupy  canned  fruit,  and  canned  sweet  corn*  and 
canned  beans  with  tomato.  There  had  been  real  coffee. 
Not  the  everlasting  stewed  tea  of  the  trail.  And  then 
there  had  been  canned  milk  full  of  real  cream. 

That  was  the  feast.  But  there  had  been  much  more 
than  the  simple  joy  of  feasting.  There  had  been  laughter 
and  high  spirits,  and  a  wild  delight.  How  Perse  had  eaten 
and  talked.  How  Clarence  had  eaten  and  listened.  How 
the  Kid  had  shyly  smiled,  while  Bill  Wilder  played  his 
part  as  host,  and  looked  to  the  comfort  of  everybody. 
Then  Mary  Justicia.  There  was  no  cleaning  to  do  after. 
There  was  no  Janey  to  wipe  at  intervals.  So  she  had 
given  all  her  generous  attention  to  the  profound  yarning 
of  the  trail-bounded  Chilcoot  Massy. 

The  happy  interim  was  drawing  to  a  close.  The  camp 
fire  was  blazing  mountains  high,  a  prodigal  waste  of 
precious  fuel  at  such  a  season.  And  the  revellers  were 
squatting  around  at  a  respectful  distance,  contemplating 
it,  and  settling  to  a  calm  sobriety  in  various  conditions 
of  delighted  repletion. 

The  cold  moonlight  was  forgotten.  The  chill  of  the 
air  could  no  longer  be  felt  with  the  proximity  of  the 
fire.  The  Coming  season  gave  no  pause  for  a  moment’s 
regret.  The  only  thought  to  disturb  utter  contentment 
was  that  soon,  all  too  soon,  the  routine  of  life  would  close 
down  again,  and,  one  and  all,  it  would  envelop  them. 

Bill  was  lounging  on  a  spread  of  skin  rug,  and  the 
Kid  and  Mary  Justicia  shared  it  with  him.  A  yard  away 
Chilcoot,  who  could  never  rise  above  a  seat  on  an  up¬ 
turned  camp  pot,  was  smoking  and  addressing  Clarence, 
and  the  more  restless  Perse,  much  in  the  fashion  of  a 
mentor.  Their  talk  was  of  the  trail,  the  gold  trail,  as  it 
was  bound  to  be  with  the  veteran  guiding  it.  He  was 
narrating  stories  of  “strikes,”  rich  “strikes,”  and  wild 


YOUTH  SUPREME 


285 


rushes.  He  was  recounting  adventures  which  seemed 
literally  to  stream  out  of  his  cells  of  memory  to  the  huge 
enjoyment,  and  wonder,  and  excitement  of  his  youthful 
audience.  And  it  was  into  the  midst  of  this  calm  delight 
the  final  uplift  of  the  night’s  entertainment  came. 

The  whole  thing  was  planned  and  worked  up  to. 
Chilcoot  had  led  along  the  road  through  his  wealth  of 
narrative.  He  was  telling  the  story  of  Eighty-Mile 
Creek.  Of  the  great  bonanza  that  had  fallen  into  the 
laps  of  himself  and  Bill  Wilder.  Of  the  tremendous 
rush  after  he  and  his  partner  had  secured  their  claims. 

“It  was  us  boys  who  located  the  whole  darn  ‘strike/  ” 
he  said  appreciatively.  “Us  two.  Bill  an’  me.  Say,  they 
laffed.  How  they  laffed  when  we  beat  it  up  Eighty- 
Mile.  Gold  ?  Gee !  Ther’  wasn’t  colour  other  than  grey 
mud  anywheres  along  its  crazy  course.  That’s  how  the 
boys  said.  They  said :  ‘Beat  it  right  up  it  an’  feed  the 
timber  wolves/  They  said — But,  say,  I  jest  can’t  hand 
you  haf  the  things  them  hoodlams  chucked  at  us.  But 
Bill’s  got  a  nose  fer  gold  that  ’ud  locate  it  on  a  skunk 
farm.  He  knew,  an’  I  was  ready  to  f oiler  him  if  it 
meant  feedin’  any  old  thing  my  carkiss.  My,  I  want  to 
lafif.  It  was  the  same  as  your  Mum  said  when  she  heard 
we’d  come  along  here  chasin’  gold,  only  worse.  She 
couldn’t  hand  the  stuff  the  boys  could.  An’  queer 
enough,  now  I  think  it,  Eighty-Mile  was  as  nigh  like 
this  dam  creek  as  two  shucks.  Ther’s  the  mud,  an’  the 
queer  gravel,  an’  the  granite.  Guess  ther’  ain’t  the 
cabbige  around  this  lay  out  like  ther’  was  to  Eighty- 
Mile.  You  see,  we’re  a  heap  further  north,  right  here. 
No.  Ther’  was  spruce,  an’  pine,  an’  tamarack  to  Eighty- 
Mile.  Ther’s  nothing  better  than  dyin’  skitters  an’  flies 
you  can  smell  a  mile  to  Caribou.  But  the  formation’s 
like.  Sure  it  is.  An’  Bill’s  nose - ’’ 


286 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


“Cut  out  the  nose,  Chilcoot,  old  friend,”  Wilder  broke 
in  with  a  laugh.  “Ther’s  a  deal  too  much  of  my  nose  to 
this  precious  yarn.  What  you  coming  to?” 

A  merry  laugh  from  the  Kid  found  an  echo  in  Perse’s 
noisy  grin. 

“It’s  good  listenin’  to  a  yarn  of  gold,”  he  said.  “It 
don’t  hurt  hanging  it  up  so  we  get  the  gold  plenty  at  the 
end.” 

“That’s  so  boy,”  Chilcoot  nodded  approvingly.  “That’s 
the  gold  man  talkin’.  That’s  how  it  was  on  Eighty- 
Mile.  Ther’  was  just  tons  of  gold,  an’  we  netted  the 
stuff  till  we  was  plumb  sick  to  death  countin’  it.  Gold? 
Gee !  Bill’s  bank  roll  is  that  stuffed  with  it  he  could  buy 
a — territory.  Yes,  that  was  Eighty-Mile,  the  same  as 
it  is  on — Caribou!” 

“Caribou?” 

Perse  had  leapt  to  his  feet  staring  wide-eyed  in  his 
amazement.  The  Kid  had  faced  round  gazing  in¬ 
credulously  into  Wilder’s  smiling  face.  Even  Mary 
Justicia  was  drawing  deep  breaths  under  her  habitual 
restraint.  The  one  apparently  unmoved  member  of  the 
happy  party  was  Clarence.  But  even  his  attitude  was 
feigned. 

“Same  as  it  is  on — Caribou?”  he  said,  in  a  voice  whose 
tone  hovered  between  youth  and  manhood.  “Have  you 
struck  it  on — Caribou?” 

His  final  question  was  tense  with  suppressed  excite¬ 
ment. 

Chilcoot  nodded  in  Bill’s  direction. 

“Ask  him,”  he  said,  with  a  smile  twinkling  in  his 
eyes.  “It’s  that  he  got  you  kids  for  right  here  this  night. 
Jest  to  ask  him  that  question.  Have  you  made  the 
‘strike,’  Bill?  Did  your  darn  old  nose  smell  out  right? 
You  best  tell  these  folks,  or  you’ll  hand  ’em  a  nightmare 


YOUTH  SUPREME 


287 


they  won’t  get  over  in  a  week.  You  best  tell  ’em.  Or 
maybe  you  ken  show  ’em.  Ther’s  folk  in  the  world  like 
to  see,  when  gold’s  bein’  talked,  an’  I  guess  Perse  here’s 
one  of  ’em.  Will  you?” 

All  eyes  were  on  Big  Bill.  The  girls  sat  voicelessly 
waiting,  and  the  smiles  on  their  faces  were  fixed  with 
the  intensity  of  the  feeling  behind  them.  Clarence,  like 
Perse,  had  stood  up  in  his  agitation,  and  both  boys 
gazed  wide-eyed  as  the  tall  figure  leapt  to  its  feet 
and  passed  back  to  the  low  “A”  tent,  which  was  his 
quarters. 

While  he  was  gone  Chilcoot  strove  to  fill  in  the  interval 
with  appropriate  comment. 

“Yes,”  he  said,  “Caribou’s  chock  full  of  the  dust, 


But  no  one  was  listening.  Four  pair  of  eyes  were 
gazing  after  Big  Bill,  four  hearts  were  hammering  in 
four  youthful  bosoms  under  stress  of  feelings  which  in 
all  human  life  the  magic  of  gold  never  fails  to  arouse. 
It  was  the  same  with  these  simple  creatures,  who  had 
never  known  a  sight  of  gold,  as  it  was  with  the  most 
hardened  labourer  of  the  gold  trail.  Everything  but  the 
prize  these  men  had  won  was  forgotten  in  that  thrilling 
moment. 

Wilder  came  back  almost  at  once.  He  was  bearing  a 
riffled  pan,  one  of  those  primitive  manufactures  which  is 
so  great  a  thing  in  the  life  of  the  man  who  worships  at 
the  golden  shrine.  He  was  bearing  it  in  both  hands  as 
though  its  contents  were  weighty.  And  as  he  came,  the 
Kid,  no  less  eagerly  than  the  others,  hurriedly  dashed  to 
his  side  to  peer  at  the  thing  he  was  carrying. 

But  the  pan  was  covered  with  bagging.  And  the  man 
smilingly  denied  them  all. 

“Get  right  along  back,”  he  laughed.  “Sit  around  and 


288 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


I’ll  show  you.”  Then  his  eyes  gazed  down  into  the 
Kid’s  upturned  face,  and  he  realised  her  moment  of 
sheer  excitement  had  passed  and  something  else  was 
stirring  behind  the  pretty  eyes  that  had  come  to  mean  so 
much  to  him.  He  nodded. 

“Don’t  be  worried,  Kid,”  he  said  quietly.  “Maybe  I 
guess  the  thing  that’s  troubling.  I’m  going  to  fix  that, 
the  same  as  I  reckon  to  fix  anything  else  that’s  going  to 
make  you  feel  bad.” 

The  girl  made  no  reply.  In  her  mind  the  shadow  of 
Usak  had  arisen.  And  even  to  her,  in  the  circumstances, 
it  was  a  threatening  shadow.  She  remembered  the  thing 
the  savage  had  said  to  her  in  his  violent  protest.  “Him 
mans  your  enemy.  Him  come  steal  all  thing  what  are 
yours.  Him  river.  Him  land.  Him — gold.”  There  was 
nothing  in  her  thought  that  this  man  was  stealing  from 
her.  Such  a  thing  could  never  have  entered  her  mind. 
It  was  the  culminating  threat  of  the  savage  that  had 
robbed  her  of  her  delight,  and  made  the  thing  in  the  pan 
almost  hateful  to  her.  Usak  had  deliberately  threatened 
the  life  of  this  man,  and  the  full  force  of  that  threat, 
hitherto  almost  disregarded,  now  overwhelmed  her  with  a 
terror  such  as  she  had  never  known  before. 

She  was  the  last  to  take  her  place  on  the  spread  of 
skins  before  the  fire.  The  others  were  crowding  round 
the  man  with  the  pan.  But  he  kept  them  waiting  till  the 
girl  had  taken  her  place  beside  him.  Then,  and  not  till 
then,  without  a  word  he  squatted  on  the  rugs  and  slowly 
withdrew  the  bagging. 

It  was  a  breathless  moment.  Everything  was  forgotten 
but  the  amazing  revelation.  Even  the  Kid,  in  that 
supreme  moment,  found  the  shadow  of  Usak  less  haunt¬ 
ing.  The  bagging  was  drawn  clear. 

There  it  lay  in  the  bottom  of  the  pan.  A  number  of 


YOUTH  SUPREME  289 

dull,  yellow,  jagged  nuggets  lying  on  a  bed  of  yellow 
dust  nearly  half  an  inch  thick. 

It  was  Perse  who  found  the  first  words. 

“Phew !”  he  cried  with  something  resembling  a  whistle. 
“Dollars  an’  dollars!  How  many?  Did  you  get  it  on — 
Caribou?” 

“Sure.  Right  on  Caribou.” 

Wilder  nodded,  his  eyes  contemplating  his  treasure. 

“Where?” 

It  was  Clarence  who  asked  the  vital  question. 

“You  can’t  get  that — yet.”  Wilder  shook  his  head 
without  looking  up. 

“Mum  would  be  crazy  to  see  this,”  ventured  the 
thoughtful  Mary  Justicia. 

The  Kid  looked  up.  She  had  been  dazzled  by  the 
splendid  vision.  Now  again  terror  was  gripping  her. 

“You’ll  not  say  a  word  of  this.  None  of  you,”  she 
said  sharply.  “Mum  shall  know.  Oh,  yes.  But  not  a 
word  to — Usak.” 

Wilder  raised  his  eyes  to  the  girl’s  troubled  face. 

“Don’t  worry  a  thing,”  he  said  gravely.  “Usak’s  going 
to  know.  I’m  going  to  hand  him  the  talk  myself.”  Then 
he  laughed.  And  the  tone  of  his  laugh  added  further  to 
the  girl’s  unease.  It  was  so  care-free  and  delighted. 
“Sit  around,  kids,”  he  cried.  “All  of  you.” 

He  was  promptly  obeyed  by  the  two  boys  who  had 
remained  standing.  They  seated  themselves  opposite  him. 
Then  he  dipped  into  the  pan  and  picked  out  the  largest  of 
the  nuggets  of  pure  gold  and  offered  it  to  the  Kid. 

“That’s  for  your  Mum,”  he  said  quietly.  “It’s  pure 
gold,  same  as  the  woman  she  is.  Here,”  he  went  on, 
quickly  selecting  the  next  biggest.  “That’s  yours  Kid — 
by  right.” 

Then  he  passed  one  each  to  the  two  boys  and  Mary 


19 


290 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


Justicia,  and  finally  shot  the  remainder  of  the  precious 
wash-up  into  the  bag  that  had  covered  the  pan  and  held 
it  out  to  the  Kid. 

“There  it  is,”  he  cried.  “Take  it.  It’s  for  you,  an’ 
all  those  folk  belonging  to  you.  It’s  just  a  kind  of 
sample  of  the  thing  that’s  yours,  an’  is  going  to  be  yours. 
Guess  old  Perse,  here,  was  right.  It’s  the  gold  from 
Caribou,  an’  right  out  of  your  dead  father’s  'strike’ — 
which  is  for  you,  Kid.  Say,  you’re  a  rich  woman,  for 
the  best  claim  on  it  is  yours,  an’  it’s  the  richest  ‘strike’ 
I’ve  ever  nosed  out.  Richer  even  than  Chilcoot’s  Eighty- 
Mile.” 

•  •••••• 

The  party  was  over.  The  journey  back  to  the  home¬ 
stead  was  completed.  The  full  moon  had  smiled  frigidly 
down  upon  a  scene  of  such  excitement  as  was  rare 
enough  in  her  northern  domain.  Maybe  the  sight  of  the 
thing  she  had  witnessed  had  offended  her.  Perhaps,  with 
her  wealth  of  cold  experience,  she  condemned  the  human¬ 
ness  of  the  thing  she  had  gazed  upon.  For  on  the  journey 
home  she  had  refused  the  beneficence  of  her  pale  smile, 
and  had  hidden  her  face  amidst  those  night  shadows  which 
she  had  forthwith  summoned  to  her  domain. 

But  her  displeasure  had  in  nowise  concerned.  A  land¬ 
mark  in  life  had  been  set  up,  a  radiant  beacon  which 
would  shine  in  the  minds  of  each  and  every  one  of  these 
children  of  the  North  so  long  as  memory  remained  to 
them. 

Somehow  the  order  of  return  home  to  the  homestead 
had  become  changed.  Neither  Wilder  nor  the  Kid 
realised  the  thing  that  had  taken  place  until  it  had  been 
accomplished.  It  seemed  likely  that  it  was  the  deliberate 
work  of  Chilcoot,  who,  for  all  his  roughness,  was  not 
without  a  world  of  kindly  sentiment  somewhere  stowed 


YOUTH  SUPREME 


291 


away  deep  down  in  his  heart.  Perhaps  it  had  been  the 
arrangement  of  the  less  demonstrative  Mary  Justicia,  who 
was  so  nearly  approaching  her  own  years  of  woman¬ 
hood.  However  it  had  come  to  pass  Chilcoot  had  carried 
off  the  bulk  of  the  visitors,  with  Mary  and  Perse  and 
Clarence  for  his  freight,  leaving  Bill  and  the  Kid  to 
their  own  company  in  following  his  lead. 

It  was  the  ultimate  crowning  of  the  night’s  episodes 
for  the  Kid.  Bill  had  demanded  that  she  become  his 
passenger;  that  the  sole  work  of  paddling  should  be  his. 
And  he  had  had  his  way.  The  Kid  was  in  the  mood  for 
yielding  to  his  lightest  wish.  If  he  had  desired  to  walk 
to  the  homestead  she  would  not  have  demurred.  So  she 
lounged  on  skin  rugs  amidships  in  the  little  canoe,  with 
her  shoulders  propped  against  the  forward  strut,  and 
yielded  herself  to  the  delight  with  which  the  talk  and 
presence  of  this  great,  strong,  youthful  man  filled  her. 
The  shadow  of  Usak  still  haunted  her  silent  moments,  but 
even  that,  in  this  wonderful  presence,  had  less  power  to 
disturb. 

The  impulse  of  the  man  had  been  to  abandon  all 
caution,  and  bask  in  the  delight  and  happiness  with  which 
this  child  of  nature  filled  him.  Her  beauty  and  sweet 
womanhood  compelled  him  utterly,  while  her  innocence 
was  beyond  words  in  the  sense  of  tender  responsibility  it 
inspired  in  him.  He  loved  her  with  all  the  strength  of 
his  own  simple  being.  And  the  sordid  world  in  which  he 
dwelt  so  long  only  the  more  surely  left  him  headlong  in 
his  great  desire. 

But  out  of  his  wisdom  he  restrained  the  impulse.  Time 
was  with  him  and  he  feared  to  frighten  her.  He  realised 
that  for  all  her  courage,  for  all  her  wonderful  spirit  in 
the  fierce  northern  battle,  the  woman’s  crown  of  life 
must  be  as  yet  something  little  more  than  a  hazy  vision,  a 


292 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


nebulous  thing  whose  reality  would  only  come  to  her, 
stealing  softly  upon  her  as  the  budding  soul  expanded. 
Yes,  he  could  afford  to  wait.  And  so  he  held  guard  over 
himself,  and  the  journey  was  made  while  he  told  her 
all  those  details  of  the  thing  that  had  brought  him  to 
Caribou. 

His  mind  was  very  clear  on  the  things  he  desired  to 
tell,  and  the  things  he  did  not.  And  he  confined  himself 
to  a  sufficient  outline  of  the  reasons  of  the  thing  he  was 
doing  with  his  discovery  on  Caribou,  and  the  things  he 
contemplated  before  the  opening  after  the  coming  winter. 

The  journey  down  the  river  sufficed  for  this  outline  of 
his  purpose,  and  the  distance  was  covered  almost  before 
they  were  aware  of  it.  At  the  landing  they  looked  for 
the  others.  But  they  only  discovered  Chilcoot’s  empty 
boat,  which  left  them  no  alternative  but  to  walk  up  to 
the  homestead. 

As  they  approached  the  clearing  the  girl  held  out  a 
hand.  “Will  I  take  that — bag?”  she  asked.  “I — I’d  like 
to  show  it  to  Mum  with  my  own  hands.  You  know, 
Bill,  I  can’t  get  it  all  yet.  All  it  means.  It’s  a  sort  of 
dream  yet,  an’  all  the  time  I  sort  of  feel  I’ll  wake  right 
up  an’  set  out  for  Placer  to  make  our  winter  trade.” 

She  laughed.  But  her  laugh  was  cut  short.  And  as 
the  man  passed  her  the  bag  of  dust  he  had  been  carrying 
a  spasm  of  renewed  fear  gripped  her. 

“Yes.  Pd  forgotten,”  she  went  on.  “I’d  forgotten 
Usak.  This  thing’s  kind  of  beaten  everything  out  of  my 
fool  head.  You’re  going  to  tell  him,  Bill?  When?” 

They  had  reached  the  clearing  and  halted  a  few  yards 
from  the  home  the  Kid  had  always  known.  The  sound 
of  voices  came  to  them  from  within.  There  was  laughter 
and  excitement  reigning,  when,  usually,  the  whole  house¬ 
hold  should  have  been  wrapped  in  slumber. 


YOUTH  SUPREME 


293 


“Right  away.  Maybe  to-morrow.” 

Bill  stood  before  her  silhouetted  against  the  lamplight 
shining  through  the  cotton-covered  window  of  the 
kitchen-place.  There  was  something  comforting  in  the 
man’s  bulk,  and  in  the  strong  tones  of  his  voice.  The 
Kid’s  fears  relaxed,  but  anxiety  was  still  hers. 

“Say,  little  gal,”  he  went  on  at  once,  in  that  tender 
fashion  he  had  come  to  use  in  his  talk  with  her.  “That 
feller’s  got  you  scared.”  Pie  laughed.  “I  guess  he’s  the 
only  thing  to  scare  you  in  this  queer  territory.  But  he 
doesn’t  scare  me  a  thing.  I’ve  got  him  beat  all  the  while 
— when  it  comes  to  a  show-down.” 

“Maybe  you  have  in  a — show-down.” 

The  man  shook  his  head. 

“I  get  your  meaning,”  he  said.  “But  don’t  worry.” 

“But  I  do.  I  can’t  help  it.”  The  Kid’s  tone  was  a 
little  desperate.  “You  see,  I  know  Usak.  I’ve  known 
him  all  my  life.  He  threatened  your  life  to  me  the  night 
he  found  you  on  the  river.  I  jumped  in  on  him  and 
beat  that  talk  out  of  him.  But — you  see,  he  reckons 
you’re  out  to  steal  our  land,  our  river,  our — gold.  It’s 
the  last  that  scares  me.  If  he  knows  the  stuff’s  found, 
and  unless  he  knows  right  away  the  big  things  you’re 
doing — Don’t  you  see?  Oh,  I’m  scared  for  you,  Bill. 
Usak’s  crazy  mad  if  he  thinks  folk  are  going  to  hurt  me. 
You’ll  tell  him  quick,  won’t  you?  I  won’t  sleep  till  I’m 
— sure.  You  see,  if  a  thing  happened  to  you — ” 

“Nothing’s  goin’  to  happen,  little  Kid.  I  sure  promise 
you.” 

The  man’s  words  came  deep,  and  low,  and  thrilling 
with  something  he  could  not  keep  out  of  them.  It  was 
the  girl’s  unfeigned  solicitude  that  stirred  him.  And 
again  the  old  headlong  impulse  was  striving  to  gain  the 
upper  hand.  He  resisted  it,  as  he  had  resisted  it  before. 


294 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


But  this  time  he  sought  the  coward’s  refuge.  He  reached 
out  a  hand  and  laid  it  gently  on  the  girl’s  soft  shoulder. 

“Come  right  in,  an* — show  your  Mum,”  he  said. 
“Hark  at  ’em.  That’s  Perse.  I’d  know  his  laugh  in  a 
thousand.  Say,  we’re  missing  all  sorts  of  a  time.” 


The  two  men  were  back  at  their  camp.  They  were 
seated  over  the  remains  of  their  generous  camp  fire.  It 
had  sadly  fallen  from  its  great  estate.  It  was  no  longer 
a  prodigal  expression  of  their  hospitality,  but  a  mere, 
ruddy  heap  of  hot  cinders  with  a  wisp  of  smoke  rising 
out  of  its  glowing  heart.  Still,  however,  it  yielded  a 
welcome  temperature  to  the  bitter  chill  of  the  now  frown¬ 
ing  night. 

Chilcoot  remained  faithful  to  his  up-turned  camp  kettle, 
but  Bill  concerned  himself  with  no  such  luxury.  He  was 
squatting  Indian-fashion  on  his  haunches,  with  his  hands 
clasped  about  his  knees.  It  was  a  moment  of  deep  con¬ 
templation  before  seeking  their  blankets,  and  both  were 
smoking. 

It  was  the  older  man  who  broke  the  long  silence.  He 
was  in  a  mood  to  talk,  for  the  events  of  the  night  had 
stirred  him  even  more  deeply  than  he  knew. 

“They  felt  mighty  good,”  he  observed  contentedly. 
“Them  queer  bits  o’  life.” 

His  gaze  remained  on  the  heart  of  the  fire  for  his 
words  were  in  the  manner  of  a  thought  spoken  aloud. 

Bill  nodded. 

“Pore  kids,”  he  said. 

In  a  moment  the  older  man’s  eyes  were  turned  upon 
him,  and  their  smiling  depths  were  full  of  amiable 
derision. 

“Pore?”  he  exclaimed.  Then  his  hands  were  outspread 


YOUTH  SUPREME 


295 


in  an  expressive  gesture.  “Say,  you’ve  handed  ’em  a 
prize-packet  that  needs  to  cut  that  darn  word  right  out 
of  your  talk.” 

He  looked  for  reply  to  his  challenge,  but  none  was 
forthcoming.  And  he  returned  again  to  his  happy  con¬ 
templation  of  the  fire. 

Bill  smoked  on.  But  somehow  there  was  none  of  the 
other’s  easy  contentment  in  his  enjoyment.  He  was 
smoking  rapidly,  in  the  manner  of  a  mind  that  was 
restless,  of  a  thought  unpleasantly  pre-occupied.  The 
expression  of  his  eyes,  too,  was  entirely  different.  They 
were  plainly  alert,  and  a  light  pucker  of  concentration 
had  drawn  his  even  brows  together.  He  seemed  to  be 
listening.  Nor  was  his  listening  for  the  sound  of  his 
companion’s  voice. 

At  long  last  Chilcoot  bestirred  himself  and  knocked 
out  his  pipe,  and  his  eyes  again  sought  his  silent  partner. 

“The  blankets  fer  me,”  he  said,  and  rose  to  his  feet. 
He  laughed  quietly.  “I’ll  sure  dream  of  kids  an’  things 
all  mussed  up  with  fool  men  who  don’t  know  better.” 

“Sure.”  Bill  nodded  without  turning.  Then  he 
added:  “You  best  make  ’em.  I’ll  sit  awhile.” 

Chilcoot’s  gaze  sharpened  as  he  contemplated  the 
squatting  figure. 

“Kind  o’  feel  like  thinkin’  some?”  he  observed 
shrewdly. 

“Maybe.” 

The  older  man  grinned. 

“She’d  take  most  boys  o’  your  years — thinkin’ !” 

“Ye— es.” 

Bill  had  turned,  and  was  gazing  up  into  the  other’s 
smiling  face.  But  there  was  no  invitation  to  continue 
the  talk  in  his  regard.  On  the  contrary.  And  Chilcoot’s 
smile  passed  abruptly. 


296 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


“Guess  I’ll  beat  it,”  he  said  a  little  hurriedly.  And  the 
sitting  man  made  no  attempt  to  detain  him. 

•  o  •  •  •  •  • 

The  man  at  the  fire  was  no  longer  gazing  into  it.  He 
was  peering  out  into  the  dark  of  the  night.  Further¬ 
more  he  was  no  longer  squatting  on  his  haunches.  He 
had  shifted  his  position,  lying  on  his  side  so  that  his 
range  of  vision  avoided  the  fire-light  as  he  searched  in  the 
direction  of  the  water’s  edge  below  him.  His  heavy  pea- 
jacket  had  been  unfastened,  and  his  right  hand  was  thrust 
deep  in  its  pocket. 

The  fire  had  been  replenished  and  raked  together.  It 
was  burning  merrily,  as  though  the  man  before  it  con¬ 
templated  a  prolonged  vigil.  The  night  sounds  were  few 
enough  just  now  in  the  northern  wilderness.  The  flies 
and  mosquitoes  were  no  longer  the  burden  they  were  in 
summer.  The  frigid  night  seemed  to  have  silenced  their 
hum,  as  it  had  silenced  most  other  sounds.  The  voice  of 
the  sluggish  river  alone  went  on  with  that  soothing 
monotony  which  would  continue  until  the  final  freeze-up. 

But  Wilder  was  alert  in  every  fibre.  He  had  reason  to 
be.  For  all  the  silence  he  knew  there  was  movement 
going  on.  Secret  movement  which  would  have  to  be 
dealt  with  before  the  night  was  out.  His  ears  had  long 
since  detected  it.  They  had  detected  it  on  the  river,  both 
going  down  and  returning.  And  imagination  had  sup¬ 
plied  interpretation.  Now  he  was  awaiting  that  develop¬ 
ment  he  felt  would  surely  come. 

He  had  not  long  to  wait.  A  sound  of  moccasined  feet 
padding  over  the  loose  gravel  of  the  river  bed  suddenly 
developed.  It  was  approaching  him.  And  he  strained  in 
the  darkness  for  a  vision  of  his  visitor.  After  awhile 
a  shadowy  outline  took  definite  shape.  It  was  of  the  tall, 
burly  figure  of  a  man  coming  up  from  the  water’s  edge. 


YOUTH  SUPREME 


297 

He  came  rapidly,  and  without  a  word  he  took  his  place 
at  the  opposite  side  of  the  fire. 

Bill  made  no  move.  He  offered  no  greeting.  He 
understood.  It  was  the  thing  he  had  looked  for  and 
prepared  for.  It  was  Usak.  And  he  watched  the  Indian 
as  he  laid  his  long  rifle  across  his  knees,  and  held  out  his 
hands  to  the  crackling  blaze. 

The  Indian  seemed  in  no  way  concerned  with  the  cool¬ 
ness  of  his  reception.  It  was  almost  as  if  his  actions 
were  an  expression  of  the  thing  he  considered  his  simple 
right.  And  having  taken  up  his  position  he  returned  the 
silent  scrutiny  of  his  host  with  eyes  so  narrowed  that 
they  revealed  nothing  but  the  fierce  gleam  of  the  firelight 
they  reflected. 

He  leant  forward  and  deliberately  spat  into  the  fire. 
Then  the  sound  of  his  voice  came,  and  his  eyes  widened 
till  their  coal  black  depths  revealed  something  of  the 
savage  mood  that  lay  behind  them. 

“I  see  him,  all  thing  this  night,”  he  said.  “So  I  come. 
I,  Usak,  say  him  this  thing.  I  tell  ’em  all  peoples  white- 
mans  no  good.  Whitemans  steal  ’em  all  thing.  White- 
mans  him  look,  look  all  time.  Him  look  on  the  face  of 
white  girl.  Him  talk  plenty  much.  Him  show  her  much 
thing.  Gold?  Yes.  Him  buy  her,  this  whiteman.  Him 
buy  her  with  gold  which  he  steal  from  her  land.” 

He  raised  one  lean  brown  hand  and  thrust  up  three 
fingers. 

“I  tak  him  this  gun,”  he  went  on  fiercely.  “Him 
ready  to  my  eye.  One — two — three  time  I  so  stand.  You 
dead  all  time  so  I  mak  him.  Now  I  say  you  go.  One 
day.  You  not  go?  Then  I  mak  ’em  so  kill  quick.” 

Wilder  moved.  But  it  was  only  to  withdraw  his  hand 
from  the  pocket  of  his  pea-jacket.  He  was  grasping  an 
automatic  pistol  of  heavy  calibre.  He  drew  up  a  knee  in 


298 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


his  lolling  position,  and  rested  hand  and  weapon  upon 
it.  The  muzzle  was  deliberately  covering  the  broad 
bosom  of  the  man  beyond  the  fire,  and  his  finger  was 
ready  to  compress  on  the  instant. 

“That’s  all  right,  Usak,”  he  said  calmly.  “What  are 
we  going  to  do?  Talk  or — shoot?”  His  eyes  smiled  in 
the  calm  fashion  out  of  which  he  was  rarely  disturbed. 
“I’m  no  Euralian  man  to  leave  you  with  the  drop  on 
me.” 

The  final  thrust  was  not  without  effect.  For  an  in¬ 
stant  the  Indian’s  eyes  widened  further.  Then  they  nar¬ 
rowed  suddenly  to  the  cat-like  watchfulness  his  manner 
so  much  resembled. 

“We  talk,”  he  said,  after  a  brief  conflict  with  his 
angry  mood,  his  gaze  on  the  ready  automatic  whose 
presence  and  whose  offence  he  fully  appreciated. 

Bill  nodded.  ( 

“That’s  better,”  he  said.  Then  he  went  on  after  a 
pause.  “Say  boy,  if  you’d  been  a  whiteman  I’d  have  shot 
you  in  your  darn  tracks  for  the  thing  you  just  said,  and 
the  thing  you  kind  of  hinted  at.  I  had  you  covered  right 
away  as  you  came  along  up.  But  you’re  an  Indian.  An’ 
more  than  that  you  belong  to  Marty  Le  Gros’  lone  Kid. 
You’ve  raised  her,  an’  acted  father  an’  mother  to  her,  an’ 
you  guess  the  sun  just  rises  an’  sets  in  her.  I’m  glad. 
An’  I’m  glad  ther’  isn’t  to  be  any  fool  shooting — yet. 
But,  anyway,  when  ther’  is  I  want  you  to  get  a  grip  on 
this.  I’m  right  in  the  business,  an’  I’ve  got  your  darn 
ole  gun  a  mile  beaten.  I  guess  that  makes  things  clear 
some,  an’  we  can  get  busy  with  our  talk.” 

The  Indian  made  no  reply,  but  there  was  a  flicker  of 
the  eyelid,  and  an  added  sparkle  in  the  man’s  eyes  as  he 
listened  to  the  whiteman’s  scathing  words. 

Bill  suddenly  sat  up  and  clasped  his  hands  about  his 


YOUTH  SUPREME 


299 

knees  while  the  automatic  pistol  was  thrust  even  more 
prominently. 

“Here,  Usak,”  he  went  on,  in  the  same  quiet  fashion, 
but  with  a  note  of  conciliation  in  his  tone.  “You’re 
guessing  all  sorts  of  fool  Indian  things  about  that  gal 
coming  along  up  here  to  my  camp.  You  talk  of  buying 
her  with  the  gold  I’ve  stolen  from  her.  If  you’d  been  the 
man  you  guess  you  are  you’d  have  got  around,  and  sat 
in  an’  heard  all  the  talk  of  the  whole  thing.  But  you’re 
an  Indian  man,  a  low  grade  boy  that  guesses  to  steal 
around  on  the  end  of  a  gun,  ready  to  play  any  dirty  old 
game.  No.  Keep  cool  till  I’ve  done.” 

Wilder’s  gun  was  raised  ever  so  slightly,  and  he  waited 
while  the  leaping  wrath  of  the  Indian  subsided.  He 
nodded. 

“That’s  better,”  he  went  on  quickly.  “You  got  to  listen 
till  I’m  done.  I’m  goin’  to  tell  you  things,  not  because  I’m 
scared  a  cent  of  you,  but  because  you’ve  been  good  to  the 
Kid,  and  you’re  loyal,  an’  maybe  someday  you’re  going  to 
feel  that  way  to  me.  See  ?  But  right  away  I  want  you  to 
get  this  into  your  fool  head.  I  came  along  for  two  rea¬ 
sons  to  Caribou.  One  was  to  locate  Marty  Le  Gros’ 
gold,  an’  pass  it  over  to  the  gal  who  belongs  to  it,  an’  the 
other  was  to  marry  Felice  Le  Gros,  the  same  as  her 
father  married  her  mother,  an’  you,  I  guess,  in  your  own 
fashion,  married  Pri-loo,  who  the  Euralians  killed  for 
you.  Now  you  get  that?  I  don’t  want  the  Kid’s  gold,  or 
land,  or  farm.  They  cut  no  ice  with  me.  I’m  so  rich  I 
hate  the  sight  of  gold.  But  I  want  the  Kid.  I  want  to 
marry  her  and  take  her  right  away  where  the  sun  shines 
and  the  world’s  worth  living  in.  Where  she  won’t  need 
to  worry  for  food  or  trade,  an’  won’t  need  to  wear  rein¬ 
deer  buckskin  all  the  time.  And  anyway  won’t  have  to 
live  the  life  of  a  white-Indian.” 


3°° 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


The  keen  gaze  of  the  whiteman  held  the  Indian  fast. 
There  was  no  smile  in  his  eyes.  But  there  was  infinite 
command  and  frank  honesty.  Usak  stirred  uneasily.  It 
was  an  expression  of  the  reaction  taking  place  in  him. 

“Him  marry  my  good  boss,  Kid?” 

The  savage  had  gone  out  of  the  man’s  tone.  The  nar¬ 
rowed  eyes  had  widened,  and  a  curious  shining  light  filled 
them. 

“You  give  him  all  him  gold?  The  gold  of  my  good 
boss,  Marty?”  he  went  on,  as  though  striving  for  con¬ 
viction  that  he  had  heard  aright.  “Sure?  You  mak  him 
this?  You  not  mak  back  to  Placer  wher’  all  him  white- 
woman  live?  You  want  only  him  Kid,  same  lak  Usak 
want  him  Pri-loo  all  time?  Only  him  Kid?  Yes?” 

Bill  nodded  with  a  dawning  smile. 

“You  big  man  all  much  gold?”  the  Indian  went  on 
urgently.  “You  not  mak  want  him  gold  of  the  good  boss, 
Marty  ?” 

Bill  shook  his  head  and  his  smile  deepened. 

“Guess  I  just  want  the — Kid,”  he  said. 

The  Indian  moved.  Pie  laid  his  rifle  aside  as  though  it 
had  suddenly  become  a  hateful  thing  he  desired  to  spurn. 
Then  he  reached  out,  thrusting  a  hand  across  the  fire  to 
grip  that  of  the  whiteman. 

But  no  response  was  forthcoming.  Bill  remained  mo¬ 
tionless  with  his  hands  about  his  knees  and  his  weapon 
thrusting.  Usak  waited  a  moment.  Then  his  hand  was 
sharply  withdrawn.  His  quick  intelligence  was  swift  to 
realise  the  deliberate  slight.  But  that  which  the 
crude  savage  in  him  had  no  power  to  do  was  to  remain 
silent. 

“You  not  shake  by  the  hand?”  he  said  doubtfully. 
“You  say  all  ’em  good  thing  by  the  Kid?  It  all  mush 
good.  Oh,  yes.  Yet  you — ”  He  broke  off  and  a  great 


YOUTH  SUPREME 


301 


light  of  passion  suddenly  leapt  to  his  black  eyes.  “Tcha !” 
he  cried.  “What  is  it  this?  The  tongue  speak  an’  him 
heart  think  mush.  No,  no !”  he  went  on  with  growing 
ferocity.  “The  good  boss,  Marty,  say  heap  plenty.  Him 
tell  ’em  Indian  man  all  time.  Him  whitemans  no  shake, 
then  him  not  mean  the  thing  him  tongue  say.” 

“You’re  dead  wrong,  Usak.  Plumb  wrong.  That’s 
not  the  reason  I  don’t  guess  to  grip  your  hand.” 

Bill’s  gaze  was  compelling.  There  was  that  in  it  which 
denied  the  other’s  accusations  in  a  fashion  that  even  the 
mind  of  the  savage  could  not  fail  to  interpret. 

The  anger  in  the  Indian’s  eyes  died  down. 

“Indian  man’s  hand  good  so  as  the  white  man,”  he 
said.  “Yet  him  not  shake  so  this  thing  is  mush  good. 
This  Kid.  Him  mak  wife  to  you.  You  give  her  all  thing 
good  plenty.  So.  That  thing  you  say  big.  Usak  give 
her  all,  too.  Usak  think  lak  she  is  the  child  of  Pri-loo. 
Usak  love  him  good  boss,  Marty,  her  father.  Oh,  yes. 
All  time  plenty.  Usak  fight,  kill.  All  him  life  no  thing 
so  him  Kid  only  know  good.” 

Bill  inclined  his  head.  The  man  was  speaking  out  of  the 
depth  of  his  fierce  heart,  and  he  warmed  to  the  simple 
sturdiness  of  his  graphic  pleading. 

“I  know  all  that,”  he  said. 

“Then—?” 

The  Indian’s  hand  was  slowly,  almost  timidly  thrust 
towards  him  again.  But  the  movement  remained  uncom¬ 
pleted. 

“Usak,”  Bill  began  deliberately,  and  in  the  tone  of  a 
purpose  arrived  at.  “I  know  you  for  the  good  feller 
you’ve  been  to  all  these  folk.  I  know  you  better  than  I 
guess  even  they  know  you.  I  guess  it  don’t  take  me  fig- 
gering  to  know  if  I’d  hurt  a  soul  of  them  you’d  never 
quit  till  you’d  shot  me  to  pieces.  I  know  all  that.  Let 


302 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


it  go  at  that.  A  whiteman  grips  the  other  feller  by  the 
hand  when  he  knows  the  things  back  of  that  other  feller’s 
mind.  Do  you  get  that?  Ther’s  a  mighty  big  stain  of 
blood  on  the  hand  you’re  askin’  me  to  grip,  an’  I’m  not 
yearning  to  shake  the  hand  of  a — murderer.” 

The  men  were  gazing  eye  to  eye.  The  calm  cold  of 
Wilder’s  grey  eyes  was  inflexible.  The  Indian’s  had  lit 
with  renewed  fire.  But  his  resentment,  the  burning  fires 
of  his  savage  bosom  were  no  match  for  the  whiteman’s 
almost  mesmeric  power.  The  gaze  of  the  black  eyes 
wavered.  Their  lids  slowly  drooped,  as  though  the  search 
of  the  other’s  was  reading  him  through  and  through  and 
he  desired  to  avoid  them. 

“Well?” 

The  whiteman’s  challenge  came  with  patient  determina¬ 
tion. 

The  Indian  drew  a  deep  breath.  Then  he  nodded  slowly. 

“I  tell  him  all  thing,”  he  said  simply. 

“Good.” 

Wilder  released  his  knees  and  spread  himself  out  on 
the  ground,  and  almost  ostentatiously  returned  his  pistol 
to  his  pocket. 

“Go  ahead,”  he  said,  as  he  propped  himself  on  his  el¬ 
bow. 

Usak  talked  at  long  length  in  his  queer,  broken 
fashion.  His  mind  was  flung  back  to  those  far-off  years 
when  the  great  avenging  madness  had  taken  possession  of 
him.  He  told  the  story  of  Marty  Le  Gros  from  its  be¬ 
ginning.  He  told  the  story  of  the  man’s  great  hopes  and 
strivings  for  the  Eskimo  he  looked  upon  as  children. 
He  told  of  the  birth  of  the  Kid,  and  the  ultimate  death 
of  the  missionary’s  wife.  Then  had  come  the  time  of  his 
boss’s  gold  “strike,”  the  whereabouts  of  which  he  kept 
secret  even  from  him,  Usak.  Then  came  the  time  of  the 


YOUTH  SUPREME 


303 


murderous  descent  of  the  Euralians,  and  the  killing  and 
burning  that  accompanied  it.  And  how  he  had  returned 
to  the  Mission  to  find  the  dead  remains  of  Pri-loo  his 
wife,  and  of  his  good  boss,  Marty,  and  the  living  child 
flung  into  the  wood  which  sheltered  its  home. 

He  told  how  he  went  mad  with  desire  to  kill,  and  set 
out  to  wreak  his  vengeance.  He  had  long  since  by  chance 
discovered  where  these  people  hid  themselves  in  the  far- 
off  mountains,  and  he  went  there,  and  waited  until  they 
returned  from  their  war  trail. 

Now  for  the  first  time  Wilder  learned  all  the  intimate 
details  of  the  terrible  slaughter  which  this  single  savage 
had  contrived  to  inflict.  Nor  did  the  horror  of  the  story 
lose  in  the  man’s  telling.  He  missed  nothing  of  it,  seem¬ 
ing  to  revel  in  a  riot  of  furious  memory.  Once  or  twice, 
as  he  gloated  over  the  fall  of  an  enemy,  he  reached  out, 
and  his  lean  hand  patted  the  butt  of  his  queer  old  rifle 
almost  lovingly.  And  with  the  final  account  of  his 
struggle  with  the  leader  himself,  even  Wilder  shrank  be¬ 
fore  the  merciless  joy  the  man  displayed  as  he  contem¬ 
plated  the  end  of  the  battle  with  the  man’s  sockets  emptied 
of  the  tawny  eyes  that  had  gazed  upon  the  murder  of 
those  poor,  defenceless  creatures  the  Indian  had  been 
powerless  to  protect. 

“Oh,  yes,”  he  said  in  conclusion.  “Him  see  nothing 
more,  never.  Him  have  no  eyes  never  no  more.  Him 
live,  yes.  I  leave  him  woman.  So  I  go.  So  I  come  back. 
I  come  back  to  the  little  Kid,  him  good  boss,  Marty,  leave. 
I  live.  Oh,  yes.  I  live  for  him  Kid.  I  mak  big  work 
for  him  Kid.  Big  trade.  So  him  grow  lak  the  tree,  him 
flower,  an’  I  think  much  for  him.  It  all  good.  It  mak 
me  feel  good  all  inside.  Him  to  me  lak  the  child  of  Pri- 
loo.  You  marry  him  Kid?  Good.  You  give  him  gold? 
Good.  Usak  plenty  happy.  Now  I  mak  him  one  big  trip. 


304 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


Then  no  more.  Then  I  do  so  as  the  good  whiteman  of 
him  Kid  say.  Yes.” 

The  Indian  spread  out  his  hands  in  a  final  gesture. 
Then  he  drew  up  his  knees,  and  clasped  them  tightly, 
while  his  burning  eyes  dwelt  broodingly  upon  the  leap¬ 
ing  fire. 

“Why  this  trip?”  Bill’s  question  came  sharply. 

The  Indian  raised  his  eyes.  Then  they  dropped  again 
to  the  fire  and  he  shook  his  head. 

“You  won’t  tell  me?  Why?”  Bill  demanded  again. 
“Ther’s  no  need  for  any  trip.  Ther’s  work  right  here  for 
you,  for  all.  Ther’s  gold,  plenty,  which  you  can  share. 
Why?” 

Again  came  the  Indian’s  shake  of  the  head.  His  eyes 
were  raised  again  for  a  moment  and  Bill  read  and  inter¬ 
preted  the  brooding  light  that  gazed  out  of  them.  The 
man  seemed  about  to  speak,  but  his  hard  mouth  tightened 
visibly,  and  again  he  stubbornly  shook  his  head  and  re¬ 
turned  to  his  contemplation  of  the  fire. 

Suddenly  Bill  sprang  to  his  feet  and  held  out  his  hand. 
In  an  instant  the  Indian  was  on  his  feet,  and  his  dark  face 
was  even  smiling.  His  tenacious  hand  closed  over  that 
of  the  whiteman. 

“That’s  all  right,  Usak,”  Bill  said  quietly.  “I’m  glad 
to  take  your  hand.  You’re  a  big  man.  You’re  a  big 
Indian  savage.  But  you’re  a  good  man,  anyway.  Get 
right  back  to  your  shanty  now,  an’  take  that  darn  old  gun 
with  you.  You  don’t  need  that  fer  shooting  me  up,  any¬ 
way.  Just  keep  it — to  guard  the  Kid,  and  those  others. 
Just  one  word  before  you  go.  Marty  kept  his  gold  secret. 
You  keep  it  secret,  too,  until  the  Kid  lets  you  speak.  I’ve 
got  to  make  a  big  trip  to  secure  the  claims  before  we  can 
talk.  When  I  done  that  talk  don’t  matter.  Say,  an’  not 
a  word  to  the  Kid  of  our  talk.  Not  one  word.  I  want  to 


YOUTH  SUPREME 


305 


marry  her.  And  being  whitefolk  it’s  our  way  to  ask  the 
girl  first.  See?  I  haven’t  asked  her  yet.  An’  if  you 
were  to  boost  in  your  spoke,  maybe  she’d  get  angry,  and 

_ j> 

“Usak  savee.” 

The  Indian  was  grinning  in  a  fashion  that  left  the 
whiteman  satisfied.  Their  hands  fell  apart,  and  Usak 
picked  up  his  gun.  Then  he  turned  away  without  another 
word  and  the  night  swallowed  him  up. 

Wilder  stood  gazing  after  him,  There  was  no  smile 
in  his  eyes.  He  was  thinking  hard.  And  his  thought  was 
of  that  one,  big,  last  trip  the  Indian  had  threatened  to 
make. 


20 


CHAPTER  XIII 


a  whiteman's  purpose 

Bill  Wilder  and  Chilcoot  moved  slowly  up  from  the 
water’s  edge.  The  outlook  was  grey  and  the  wind  was 
piercing.  The  river  behind  them  was  ruffled  out  of  its 
usual  oily  calm,  and  the  two  small  laden  canoes,  lying 
against  the  bank,  and  the  final  stowing  of  which  the  men 
had  been  engaged  upon,  were  rocking  and  straining  at 
their  raw-hide  moorings. 

The  change  of  season  was  advancing  with  that  sudden¬ 
ness  which  drives  the  northern  man  hard.  Still,  however, 
the  first  snow  had  not  yet  fallen,  although  for  days  the 
threat  of  it  had  hung  over  the  world.  The  ground  was 
iron  hard  with  frost,  and  each  morning  a  skin  of  ice 
stretched  out  on  the  waters  of  the  river  from  the  low, 
shelving  banks.  But  the  grip  of  it  was  not  permanent. 
There  was  still  melting  warmth  in  the  body  of  the  stream, 
and,  each  day,  the  ice  yielded  up  its  hold. 

It  was  three  days  since  the  camp  had  witnessed  the 
gathering  of  children  about  its  camp  fire.  Three  days 
which  Bill  had  devoted  to  those  preparations,  careful  in 
the  last  detail,  for  the  rush  down  to  Placer  before  the 
world  was  overwhelmed  by  the  long  winter  terror.  Now, 
at  last,  all  was  in  readiness  for  the  start  on  the  morrow. 
All,  that  is,  but  the  one  important  matter  of  Red  Mike’s 
return  to  camp.  Until  that  happened  the  start  would  have 
to  be  delayed. 

Everything  had  been  planned  with  great  deliberation. 

306 


A  WHITEMAN’S  PURPOSE 


307 


Clarence  McLeod  had  even  been  called  upon  to  assist,  in 
view  of  the  race  against  time  which  the  task  these  men 
had  set  themselves  represented.  Three  days  ago  he  had 
been  despatched  up  the  river  to  recall  the  Irishman.  His 
immediate  return  was  looked  for.  Chilcoot  had  hoped  for 
it  earlier.  But  this  third  day  was  allowed  as  a  margin 
in  case  the  gold  instinct  had  carried  Mike  farther  afield 
than  was  calculated. 

The  last  of  the  brief  day  was  almost  gone.  And  only 
a  belt  of  grey  daylight  was  visible  in  the  cloud  banks  to 
the  south-west.  Half  way  up  to  the  camp  Wilder  paused 
and  gazed  out  over  the  ruffled  water,  seeking  to  discover 
any  sign  of  the  man’s  return  in  the  darkening  twilight. 
He  stood  beating  his  mitted  hands  while  Chilcoot  passed 
on  up  to  the  camp  fire. 

There  was  no  sign,  no  sound.  And  a  feeling  of  keen 
disappointment  took  possession  of  the  expectant  man. 
So  much  depended  on  Mike’s  return.  Under  ordinary 
circumstances  the  season  was  not  the  greatest  concern, 
and  Wilder  would  have  been  content  enough  to  wait.  But 
the  circumstances  were  by  no  means  ordinary.  There 
was  that  lying  back  of  his  mind  which  disturbed  him  in  a 
fashion  he  was  rarely  disturbed.  And  it  was  a  thought 
and  concern  he  had  imparted  to  no  one,  not  even  to  his 
loyal  partner,  Chilcoot. 

He  moved  on  up  to  the  camp,  and  the  keenness  of  his 
disappointment  displayed  itself  in  his  eyes,  and  in  the 
tone  of  his  voice  as  he  conveyed  the  result  of  his  search 
to  his  comrade. 

“Not  a  dam  sight  of  ’em,”  he  said  peevishly. 

He  had  halted  at  the  fire  over  which  Chilcoot  was  en¬ 
deavouring  to  encourage  some  warmth  into  his  chilled 
fingers.  He  removed  his  mitts  and  held  his  hands  to  the 
blaze. 


3°8 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


“I  was  kind  of  wondering,”  he  went  on,  “about  that 
boy,  Clarence.  Maybe  he’s  hit  up  against  things.  Maybe 

— Say — ” 

A  faint,  far-off  echo  came  down  stream.  It  was  a 
call.  A  familiar  cry  in  a  voice  both  men  promptly  recog¬ 
nised.  Chilcoot  grinned. 

“That’s  Mike,”  he  said.  Then  he  added :  “Sure  as 
hell.” 

Wilder  breathed  a  deep  sigh  of  relief. 

“I’m  glad.  I’m  mighty  thankful,”  he  exclaimed  with  a 
short  laugh.  “We’ll  be  away  to-morrow  after  all.” 

Chilcoot  eyed  his  companion  speculatively. 

“I  hadn’t  worried  fer  that,”  he  said.  “Guess  we  can’t 
make  Placer  in  open  weather.”  He  shrugged  a  pair  of 
shoulders  that  were  enormous  under  his  fur  parka.  “It’ll 
be  dead  winter  ’fore  we’re  haf  way.  It’ll  be  black  night 
in  two  weeks,  anyway.  The  big  river  don’t  freeze  right 
over  till  late  winter,  but  ther’ll  be  ice  floes  ’most  all  the 
way.  I  can’t  see  a  day  more  or  less  is  going  to  worrv  us  a 
thing.” 

“No.” 

Bill  was  searching  the  heart  of  the  fire. 

“The  Hekor  don’t  freeze  right  up  easy,”  he  went  on. 
“That’s  so.  But  it’ll  sure  be  black  night.”  Then  he  looked 
up,  and  Chilcoot  recognised  his  half  smile  of  contentment. 
“It  don’t  matter  anyway.  The  thing’s  worth  it.” 

“What  thing?” 

Bill  laughed. 

“Why  the  jump  we’re  making.” 

There  was  a  brief  pause.  Then  Chilcoot’s  eyes 
twinkled. 

“You  scared  of  the  winter  trail,  Bill?”  he  asked  quietly. 

“Not  a  thing.” 

The  older  man  nodded. 


A  WHITEMAN’S  PURPOSE 


309 

“It  would  ha’  been  the  first  time  in  your  life,”  he  said. 
“I’ve  seen  you  take  the  chances  of  a  crazy  man.” 


“Don’t  it  beat  Hell  ?” 

The  Irishman  had  listened  to  the  story  of  the  “strike” 
and  sat  raking  his  great  fingers  through  the  thick  stubble 
of  flaming  beard  he  had  developed,  and  grinned  first 
across  at  his  chief,  Bill  Wilder,  then  at  the  twinkling, 
deep-set  eyes  of  Chilcoot. 

They  were  all  gathered  about  the  fire,  that  centre  of 
everything  to  the  northern  man.  The  youth  Clarence  was 
sprawled  full  length  on  the  ground,  happy  in  the  thought 
that  he  was  playing  his  part  in  the  great  game  on  which 
these  men  were  engaged.  He  was  content  to  listen  while 
the  others  talked.  But  he  drank  in  every  word  with  the 
appetite  of  healthy  youth,  digesting  and  learning  as  his 
young  mind  so  ardently  desired. 

“An’  it’s  rich?  Full  o’  the  stuff?”  Mike’s  lips  almost 
smacked  as  he  persisted. 

“So  full  you’ll  get  a  nightmare  reckonin’  it.” 

Chilcoot  nodded  while  his  eyes  sparkled.  Mike  drew 
a  deep  breath.  The  two  summers  behind  them  looked 
like  a  happy  picnic  instead  of  the  months  of  wasted  en¬ 
deavour  they  had  seemed  to  his  impetuous  soul. 

“Ther’s  more  than  a  hundred  claims  on  it  we  know  of,” 
Bill  said  soberly.  “Maybe  ther’s  miles  of  it  up  that  queer, 
crazy  stream.  We  haven’t  worried  farther.  The  stakes 
are  in  fer  the  whole  of  our  bunch,  an’  the  folks  across  the 
water.  That’s  as  far  as  we’re  concerned.  We’re  beating 
it  to  Placer  to-morrow  to  register.  Say,”  he  went  on 
impressively,  “there’ll  be  a  rush  like  the  days  of  ’98,  and 
we  can’t  take  chances.  If  the  thing’s  like  what  I  guess 


3io 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


we'll  cheapen  gold  worse  than  the  Yukon  boom  did. 
Does  it  hit  you?" 

'‘Between  the  eyes."  Mike  laughed  out  of  his  boister¬ 
ous  feelings.  “We  ken  get  the  bunch  right  down,  an' 
get  a  dump  of  stuff  out  before  the  freeze-up,"  he  went  on 
eagerly.  “What’s  it  to  be?  A  pool  or  claim  work?" 

“Ther’s  goin’  to  be  no  pool.  An’  ther’s  goin’  to  be  no 
rake  over  till  spring."  Wilder’s  tone  was  decided,  and 
the  grin  died  out  of  the  Irishman’s  eyes.  “I  told  you 
we’re  takin’  no  chances.  Chilcoot  and  I  have  planned 
this  thing  right  out.  Of  the  three  best  claims  we’re  sure 
about,  one  is  yours.  But  you  don’t  pan  an  ounce  of  soil 
till  the  register’s  made,  and  you’ve  got  your  ‘brief.’  Then 
it’s  yours  on  your  own,  the  same  as  the  others  belong  to 
each  of  the  other  folk.  An’  you  can  work  how  you  darn 
please.  But  you  won’t  see  the  place,  even,  till  we  get 
right  back  from  Placer.  An’  the  boys  aren’t  hearing  a 
word  of  it  till  spring.  It’s  this  I  sent  Clarence,  here,  up 
to  get  you  around  for.  I  want  you  to  sit  tight,  right  here, 
till  we  get  back  with  the  whole  thing  fixed.  It’s  worth 
waiting  for,  Mike.  It’s  so  good  you  just  haven’t  figgers 
enough  in  your  fool  head  to  count  your  luck.  You’ll 
act  this  way,  boy.  I  promised  you  haf  a  million  dollars 
if  you  hit  back  to  Placer  without  a  colour.  That  still 
goes,  but  you  won’t  need  a  thing  from  me.  You’ll  play 
our  hand  right?" 

Mike’s  disappointment  was  all  the  keener  for  his  mer¬ 
curial  temperament,  but  he  nodded  readily  and  Wilder 
was  satisfied. 

“Sure  I’ll  play  it  right,  the  way  you  want  it.  But  I 
don’t  see  we  need  act  like  ther’  was  spooks  around  waitin’ 
to  jump  in  on  us  before  the  register’s  fixed." 

Wilder  smiled  back  at  the  protesting  man. 

“But  ther1  are,"  he  said.  “If  you’d  the  experience  I’ve 


A  WHITEMAN’S  PURPOSE 


3ii 

had  of  this  blamed  old  North  you’d  be  scared  to  death  for 
our  ‘strike.’  It’s  a  ghost-haunted  country  this,  and  most 
of  the  spooks  have  got  a  kind  of  wireless  of  their  own 
that  ’ud  beat  anything  we  Christian  folk  ever  heard  tell 
of.  Ther’s  six  months  of  winter  ahead,  and  most  of  that 
we’ll  be  on  the  trail,  or  fixing  things.  It  just  needs  one 
half-breed  pelt  hunter  to  get  wise  to  the  game  happening 
around,  or  a  stray  bunch  of  Euralian  murderers,  and  we’d 
have  haf  the  north  on  us  before  the  Commissioner  could 
sign  our  ‘briefs.’  No,  boy,  get  it  from  me,  and  just  sit 
around  till  daylight  comes  again,  an’  dream  of  the  hooch 
you’re  going  to  drink  to  the  luck  of  the  Kid.  It’s  the 
Kid’s  luck  that’s  handed  us  this  thing.  It’s  the  luck  her 
father  reckoned  was  to  be  hers.  And  by  no  sort  of  crazy 
act  are  we  going  to  queer  it.  I’m  taking  your  scow,  and 
beating  it  down  stream.  Clarence’ll  feel  like  gettin’  to 
home.” 

The  grinning  eyes  of  Mike  followed  the  tall  figure  of 
his  leader,  with  the  youth,  Clarence,  striding  beside  him, 
as  it  vanished  in  the  darkness  on  its  way  to  the  water’s 
edge.  And  as  they  passed  from  view  he  turned  to  the  man 
who  displayed  no  desire  to  quit  the  comfort  of  the  fire. 

“I’d  guessed  he’d  fallen  for  it  two  summers  back,”  he 
said.  “You  can  locate  it  with  both  eyes  shut,  an’  cotton 
batten  stuffed  in  your  brain  box.  That  gal  had  him  fast 
by  the  back  of  the  neck  on  sight.  The  Kid,  eh?  It’s  not 
Bill  Wilder’s  way  of  playing  safe  on  a  gold  ‘strike.’  That 
gal’s  got  him  scared  to  death  for  the  plum  he  guesses  to 
hand  her.  No,  sirree,”  he  went  on,  with  a  shake  of  his 
disreputable  head,  “the  Jezebels  o’  Placer  for  mine,  an’ 
a  bunch  o’  hooch  you  could  drown  a  battleship  in.  It’s 
easy  game  that  don’t  hand  you  a  nightmare,  if  it’s 
liable  to  empty  your  sack  o’  dust.  That  Kid !  What’s  he 
goin’  to  do?” 


312 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


Chilcoot  shrugged.  Mike  was  not  the  man  he  felt  like 
opening  out  to. 

“He  ain’t  crazy  enough  to — marry  her?”  Mike  went  on 
contemptuously.  “No.  He’s  no  fool  kid.” 

A  deep  flush  mounted  to  the  veteran’s  temples.  His 
deepset  eyes  sparkled  as  he  surveyed  the  other  through 
the  smoke  of  the  fire. 

“You  best  ask  Bill  the  things  you  want  to  know,”  he  said 
coldly.  “It  don’t  matter  what  you  think.  It  don’t  mat¬ 
ter  what  any  darn  fool  thinks.  Bill’s  mostly  spent  his 
life  playin’  the  game  as  he  sees  it.  An’  I  guess  he’ll  go 
right  on  doin’  the  same.  And  the  game  he  plays  is  a  right 
game.  An’  he’s  as  ready  to  hand  it  out  to  a  hooch-soused 
no-account,  as  he  is  to  a  gal  with  a  dandy  pair  of  blue 
eyes.” 


It  had  been  a  quiet,  almost  subdued  evening  at  the 
homestead.  Somehow  Bill  Wilder’s  manner  had  been 
graver  than  was  its  wont,  and  these  simple  folk,  who, 
since  his  re-discovery  of  Marty  Le  Gros’  gold  “strike,” 
had  so  quickly  come  to  regard  him  as  something  in  the 
nature  of  the  arbiter  of  their  destinies,  had  been  clearly 
affected  by  his  change  of  manner. 

He  had  shared  their  supper,  and  listened  to  Clarence’s 
story  of  his  search  for  Red  Mike.  He  had  found  it  easier 
to  listen  than  to  talk.  Hesther,  too,  had  spent  her  time  in 
listening,  while  the  children  chattered  all  unconscious  of 
the  real  mood  of  their  elders. 

For  the  Kid  it  was  a  time  of  quiet  happiness,  marred 
only  by  the  thought  that  with  the  first  streak  of  brief  day¬ 
light  on  the  morrow  this  man  would  be  speeding  on  his 
race  with  the  season  to  ensure  her  own,  and  the  good 
fortunes  of  all  those  she  loved. 


A  WHITEMAN’S  PURPOSE 


313 


The  girl  looked  forward  to  the  coming  months  of  win¬ 
ter  darkness  without  any  glimmer  of  that  happy,  con¬ 
tented  philosophy  which  had  always  been  hers.  Looking 
ahead  the  whole  prospect  seemed  so  dark  and  empty.  The 
days  since  Bill’s  coming  to  the  Caribou  had  been  so 
overflowing,  so  thrilling  with  happy  events  and  delirious 
joy  that  the  contrasting  prospect  was  only  the  more  de¬ 
plorably  void.  And  with  all  the  untamed  spirit  in  her 
she  rebelled  at  the  coming  parting. 

Yet  she  understood  the  necessity.  She  realised  the 
enormous  stake  he  was  playing  for  on  their  behalf,  and 
so  she  was  determined  that  no  act  or  word  of  hers  should 
hinder  him.  There  had  been  moments  when  the  impulse 
to  plead  permission  to  accompany  him  was  almost  irre¬ 
sistible.  It  filled  her  heart  with  delighted  dreams  of 
displaying,  for  his  appreciation,  her  skill  and  sturdy  nerve 
on  the  winter  trail.  She  felt  that  for  all  her  sex  she 
could  easily  accept  more  than  her  due  share  of  the  labour, 
and  could  increase  his  comfort  a  hundredfold.  But  in 
sober  moments  she  knew  it  could  not  be.  If  nothing  else 
the  woman  instinct  in  her  forbade  it. 

The  girl  never  for  one  moment  paused  to  question  her 
feelings.  Why  should  she?  The  life  she  knew,  the  life 
she  had  always  lived,  had  left  her  free  of  every  convention 
which  encompasses  a  woman’s  life  in  civilization.  Bill 
Wilder  had  leapt  into  her  life  as  her  dream  man.  He 
was  her  all  in  all,  the  whole  focus  of  her  simple  heart. 
Why  then  should  she  deny  it?  Why  then  should  she 
attempt  to  blind  herself?  There  had  been  no  word  of 
love  between  them.  It  almost  seemed  unnecessary.  She 
loved  his  steady  grey  eyes,  with  their  calm  smile.  She 
revelled  in  his  unfailing,  kindly  confidence.  His  spoken 
word  was  always  sufficient,  backed  as  it  was  by  his  great 
figure,  so  full  of  manhood’s  youthful  strength.  Then  he 


3H 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


was  of  her  own  country.  That  vast  Northland  which 
claimed  their  deepest  affection  for  all  its  terror.  Oh, 
yes,  she  loved  him  with  her  whole  soul  and  body.  And 
her  love  inspired  the  surging  rebellion  which  her  sturdy 
sense  refused  outlet  or  display. 

No.  She  had  long  since  learned  patience.  It  was  the 
thing  her  country  taught  her  as  surely  as  anything  on 
earth.  Besides,  the  planning  was  all  Bill’s.  Every  detail 
had  been  weighed  and  measured  by  him.  Even  it  was 
his  veto  that  had  been  set  on  her  own  journey  for  trade. 
He  had  urged  its  abandonment,  demanding  both  her  and 
Usak’s  presence  on  the  river  during  his  absence.  So  it 
must  be. 

For  the  girl  this  last  evening  together  passed  all  too 
swiftly.  Much  of  the  time,  while  the  others  chattered, 
she  remained  scarcely  heeding  sufficiently  to  respond  in¬ 
telligently  to  the  occasional  appeals  made  to  her.  And 
then,  when  the  time  came  for  Bill’s  going,  she  rose  quickly 
from  her  seat  beside  the  stove  amd  slipped  her  fur  parka 
over  her  buckskin  clothing.  She  regarded  the  privilege 
she  contemplated  as  her  right. 

Hesther  observed,  but  wisely  refrained  from  comment. 
But  her  children  were  less  merciful.  Perse  grinned 
impishly. 

“Wher’  you  goin’,  Kid?”  he  demanded. 

The  ready  mother  instantly  leapt  to  the  girl’s  assistance. 

“Lightin’  Bill  to  the  landin’,”  she  said  sharply.  “  Which 
the  scallawag  menfolk  around  this  shanty  don’t  seem 
yearnin’  to  do.” 

“She  don’t  need  to,”  Clarence  protested. 

“Don’t  she?”  The  mother  laughed.  “You’re  too  late, 
boy.  Guess  Bill,  here,  ’ud  hate  to  be  lit  by  folks  who 
need  reminding  the  thing’s  due.  You  boys  beat  it  to  your 
blankets.  Kid’ll  see  Bill  on  his  way.” 


A  WHITEMAN’S  PURPOSE 


315 


The  man  was  ready.  He  bulked  tremendously  under 
the  thick  fur  of  his  outer  clothing.  He  pulled  his  fur 
cap  low  down  on  his  head,  while  the  Kid  lit  the  queer  old 
hurricane  lamp  with  a  burning  brand  from  the  stove. 
Hesther’s  diminutive  figure  was  further  dwarfed  beside 
him  as  she  prepared  to  make  her  farewell. 

“It’ll  be  quite  a  piece  before  you  get  along  again,”  she 
said,  in  a  voice  that  was  not  quite  steady.  And  the  man 
laughed  shortly  for  all  there  seemed  no  reason. 

“I  just  can’t  figger  how  soon  before  I’m  along  back,”  he 
said.  “I’d  like  to  fix  it,  but  it  wouldn’t  be  reasonable 
anyway.  You  see,  mam,”  he  went  on,  his  gaze  turned  on 
the  girl  who  shut  the  lamp  with  a  slam,  “Gold  Com¬ 
missioners  have  their  ways,  and  sort  of  make  their  own 
time.  And  though  I  reckon  to  pull  some  wires  I  can’t 
say  when  I’ll  get  through.  And  then  ther’s  always  the 
winter  trail.  But  I’ll  sure  be  along  back  before  the 
spring  break.” 

His  gaze  came  back  to  the  little  woman  who  was 
regarding  him  with  wistful  eyes  of  affection,  as  though 
he  were  one  of  her  own  boys,  and  he  thrust  out  a  hand 
which  was  instantly  clasped  between  both  her  rough  palms. 

“I  just  got  to  be  back  then,”  he  went  on.  “And  when  I 
come  you  can  gamble  I  got  things  fixed  so  tight  you’ll 
only  need  to  sit  around  and  act  the  way  I  tell  you.”  He 
smiled  down  into  the  misty  brown  eyes.  “You  keep  a 
right  good  fire,  mam,”  he  said  gently.  “Ther’s  no  trouble 
for  you  while  I’m  gone.  Mike’s  not  a  thing  but  a  night¬ 
mare  to  look  at,  but  he’s  got  clear  orders  while  Chilcoot 
and  I  are  on  the  trail.  And  he’ll  put  ’em  through  to  the 
limit.  You  won’t  need  for  a  thing  he  can  hand  you. 
So  long.” 

The  mist  in  the  mother’s  eyes  had  developed  into  real 
tears,  and  they  overflowed  down  her  worn  cheeks. 


316 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


“God  bless  you,  Bill,”  she  stammered,  as  she  released 
his  hand  with  obvious  reluctance.  “I’ll  sure  do  my  best. 
I  just  can’t  say  the  things  in  here,”  she  went  on,  clasping 
her  thin  bosom  with  both  hands.  Then  she  struggled  to 
smile.  “Guess  we’ll  all  be  countin’  up  till  you  get  back, 
an’  it  can’t  be  a  day  sooner  than  we’re  all  wishin’.  So 
long,  boy.” 

Bill  turned  to  the  elder  children  who  had  remained  to 
speed  him  on  his  way  and  nodded  comprehensively. 

“So  long,  folks,”  he  said.  “See  you  again.” 

He  passed  quickly  to  the  door,  where  the  Kid  was 
awaiting  him,  and  moved  out.  And  a  final  glance  back 
revealed  Hesther  framed  in  the  open  doorway,  with  the 
yellow  light  of  the  room  behind  her,  silhouetting  her 
fragile  figure,  as  she  waved  a  farewell  in  the  direction  of 
the  swinging  lantern. 


The  Kid’s  pretty  blue  eyes  were  raised  to  the  smiling 
face  looking  down  into  hers.  It  was  a  moment  tense  with 
feeling.  It  was  that  moment  of  parting  when  she  felt 
that  all  sense  of  joy,  all  sense  of  happiness  was  to  be 
snuffed  right  out  of  her  life.  And  the  responsive  smile 
she  forced  to  her  eyes  was  perilously  near  to  tears. 

The  lantern  in  her  hand  revealed  the  canoe  hauled  up 
against  the  crude  landing.  Its  rays  found  reflection  in 
the  dark  spread  of  water  where  a  skin  of  ice  was  already 
forming,  seeking  to  embed  the  frail  craft  at  its  mooring. 

There  was  little  enough  relief  from  the  darkness  under 
the  heavy  night  clouds.  There  was  no  visible  moon. 
That  was  screened  behind  the  stormy  threat,  yet  it  con¬ 
trived  a  faint  twilight  over  the  world.  Not  a  single  star 
was  to  be  seen  anywhere  and  the  ghostly  northern  lights 
were  deeply  curtained. 


A  WHITEMAN’S  PURPOSE 


3i7 


Now,  in  these  last  moments  of  parting,  the  youth  in 
Bill  Wilder  was  once  more  surging  with  impulse.  As  he 
gazed  down  into  the  bravely  smiling  eyes  a  hundred 
desires  were  beating  in  his  brain.  And  he  yearned 
desperately  to  fling  every  caution  to  the  winds  and 
abandon  himself  to  the  love  which  left  him  without  a 
thought  but  of  the  delight  with  which  the  Kid’s  presence 
filled  him. 

Somehow  it  seemed  to  his  big  nature  a  wanton  cruelty 
that  this  girl  should  be  charged  with  the  cares  of  a 
struggle  for  existence  in  this  far-flung  northern  wilder¬ 
ness.  Perhaps  as  great  a  feeling  as  any  that  stirred  him 
at  this  moment  was  a  desire  to  relieve  her  of  the  last 
shadow  of  anxiety  in  the  monstrous  season  about  to 
descend  upon  them.  And  yet  he  was  compelled  to  leave 
her  to  face  alone  the  very  hardships  he  would  have  saved 
her  from.  And  this  with  an  acute  understanding  of  the 
uncertainty  of  the  outcome  of  the  thing  he  had  planned 
to  accomplish  in  the  darkness  of  the  long  winter  night. 
For  once  in  his  life  his  usual  confidence  was  undermined 
by  curious  forebodings.  But  he  gave  no  outward  sign, 
while  he  listened  to  the  urgent  little  story  the  girl  had  to 
tell  of  the  Indian  Usak. 

“He’s  a  queer  feller,”  he  said  thoughtfully.  Then  he 
added:  “You  told  him  clear  out  ther’s  to  be  no  trading 
trip  to  Placer?  An’  still  he’s  making  ready  a  trip?” 

The  girl  laughed  shortly.  There  was  no  mirth  in  it. 
It  was  a  little  nervous  expression  of  feeling. 

“You  just  can’t  get  back  of  that  feller’s  mind,”  she 
said.  “Usak’s  dead  obstinate.  He’s  obstinate  as  a  young 
bull  caribou  when  he  feels  like  it.  It  was  when  I  told 
him  it  was  your  plan  we  shouldn’t  make  Placer.  I  sort 
of  read  it  in  his  queer  black  eyes,  even  though  he  took 
the  order  without  a  kick.  Maybe  he  was  disappointed. 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


318 

You  see,  he’s  got  that  swell  black  fox.  Next  day  I 
found  him  fixing  for  a  trip  on  his  own.  I  asked  him 
right  away  about  it,  an’  his  answer  left  me  worried  an’ 
guessing.  ‘That  all  right,’  he  said,  ‘I  know  us  not  mak 
Placer.  So.  Then  I  mak  one  big  trip.’  ” 

The  girl’s  imitation  of  the  Indian’s  broken  talk  brought 
a  deepening  smile  to  Bill’s  eyes  for  all  the  concern  her 
story  inspired. 

“I  told  him  right  away  you  guessed  it  best  for  him  to 
stop  around,”  she  went  on.  “An’  it  was  then  he  got 
mulish.  He  snapped  me  like  an  angry  wolf.  ‘Who  this 
whiteman  say  I  not  mak  big  trip?  Him  not  all  thing, 
this  man.  No.  I  mak  big  trip.’  He  went  right  on 
fixing  his  outfit  after  that  and  wouldn’t  say  another  word. 
He’s  right  up  ther’  in  his  shanty  now.  I  saw  the  lamp 
burning  as  we  came  down.  He  means  to  go  his  trip, 
and - ” 

“Nothing’s  goin’  to  stop  him.”  The  man’s  jaws  shut 
with  a  snap.  “He’s  surely  got  a  mule  beat.” 

He  remained  buried  in  deep  thought  for  some  moments 
while  the  girl  watched  him,  wondering  anxiously  at  his 
interpretation  of  Usak’s  attitude.  She  was  filled  with 
an  unease  she  could  not  shake  off. 

Quite  suddenly  Bill’s  manner  underwent  a  change.  He 
laughed  quietly,  and  his  gaze,  which  had  passed  to  the 
dark  river  came  again  to  the  troubled  face  beside  him. 

“Just  don’t  worry  a  thing,  Kid,”  he  said,  with  an 
assumption  of  lightness  which  drew  a  responsive  sigh  of 
relief.  “It  don’t  matter.  Ther’s  the  boys  around,  and 
Mike,  and  my  bunch.  Usak’s  full  of  his  own  notions, 
an’  it’s  best  not  to  drive  him  too  hard.  If  he  guesses  to 
make  a  trip,  just  let  him  beat  it.  No.  Don’t  you  worry 
a  thing.” 

“No.” 


A  WHITEMAN’S  PURPOSE 


319 


The  Kid  sighed  again.  And  the  man  understood  that 
the  comfort  he  had  desired  for  her  had  been  achieved. 

Again  came  his  quiet  laugh. 

“Anyway  we  can’t  worry  with  Usak — to-night.” 

The  girl  shook  her  head.  In  a  moment  she  had 
forgotten  the  Indian  and  remembered  only  the  thing  about 
to  happen.  It  was  their  farewell  that  had  yet  to  be 
spoken,  and  this  man  would  be  speeding  up  the  darkened 
river  to  his  camp,  and  it  would  be  months — long,  dreary 
months  before  she  would  witness  again  those  calm 
smiling  grey  eyes,  and  hear  again  the  voice  that  somehow 
made  the  heaviest  burdens  of  her  life  on  the  river  some¬ 
thing  that  was  a  joy  to  contemplate.  The  desolation  of 
his  going  appalled  her  now  that  the  moment  of  parting 
had  actually  arrived. 

“Gee!  It’s  going  to  be  a  long  night  to — Spring.” 

Bill  spoke  with  a  surge  of  feeling  he  could  no  longer 
deny. 

The  girl  remained  silent,  and  her  blue  eyes  sought  the 
dark  course  of  the  river  in  self-defence. 

“What’ll  you  be  doing — all  the  time?” 

Bill’s  voice  had  lowered.  There  was  a  wonderful  depth 
of  tenderness  in  its  tone. 

“Waitin’ — mostly.” 

It  was  a  little  wistful,  a  little  desperate.  For  the  first 
time  the  girl’s  voice  had  become  unsteady. 

Bill  drew  a  deep  breath. 

“Waiting?” 

He  turned  swiftly  in  the  shadow  that  hid  them  up. 
His  eyes  were  no  longer  calm.  They  were  hot  with  those 
passions  which  are  only  the  deeper  and  stronger  for  the 
strong  man’s  restraint.  Suddenly  he  thrust  a  hand  into 
the  bosom  of  his  parka  and  withdrew  the  folded  plans  of 
Marty  Le  Gros’  gold  “strike.” 


320 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


“Here,  Kid,”  he  said  urgently.  “You  best  have  these. 
They’re  yours  anyway  whatever  happens.  You  never  can 
guess  in  this  queer  old  country.  Take  ’em  in  case.  I’ll 
sure  get  right  back  in  the  spring.  If  I  don’t  you’ll  just 
have  to  figger — I  can’t.” 

He  waited  for  the  girl  to  take  the  paper.  But  she 
only  gazed  round  on  him  with  eyes  that  had  widened  in 
.  real  terror. 

“You  mean  you’ll  be — dead?”  There  was  an  instant’s 
pause  as  though  the  thought  had  paralysed  her.  Then  a 
piteous  cry  broke  from  her.  “Oh,  no,  no,  no  !”  she  cried. 
“You’ll  come  back,  Bill.  You  won’t  let  a  thing  kill  you. 
I  want  you,  Bill.  You’ll  come  back  to  me.  Oh,  say  you 
will.” 

It  was  a  distracted  face  that  was  raised  to  his  with 
widened  eyes  that  had  filled  with  tears. 

“Would  it  hurt  if— I  didn’t?” 

The  man  had  moved  a  step  nearer. 

Just  for  one  instant  the  tearful  eyes  stared  up  at  him. 
Then  the  threatened  storm  broke.  The  lantern  clattered 
to  the  ground  and  extinguished  itself,  and  the  girl’s  face 
was  buried  in  her  mitted  hands. 

The  sight  of  her  distress  was  unendurable.  The  man 
no  longer  had  power  to  deny  himself.  Impulse  leapt 
from  under  all  restraint.  That  wonderful  impulse  that 
is  the  very  essence  of  the  human  soul,  the  inspiration  of 
all  life.  'He  caught  her  up  in  his  fur-clad  arms,  and  held 
her  crushed  against  a  heart  leaping  madly  with  the 
triumph  of  glowing  manhood. 


The  grey  daylight  was  still  faint  over  the  south-eastern 
horizon.  It  was  growing  slowly,  transforming  the 


A  WHITEMAN’S  PURPOSE 


321 


darkened  world  under  a  grey  twilight  that  was  hard  set 
to  dispel  the  night  shadows.  Still  it  was  daylight,  and 
just  sufficient  to  serve  as  a  reminder  that  behind  the  drear 
Arctic  winter  lay  the  promise  of  ultimate  golden  day. 

The  teeming  rapids  lay  ahead,  a  cauldron  of  furiously 
boiling  waters,  and  away  beyond  them  the  stately  course 
of  the  Hekor  River.  To  the  south  lay  the  wide  woodland 
bluff  that  had  witnessed  the  years-old  tragedy  of  Marty 
Le  Gros’  home,  flinging  deep  shadows  across  the  turbulent 
waters.  While  to  the  north,  far  as  the  eye  could  see,  lay 
the  low  lichen-grown  land  rollers  inclining  gently  away 
to  the  purple  distance. 

Bill  Wilder  and  Chilcoot  had  pulled  in  to  the  northern 
bank.  Their  two  light  canoes  were  moored  just  at  the 
head  of  the  narrow,  deep,  swift  channel  down  to  the 
greater  river,  which  was  the  only  open  passage  through 
the  boiling  rapids.  They  were  made  fast  to  an  up-stand¬ 
ing  boulder,  and  the  men  were  afoot  on  the  shore,  gazing 
down  at  their  outfit,  and  engaged  in  earnest  talk. 

Chilcoot  was  listening  for  the  moment  while  his 
thoughtful  eyes  searched  anywhere  but  in  the  direction  of 
the  purposeful  face  of  his  friend.  And  Wilder  was 
talking  rapidly  and  with  a  decision  that  forbade  all 
protest. 

“Old  friend,  ther’s  just  one  thing  I  don’t  want  from 
you  now,”  he  said.  “That’s  any  sort  of  old  kick.  Maybe 
I’m  handing  you  reason  enough  to  set  you  kicking  like 
a  crazy  steer.  But  you  won’t  do  it,  boy,  for  the  sake  of 
all  the  years  we’ve  ground  at  the  queer  old  mill  of  life 
together.  You’re  the  one  feller,  the  only  feller,  I  look 
to  to  help  me  along  when  I’m  set  neck  deep  in  a  tight 
hole,  and  if  you  fail  me  I’ll  have  to  squeal  on  the  thing 
above  all  others  that  seems  right  to  me.  I  gave  a  promise, 
and  I’ve  got  to  make  that  promise  good  if  it  beats  the 


322 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


life  out  of  me,  and  robs  me  of  all  that  little  gal  back 
there  means  to  me.  I’m  going  right  up  the  big  river  to 
the  Valley  of  the  Fire  Hills,  while  you  get  right  on 
down  to  Placer,  and  pull  every  darn  wire  in  my  name 
and  your  own  to  fix  the  ‘strike’  right.  Later  I’m 
gambling  to  get  along  down  and  join  you,  if  this  darn 
country  don’t  beat  the  life  out  of  me.  I’ve  got  to  go  if 
hell  freezes  over.  Ther’s  a  helpless  woman,  and  a  blinded 
man  right  up  there,  and  if  I  don’t  make  ’em  first  they’ll 
be  murdered  by  a  savage  who’s  just  stark  mad  to 
slaughter  ’em.  They’re  the  folk  I  got  the  plans  of  the 
‘strike’  from.  And  I  got  it  on  a  sort  of  promise  I’d  see 
no  harm  got  around  their  way  from  the  feller  who  hates 
’em  so  he’d  beat  his  way  out  of  the  gates  of  hell  to  get 
after  ’em.” 

“Usak.” 

The  bright  eyes  of  the  older  man  searched  his  friend’s. 

Bill  nodded. 

“An’  that’s  why  you  split  the  outfit  into  two  boats  ?” 

“Sure.” 

“Is  he  settin’  right  out?  You  got  to  beat  him  on  the 
river?” 

There  was  sharp  doubt  in  Chilcoot’s  question. 

Bill  nodded  again. 

“Yes.”  Then  he  laughed  mirthlessly.  “I  got  to  beat 
it  up  that  river  as  if  all  the  legions  of  hell  were  hard  on 
my  heels.  Say,  boy,  I  got  to  beat  the  hardest  trail  man 
around  the  North,  with  a  crazy  eye  running  over  levelled 
sights.  Pve  got  to  beat  him  and  I’ve  got  to  beat  the 
winter  night.  I  just  don’t  know  a  thing  how  it’s  to  be 
done,  but  if  I  don’t  do  it  I’ll  have  broke  my  fool  word — 
which  ’ud  break  me.” 

Chilcoot’s  gaze  was  turned  up  the  river  in  the  direction 
of  the  queer  homestead  whose  simple  dwellers  had  flung 


A  WHITEMAN’S  PURPOSE 


323 

them  their  farewell  as  they  passed  down  on  their  journey 
in  the  darkness. 

“An’  that  little  gal,  Bill?”  he  said  slowly.  “That  little 
gal  you  reckon  to  take  right  out  of  here,  an’  marry,  an’ 
educate,  an’  set  around  in  a  land  of  sunshine  to  raise 
your  dandy  kids.  Ain’t  ther’  a  promise  there  that  it’ll 
break  you  to  fail  in  ?  Are  you  feelin’  like  makin’  a  great 
give-up  for  lousy  scum  of — Euralians?  Are  you?” 

“There’s  sure  a  promise  there,  boy,  I’ll  make  good. 
If  I  don’t  it’ll  only  be  I’m  dead.” 

The  old  man  shook  his  head. 

“I  jest  don’t  get  the  argument,”  he  said  in  his  blunt 
fashion.  “If  I  didn’t  know  you  I’d  say  you’re  dead  crazy. 
But  you  ain’t,”  he  went  on,  with  another  shake  of  the 
head.  “Your  promise  is  the  biggest  thing  in  your  life, 
bigger  than  that  Kid’s  happiness.  Maybe  you  just  can’t 
help  it.  Maybe  none  of  us  ken  help  the  things  we  are. 
I  ain’t  goin’  to  kick.  It  ain’t  my  way  with  you.  I’m 
goin’  right  on  down  to  Placer,  an’  I’m  goin’  to  put  things 
through,  same  as  if  you  was  along.  An’  I’ll  wait  fer  you 
to  come  along  till  I  know  you  can’t  get.  Then  I’ll  get 
back  to  here,  an’  see  the  Kid,  an’  her  folks  get  the  thing 
you  fancy  for  them,  an’  I’ll  see  ’em  along  their  trail 
till  they  can  handle  their  own  play.  That  goes,  Bill. 
Guess  it  goes  all  the  time  with  me.” 

“I  knew.” 

Wilder’s  real  acknowledgment  was  in  the  faint  smile 
that  shone  in  his  eyes.  There  was  no  attempt  to  find  words 
to  express  himself.  And  anyway  with  Chilcoot  there 
was  no  need. 

Chilcoot  gazed  down  at  the  swaying  boats. 

“Will  we  beat  it?”  he  said,  and  turned  and  glanced 
down  the  swift  stream. 

“We  best.” 


324 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


It  was  then  the  older  man  voiced  something  of  the 
real  feeling  that  so  deeply  stirred  his  rough  heart. 

“You  know,  Bill,  ther’s  things  in  life  make  a  feller 
wish  they  weren’t.  You’re  bug  on  a  promise,  an’  it’s 
the  thing  that’s  left  you  the  feller  you  are  in  other  folks’ 
minds.  I’d  make  any  old  promise,  so  it  suited  me,  to 
folks  I  ain’t  worried  about.  An’  I  wouldn’t  lie  awake  o’ 
nights  breakin’  it.  But  I  ain’t  any  sort  o’  high  notions. 
Japs — Euralians?”  he  snorted,  “Why,  I’d  promise  ’em 
the  earth  with  a  dandy  barbed  wire  fence  set  all  round  it 
to  get  the  thing  I  wanted  from  ’em.  I’d - ” 

“Not  if  you’d  seen  a  queer  little  woman  whose  worst 
crime  was  giving  up  her  life  nursing  a  blinded  devil  of  a 
murdering  Euralian  husband,  and  was  nigh  crazy  that 
some  feller  was  coming  along  to  rob  her  of  his  life.  Man, 
the  sight  made  me  sweat  pity.  If  I  can  save  that  poor 
soul  that  much,  why — I  want  to  do  it.” 

Bill  sighed  and  passed  a  hand  across  his  broad  brow. 

“It’s  no  sort  of  self-righteousness  with  me,  boy,”  he 
went  on.  “I  just  won’t  know  an  easy  moment  if  I  don’t 
do  everything  in  my  power  to  beat  that  crazy  Indian. 
Come  on.  We’ll  get  right  on.  We’ll  clear  these  rapids 
and  part  the  other  side.” 

He  moved  hurriedly  down  to  the  water’s  edge  and 
began  to  cast  the  moorings  adrift.  Chilcoot  held  the 
canoes  ready.  In  a  few  moments  both  had  taken  their 
places,  and  the  thrusting  paddles  still  held  the  little  vessels 
against  the  stream. 

Bill  suddenly  held  out  a  hand  from  which  the  mitt  had 
been  removed,  and  Chilcoot  gripped  it  forcefully. 

“We’ll  shake  right  here,  old  pard,”  Bill  said  quietly. 
“When  we  get  below  we’ll  be  full  up  keeping  clear  of  the 
popple.  You  got  everything  clear.  An’  ther’s  nothing  on 


A  WHITEMAN’S  PURPOSE  325 

the  river  to  beat  you.  I’ll  be  glad  to  have  your  wish  of 
luck.” 

Their  hands  fell  apart. 

“You  sure  have  it,  Bill,  all  the  luck  that’s  always  yours 
rolled  right  up  into  one.” 

Chilcoot  nodded  and  his  eyes  sparkled  with  real  feeling. 
“So  long,”  he  cried. 

“So  long.” 

Bill’s  farewell  came  ringing  back  as  his  little  craft  shot 
out  into  the  stream  under  the  plunging  stroke  of  his 
paddle. 


CHAPTER  XIV 
a  Whiteman's  word 

The  grey  dawn  yielded  to  the  many  hues  of  the  sunrise. 
For  the  moment  a  cloudless  azure  dome  smiled  down 
upon  a  world  with  a  soft  crystal- white  carpet  outspread. 
For  days  the  temperature  had  hovered  about  zero,  and 
ice  had  formed  upon  the  waterways  with  that  fierce 
rapidity  which  the  northern  man  knows  so  well.  Its 
frigid  grip  was  reaching  in  every  direction  seeking  to 
seal  the  world  under  iron  bonds. 

But  the  Valley  of  the  Fire  Hills  was  dripping  and 
steaming.  Everywhere  the  snow  was  melting,  and  the 
dark  waters  of  the  little  river  flowed  smoothly  on  still 
free  from  the  smallest  trace  of  ice.  The  temperature  was 
well  above  freezing,  for  the  terrestrial  furnaces  of  the 
blackened  hills  were  banked  and  glowing. 

The  valley  was  dense  with  a  fog  of  steam.  It  was  a 
ghostly  world  without  shape  or  form.  A  blind  world 
with  only  the  river  bank  to  guide  the  adventurer  through 
its  heart.  There  was  no  sound  of  life  for  all  the  coming 
of  the  pitiful  light  of  the  briefest  day.  The  world  was 
still,  remote,  bewildering. 

Yet  life  was  there;  staunch,  indomitable  life.  It  was 
there  with  purpose,  simple,  unwavering,  and  no  qualm  or 
doubt  marred  the  clarity  of  its  resolution.  A  boat,  a 
small  whiteman-built  canoe,  was  moving  up  the  eastern 

326 


A  WHITEMAN’S  WORD 


327 

bank  of  the  stream,  feeling  groping,  taking  every  chance 
so  that  it  made  its  final  destination. 

With  the  first  lift  of  the  sun  above  the  horizon  a  cur¬ 
rent  of  air  stirred  the  fog,  and  a  cold  breath  shot  through 
the  tepid  air.  It  came  and  passed.  Then  it  came  again 
with  added  force.  It  was  low  on  the  ground  and  the  fog 
lifted.  Swift  and  keen  it  pursued  its  advantage,  and  the 
blinding  mist  thinned,  and  a  dull  sheen  of  the  risen  sun 
replaced  the  cold  grey.  The  wind  increased.  It  bit 
fiercely  as  it  swept  down  the  heated  valley.  And  in  a 
moment,  it  seemed,  out  of  the  bewildering  fog  there  ap¬ 
peared  the  graceful  outline  of  the  nosing  canoe. 

Bill  Wilder  breathed  a  sigh  of  relief.  At  last  the  scales 
had  fallen  from  before  his  eyes,  and  his  way  lay  open  to 
him.  Instantly  his  paddle  dipped,  and  his  boat  shot  out 
into  midstream.  It  leapt  forward  under  the  mighty 
thrusts  of  his  arms,  and  as  it  raced  on  a  fervent  prayer 
went  up  that  the  wind  might  hold  and  increase  in 
strength. 


The  canoe  lay  moored  at  the  old  log  landing.  There 
had  been  no  hesitation.  No  doubt  had  been  entertained 
for  its  security.  Wilder  had  left  it  to  such  chances  as 
might  befall,  his  only  means  of  return  to  the  outer  world, 
while  he  made  his  way  over  the  snow-slush  to  the  shades 
of  the  woodlands  surrounding  the  secret  habitation  that 
was  his  goal. 


Half  way  through  the  woods  the  thing  Wilder  looked 
for  came  to  pass.  Eyes  and  ears  were  keenly  alert.  He 
had  realised  that  his  approach  would  be  observed.  That 
seeing  eyes,  faithful  to  the  service  of  the  woman’s  blinded 


328 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


charge,  would  be  unfailing  in  their  watch.  The  terror 
he  had  once  witnessed  in  them  had  been  sufficient  to  warn 
him  that  her  life  was  comparable  to  that  of  a  vigilant 
watchdog,  everlastingly  searching  for  the  approach  of 
the  dark,  avenging  figure  that  hypnotized  her  with  the 
horror  of  its  return. 

The  diminutive  figure  of  the  Japanese  woman  came 
hurriedly  to  meet  him  from  her  hiding  somewhere 
screened  amidst  the  dull  green  foliage  of  these  northern 
woods.  She  stood  before  him,  her  slanting  black  eves 
widely  gazing,  and  her  thin,  lined  face  eagerly  demanding 
in  its  expression  of  scarcely  suppressed  agitation. 

Crysa  began  at  once.  She  had  no  fear  of  this  white- 
man.  But  she  realised  that  his  coming  had  to  do  with 
her  safety  and  the  safety  of  her  charge.  His  promise  had 
been  her  comfort,  her  most  treasured  memory. 

“You  give  him  the  paper?”  she  said,  as  though  no 
space  of  time  had  elapsed  since  their  last  meeting,  and 
the  memory  of  every  word  then  spoken  was  as  fresh  in 
her  mind  as  though  their  meeting  had  occurred  only  the 
day  before.  “You  give  him  this  thing?  And  now  you 
come  that  I  may  know  it  is  so?  And  Usak  is  satisfied? 
Oh,  yes.  You  come  to  say  that  thing?  There  is  no  more 
fear?  None?  I  sleep,  I  eat,  I  know  peace.  Usak  will 
not  come?” 

Wilder  gripped  himself  before  this  poor  creature’s 
heart-breaking  appeal.  He  knew  he  must  dash  her  last 
hope,  and  hurl  her  again  to  that  despair  which  had  beset 
her  so  long.  It  was  useless  to  attempt  to  soften  the  facts. 
His  resolve  was  clear  in  his  mind.  He  shook  his  head. 

“Nothing  will  satisfy  him,”  he  said  sombrely,  “but  the 
life  of  your  man.  He’s  on  his  way  now,  I  guess.  But 
I  got  away  first.  I  came  right  along  up  to  get  you  folks 
away  to  safety.  I  don’t  reckon  to  know  how  you’re  fixed 


A  WHITEMAN’S  WORD 


329 


for  a  quick  get-away.  But  you  both  got  to  make  it  right 
now,  or  Usak’ll  be  along  and  kill  you  both  up.  Maybe  I 
can  get  you  right  out  of  the  country  back  to  your  own 
folk.  That’s  how  I  figger.  But  if  I’m  to  do  that  you 
need  to  beat  it  down  the  river  with  me — now.  I  came 
because  of  my  promise.  See?  I’m  here  with  a  white- 
man’s  word  to  do  the  best  I  know.  You’ve  got  to  take 
me  to  Ukisama,  and  both  of  you  need  to  make  up  your 
minds  right  away.  Money  don’t  need  to  worry  you. 
Only  outfit  for  the  journey  along  down  to  Placer. 
Well?” 

While  he  was  speaking  the  woman’s  face  was  a  study 
in  emotions.  With  his  first  words  the  urgent  hope  fell 
from  her  in  one  tragic  flash.  There  were  no  tears.  But 
panic  closed  down  upon  her  in  a  staggering  contrast  to 
her  hope  of  the  moment  before.  The  dreadful  fear  she 
was  enduring  left  her  lips  moving.  She  followed  the 
man’s  words,  as  though  she  was  repeating  them  the  more 
surely  to  impress  them  upon  her  staggered  faculties.  But 
a  measure  of  comfort  seemed  to  come  to  her  as  he  pro¬ 
pounded  his  purpose  for  their  safety.  And  a  desperate 
sort  of  calm  helped  her  as  he  made  his  final  demand. 

“You  come  with  me,”  she  cried  at  once.  “I  take  you 
to  Hela.  You  say  all  this  thing.  I,  too,  say  much. 
Maybe  he  go.  I  not  know.  Come.” 

And  she  turned,  and  led  the  way  without  waiting  for 
any  reply. 


Wilder  experienced  a  curious  sensation  of  repugnance 
as  he  entered  the  presence  of  the  blinded  man.  He  was 
not  usually  troubled  by  such  sensitiveness.  But  somehow 
he  now  realised  more  surely  than  ever  contact  with  some¬ 
thing  inexpressively  evil.  The  yellow  face  of  the  man 


330 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


was  almost  grey.  But  whether  it  was  the  result  of  any 
emotion  of  fear  that  had  produced  the  noisome  hue  he 
could  not  tell.  The  man’s  eyeless  sockets  seemed  even 
more  repulsive  than  when  first  he  had  looked  upon  them. 
Then  there  were  his  restlessly  moving  hands,  which,  in 
his  blind  helplessness,  never  for  a  moment  seemed  to 
remain  quite  still. 

They  were  in  the  central  hall  of  the  house,  that  Eastern 
apartment  so  full  of  vivid  memories  for  the  whiteman. 
It  was  unchanged  from  that  which  he  knew  of  it,  even 
to  the  dust,  and  the  sense  of  neglect  and  disuse  that 
pervaded  it.  Wilder  remembered  acutely.  His  eyes 
passed  over  every  familiar  detail  of  the  place  and  brought 
back  to  him  a  picture  of  the  happenings  of  that  night, 
when',  unbidden,  unwelcome,  he  had  been  a  guest  in  the 
house. 

The  blinded  man  confronted  him  on  his  seat  upon  the 
cushioned  divan  beside  the  carved  screen.  And  he  spoke 
at  once  as  Bill  entered  and  moved  over  to  the  chair  which 
was  set  before  the  bureau.  Crysa  went  at  once  to  her 
husband  and  took  her  place  on  the  seat  beside  him. 

“You  come  again?”  he  said  in  his  low,  harsh  tones. 

And  the  challenge  warned  Wilder  of  the  amazing 
watchfulness  which  fear  had  inspired  in  these  two. 
Crysa  had  said  no  word  as  she  entered,  yet  this  sightless 
man  knew  him  and  understood. 

“Sure.” 

Wilder  spoke  quietly. 

“I’m  here  to  help  you,”  he  went  on.  “If  you  reckon 
to  save  the  life  remaining  to  you  you’ll  need  to  take  my 
talk  at  its  face  value  and  make  a  quick  get-away  right  off. 
I’ve  just  handed  your  wife,  as  quick  as  I  could,  the 
trouble  beating  up  the  river  for  you.  Usak’s  behind  me 
with  his  gun.  He’s  crazy  for  your  blood.  An’  I’m  crazy 


A  WHITEMAN’S  WORD 


33i 


he  shan’t  get  you.  I  took  an  almighty  chance  pushing  up 
from  the  Caribou  here  because  I  handed  your  wife  a 
promise  I’d  do  the  best  I  knew  to  save  the  murder  that 
crazy  Indian  looks  for.  With  winter  closing  right  down 
no  one  can  figger  the  chances  of  getting  through  back. 
Still,  I  handed  my  word,  and  it  goes  with  me.  The  thing 
I  can  do  is  to  get  you  down  to  Caribou  if  the  winter  don’t 
queer  us.  I  can  get  you  right  on  to  your  own  country, 
which,  seeing  you  are  who  and  what  you  are,  is  the  only 
thing.  Maybe  I’ll  be  going  beyond  the  right  I  have  in 
doing  this,  but  I’ll  do  it  because  you’re  blind  and  helpless, 
and  because  your  wife  seems  to  have  suffered  enough  for 
being  your  wife.  There’s  going  to  be  no  argument  as 
far  as  I’m  concerned.  That  I’m  a  police  officer  cuts  no 
ice.  In  this  thing  I’m  just  a  plain  whiteman  who’s  given 
his  word,  and  it  goes.  Now,  here’s  the  proposition  so 
far  as  I’m  concerned.  I’m  going  right  back  to  the  land¬ 
ing,  and  I’ll  wait  around  there  till,  the  daylight  goes.  If 
you  come  along  in  that  time  with  the  truck  you  need  for 
the  journey — you  needn’t  worry  with  the  food,  I’ve  got 
all  we  need — you  have  my  promise  I’ll  get  you  safe 
through,  if  its  humanly  possible,  to  your  own  country. 
If  I  fail  my  life  will  pay  just  as  surely  as  yours.  You 
got  my  promise,  a  whiteman’s  promise,  and  you’ve  got  to 
be  satisfied  with  it  if  you  fancy  making  a  get-away.  The 
moment  night  closes  in  I  pull  out,  whether  you  come  with 
with  me  or  not.  That’s  all.” 

The  repulsion  inspired  by  the  blind  man’s  presence  had 
a  deeper  effect  on  Wilder  than  he  knew.  He  had  planned 
his  method,  but  his  planning  had  not  provided  for  the 
cold  fashion  in  which  he  delivered  his  proposition.  His 
tone  was  even  more  frigid  than  he  realised.  He  rose 
from  his  seat  to  depart.  And  instantly  the  Count’s  harsh 
voice  stayed  him. 


332 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


“And  how  do  I  know  Usak  is  on  the  river?  How  I 
know  this  is  not  a  police  trap?” 

Wilder  searched  the  ghastly  features.  A  surge  of 
anger  leapt,  and  his  cheeks  flushed  till  his  broad  brow  was 
suffused  to  the  edge  of  his  thick  fur  cap. 

“It  don’t  matter  a  thing  to  me  what  you  know,  or 
what  you  don’t  know,”  he  said  sharply.  “Usak’s  on  the 
river,  making  right  here  with  his  gun.  Ther’s  a  get¬ 
away  there  at  the  landing  till  the  daylight  goes.  You 
can  take  it  or  not.  It’s  right  up  to  you.  It’s  there  because 
murder’s  going  to  happen  around,  and  it’s  my  notion  to 
prevent  it.  You’re  blind,  and  your  woman  helpless.  It 
don’t  seem  to  me  you  matter  a  hoot  in  hell.  But  I’m  glad 
to  help  a  woman — any  woman.  You’ll  think  it  over. 
An’  don’t  forget  there  isn’t  more  than  two  hours  before 
the  daylight  goes.  That’s  all  I’ve  to  say.” 

He  turned  and  passed  out  the  way  he  had  come,  and  as 
he  went  he  avoided  the  dark  stains  on  the  floor,  those 
stains  so  grimly  significant,  which  even  he  could  not 
bring  himself  to  pass  over. 


Half  an  hour  before  the  last  of  the  daylight  a  canoe 
crept  down  to  the  landing. 

Wilder  was  ready  to  cast  off.  He  had  spent  the 
interim  in  preparing  room  in  his  vessel  for  the  added 
burden  of  his  passengers.  He  knew  they  would  come. 

There  had  been  no  doubt  in  his  mind  whatsoever.  And 
curiously  enough,  he  was  the  more  sure  since  the  man 
was  blind.  In  his  philosophy  the  more  surely  the  man 
was  afflicted  the  more  surely  he  would  cling  to  life,  and 
dread  the  final  slaughtering  of  his  body  by  an  unseen 
enemy.  Then  in  addition  there  was  the  urgent  appealing 


A  WHITEMAN’S  WORD 


333 

of  the  little  woman,  who  was  surely  something  more  than 
a  ministering  angel  to  this  helpless  demon. 

Oh,  yes,  he  had  known  they  would  come,  but  he  had 
not  suspected  the  manner  of  their  coming.  They  came 
in  their  own  canoe,  the  blind  man  paddling  in  the  bow, 
and  the  woman,  infinite  in  her  despairing  devotion, 
serving  her  man  to  the  last  at  the  steering  paddle. 

It  was  a  display  of  devotion  that  thrilled  the  whiteman 
for  all  the  worthlessness  of  the  object  of  it.  And  he 
accepted  the  position  readily.  It  might  add  to  his  care, 
but  it  would  lessen  his  labours.  Their  escape  from  the 
avenging  Usak  was  all  he  desired.  But  he  was  by  no 
means  blinded  to  the  reason  that  they  came  in  their  own 
boat.  It  was  the  man’s  distrust.  He  had  no  desire  to 
yield  himself  a  possible  prisoner  in  the  whiteman’s  craft. 

Wilder  nodded  approval  as  they  drew  alongside,  and 
he  realised  the  considerable  outfit,  including  food,  that 
had  been  provided. 

“You  prefer  it  that  way,”  he  said  quietly.  “That’s 
all  right.  Keep  right  on  my  tail,”  he  went  on,  reaching 
up  and  casting  his  mooring  adrift.  “It’s  mighty  dark 
along  the  river,  an’  maybe  we’ll  be  thankful  it  is  that  way. 
If  it  beats  you  you  can  make  fast  to  me.  If  you’ve  sense 
you’ll  act  that  way.  I  got  two  eyes  an’  I  know  all  ther’ 
is  to  this  darn  trail.” 

He  thrust  out  into  the  stream,  and  the  second  vessel 
followed  him  like  a  ghostly  shadow  in  the  twilight. 


A  man  sat  gazing  out  from  his  rocky  shelter.  His 
dark  eyes  were  brooding  as  he  contemplated  the  falling 
snow.  Below  him,  rendered  invisible  by  the  storm,  lay 
the  still  bosom  of  the  mountain  lake  with  shore  ice  sup¬ 
porting  its  white  burden.  The  bulk  of  the  water  still 


334 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


resisted  the  grip  of  winter,  but  with  every  passing  day, 
every  hour,  the  spread  of  shore  ice  was  encroaching. 

The  grey  curtain  of  falling  snow  was  impenetrable 
even  to  the  accustomed  eyes  of  Usak.  The  world  about 
him  was  silent,  and  windless,  and  alive  with  that  desolate 
threat  which  drives  man  to  despair.  He  had  reached  the 
mouth  of  the  Valley  of  the  Fire  Hills,  and,  blinded  by 
the  sudden  snow-storm,  had  sought  what  shelter  he  could 
find. 

His  shelter  was  half  cavern  and  half  overhung  in  the 
towering  headland  at  the  mouth  of  the  valley.  Yet  it 
served.  His  kyak  was  hauled  from  the  icy  water  and 
lay  on  the  foreshore.  And  the  man  sat  over  a  smoulder 
of  fire  made  of  the  driftwood  he  had  collected  on  his  way, 
and  the  profusion  of  lichen  he  had  gathered  from  the 
snow-free  shelter  in  which  he  sat. 

Usak  crouched  huddled  and  smoking,  over  the  inade¬ 
quate  fire.  Its  warmth  was  negligible,  but  it  afforded 
that  without  which  no  human  being  in  such  desolation 
could  endure,  a  mental  comfort  and  companionship.  He 
was  content  to  wait.  For  all  the  winter  was  advancing 
apace,  for  all  he  knew  that  soon,  desperately  soon,  the 
great  lake,  out  upon  which  he  was  gazing,  would  be  one 
broad  sheet  of  ice  many  feet  in  thickness,  and  impossible 
for  the  light  craft  which  was  his  vehicle,  he  was  content 
enough.  The  Valley  of  the  Fire  Hills  would  remain 
unfrozen,  and  the  great  river  below  him  would  remain 
open  long  enough  for  his  navigation.  For  the  rest  there 
was  always  portage.  Oh,  yes.  Time  was  with  him. 
The  real  freeze-up  was  not  yet.  The  snow  would  cease 
later,  and  meanwhile  he  could  contemplate  the  thing  he 
had  looked  forward  to  for  so  many  years. 

So  there  was  no  impatience  that  the  world  was  blinded 
by  snowflakes  half  the  size  of  his  brown  palm.  With 


A  WHITEMAN’S  WORD 


335 


the  passing  of  the  silent  storm,  so  still,  so  windless,  doubt¬ 
less  the  cold  would  increase,  but  also,  doubtless,  the  sky 
could  clear,  and  the  Arctic  twilight  would  again  light  the 
world  with  its  ghostly  rays. 

He  thrust  out  a  moccasined  foot  and  kicked  the  embers 
of  his  fire  together.  He  removed  the  pipe  from  his 
strong  jaws,  and  held  its  stem  to  the  warmth.  The 
saliva  in  it  had  frozen,  and  it  had  gone  out. 

Presently  he  reached  down  and  picked  up  a  live  coal. 
He  tossed  it  into  the  pipe  bowl  and  sucked  heavily  at  the 
stem,  belching  clouds  of  reeking  smoke.  His  enjoyment 
was  profound. 

After  awhile  the  pipe  was  neglected.  His  enjoyment 
of  it  was  merged  into  something  more  absorbing.  His 
savage  mind  was  lost  in  the  thing  that  had  brought  him 
to  the  heart  of  the  great  Alaskan  hills,  and  he  was  gazing 
on  a  vision  of  savage  delight.  As  his  hands  gripped  each 
other  about  his  knees  there  was  movement  in  them, 
nervous,  twitching  movement.  For,  in  fancy,  they  were 
slowly  crushing  out  the  life  he  was  determined  should 
know  the  hideous  meaning  of  prolonged  death  agony. 

His  delight  was  in  his  darkly  brooding  eyes  as  they 
looked  into  the  flicker  of  the  fire.  His  mind  was  teeming 
with  the  thing  he  would  say  while  that  life  was  conscious 
and  could  know  the  terror  and  agony  of  those  last  mo¬ 
ments.  Oh,  yes.  It  was  worth  all  the  waiting  and  he 
was  glad,  glad  that  now,  at  last,  the  moment  of  his  final 
vengeance  was  approaching.  Sheer  insanity  was  driving, 
but  it  was  that  calm  insanity  where  the  border  line  is 
passed  coldly  and  calmly  with  hate  the  dominating  in¬ 
fluence.  Suddenly  he  started  and  leant  forward. 

His  hands  parted  from  about  his  knees,  and,  in  a 
moment,  he  was  on  his  feet  crouching  and  gazing  out 
into  the  impenetrable  snowfall.  He  moved  aside  from 


336 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


his  fire  and  crept  forward.  Then  he  stood  up  tall  and 
straight,  and  his  head  was  turned  with  an  ear  to  the  outer 
world. 

A  sound  had  reached  ears  trained  to  the  pitch  of  any 
forest  creature.  It  had  been  faint,  so  faint,  yet  to  Usak 
it  was  quite  unmistakable.  It  had  come  from  out  there 
on  the  water  beyond  the  ground  ice,  and  he  knew  that 
some  living  thing  was  passing,  hidden  by  the  grey  of  the 
snowfall. 

He  stood  for  a  long  time  listening,  his  dark  eyes  no  less 
alert  than  his  ears.  Then  with  something  like  reluctance 
he  came  back  to  the  fire  and  spread  his  hands  out  over 
it.  After  awhile  he  returned  to  his  seat.  There  was  no 
doubt  in  his  mind.  The  sound  he  had  heard  was  the 
ruffling  of  the  water  stirred  by  the  dip  of  a  paddle. 

But  his  shoulders  moved  in  a  shrug,  and  he  dismissed 
the  matter.  Why  not?  There  were  folk  in  the  Valley  of 
the  Fire  Hills,  other  folk  than  those — Yes,  far  up,  there 
were  many  of  the  folk  he  hated  but  did  not  fear — the 
Euralians. 


Usak  was  standing  on  the  landing  almost  lost  in  the 
billows  of  smoke  surging  down  upon  him.  They  belched 
out  of  the  heart  of  the  wood  which  concealed  the  clearing, 
wherein  had  stood  the  secret  habitation  of  the  man  whom 
he  had  designed  should  know  his  final  vengeance. 

The  whole  of  the  dripping  valley  seemed  to  be  afire. 
Behind  him  the  roar  and  crackle  of  the  burning  forest 
grew  louder,  and  the  suffocating  smoke  grew  denser  and 
denser  while  the  heat  was  blistering. 

He  stepped  quickly  into  his  waiting  kyak  and  pushed 
out  into  the  stream,  vanishing  in  the  twilight  of  the  night. 
He  paddled  rapidly  till  he  had  cleared  the  woodland  belt 


A  WHITEMAN’S  WORD 


337 


and  approached  the  unlovely  barrens  of  the  Fire  Hills. 
Then  he  sought  the  shelter  of  the  bank  and  shipped  his 
paddle. 

He  knelt  up  in  the  little  vessel  gazing  back  at  the 
ruthless  work  of  his  hands.  It  was  there  plain  enough 
for  him  to  see.  The  billows  of  drifting  smoke  were 
darkly  outlined  against  the  moonlit,  star-decked  heavens. 
And  farther  inland  was  the  glowing  heart  of  the  fire, 
with  leaping  splashes  of  flame  lightening  up  the  world 
around  it,  hungrily  devouring  the  splendid  dwelling  that 
had  once  been  the  home  of  his  most  hated  enemy. 

But  there  was  none  of  the  joy  in  his  mood  that  might 
have  been  looked  for.  No.  A  light  of  fury  was  burning 
in  his  merciless  eyes.  He  had  been  thwarted  in  his  long 
contemplated  vengeance,  and  he  had  been  driven  to 
the  impotent  devastation  which  his  savage  heart  had 
prompted.  He  had  reached  the  place  only  to  find  it 
utterly  deserted.  The  house  he  found  devoid  of  all  life, 
and  his  search  had  only  yielded  him  further  confirmation 
that  his  intended  victims  had  escaped  him.  So,  in  his 
insane  savagery,  he  had  done  the  thing  that  alone  would 
satisfy.  He  had  fired  the  house,  and  seen  to  it  that  even 
the  woods  about  it  should  not  escape  destruction. 

He  remained  for  awhile  contemplating  the  mischief 
of  his  handiwork  and  drawing  such  comfort  from  it  as 
his  mood  would  allow.  Then,  at  last,  feasted,  satiated, 
he  dipped  his  paddle  again  into  the  sluggish  waters. 

He  knew.  He  understood.  The  chance  had  been  his 
far  back  there  at  the  mouth  of  the  creek.  He  had  heard 
the  sound  of  a  paddle,  and  should  have  guessed.  But 
his  wits  had  failed  him,  and  the  snow  had  blinded  him. 
But  even  now  he  did  not  wholly  despair.  There  was  the 
winter.  The  man  was  blind.  And  the  woman — Psha! 
He  drove  his  paddle  with  all  the  fury  of  his  desire. 


CHAPTER  XV 


THE  IRONY  OF  FATE 

The  race  against  the  season  was  being  won.  The  race 
against  that  other — ? 

Yes,  Bill  Wilder  was  well  enough  satisfied.  Not  a  day, 
not  an  hour  had  been  lost  in  his  rush  to  the  hills.  He 
had  spared  no  effort.  And  on  the  return  he  had  driven 
hard  with  the  full  weight  of  the  stream  speeding  him. 
There  had  been  the  one  heavy  snowstorm  as  he  had 
passed  out  of  the  mouth  of  the  Valley  of  the  Fire  Hills. 
For  a  few  hours  it  had  blinded  him  and  forced  him  to 
shelter.  For  the  rest  the  luck  of  the  weather  had  been 
with  him,  with  only  the  increasing  cold  and  the  twenty 
hour  nights  with  which  to  do  battle. 

He  was  feeling  good  as  he  came  to  the  familiar  landing 
above  the  Grand  Falls,  and  prepared  for  his  portage  down 
to  the  canyon  of  the  rapids. 

It  was  all  curious  in  its  way,  and  there  were  moments 
on  the  journey  when  he  found  himself  half  whimsically 
wondering  at  the  thing  he  was  doing.  For  the  man  he 
was  endeavouring  to  save  from  the  hands  of  Usak  he 
had  only  utter  loathing  and  detestation.  There  was  no 
pity  in  him,  not  a  moment’s  thought  of  it.  For  the  little 
distracted  woman  it  was  different.  He  knew  he  was 
risking  everything  in  life  out  of  pity  for  this  poor 
creature,  who  was  nothing  in  the  world  to  him  except 
that  she  was  a  woman,  and  not  even  white  at  that.  He 

338 


THE  IRONY  OF  FATE 


339 


realised  his  utter  folly.  He  even  reminded  himself  that 
the  thing  he  was  doing  was  not  only  unfair  to  himself, 
but  to  those  others  who  looked  to  him  for  succour,  that 
other  whose  life  had  become  focussed  in  him. 

He  knew  that  an  encounter  with  Usak  would  mean  a 
battle  to  the  death  of  one  or  perhaps  all  of  them.  He 
knew  that,  embarrassed  by  these  helpless  creatures,  a 
sudden  final  onslaught  of  the  Arctic  winter  night  might 
well  mean  the  end  of  all  things.  But  he  had  not  hesitated. 
No.  He  had  calculated  closely.  His  knowledge  of  the 
northern  world  had  told  him  that  there  was  time — even 
time  to  spare.  The  daylight  had  not  yet  passed,  and, 
unless  the  season  was  one  of  unusual  severity,  the 
dreaded  freeze-up  was  not  due  for  several  weeks  more. 
No.  The  cold  was  steadily  increasing.  There  would  be 
more  snow  yet.  But  there  would  be  relapses  of  tempera¬ 
ture,  and  the  final  sealing  of  the  great  river  was  still  a 
long  way  off.  So  he  had  refused  to  be  turned  aside  from 
his  purpose. 

He  had  laboured  on  with  a  mind  steadily  poised  and 
with  nerves  in  perfect  tune.  His  greatest  apprehension 
was  the  possible  encountering  of  the  Indian,  Usak.  And 
even  on  this  his  resolve  was  clear  and  as  merciless  as 
anything  the  savage,  himself,  might  have  contemplated. 
He  was  armed  and  ready,  and  no  interference  would  be 
tolerated  even  if  his  necessity  drove  him  to  slaughter. 

The  daylight  had  been  spent  in  disgorging  the  two 
canoes  of  their  freight.  He  and  the  little  Japanese 
woman  had  spent  the  time  preparing  his  packs.  They 
were  not  vast,  but  the  whole  portage  would  mean  three 
laborious  trips  over  the  rough  territory  of  the  great 
gorge  down  to  the  landing  below. 

The  first  trip  was  to  be  his  own  canoe.  The  second 
was  to  be  the  camp  outfit  of  his  passengers.  The  blind- 


340 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


man  and  the  woman  would  accompany  him  on  that  trip 
and  help  with  the  packs.  Then,  with  these  folk  safely 
encamped  below  the  gorge,  he  would  return  alone  to 
bring  down  their  canoe. 

Yes.  It  was  all  clearly  planned  with  a  view  to  the 
simplest  and  best  advantage,  and  the  preliminary  work 
had  gone  on  rapidly  under  his  energetic  guidance.  There 
was  not  one  moment’s  unnecessary  delay,  for  he  under¬ 
stood,  only  too  well,  the  value  of  every  precious  hour  he 
could  steal  on  his  human  and  elemental  adversaries. 

The  last  pack  had  been  made  up  of  the  things  that 
could  be  dispensed  with.  His  canoe  was  hauled  up 
empty,  ready  to  be  shouldered.  And  now,  with  the  last 
flash  of  daylight  shining  in  the  south-west,  he  stood  low 
down  on  the  foreshore  gazing  out  over  the  water  in  the 
direction  of  the  misty  falls.  Mid-day  was  only  two  hours 
gone  and  the  daylight  was  already  collapsing  with  the 
falling  sun. 

The  peace  of  this  far-off  world  was  a  little  awesome, 
the  silence  was  something  threatening.  The  dull  roar  of 
the  Grand  Falls  alone  robbed  it  of  utter,  complete  sound¬ 
lessness.  The  snow  was  a  soft  virgin  carpet  in  every 
direction.  The  hardy,  dark  woods  were  weighted  down 
with  its  burden.  For  all  there  was  shore  ice  against  the 
river  bank  the  whole  breadth  of  the  waters  of  the  river 
were  silently,  heavily  flowing  on  to  the  tremendous  pre¬ 
cipitation  far  beyond.  But  it  was  not  of  these  things 
that  Wilder  was  thinking.  In  the  emergency  besetting 
he  was  concerned  only  for  the  signs  which,  out  of  his 
experience,  he  was  striving  to  interpret. 

They  were  very  definite.  The  sun  had  fallen  below  the 
horizon,  accompanied  by  two  pale  sundogs  that  strove 
but  failed  to  display  an  angry  glare.  The  horizon  was 
clear  of  all  cloud,  a  vault  of  wonderful  colour.  Such 


THE  IRONY  OF  FATE 


34i 


breath  of  wind  as  was  stirring  was  coming  up  out  of  the 
south-east.  It  was  good.  It  was  all  good.  The  sundogs 
suggested  possible,  ultimate  change,  but  not  yet.  The 
breeze  was  almost  mild.  But  above  all  there  was  not  a 
single  cloud  to  shut  out  the  light  of  the  moon  that  would 
presently  rise,  and  the  brilliant  starlight,  and  the  benefi¬ 
cent  northern  lights.  No.  It  would  be  a  perfect  night. 

He  turned  back  to  the  couple  hugging  the  tiny  fire 
they  had  ventured  to  light  in  the  shelter  of  an  attenuated 
bluff  of  woods. 

“Just  get  this  clear,”  he  said  thrusting  his  hands  out 
to  the  warmth.  “I’m  setting  out  right  away.  It’ll  take 
me  six  hours  to  make  back  here.  Six  hours  good.  I’d 
have  been  glad  to  cache  your  boat  back  there  in  the 
woods,  an’  hide  up  our  tracks  right.  But  the  snow  on 
the  ground  beats  us  on  that  play.  Any  pair  of  eyes 
happening  along  could  follow  us  anywhere.  No.  If 
Usak’s  around  I  give  him  credit  for  being  able  to  read 
our  tracks  anyway,  and  with  the  snow,  why  they’re  just 
shriekin’  at  him.  We  got  to  take  a  big  chance.  But 
ther’s  one  play  we  can  make.” 

He  paused  and  rubbed  his  hands  thoughtfully  while 
the  eyeless  man  gazed  unerringly  up  into  his  face,  and 
the  woman  beside  him  waited  a  prey  to  apprehension. 

“You  best  beat  it  back  into  these  woods,”  he  went  on 
quickly.  “Leave  that  fire — burning.  Leave  it  so  it 
looks  like  dying  out.  As  if  we  were  all  out  on  portage. 
See?  And  you  two  make  the  woods,  dodging  the  snow 
patches,  an’  walking  on  the  bare  ground.  Take  your 
sleeping  kit,  and  get  what  sleep  you  can — without  a  fire. 
That’s  all.  I’ll  get  right  back  just  as  quick  as  I  know. 
Once  we’re  on  the  river  below  these  Falls,  why  I  guess 
Usak  hasn’t  a  chance.  But  I  got  to  leave  you  one  end 
or  the  other  while  I  make  this  first  portage,  an’  it  seems 


342 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


horse  sense  leaving  you  above  the  Falls.  We  haven’t 
seen  a  sign  of  that  murdering  Indian  above  here  the 
whole  way.” 

The  blindman  nodded. 

“That’s  sense,”  he  said  in  his  harsh  way. 

The  woman  silently  acquiesced.  It  was  sufficient  that 
the  man  had  agreed.  But  her  troubled  eyes  told  of  the 
haunting  dread  that  obsessed  her. 

Wilder  turned  away  and  moved  over  to  his  canoe  lying 
ready.  He  stooped  down,  and  when  he  stood  up  again 
the  little  vessel  was  exactly  poised  upon  his  broad  back. 


The  hush  of  the  woods  was  profound.  The  dark  aisles 
of  the  trees  were  visible  in  the  moonlight,  for  the  foliage 
above  was  thin,  and  meagre,  and  tattered  under  the  fierce 
storms  which  roared  down  out  of  the  heart  of  the  hills. 
The  promise  of  sun-down  had  been  fulfilled.  A  full 
moon  shone  down  upon  a  chill,  silvery  world,  and  the 
starlight  was  of  that  amazing  brilliance  which  is  the  great 
redeeming  of  the  Arctic  night.  There  was  no  wind,  not 
a  breath.  It  was  cold,  intensely  cold,  and  the  northern 
heavens  were  lit  by  an  amazing  wealth  of  vivid,  moving 
lights. 

The  blindman  and  his  woman  made  no  pretence  of  the 
sleep  that  Wilder  had  suggested.  Sleep  was  impossible  to 
them.  They  crouched  together  in  their  sleeping  furs, 
striving  for  any  measure  of  warmth  for  their  chilled 
bodies.  But  they  had  otherwise  obeyed.  For  the  thing 
suggested  had  appealed.  They  were  deep  hidden  amidst 
the  tree  trunks,  waiting,  waiting  for  that  return  which 
alone  could  yield  them  any  sense  of  security. 

They  talked  together  spasmodically,  and  in  low, 
hushed  tones. 


THE  IRONY  OF  FATE 


343 


For  the  most  part  they  talked  in  their  own  native 
tongue,  but  sometimes  they  used  the  language  of  the 
country  of  their  adoption. 

The  blindman’s  hearing  was  doubly  acute  for  his 
affliction.  And  he  crouched  straining  for  any  sound  to 
warn  them  of  lurking  danger.  But  the  hours  passed,  and 
only  the  droning  roar  of  the  distant  Falls  broke  the 
soundlessness  of  the  night. 

Crysa  could  contain  her  fears  no  longer.  A  sigh 
escaped  her  and  she  stirred  restlessly. 

“He  will  come?”  she  said,  and  her  tone  was  full  of 
besetting  doubt. 

The  man’s  reply  was  slow  in  coming.  It  almost 
seemed  as  though  the  straining  effort  of  listening  com¬ 
pletely  pre-occupied  him. 

He  nodded  at  last. 

“He  will  come,”  he  rasped.  Then  he  added,  “He  is  a 
fool  whiteman.” 

The  woman’s  quick  eyes  lit  as  they  glanced  round  on 
her  husband. 

“He  is  good,”  she  said. 

“Good?” 

The  scorn  in  the  yellow  man’s  tone  was  something 
bitter  beyond  words. 

Nothing  more  was  said,  and  the  man  returned  to  his 
listening. 


A  long  low  kyak  glided  up  to  the  landing.  It  came 
without  sound,  for  the  stream  was  swift,  and  the  shore 
ice  had  been  broken  up  by  those  who  had  come  before. 
The  trailing  paddle  was  lifted  quickly  from  the  water  and 
the  vessel’s  occupant  reached  out  and  caught  the  side  of 


344 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


the  boat  lying  moored  against  the  bank.  Skilfully  he 
guided  the  nose  of  his  craft  in  between  the  moored  vessel 
and  the  bank,  and  the  whole  thing  was  completed  in 
absolute  soundlessness. 

With  his  vessel  lying  stationary  he  remained  for  a 
moment  unmoving.  His  great  body  towered  as  he  knelt 
up  against  his  paddling  strut.  He  was  surveying  the 
moored  boat  with  eager,  dark  eyes  and  an  acutely  reading 
mind.  Presently  he  turned  from  the  contemplation  of 
the  thing  that  had  set  a  wild  fierce  hope  stirring  in  his 
savage  heart.  His  gaze  was  flung  upon  the  landing 
itself,  and  upon  the  surrounding  slope  of  the  river  bank, 
and  the  adjacent  bluff  of  woods.  The  brilliant  night 
revealed  all  he  sought  with  a  clearness  which  left  him 
without  a  shadow  of  doubt.  Finally  he  discovered 
beyond,  just  within  the  shelter  of  the  woods,  the  last 
dying  smoulder  of  the  camp  fire.  He  reached  towards  the 
nose  of  his  kyak,  and  seized  the  long  rifle  lying  there. 
Then  he  stepped  ashore. 

The  dark  figure  moved  swiftly  up  the  shore.  It 
reached  the  edge  of  the  woods  and  stood  for  a  moment 
gazing  down  on  the  dying  camp  fire.  The  dark  eyes  had 
suddenly  become  fiercely  urgent  as  he  searched  every  sign 
that  was  there  for  his  interpretation. 

After  a  few  moments  the  man  moved  about  in  the 
neighbourhood  of  the  fire.  His  moccasined  feet  gave 
out  no  sound.  He  was  searching  diligently  in  the  trod¬ 
den  snow.  At  last  he  came  again  to  a  halt.  He  threw 
up  his  head  and  stared  about  him.  It  was  the  attitude  of 
a  creature  of  the  forest  scenting  its  prey,  and  in  his  eyes 
was  a  look  of  fierce  exulting  as  he  gazed  into  the  dark 
shelter  of  the  woods.  Then  his  whole  attitude  under¬ 
went  a  change.  He  seemed  to  crouch  down.  His  long 
rifle  was  borne  at  the  trail  in  his  hand,  and  he  moved 


THE  IRONY  OF  FATE  345 

forward  stealthily,  and  became  swallowed  up  by  the 
shadowed  depths. 


The  hush  of  the  night  left  the  falling  of  a  pine  cone 
a  sound  that  was  almost  startling.  The  droning  roar  of 
the  distant  Falls  was  only  part  of  the  awesome  quiet. 
The  windlessness  was  a  threat  of  greater  and  greater 
depths  of  cold,  while  the  brilliant  moon  and  cloudless  sky 
only  helped  to  impress  more  deeply  the  intense  frigidity 
of  the  coming  season.  It  was  all  perfect,  in  its  exquisite 
peace,  a  vision  of  superlative  splendour  in  the  amazing 
twilight.  It  suggested  a  sublime  creation  unspoiled,  un¬ 
sullied  by  any  inharmonious  blemish,  a  broad  indefinite 
sketch  set  out  by  the  mighty  brush  and  divine  inspiration 
of  a  God-like  artist  who  only  requires  to  inset  the  subtle, 
finishing  details.  Such  was  the  seeming  of  the  moment. 

A  cry.  A  series  of  raucous  human  cries.  They  came 
from  somewhere  within  the  forest  belt.  They  came  full 
of  terror,  and  maybe  pain.  They  came  full  of  ferocious 
unyielding  and  savage  passion.  They  came  again  and 
again,  with  the  shrill  of  a  woman’s  voice  mingling.  Then 
the  last  sound  died  out,  swallowed  up  by  the  immense 
silence. 

So  the  grandeur  of  the  night  scene,  the  sublimity  of 
Nature’s  profound  calm,  lost  for  a  few  brief  moments 
by  the  invasion  of  an  expression  of  surging  human 
passions,  returned  again,  all  undefeated,  to  the  rugged 
heart  of  the  northern  wilderness. 

»•••••• 

The  moon  was  still  high  in  the  starlit  heavens, 
shedding  its  cold  benignity  upon  the  flowing  waters.  The 
belt  of  the  northern  lights  had  extended.  Their  ghostly 


34^ 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


sheen  had  deepened,  and  the  vivid  arc  of  a  burnished 
aurora  had  joined  their  legions.  The  world  was  lit  anew. 
The  twilight  had  glorified;  the  night  was  transformed. 
No  longer  was  the  moon  the  dominant  light  giver.  The 
jewel-like  sparkle  of  the  stars  had  dimmed  in  contrast. 
For  the  aurora,  the  glory  of  the  Arctic  night,  had 
ascended  its  triumphant  throne. 

The  whiteman  swung  along,  approaching  the  camping 
ground  above  the  Falls,  filled  with  satisfaction  and  hope 
at  the  beneficent  change.  For  practical  purposes  the 
night  light  was  all-sufficient.  In  fancy  he  saw  the  com¬ 
pletion  of  his  labours  in  far  less  time  than  he  had  antici¬ 
pated,  and  something  like  ultimate  security  for  those  he 
sought  to  succour. 

The  further  portage  would  be  easy  now.  The  first  trip 
was  over.  Now  there  was  the  bearing  of  the  packs  in 
which  he  would  have  the  assistance  of  those  others.  Then 
the  last — the  portage  of  their - 

He  had  reached  the  low  shore  clearing  of  the  landing. 
A  great  flood  of  silvery  light  illuminated  the  whole 
breadth  of  the  river.  There  it  lay  a  wide,  swift  tide,  with 
the  great  hills  far  across  its  bosom  rising  a  jagged  snow¬ 
capped  line,  gleaming  like  burnished  silver  under  the 
amazing  heavenly  lights. 

But  the  scene  as  Nature  had  painted  it  made  not  an 
instant’s  claim  upon  him.  How  should  it?  He  had  come 
to  a  sudden  halt,  his  gaze  riveted  upon  a  vision  that  made 
him  draw  his  breath  sharply,  and  set  his  heart  leaping. 
He  became  rooted  to  the  spot.  Two  boats  were  out  there 
on  the  broad  bosom  of  the  river.  Two  of  them.  And 
both  were  moving  on  down  the  stream  towards - 

A  shout  broke  from  him.  It  came  with  all  the  power 
of  his  well-nigh  bursting  lungs.  It  was  the  natural  im¬ 
pulse  which  his  surge  of  feeling  inspired.  He  shouted 


THE  IRONY  OF  FATE 


347 


again  and  again.  Then  of  a  sudden  he  charged  down  to 
the  water’s  edge,  and  stood  staring  helplessly,  silently,  a 
prey  to  unspeakable  horror. 

Two  boats!  The  leading  vessel  was  a  long  low  kyak. 
There  was  no  mistaking  its  build.  Just  as  there  was  no 
mistaking,  to  his  mind,  the  burly  figure  propelling  it.  The 
second  boat  he  recognised  on  the  instant.  It  was  the 
canoe  he  had  expected  to  portage  on  his  third  trip.  In  it 
were  two  figures  sitting  up.  They  were  motionless.  They 
were  paddleless.  They  were  sitting,  inert,  like  bundles 
set  there,  and  quite  incapable  of  any  movement,  incapable 
of  any  resistance.  And  between  the  two  boats  stretched 
a  taut  line. 

It  needed  no  second  thought  for  Wilder  to  realise  the 
thing  that  was  being  enacted.  The  inhuman  vengeance 
of  the  crazy  Indian  had  descended  upon  those  benighted 
helpless  folk  and  no  power  on  earth  could  save  them. 

Usak’s  purpose  was  as  clear  as  the  brilliant  light  of  the 
night.  The  ruthless  savage  was  towing  them  out  into 
mid-stream.  Presently  he  would,  doubtless,  release  their 
vessel  when  it  had  reached  the  limit  of  safety  for  him¬ 
self.  Then  he  would  leave  them  to  the  hideous  destruc¬ 
tion  awaiting  them  at  the  great  waterfall  flinging  back 
its  thunderous  roar  out  of  the  heart  of  the  mists  en¬ 
shrouding  it. 

There  was  no  succour  that  he  could  offer.  He  was 
without  any  means  of  reaching  them  with  his  own  canoe 
already  below  the  Falls.  And  his  automatic  pistol  was 
useless.  No.  He  could  only  stand  there  helplessly  watch¬ 
ing  the  terrible  tragedy  of  it  all. 

Now  he  knew  the  thing  that  must  have  happened.  He 
vividly  pictured  the  coming  of  Usak,  whom  they  must 
have  passed  higher  up  the  river  on  their  way  down.  The 
stillness  of  the  figures  in  the  boat  was  terribly  significant. 


348 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


The  man  must  have  come  upon  them  in  their  hiding,  per¬ 
haps  asleep.  He  must  have  overpowered  them.  Prob¬ 
ably  he  had  bound  them  hand  and  foot  when  he  set  them 
in  the  boat,  so  that  the  blindman,  no  less  than  the  other, 
should  contemplate,  even  if  it  was  only  through  his  hear¬ 
ing,  the  dreadful  death  he  was  preparing  for  them. 

He  caught  his  breath.  Then  in  a  moment  he  hurled  the 
full  force  of  his  impotent  loathing  in  a  furious  shout 
across  the  water. 

“You  swine!  God  Almighty !” 

The  exclamation  came  as  he  saw  the  man  cease  pad¬ 
dling  and  reach  out  to  the  rope  behind  him.  In  a  moment 
it  was  severed,  and  the  trailing  boat  began  instantly  to 
turn  broadside  on  to  the  current. 

The  watching  man  gave  a  gasp.  Then  the  broadside 
boat  was  forgotten,  and  his  whole  attention  was  given 
to  the  other,  the  boat  containing  the  demented  creature 
perpetrating  his  long-pondered  crime. 

Usak’s  paddle  was  beating  the  water  furiously.  He 
was  striving  with  all  his  enormous  strength  and  skill  to 
swing  his  light  vessel  out  of  the  stream.  He  was  labour¬ 
ing  in  a  fashion  that  instantly  warned  the  on-looker  of  the 
peril  besetting  him.  And  the  sight  of  the  struggle  thrilled 
him  with  an  excitement  which  had  no  relation  to  any 
desire  for  the  man’s  escape. 

Usak  was  a  superb  river  man.  Perhaps  he  had  no 
equal  upon  the  northern  waters.  But  he  was  an  Indian 
with  the  lust  to  kill,  and  without  the  sober  judgment  of 
the  whiteman  watching  him  from  the  shore.  Wilder 
understood.  It  was  there  for  him  to  see.  The  Indian 
had  gone  too  far  in  his  desire.  He  had  passed  the  limits 
of  safety  before  he  severed  the  rope  to  hurl  his  victims 
to  the  fate  he  had  designed  for  them.  He  was  caught  in 
the  same  overwhelming  rush  of  silent  water.  His  paddle 


THE  IRONY  OF  FATE 


349 


was  no  better  than  a  toy  thing  to  stay  the  rush.  His 
kyak  was  caught  and  flung  broadside.  And  abreast  of 
the  other  it  was  drifting,  drifting  down  upon  the  roaring 
cataract  ahead. 

Wilder  drew  a  deep  breath. 

Usak  had  ceased  paddling.  There  was  a  moment  in 
which  he  remained  utterly  unmoving  like  those  others. 
To  the  on-looker  it  seemed  that  he  was  contemplating  the 
full  horror  in  which  his  mistake  had  involved  him.  Then, 
of  a  sudden,  he  saw  the  dark  figure  rear  itself  up  in  the 
boat,  which,  even  at  that  distance,  seemed  to  rock  peril¬ 
ously.  The  man  stood  erect.  Then  an  arm  was  raised 
and  the  paddle  was  flung  into  the  racing  waters.  After 
that  it  seemed  that  the  doomed  creature’s  arms  were 
folded  across  his  broad  bosom,  and,  like  a  statue, 
unmoved  by  any  emotion  of  fear,  he  stood  boldly  con¬ 
templating  the  terrible  doom  towards  which  he  and  his 
victims  were  inevitably  being  borne. 

Wilder  turned  away.  It  was  all  too  painful.  It  was 
all  too  horrible  in  its  human  wantonness.  He  passed 
up  the  shore  and  sat  down,  pondering  the  irony  of  the  fate 
that  had  descended  upon  the  demented  man  out  there  on 
the  water. 

And  after  awhile,  when  the  cold  of  the  night  drove 
him,  and  he  bestirred  himself,  and  again  moved  down  to 
the  water’s  edge,  it  was  to  witness  the  placid  unruffled 
bosom  of  the  great  river  flowing  heavily  on  as  it  had  done 
throughout  the  ages.  The  trifling  human  tragedy  it  had 
witnessed  was  far  too  infinitely  small  to  leave  its  impress 
upon  a  scene  so  tremendous  in  its  expression  of  over¬ 
whelming  Nature. 


CHAPTER  XVI 


THE  END  OF  THE  LONG  TRAIL 

The  transformation  was  complete.  It  was  beyond  any¬ 
thing  that  had  been  dreamed  of  by  those  who  had  fore¬ 
seen  the  thing  that  would  happen.  It  had  come  with  that 
startling  rapidity  which  the  lure  and  magic  of  gold  never 
fails  to  bring  about. 

Just  before  the  break  of  spring  saw  the  return  to  the 
Caribou  of  Chilcoot  and  Bill  Wilder.  But  their  return 
was  very  different  from  their  adventurous  going,  when  it 
had  been  a  desperate  race  against  the  season.  They  came 
while  the  grip  of  the  Arctic  night  was  still  fast  upon  the 
great  waterways,  and  before  the  sun  had  lifted  its  shining 
face  above  the  horizon.  They  came  with  a  great  equip¬ 
ment  of  men  and  material  on  heavily  laden  dog-sleds. 
They  came  with  all  speed  that  not  a  moment  of  the  com¬ 
ing  daylight  might  be  lost,  and  to  head  off  the  rush  of 
the  human  tide  that  was  already  strung  out  behind  them 
for  the  new  adventure. 

Bill  Wilder  had  not  permitted  the  grievous  tragedy  he 
had  witnessed  on  the  upper  waters  of  the  Hekor  to  deflect 
his  purpose  one  iota.  The  shock  of  the  thing  he  had 
witnessed  had  been  painful  beyond  words.  For  the  blind 
leader  of  the  Euralian  marauders  he  had  had  not  one 
grain  of  pity.  For  the  great  Indian,  who  had  given  his 
life  to  the  loyal  service  of  the  girl  he  loved,  there  had 
been  a  regret  that  was  not  untinged  with  a  sensation  of 
relief.  He  felt  somehow  that  the  thing  was  right;  he  felt 


350 


THE  END  OF  THE  LONG  TRAIL  351 


that  had  the  demented  creature  achieved  his  purpose  and 
himself  escaped,  the  position  would  have  been  fraught 
with  serious  complications,  not  to  say  dangers.  Usak 
would  have  expected  to  return  to  his  service  of  Felice  as 
though  nothing  had  happened.  He  would  have  de¬ 
manded  the  thing  he  looked  upon  as  his  right.  And  to 
hold  his  place  at  her  side  he  would  have  been  prepared  to 
use  any  and  all  the  methods  his  savage  mind  prompted. 

Wilder’s  duty  would  have  been  obvious.  The  man  had 
committed  his  wanton  crime.  He  was  a  serious  danger 
to  them  all.  Even,  he  felt,  to  the  girl  herself.  There 
would  have  been  nothing  for  him  to  do  but  hand  the  story 
of  the  crime  to  his  friend,  George  Raymes.  That  would 
have  deeply  involved  him.  The  Kid  would  have  been 
hurt,  hurt  as  he  had  no  desire  to  hurt  her,  with  the  know¬ 
ledge  of  the  hideous  crime,  and  that  the  full  penalty  of 
whiteman’s  law  had  fallen  upon  the  man  who  had  been 
a  second  father  and  devoted  servant  to  her.  As  it  was 
she  need  never  know  the  thing  that  had  happened.  No 
one  need  ever  know  the  thing  that  had  happened,  except 
Raymes,  and  perhaps  Chilcoot,  who  would,  he  knew,  re¬ 
main  as  silent  as  the  grave. 

He  had  felt  it  was  all  for  the  best.  And  somehow, 
in  those  moments  in  which  he  had  witnessed  the  calm 
courage  with  which  the  Indian  had  faced  his  terrible  end 
a  feeling  of  intense  admiration  and  sympathy  went  out 
to  the  savage  whose  conception  of  manhood  was  so  curi¬ 
ous  a  blending  of  downright  honesty  and  loyalty,  of  hate 
to  the  limit  of  fiendish  cruelty,  and  of  an  invincible  cour¬ 
age  in  face  of  personal  disaster. 

But  for  the  little  Japanese  woman  his  feelings  were 
stirred  to  the  deepest.  When  he  thought  of  her,  body  and 
soul  he  hated  the  ruthless  Indian  with  all  the  passionate 
manhood  in  him.  And  the  more  deeply  he  pondered  her 


352 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


tragic  end,  the  more  surely  he  cried  out  against  the  seem¬ 
ing  injustice  that  Fate  could  have  allowed  it  to  come  to 
pass. 

He  had  sat  for  hours  over  the  flickering  camp  fire  be¬ 
fore  he  contemplated  continuing  his  labours.  But  in  the 
end  the  shock  of  the  horror  passed,  and  the  urgency  of 
the  moment  bestirred  him.  There  was  nothing  to  be  done 
but  to  continue  his  journey.  There  was  no  need  even  to 
obliterate  such  traces  of  the  camp  as  might  remain.  It 
was  the  way  of  Nature  in  these  far-flung  regions  to  hide 
up  man’s  track  almost  in  the  moment  of  his  passing. 

So  he  had  made  his  way  down  to  Placer,  not  even 
pausing  at  the  rapids  at  the  mouth  of  the  Caribou,  so 
vivid  with  happy  memories  for  him.  It  was  a  journey 
of  weeks  that  taxed  every  ounce  of  the  manhood  in  him. 
For  the  night  of  winter  had  fallen,  and  the  storming 
world  about  him  was  often  doubly  blinded.  But  he 
reached  his  destination  at  last,  and  reached  it  with  the 
last  of  the  open  water. 

It  was  his  return  to  Placer  that  set  the  whole  city  agog. 
It  was  known  he  had  been  about  in  the  north  for  two 
open  seasons.  And  the  conclusions  drawn  were  natural 
enough  in  a  gold  community  watching  the  movements  of 
the  man  who  was  the  leading  figure  in  the  traffic  upon 
which  it  was  engaged. 

He  denied  every  inquiry  by  which  he  was  assailed.  He 
denied  even  his  friend,  and,  for  the  time  being,  chief, 
George  Raymes.  He  visited  him  at  once.  And  with  his 
first  greeting  explained  in  a  fashion  he  had  long  since  pre¬ 
pared. 

“I’m  right  glad  to  see  you  again,  George,”  he  declared, 
as  they  gripped  hands.  “Ther’ve  been  times  when  I 
didn’t  guess  it  would  happen  ever.  But  I’ve  so  far  beat 
the  game,  and  I’m  glad.  Now,  see,  right  here,”  he  went 


THE  END  OF  THE  LONG  TRAIL  353 

on,  smiling  whimsically  into  the  other’s  questioning  eyes, 
“I  haven’t  any  report  to  hand  you  yet.  And  I’ll  take  it 
more  than  friendly  you  don’t  ask  me  a  thing.  I’m  setting 
right  out  with  one  big  outfit,  and  if  the  game  goes  my  way 
I’ll  be  right  back  when  the  earth’s  dry,  and  the  skitters 
are  humming.  And  when  that  time  comes  I’ll  hand  you  a 
story  that  ought  to  set  you  sky  high  with  the  folks  who  run 
your  end  of  the  game.  Do  you  feel  like  acting  that  way?” 

The  policeman  was  content.  He  knew  Wilder  too  well 
to  press  him.  Besides,  Chilcoot  had  been  in  the  city 
weeks.  Chilcoot  had  been  in  close  contact  with  the  Gold 
Commissioner.  Furthermore,  Chilcoot  had  been  prepar¬ 
ing  the  return  outfit,  collecting  men  and  material  for  a 
swift  rush,  and  had  talked  with  him  in  his  office.  So  he 
readily  acquiesced,  and  left  these  “special”  constables 
to  work  out  their  plans  in  the  way  they  saw  fit. 

But  the  whisper  had  gone  round.  Bill  Wilder  and  Chil¬ 
coot  Massy  were  preparing  a  great  outfit  for  the  trail. 
Bill  Wilder  and  Chilcoot  Massy  were  buying  largely.  And 
their  purchases  were  of  all  that  material  required  in  the 
exploitation  of  a  big  “strike.”  Then  word  had  leaked 
out  through  the  Gold  Commissioner’s  office,  as,  some¬ 
how,  it  always  contrived  to  do  when  something  of  real 
magnitude  was  afoot.  So  the  “sharps,”  and  the  “wise- 
guys,”  and  the  traders,  and  all  the  riff-raff,  ready  to 
jump  in  on  anything  offering  a  promise  of  easy  gain, 
bestirred  themselves  out  of  their  winter’s  pursuit  of 
pleasure.  Not  one,  but  a  hundred  outfits  were  quietly 
being  prepared  with  the  deliberate  intention  of  dogging 
these  great  captains  of  the  gold  trade  to  their  destination. 
Chilcoot  and  Wilder  were  preparing  for  the  winter  trail. 
And  as  a  result  every  dog  and  sled  within  the  city  was 
brought  into  commission. 

Then  had  come  the  setting  out.  It  was  arranged  with 


23 


354 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


the  utmost  secrecy.  The  preparations  of  these  men  had 
been  made  beyond  the  straggling  town’s  limits,  so  that 
the  get-away  could  be  as  sudden  as  they  chose  to  make  it. 
Every  man  engaged  to  accompany  them  was  under  bond 
to  report  each  day  at  the  camp  at  a  given  hour,  and  this 
had  gone  on  since  the  moment  of  their  engagement.  It 
was  on  this  rule  Wilder  depended  for  his  get-away  from 
those  who  were  determined  to  follow. 

For  days  and  weeks  the  outfit  stood  ready.  Each  day 
the  dogs  were  harnessed,  and  every  man  was  in  his  place. 
Then  the  word  was  passed  to  unhitch,  and  the  men  were 
permitted  to  return  to  the  city. 

The  intending  pursuit  knew  the  game  from  A  to  Z. 
It  was  not  new.  It  had  been  practised  a  hundred  times. 
It  was  no  less  ready.  It  was  no  less  on  the  watch.  When 
the  start  was  actually  made  word  would  reach  them  with¬ 
in  two  hours  and  the  whole  wolf  pack  would  jump. 

So  it  happened.  One  day  the  men  did  not  return  to  the 
city.  But  word  came  back,  and  the  rush  began.  Out  into 
the  twilight  of  the  Arctic  night  leapt  the  army  of  trail 
dogs  and  their  teamsters.  Hundreds  of  sleds  hissed  their 
way  over  the  snow-bed  on  the  great  river.  Hundreds  of 
voices  shouted  the  jargon  of  the  trail  at  their  eager  beasts 
of  burden,  and  the  fierce  whips  flung  out.  Many  were 
rushing  on  disaster  in  the  blind  northern  night.  Many 
would  never  reach  the  hoped-for  goal  to  grab  the  alluring 
wealth  from  the  bosom  of  mother  earth.  But  that  was 
always  the  way  of  it.  Whatever  the  threat,  whatever  the 
dread,  whatever  the  possibility  of  disaster,  the  lust  of  gold 
in  the  hearts  of  these  people  remained  triumphant. 

But  the  thing  worked  out  for  Wilder  as  he  designed. 
The  old  tried  artifice  gave  him  the  start  he  needed.  Three 
hours  was  all  he  required.  For  the  rest  these  hardy  ad¬ 
venturers  behind  him  would  never  see  the  snow  dust  from 


THE  END  OF  THE  LONG  TRAIL  355 


his  sled  runners.  He  was  equipped  for  a  speed  such  as 
none  of  them  could  compete  with,  and  if  the  weather  be¬ 
came  bad  he  calculated  to  lose  the  pursuit  utterly. 

It  was  a  storming  journey.  The  North  he  loved  and 
courted  did  her  best  for  him  in  return.  Snow-storm  and 
blizzard  came  to  his  aid,  and,  after  weeks  of  terrible 
hardship,  he  reached  the  Caribou  with  his  track  lost  be¬ 
neath  feet  of  drift  snow. 

He  had  gained  all  the  time  he  needed.  And  so  when 
the  spring  sun  rose  above  the  horizon,  and  the  world  of 
ice  began  its  thunderous  peals  of  disintegration,  and  the 
hordes  of  Placer  swarmed  on  the  banks  of  the  Caribou 
he  had  established  his  outfit  upon  the  staked  claims  ready 
to  hurl  at  the  work  before  him,  and  defend  his  property 
from  all  lawless  aggression. 

With  the  return  of  daylight  it  was  a  bewildering  scene 
on  the  river.  From  its  mouth  right  up  to  the  gold-work¬ 
ing  on  the  creek,  which  had  lain  so  long  hidden,  the  tide 
of  adventurers  was  swarming.  And  almost  with  every 
passing  hour  the  flood  seemed  to  grow.  The  low  banks 
were  dotted  with  tents  and  habitations  of  almost  every 
sort  of  primitive  construction.  And  men  and  women, 
and  even  children,  were  like  human  flies  where  for  ages 
the  silence  of  the  North  had  remained  all  unbroken. 

As  the  season  advanced  and  the  fever  of  work  devel¬ 
oped  to  its  height,  the  reality  of  the  thing  became  evident. 
Gold?  Why  the  original  strike  was  little  more  than  the 
fringe  of  the  thing  awaiting  those  whose  hardihood  had 
been  sufficient  for  them  to  survive  the  winter  journey. 
The  creek,  as  Chilcoot  had  suggested,  was  laden  with  its 
immense  treasure,  and  rich  claims  were  staked  for  ten 
miles  up  its  narrow  course.  ‘‘The  Luck  of  the  Kid,”  as 
Wilder  had  christened  it,  was  a  veritable  Eldorado. 


356 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


The  homestead  lying  back  in  its  shelter  of  windswept 
bluff  had  no  place  in  the  bustle  and  traffic  on  the  river.  It 
was  a  home  of  even  deeper  calm  now  than  was  its  wont 
when  the  northern  world  aroused  itself  at  the  dawn  of  the 
open  season.  Usually  at  such  a  time  the  caribou  herd 
was  brought  in,  and  the  work  its  advent  entailed  never 
failed  to  absorb  the  rising  spirits  of  those  young  lives, 
ready  like  the  simple  wild  flowers  of  spring,  to  hurl  them¬ 
selves  into  their  annual  labours  after  the  long  night  of 
winter’s  inactivity.  Usually  at  such  a  time  it  was  the 
hub  of  life  upon  the  river,  literally  teeming  in  contrast 
with  the  stillness  of  the  cheerless  valley.  But  now  the 
herd  remained  at  large  free  to  drift  back  to  its  original 
wild  state.  The  corrals  were  empty  and  unrepaired,  for 
there  was  no  Usak  to  guide  the  efforts  of  the  half- 
breed  Eskimo,  and  no  half-breed  Eskimo  to  need  such 
guidance. 

The  farm  had  died  in  the  winter  night.  And  curiously 
enough  there  were  no  mourners.  All  that  remained  was 
the  homestead  itself,  with  Hesther  McLeod  and  the  girl 
Children,  and  the  Kid,  to  enjoy  its  sturdy  shelter.  The 
half-breeds  had  joined  in  the  rush  for  gold.  And 
Clarence,  and  Alg.,  and  Perse  were  out  there,  away  up  the 
river  “batching  it”  on  their  claims,  absorbed  in  the  ex¬ 
hilarating  pursuit  of  extracting  the  wealth  which  had 
been  literally  flung  into  their  hands.  Then  Usak  had 
failed  to  return  from  his  “one  big  trip.” 

Hesther  and  the  Kid  were  at  the  kitchen  door, 
and  with  them  was  the  author  of  the  amazing  trans¬ 
formation. 

It  was  a  day  of  brilliant  sunshine  with  a  spring  sky 
of  white,  frothing,  windswept  cloud  that  broke,  and 
gathered,  and  swept  on,  yielding  a  vision  of  brilliant  blue 
sky  at  every  break.  Already  the  flies  were  making  their 


THE  END  OF  THE  LONG  TRAIL  357 

presence  felt,  and  the  river  was  a  rushing  torrent,  wide, 
and  deep,  and  brown  with  the  sweepings  of  its  completely 
submerged  banks. 

They  were  gazing  out  upon  the  distant  panorama  of 
the  busy  river.  They  were  watching  the  general  move¬ 
ment  going  on.  There  were  men  moving  up,  packing 
their  goods  afoot  since  the  river  was  for  the  moment  un- 
navigable  for  the  light  craft,  which,  as  yet,  were  alone 
available.  There  were  traders  building  shanties  for  the 
housing  of  their  wares.  There  were  tents  which  sheltered 
those  who  were  relying  on  the  gambler’s  desire  for  their 
share  in  the  feast.  There  were  other  habitations  which 
housed,  the  even  more  disreputable  creatures,  who,  like 
vultures,  hover  always  in  the  distance  waiting  to  glut 
themselves  upon  the  spoils  of  the  wayside.  Then,  much 
more  in  their  appeal  to  the  gentle  mind  of  Hesther,  there 
were  the  figures  of  women,  staunch,  devoted  women  car¬ 
rying  on  their  simple  domestic  labours  while  their  men 
were  absent  farther  up  the  river  seeking  the  treasure 
which  their  dazzled  eyes  yearned  to  gaze  upon. 

For  all  they  were  gazing  upon  the  scene  Hesther  and 
the  Kid  were  far  more  deeply  interested  in  Bill  Wilder 
and  the  thing  he  was  saying.  The  eyes  of  the  girl  were 
shining  with  unfeigned  happiness  and  delight.  The  long 
winter  of  his  absence  had  been  ended  weeks  ago,  and  his 
early  return  had  transformed  her  whole  outlook.  From 
the  moment  of  his  coming  there  had  been  no  more  dark¬ 
ness  for  her,  no  more  anxious  waiting.  For  had  not  al¬ 
most  his  first  words  been  to  tell  her  that  his  work,  that 
work  which  had  taken  him  from  her  side,  was  finished; 
completely,  successfully  finished.  The  excitement  of  the 
gold  rush,  the  excitement  of  the  boys  had  left  her  undis¬ 
turbed.  But  the  happy  excitement  of  this  man’s  return 
had  thrilled  her  in  a  fashion  that  left  her  without  thought 


358 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


or  care  for  anything  else.  And  now  he  was  detailing 
those  plans  which  envisaged  for  her  simple  mind  all  that 
was  beautiful  and  desirable  in  life. 

“You  see,”  he  said,  “ther’s  not  a  thing  here  now  to 
keep  us.  It’s  just  the  other  way  around.  All  this.”  He 
indicated  the  life  on  the  river.  “We  best  get  out  before — 
before  it  gets  worse,  as  it  surely  will.” 

He  turned  directly  to  Hesther. 

“My  organization’s  right  up  there  on  the  claims,  under 
the  control  of  Chilcoot,  and  they’re  working  your  stuff 
same  as  if  it  was  for  me.  And  the  result  of  it’ll  come 
along  through  my  office,  just  the  same  as  if  it  was  mine. 
I’m  not  needed  around  up  there.  Maybe  I  best  tell  you 
I’m  so  full  of  gold  I  don’t  care  ever  to  see  fresh  colour. 
I  want  to  quit  it  all,  and  take  you  folks  along  with  me. 
The  boys  can  stop  around  and  Chilcoot’ll  see  to  ’em. 
And  we’ll  just  get  along  down  and  fix  things  the  way 
we  want  ’em.  Ther’s  a  swell  house  waiting  in  Placer  for 
you,  mam.  It’s  all  fixed  good.  It’s  your  home,  for  you 
an’  yours  just  as  soon  as  you  feel  like  taking  possession, 
and  maybe  the  Kid  here’ll  feel  like  stopping  along  with 
you  till — till — Say,”  he  turned  to  the  smiling  girl,  “we 
won’t  let  a  thing  keep  us  waiting,  eh?  We’ll  get  married 
right  away  in  Placer,  just  as  quick  as  things  can  be  fixed 
right.  Then  your  Mum,  here,  can  choose  just  where  she 
feels  like  living.  That  so?” 

There  was  no  need  for  verbal  response.  It  was  there  in 
the  girl’s  eyes,  which  smiled  happily  up  into  his  as  she 
slipped  her  brown  hand  through  his  arm. 

“That’s  the  way  I’d  like  to  fix  things,”  he  went  on, 
taking  possession  of  the  girl’s  hand.  “Does  it  suit  you, 
mam?”  he  said,  turning  again  to  Hesther.  “Just  say 
right  here.  Ther’s  a  bank  roll  waiting  on  you  down 
there,  in  the  way  of  an  advance  on  the  stuff  that’s  coming 


THE  END  OF  THE  LONG  TRAIL  359 

to  you  out  of  your  claim.  And  I’ll  be  around  all  the 
time  to  see  you  ain’t  worried  a  thing.” 

The  gentle-eyed  mother  opened  her  lips  to  speak.  But 
words  seemed  difficult  under  his  steady  gaze.  Wilder 
glanced  quickly  away,  and  the  woman’s  emotion  passed. 

“I  just  don’t  know  how  to  say  the  thing  I  feel,  Bill,” 
she  said  softly.  “The  thing  you’ve  been  to  me  an’  mine. 
God’ll  surely  bless  you,  an’ — an’ ” 

Bill  laughed.  He  felt  his  laugh  was  needed. 

“Not  a  word  that  way.  Say,  you  been  mother  to  my 
little  Kid.  It  goes?” 

“Sure.  The  thing  you  say  goes  with  me — all  the  time.” 

Hesther  glanced  hastily  back  into  the  kitchen.  She  was 
seeking  excuse  and  found  it  in  her  simple  labours. 

“I  guess  that  stew’ll  be  boilin’,”  she  said.  “I’ll  go  fix 
it.” 

And  Billy’s  happy  smile  followed  her  into  the  room, 
while  he  caressed  the  hand  he  was  holding. 


Bill  and  the  Kid  had  passed  on  down  to  the  landing  so 
pregnant  with  memories  for  them  both. 

It  was  the  girl  who  was  talking  now  while  the  man 
stared  out  down  the  busy  river. 

“You  know,  Bill.  I  just  don’t  sort  of  understand  the 
way  this — this  gold  makes  folks  act.  It  sort  of  seems  to’ 
set  them  kind  of  crazy.  The  boys  are  the  same.  I  used 
to  feel  it  would  be  fine  to  have  dollars  an’  dollars.  I  used 
to  think  of  all  the  swell  food  and  clothes  I’d  buy  for  the 
boys,  an’  Hesther,  an’  the  girls.  That  was  all  right.  But 
I  didn’t  get  crazy  for  gold  like  these  folk.  You  say  ther’s 
a  heap  of  gold  in  my  claim.  I — I  don’t  seem  to  feel  I 
want  a  thing  of  it.  True  I  don’t.”  She  laughed.  “May- 


360 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


be  you'll  guess  I’m  more  crazy  than  they  are.  Do  you?” 

Bill  shook  his  head. 

“No,  Kid.  I  don’t,”  he  said  gently.  “I’m  glad.  Later, 
maybe,  when  we’re  married,  and  you’ve  got  around,  and 
learned  about  things,  and  seen  the  things  you  can  have 
with  gold  you'll  feel  different.  But  I’m  glad  it  don’t  get 
you  that  way  now.  I  tell  you  ther’s  a  big  heap  more  to 
life  than  this  gold.  But  ther’s  a  heap  of  good  things  you 
can  do  with  gold.  You  feel  you  want  to  make  other  folks 
happy  and  comfortable?  Well,  gold’ll  help  you  that  way. 
I  bin  all  my  life  collecting  a  bunch  of  this  dam  old  stuff, 
and  I’d  learned  to  hate  it  good.  Well,  it’s  not  that  way 
now.  Say,  I  just  lie  awake  at  nights  thinkin’  the  things 
I  can  do  for  you,  and  the  folks  belonging  to  you.  And  I 
got  to  like  the  darn  stuff  again.  And  I’m  just  as  crazy 
glad  as  all  those  other  poor  folk  I  got  it.”  He  smiled 
whimsically  down  into  the  girl’s  eyes.  “The  outfit’s 
ready,  Kid.  I’ve  had  it  ready  days,”  he  went  on.  “Ther’s 
two  big  canoes,  and  they’ll  hold  your  Mum,  and  the  gals, 
and  you  and  me  and  the  half-breeds  to  paddle.  When  do 
you  say,  little  girl  ?  It’s  right  up  to  you.” 

He  waited  anxiously  for  the  girl’s  reply.  Watching 
her  he  saw  the  happy  smile  fade  abruptly  out  of  her  eyes, 
and  he  knew  the  bad  moment  he  had  foreseen  had  arrived. 

“Usak  hasn’t  got  back,”  she  said  quickly. 

“No.”  -  >j  | 

Suddenly  the  girl  withdrew  her  hand  from  the  rough 
cloth  arm  of  the  man’s  pea-jacket. 

“You  know  I  just  can’t  understand  the  thing  that’s 
happened.  He’s  been  gone  six  months.  He  went,  as  I 
told  you,  right  after  you,  and  we  haven’t  heard  a  thing. 
You  know,  Bill,  it  kind  of  seems  to  me  he’s — dead.  I  sort 
of  feel  it  right  here,”  she  went  on,  pressing  her  hands  to 
her  bosom.  “An’ — an’  I  feel — Oh,  he  was  an  Indian  I 


THE  END  OF  THE  LONG  TRAIL  361 

know,  but  he  was  the  feller  who  raised  me  like  a  father 
an’  mother.  An’  I  sort  of  loved  him  for  it,  an’ — an’ — I 
just  can’t  bear  to  quit  till — till —  Don’t  you  understand? 
I  sort  of  feel  I  must  wait  for  him.  It  would  break  him 
all  up  if  I  quit  him.  And  I — I  don't  want  to  quit  him. 
Indeed  I  don’t.” 

For  some  moments  Bill  made  no  attempt  to  reply. 
He  remained  staring  out  at  the  surging  river  as  it  roared 
on  down  under  the  freshet.  He  did  not  even  attempt  to 
comfort  the  girl  in  her  obvious  distress. 

It  was  difficult.  But  Bill  was  steadily  resolved  not  to 
tell  the  real  truth  as  he  knew  it.  It  would  break  her 
heart  to  know  Usak  to  be  the  fierce  fiend  he  was.  No. 
If  necessary  he  would  lie  in  preference. 

He  shook  his  head  at  last. 

“He  won’t  come  back,”  he  said  decidedly.  “Get  a  grip 
on  the  position.  He  went  on  a  winter  trip.  He  set  out  in 
his  kyak,  you  told  me.  He  went  with  a  light  outfit 
and  his  rifle.  Why,  his  kyak  couldn’t  carry  two  months’ 
grub,  an’  he’s  been  away  six.  Let’s  guess  a  bit.  We 
know  this  old  North.  The  winter  trail.  We  know  these 
rivers  with  the  ice  crowding  down  on  ’em.  We  know 
you’ve  only  to  beat  the  winter  trail  long  enough  to  get 
your  med’cine.  The  North  gets  us  all  beaten  in  the  end 
if  we  don’t  quit  in  time.  The  one  way  trail’s  claimed 
Usak,  little  girl,  if  I’m  a  judge.  No.  Don’t  wait  on  his 
return.  If  he  gets  back  Chilcoot’ll  send  him  right  along  on 
to  us.  If  he’s  alive  I  mean  to  have  him  with  us.  I 
squared  things  with  him  before  he  went  so  he’ll  be  glad 
to  be  with  us  both.  Let’s  leave  it  that  way.  Eh  ?” 

The  girl’s  hand  had  stolen  back  to  its  place  on  the  man’s 
arm,  and  he  took  possession  of  it  again.  To  her  he  was 
irresistible,  and  then  there  was  that  wonderful,  wonder¬ 
ful  time  coming. 


362 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


She  nodded  her  fair  head,  and  the  smile  dawned  once 
more  in  her  eyes. 

“I  guess  it’s  best — but - ” 

“That’s  right” 

The  man  drew  a  deep  breath  of  relief.  He  had  been 
saved  a  deliberate  lie.  And  his  eyes  smiled. 

“To-morrow?”  he  said  quickly. 

But  the  girl  was  no  less  quick  in  her  denial. 

“Mum  couldn’t  be  ready.  Ther’s  the  boys.” 

Bill  laughed. 

“I  forgot.  This  day  week,  eh?”  he  went  on  urgently. 
“The  river’ll  slacken  then.  That  do?” 

The  Kid  laughed  happily  as  he  squeezed  the  soft  hand 
lying  so  contentedly  in  his. 


Superintendent  Raymes  laid  aside  the  folded  sheets  of 
the  closely  written  report  which  he  had  read  several  times 
over.  For  a  moment  he  sat  gazing  at  it  thoughtfully. 
Then  he  reached  across  his  desk  and  selected  a  long  cigar, 
and  passed  the  box  to  his  visitor  and  temporary  subor¬ 
dinate. 

“Best  take  one,  Bill,”  he  said.  Then  he  laughed  quietly. 
“You  can  only  die  once.” 

“But  I  don’t  want  to  die — now.” 

Bill  shook  his  head  and  pulled  a  pipe  from  the  pocket 
of  his  pea-jacket. 

In  a  moment  both  men  were  smoking.  Bill  gazed  about 
him  while  he  waited  for  the  other  to  speak.  It  was  the 
same  office  he  had  always  known.  Simple,  plain,  typical 
of  the  lives  of  these  Mounted  Policemen.  Somehow  it 
appealed  to  him  just  now  infinitely  more  than  it  had  ever 
done  before.  He  remembered  his  mood  that  time  when 


THE  END  OF  THE  LONG  TRAIL  363 


he  had  sat  in  the  same  chair  two  years  before.  And  some¬ 
how  he  wanted  to  laugh. 

“It’s  an  amazing  story,  Bill,”  Raymes  said  after 
awhile.  “I  guessed  when  I  got  you  interested  two  years 
back  there  was  a  deal  to  it.  But  I  never  reckoned  it  was 
going  to  be  the  thing  it  is.  Say — ”  His  eyes  lit  and  he 
swung  his  chair  about  and  faced  the  other  while  he  held 
his  cigar  poised  streaming  its  smoke  upon  the  somewhat 
dense  atmosphere  of  the  room.  “By  all  accounts  the  folk 
hereabouts  owe  you  a  deal  for  the  nosing  of  Le  Gros’ 
‘strike.’  It’s  the  biggest  since  ‘Eighty-Mile’  ?” 

Bill  shook  his  head. 

“Nobody  owes  me  a  thing — not  even  thanks.  We’ve 
helped  ourselves.  And  Lve  helped  myself  most  of  all.” 

“But  I  thought  you  said  you  hadn’t  a  claim  on  it  ?” 

“That’s  so.” 

“Well?” 

Bill  laughed  outright. 

“Guess  you’ve  forgotten  the  ‘girl-child,  white.’  ” 

Raymes  nodded.  His  usually  sober  face  was  smiling 
in  response. 

“I  know.  You  located  her.” 

“Sure  I  did.”  Bill  sucked  happily  at  his  old  pipe.  “I 
located  her.  And  I  brought  her  and  her  folks  right  down 
with  me  to  this  city.  I  fixed  ’em  all  up  in  a  swell  house, 
and  made  things  right  for  them.  The  Kid  and  I  are  go¬ 
ing  to  be  married  in  two  weeks  from  now.  And  I’ll  take 
it  friendly  for  you  to  stand  by  me  when  the  passon  fixes 
things.  No,  I  don’t  guess  anyone  owes  me  a  thing.  The 
Kid  herself  is  my  claim,  an’  she’s  chock  full  of  the  only 
gold  that  sets  me  yearning.” 

“Well,  say!” 

The  police  officer  sat  gazing  in  smiling  astonishment 

“Seems  queer?” 


364 


THE  LUCK  OF  THE  KID 


“No.  I’m  just  glad  Fve  had  a  hand  in  passing  you 
that  claim.  Good  luck,  Bill.  I’m  sure  your  man.” 

Bill  gripped  the  hand  thrust  out  at  him.  Then  the  smile 
passed  out  of  both  men’s  faces  as  if  by  agreement.  After 
all  the  policeman’s  work  was  his  foremost  concern. 

“It  don’t  seem  to  me  there’s  a  thing  to  do  about  your 
story  of  this  murdering  Indian,  and  the  folks  he  dragged 
to  death  with  him,”  he  said,  in  his  alert  official  way.  “In 
a  way  it’s  a  sort  of  poetic  justice  on  all  concerned.  I’ll 
need  to  pass  it  along  with  the  official  report,  but  it’ll  may¬ 
be  just  end  right  there.  But  these  Euralians.  That’s  a 
swell  scoop  for  me,  sure.  It’s  a  thing  for  Ottawa,  an’ll 
need  to  go  down  in  detail.  Maybe  you'll  be  needed  to 
hand  further  information.  Japanese,  eh?  Well,  it  isn’t 
new  in  this  western  country.  It’s  the  same  from  northern 
Alaska  down  to  Panama.  The  darn  continent’s  alive  with 
’em,  penetrating  peacefully,  and  robbing  us  white  folks 
of  our  birthright.  You  know,  Bill  ther’s  a  bad  day  com¬ 
ing  for  us  whites.  We  sit  around  an’  look  on,  shrugging 
our  shoulders,  and  eating  and  sleeping  well.  And  all  the 
time  this  thing’s  creeping  on  us,  like  some  darn  disease. 
The  Americans  know  it,  and  are  alive  to  the  danger.  We 
don’t  seem  to  worry.  At  least,  not  officially.  But  I  sort 
of  see  the  day  coming  when  this  thing’s  got  to  be  fought 
sheer  out,  and  I’m  by  no  means  sure  of  the  outcome. 
We’re  told  the  Yellow  man  in  the  West  outnumbers  the 
White.  But  that  don’t  suggest  a  thing  of  the  reality. 
When  the  Yellow  men  mean  to  strike  you’ll  find  they’ve 
honeycombed  this  country,  and  the  States,  and  it’ll  be 
something  like  four  to  one  waiting  to  rise  at  the  given 
word.  Yes,  it’s  bad,”  he  finished  up,  with  a  grave  shake 
of  the  head.  “But  you  certainly  have  given  me  a  swell 
scoop  that  should  help  my  boat  along  with  Ottawa.  Guess 
you  won’t  feel  like  quitting  our  territory  now,  eh?” 


THE  END  OF  THE  LONG  TRAIL  365 

The  man’s  manner  had  changed  from  gravity  to  some¬ 
thing  bantering  as  he  put  his  question. 

“More  than  ever,”  Bill  said,  with  a  shake  of  the  head. 

“But  it’s  the  North’s  given  you  all — this?” 

“Yes.  That’s  so,  George.”  Bill  knocked  out  his  pipe. 
“But  you  don’t  know.  Felice  has  been  raised  in  the  dark¬ 
ness  of  that  darn  region,  almost  without  decent  human 
comfort.  She  hasn’t  known  a  thing  but  buckskin  and 
the  river  trail,  and  the  flies  and  skitters  of  a  barren  world 
for  twenty  of  the  best  years  of  her  life.  She  doesn’t 
know  a  thing  but  an  almighty  fight  to  make  three  meals 
of  food  a  day,  and  a  night  passed  in  queer  brown  blankets 
an’  caribou  pelts.  Well,  it’s  up  to  me  to  teach  her  the 
thing  life  is  and  can  be.  I’m  going  to.  I’m  going  to  give 
her  such  a  time  she  won’t  remember  those  days.  She’s 
going  where  the  sun’s  warm  and  life’s  dead  easy.  And 
so  are  those  belonging  to  her.  It’s  up  to  me,  and  I’m 
out  to  do  it.  You  haven’t  seen  her  yet.  You’d  under¬ 
stand  if  you  had.  She’s  right  outside  sitting  waiting  for 
me  in  the  buggy.  Will  you  come  along  and  say  a  word  of 
welcome  to  her?” 

Bill  had  risen  to  his  feet.  There  was  just  a  shade  of 
eagerness  in  his  invitation.  It  was  almost  as  if  he  feared 
reluctance  in  this  old  friend  of  his. 

But  there  was  none.  Not  a  shadow.  Raymes  rose 
from  his  desk  on  the  instant,  and  his  eyes  were  full  of 
swift  censure. 

“You  kept  her  waiting  there,  Bill?”  he  cried.  “You? 
Say,  come  right  on  and  present  me,  so  I  can  tell  her  the 

thing  I  think  of  you.” 


THE  END 


NORTH 


BY 

JAMES  B.  HENDRYX 

A  story  of  Alaska, — that  it  is  by 
Hendryx  stamps  it  as  good.  He  has 
never  failed  to  give  an  interesting 
plot;  this  one  is  both  interesting  and 
unusual,  with  the  great  Alaskan 
Sweepstakes,  the  famous  dog-team 
race,  as  the  exciting  climax. 

You  will  like  Burr  MacShane  and 
you  will  love  Lou  Gordon  and  her 
dogs. 


G.  P.  PUTNAM'S  SONS 


NEW  YORK 


LONDON 


The  East  Wind 


By 

Hugh  MacNair  Kahler 


When  a  new  writer  finds  and  holds  an  audience 
of  two  million  and  more,  with  no  resort  to  sensation¬ 
alism,  sex,  or  silly  sentiment,  it  is  proof  enough  that 
he  has  extraordinary  ability  to  interest  and  entertain. 
When,  besides,  his  work  wins  emphatic  praise  from 
such  sure  critics  as  Tarkington  and  Galsworthy,  it 
is  sound  evidence  that  he  does  something  more. 

The  six  short  novels  included  in  this  book  abund¬ 
antly  illustrate  Hugh  Kahler’ s  remarkable  appeal  to 
three  types  of  reader:  those  who  read  stories  for 
the  story’s  sake,  those  who  exact  of  fiction  fresh 
mental  stimulus,  and  those  who  demand,  as  well, 
distinctive,  brilliant  craftsmanship  in  writing. 

Here  is  a  book  to  enjoy,  to  think  about,  and  to 
keep. 


G.  P.  Putnam’s  Sons 


New  York 


London 


ALCATRAZ 

BY 

MAX  BRAND 

Horses,  a  girl,  guns,  and  an  heroic 
puncher  move  through  the  pages  of  this 
story  with  delightful  rapidity,  overcoming 
a  succession  of  convincing  obstacles — and 
it  only  ends  when  the  pretty  lady  finally 
lies  with  true  romantic  fervor  in  the 
proper  pair  of  arms.  This  novel  further 
enhances  the  author’s  reputation  in  the 
field  of  Western  romances.  It  rings 
true  ! 


G.  P.  PUTNAM’S  SONS 

NEW  YORK  LONDON 


P  o  n  j  o  1  a 

By 

Cynthia  Stockley 

Ponjola  is  not  merely  another  novel — it 
is  another  Stockley  novel.  To  the  readers 
of  Poppy  this  carries  real  significance.  In 
Ponjola ,  Miss  Stockley  has  again  caught 
the  glamorous  atmosphere  of  South  Africa. 
Perhaps  better  than  any  other  writer  of 
today  this  author  knows  the  secrets  of  the 
Dark  Continent.  Ponjola  is  the  graphic 
tale  of  a  girl  who  braved  the  depths  of  the 
African  jungle  to  save  the  soul  of  the  man 
who  had  saved  hers.  It  is  romance  of  the 
highest  order. 


G.  P.  Putnam’s  Sons 

New  York  London 


'V  o  ", 


C'-  .'*0,^0  >  ,<4  »■<*»/  C> 

-X0’  <-  „ V  .v,  *  <*5^'  '  ^  * 

=  ^  A 


A  % 


f.;  /%  \w-  A-iS 

>  A  ^  J  ..  .  ^  A  <*>  -O 

\W4tL  ■' 

'V-  c\ 

R/  *4  (  4  «  G  \j 


’^/'Jj'-1^  i?  \^  r4f.  ^  ^  /  s  ^ 

(  \  r4,  ✓  ' ■  ’  *  4'  '  <T“  ^ 

'  -  '  '  *  ,  \XV  V  *  «.  ,  *>  .  *  ^  N  0  ’  A  ,  *  „  ^  ^  *  1  A  "  \V  s  S  *  *  / 

v  t  s  *  x*  Sy  * s  0  /•  c>  v  s s  • 

A  r  a  *  *-  ^ 


<A  y  o  *  x*  A  ^  "a  *y 

*  A  C  °N  A  ^5 

A  ■>  .  '  j) 

^  A  " 

^Z.  A  o 


.A  .‘! 


W 


-*  (. 


*  u.  c  ^ 

9^  *  A  •*  *  \ . A  ■  ::  yO  O  >■  ^ 

*  w#i;  c*  -v  .  A  ^  *  4 

°o,  4  ,.'  A  ^  '*,A>”s.O'  c'°,  *■» 

A  *m\/  Aflfc:  %.A"'A\V'V/\ 


A*  A 

XP  'V 

V  </> 

VV,W^f  '••  w*~  y  ^  % 

A/  a  s'  -o'  <*  yo*jA  A  A  <0 

>  N  c  «  a  ,  A  1  *  *  %  AX  c  0  N  c  ♦  7o  <y 

A  Ov  A  -  .  .  ,  %  ^  ^  ^  *  A  G%'  • 


A  A 


x°  <=*  -  Vs? 


.  _o 


-  ,>  -  rvr  * 

/A  A*  ^  AAA  A  0 

1  '  \>  s'-  *  A  >  o>  *Y  *  <A 

a  ♦  ^  a-  "  ^  ^ 


■>^  V  *» 

o  0 x 


r  ^  ■%  *  *""« 

^  V,  ,  ,  \  s>  .  -\~  '<- 

c°/  '■*;■  ,»'  %  -, 
A  .  V'>A  ^ 


^  V 

.A 


A  ',W.;  •^VV%W>*A 

8  «  "  ’  '  A^V  A  N  CA  6  *  .o^A  4  ‘  *  % 

^  ^  ^  c-C^Ny  ^  >  (  >  v  /v7^ ■  ^ 

,  ;A  A  ' 


-  =  x°  q, 


o  o' 


>^.  A  << 

A:  ; 


J  A°  %■  »«i  ' a  B ,  A.  *  i  s  o 

A0'  V  \>  s'  ,  A  >  ,<A 

<$>  J.A,AV  ^  A-  -  ^  1 

-  jA  CA  o  $■  . 


\  ^  w  ,  , 

, 

•> .  Oj  ,0'  s“ 


^L'.  W 


4  ,A  %  \W /  A  %  %  W'.*  xV 

'  1  f  *  '-Co  ’,‘”'\<S  ,»“•■»  ‘-H? '  **  ' '  As  *' 

\°  ©t. 

/>  ^V,V\\T  •s  ^  rf- 

A  s  *  _0 


T 

^  VK”  **  ..'SW’i  '° 

-  •?  --  ■-  ' 


**■ 

.9*'  %  *• 

a*  ,  v  -e< 


JOv  3/  c  A  xv  • 

*>  <^\ 

•ft 


%'«yisy 

V'  s '  •  ”  '  „  >  ’  N  .?'  »,?  *  0  A 


- 

-  p=!  ^  ^  '.<,  Q  If,  ,  /  \  ,  fj  .’ 

'.V  j>  *  ^  *  v,'  <?'  "  -  '  ’  *  *$• 

c£*  ✓  ®%j.<  yM®*  -\  C*  *  ■*.)  £>  •*  v"  air».  i> 

'•  .  ^  ^ 


° .  »«,>■’  .«' 

»  /  V  \>  S  ' 


'  %  <tr 


#CU  \* 

o>  \>  ' s  V  ' 


*0  0X 


\\X  ^ 


■  iM-  *  v»  ^ 

.C'^;-,V1  /  | 

^  : 

&,.  * 

&-J,  0 

> 


A*. 

f-  ,\V 
%  /  1f  'V 


0  #  >, 


\0^. 


“■  .<■•»'<«.  '  ‘  V\  «  K  ‘  ♦  .V,b.' '  *  *  '  W 1  '  *  *  ,%, 

'b  ox 

* 

\^*  ^  ■ 

/">*  o°  cb  «*■  *-  ^  & 

*•,,'>  9*  ,r  *  °  / 

•>>  <*■  'i  *?£  ’  A  V  *  a’?  <* 

./  ;  , c  A®r.v>,  $  i  , 

^w^rtasl  «  o  o'  •  >  /  ;.  •  -  y  V 


/  »  .\NV 


^  \  ’J.  OX  '  j,  A  A  J 

A  *  «  l  \  &  vV  .»»,  *''N«  Ap 

c-  \>  s  lLr"  >  <y  %. " n ' 

-  ^  .  o.  ^ .  y.  -  A-& ‘  -  r  (£  M  . 


^  '+K^/‘r*' 

^  s 

c  0  -•  c  4-  ^ 

-  O  x>  PsT^.  X 


( 


^  ^  0N 

^  ’U 

v  ^  V  -> 

''  / 

0  ''"' 


c 


1HF-  al  !»#'  ^0o- 

•J-  \X  -  '  -  <,  ,>, 

"o  *  g  I  1  ^  *  ♦  t  *  ■>  N  0  '  ^0  'O  ^  8  ,  A  -'  \ 

-  c5»^  "  v^'^.  :  •“  <&\  ° 

<  '  0  *  y  AX  tJ  r  %>  //j  *  *  0  ^  ,11  <b  *  0  *  K~* 

<?y ''•>:*  %  /  .‘1“'^  %  &  ^ 

'  y  ^  ^  .- 


^  AV  r\V'  ^  ^Vwi 


>»■>. 


V».t^’*  /.  %  ^ 

,9^  %•  '  *  "r  Cy 

,,  '  .  a'D  r  ^  'ry,  -  q. 

K<  <V  ^  ,r{'  \/  fh  .  ,/>  AX‘ 

^  ^  /  :£>>;  |  ;  'p  5 

<XV  cf>^  Z  '  '  --  CA>  ® 

■'>  "  ’'Wv‘-w  *  <?* 

A  /  A  /;s  s s  a0V  <\  ^0  *  ^  N  «  /  •*’*  s s 

a\  ,0^-f  44  « '  1  fi  Jt  <*  Ax  C 0  N  * ,  o. 

,v  ^  v  ,  O.  /•V.)  N  -f  -<i 

^  °  0  -  tftffffe, %  ->^  >\\  -  a7  -  ^ 

iN  -oo<  .-/,-fe..^ :  '^-x 


4  4  ^ 

c6  v  •>* 


^  -i  i  \° 


r,  r\ 


o  A 
>  0' 


LIBRARY  OF  CONGRESS